summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authorRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-15 05:18:15 -0700
committerRoger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org>2025-10-15 05:18:15 -0700
commitc3c87a469c091c249111b78a170dba6e6e34af97 (patch)
tree1947487b644fee1124f37e866d28465d57c3c9a7
initial commit of ebook 2043HEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--2043-0.txt14476
-rw-r--r--2043-0.zipbin0 -> 290234 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/2043_2000-01-01.txt14354
6 files changed, 28846 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/2043-0.txt b/2043-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4c3e06d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/2043-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,14476 @@
+The Project Gutenberg eBook of Stories by Modern American Authors
+#4 in our Lock and Key series edited by Julian Hawthorne
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
+most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
+whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
+of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
+www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
+will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
+using this eBook.
+
+Title: Stories by Modern American Authors
+
+Author: Julian Hawthorne
+
+Release Date: Jaanuary 1, 2000 [eBook #2043]
+[Most recently updated: September 26, 2023]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: UTF-8
+
+Revised by: Richard Tonsing.
+
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK Stories by MODERN AMERICAN AUTHORS ***
+
+
+
+
+THE LOCK AND KEY LIBRARY
+
+THE MOST INTERESTING STORIES OF ALL NATIONS
+
+
+Edited by Julian Hawthorne
+
+
+AMERICAN
+
+
+
+
+Table of Contents
+
+
+INTRODUCTION BY JULIAN HAWTHORNE
+
+“Riddle Stories”
+
+
+F. MARION CRAWFORD (1854–)
+By the Waters of Paradise
+
+
+MARY E. WILKINS FREEMAN (1862–)
+The Shadows on the Wall
+
+
+MELVILLE D. POST (1871–)
+The Corpus Delicti
+
+
+AMBROSE BIERCE (1842–)
+An Heiress from Redhorse
+The Man and the Snake
+
+
+EDGAR ALLAN POE (1809–49)
+The Oblong Box
+The Gold-Bug
+
+
+WASHINGTON IRVING (1783–1859)
+Wolfert Webber, or Golden Dreams
+Adventure of the Black Fisherman
+
+
+CHARLES BROCKDEN BROWN (1771–1810)
+Wieland’s Madness
+
+
+FITZJAMES O’BRIEN (1828–1862)
+The Golden Ingot
+My Wife’s Tempter
+
+
+NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE (1804–1864)
+The Minister’s Black Veil
+
+
+ANONYMOUS
+Horror: A True Tale
+
+
+
+
+“Riddle Stories”
+
+Introduction by Julian Hawthorne
+
+
+When Poe wrote his immortal Dupin tales, the name “Detective”
+stories had not been invented; the detective of fiction not having
+been as yet discovered. And the title is still something of a
+misnomer, for many narratives involving a puzzle of some sort,
+though belonging to the category which I wish to discuss, are
+handled by the writer without expert detective aid. Sometimes the
+puzzle solves itself through operation of circumstance; sometimes
+somebody who professes no special detective skill happens upon the
+secret of its mystery; once in a while some venturesome genius has
+the courage to leave his enigma unexplained. But ever since
+Gaboriau created his Lecoq, the transcendent detective has been in
+favor; and Conan Doyle’s famous gentleman analyst has given him a
+fresh lease of life, and reanimated the stage by reverting to the
+method of Poe. Sherlock Holmes is Dupin redivivus, and mutatus
+mutandis; personally he is a more stirring and engaging companion,
+but so far as kinship to probabilities or even possibilities is
+concerned, perhaps the older version of him is the more
+presentable. But in this age of marvels we seem less difficult to
+suit in this respect than our forefathers were.
+
+The fact is, meanwhile, that, in the riddle story, the detective
+was an afterthought, or, more accurately, a deus ex machina to make
+the story go. The riddle had to be unriddled; and who could do it
+so naturally and readily as a detective? The detective, as Poe saw
+him, was a means to this end; and it was only afterwards that
+writers perceived his availability as a character. Lecoq
+accordingly becomes a figure in fiction, and Sherlock, while he was
+as yet a novelty, was nearly as attractive as the complications in
+which he involved himself. Riddle-story writers in general,
+however, encounter the obvious embarrassment that their detective
+is obliged to lavish so much attention on the professional services
+which the exigencies of the tale demand of him, that he has very
+little leisure to expound his own personal equation—the rather
+since the attitude of peering into a millstone is not, of itself,
+conducive to elucidations of oneself; the professional endowment
+obscures all the others. We ordinarily find, therefore, our author
+dismissing the individuality of his detective with a few strong
+black-chalk outlines, and devoting his main labor upon what he
+feels the reader will chiefly occupy his own ingenuity with,—
+namely, the elaboration of the riddle itself. Reader and writer
+sit down to a game, as it were, with the odds, of course,
+altogether on the latter’s side,—apart from the fact that a writer
+sometimes permits himself a little cheating. It more often happens
+that the detective appears to be in the writer’s pay, and aids the
+deception by leading the reader off on false scents. Be that as it
+may, the professional sleuth is in nine cases out of ten a dummy by
+malice prepense; and it might be plausibly argued that, in the
+interests of pure art, that is what he ought to be. But genius
+always finds a way that is better than the rules, and I think it
+will be found that the very best riddle stories contrive to drive
+character and riddle side by side, and to make each somehow enhance
+the effect of the other.—The intention of the above paragraph will
+be more precisely conveyed if I include under the name of detective
+not only the man from the central office, but also anybody whom the
+writer may, for ends of his own, consider better qualified for that
+function. The latter is a professional detective so far as the
+exigencies of the tale are concerned, and what becomes of him after
+that nobody need care,—there is no longer anything to prevent his
+becoming, in his own right, the most fascinating of mankind.
+
+But in addition to the dummyship of the detective, or to the cases
+in which the mere slip of circumstance takes his place, there is
+another reason against narrowing our conception of the riddle story
+to the degree which the alternative appellation would imply. And
+that is, that it would exclude not a few of the most captivating
+riddle stories in existence; for in De Quincey’s “Avenger,” for
+example, the interest is not in the unraveling of the web, but in
+the weaving of it. The same remark applies to Bulwer’s “Strange
+Story”; it is the strangeness that is the thing. There is, in
+short, an inalienable charm in the mere contemplation of mystery
+and the hazard of fortunes; and it would be a pity to shut them out
+from our consideration only because there is no second-sighted
+conjurer on hand to turn them into plain matter of fact.
+
+Yet we must not be too liberal; and a ghost story can be brought
+into our charmed and charming circle only if we have made up our
+minds to believe in the ghosts; otherwise their introduction would
+not be a square deal. It would not be fair, in other words, to
+propose a conundrum on a basis of ostensible materialism, and then,
+when no other key would fit, to palm off a disembodied spirit on
+us. Tell me beforehand that your scenario is to include both
+worlds, and I have no objection to make; I simply attune my mind to
+the more extensive scope. But I rebel at an unheralded ghostland,
+and declare frankly that your tale is incredible. And I must
+confess that I would as lief have ghosts kept out altogether; their
+stories make a very good library in themselves, and have no need to
+tag themselves on to what is really another department of fiction.
+Nevertheless, when a ghost story is told with the consummate art of
+a Miss Wilkins, and of one or two others on our list, consistency
+in this regard ceases to be a jewel; art proves irresistible. As
+for adventure stories, there is a fringe of them that comes under
+the riddle-story head; but for the most part the riddle story
+begins after the adventures have finished. We are to contemplate a
+condition, not to watch the events that ultimate in it. Our
+detective, or anyone else, may of course meet with haps and mishaps
+on his way to the solution of his puzzle; but an astute writer will
+not color such incidents too vividly, lest he risk forfeiting our
+preoccupation with the problem that we came forth for to study. In
+a word, One thing at a time!
+
+The foregoing disquisition may seem uncalled for by such rigid
+moralists as have made up their minds not to regard detective, or
+riddle stories, as any part of respectable literature at all. With
+that sect, I announce at the outset that I am entirely out of
+sympathy. It is not needed to compare “The Gold Bug” with
+“Paradise Lost”; nobody denies the superior literary stature of the
+latter, although, as the Oxford Senior Wrangler objected, “What
+does it prove?” But I appeal to Emerson, who, in his poem of “The
+Mountain and the Squirrel,” states the nub of the argument, with
+incomparable felicity, as follows:—you will recall that the two
+protagonists had a difference, originating in the fact that the
+former called the latter “Little Prig.” Bun made a very sprightly
+retort, summing up to this effect:—
+
+
+ “Talents differ; all is well and wisely put;
+ If I cannot carry forests on my back,
+ Neither can you crack a nut.”
+
+
+Andes and Paradises Lost are expedient and perhaps necessary in
+their proper atmosphere and function; but Squirrels and Gold Bugs
+are indispensable in our daily walk. There is as fine and as true
+literature in Poe’s Tales as in Milton’s epics; only the elevation
+and dimensions differ. But I would rather live in a world that
+possessed only literature of the Poe caliber, than shiver in one
+echoing solely the strains of the Miltonian muse. Mere human
+beings are not constructed to stand all day a-tiptoe on the misty
+mountain tops; they like to walk the streets most of the time and
+sit in easy chairs. And writings that picture the human mind and
+nature, in true colors and in artistic proportions, are literature,
+and nobody has any business to pooh-pooh them. In fact, I feel as
+if I were knocking down a man of straw. I look in vain for any
+genuine resistance. Of course “The Gold Bug” is literature; of
+course any other story of mystery and puzzle is also literature,
+provided it is as good as “The Gold Bug,”—or I will say, since
+that standard has never since been quite attained, provided it is a
+half or a tenth as good. It is goldsmith’s work; it is Chinese
+carving; it is Daedalian; it is fine. It is the product of the
+ingenuity lobe of the human brain working and expatiating in
+freedom. It is art; not spiritual or transcendental art, but solid
+art, to be felt and experienced. You may examine it at your
+leisure, it will be always ready for you; you need not fast or
+watch your arms overnight in order to understand it. Look at the
+nice setting of the mortises; mark how the cover fits; how smooth
+is the working of that spring drawer. Observe that this bit of
+carving, which seemed mere ornament, is really a vital part of the
+mechanism. Note, moreover, how balanced and symmetrical the whole
+design is, with what economy and foresight every part is fashioned.
+It is not only an ingenious structure, it is a handsome bit of
+furniture, and will materially improve the looks of the empty
+chambers, or disorderly or ungainly chambers that you carry under
+your crown. Or if it happen that these apartments are noble in
+decoration and proportions, then this captivating little object
+will find a suitable place in some spare nook or other, and will
+rest or entertain eyes too long focused on the severely sublime and
+beautiful. I need not, however, rely upon abstract argument to
+support my contention. Many of the best writers of all time have
+used their skill in the inverted form of story telling, as a glance
+at our table of contents will show; and many of their tales depend
+for their effect as much on character and atmosphere as on the play
+and complication of events.
+
+The statement that a good detective or riddle story is good in art
+is supported by the fact that the supply of really good ones is
+relatively small, while the number of writers who would write good
+ones if they could, and who have tried and failed to write them, is
+past computation. And one reason probably is that such stories,
+for their success, must depend primarily upon structure—a sound
+and perfect plot—which is one of the rare things in our
+contemporary fiction. Our writers get hold of an incident, or a
+sentiment, or a character, or a moral principle, or a hit of
+technical knowledge, or a splotch of local color, or even of a new
+version of dialect, and they will do something in two to ten
+thousand words out of that and call it a short story. Magazines
+may be found to print it—for there are all manner of magazines;
+but nothing of that sort will serve for a riddle story. You cannot
+make a riddle story by beginning it and then trusting to luck to
+bring it to an end. You must know all about the end and the middle
+before thinking, even, of the beginning; the beginning of a riddle
+story, unlike those of other stories and of other enterprises, is
+not half the battle; it is next to being quite unimportant, and,
+moreover, it is always easy. The unexplained corpse lies weltering
+in its gore in the first paragraph; the inexplicable cipher
+presents its enigma at the turning of the opening page. The writer
+who is secure in the knowledge that he has got a good thing coming,
+and has arranged the manner and details of its coming, cannot go
+far wrong with his exordium; he wants to get into action at once,
+and that is his best assurance that he will do it in the right way.
+But O! what a labor and sweat it is; what a planning and trimming;
+what a remodeling, curtailing, interlining; what despairs succeeded
+by new lights, what heroic expedients tried at the last moment, and
+dismissed the moment after; what wastepaper baskets full of
+futilities, and what gallant commencements all over again! Did the
+reader know, or remotely suspect, what terrific struggles the
+writer of a really good detective story had sustained, he would
+regard the final product with a new wonder and respect, and read it
+all over once more to find out how the troubles occurred. But he
+will search in vain; there are no signs of them left; no, not so
+much as a scar. The tale moves along as smoothly and inevitably as
+oiled machinery; obviously, it could not have been arranged
+otherwise than it is; and the wise reader is convinced that he
+could have done the thing himself without half trying. At that,
+the weary writer smiles a bitter smile; but it is one of the spurns
+that patient merit of the unworthy takes. Nobody, except him who
+has tried it, will ever know how hard it is to write a really good
+detective story. The man or woman who can do it can also write a
+good play (according to modern ideas of plays), and possesses force
+of character, individuality, and mental ability. He or she must
+combine the intuition of the artist with the talent of the master
+mechanic, but will seldom be a poet, and will generally care more
+for things and events than for fellow creatures. For, although the
+story is often concerned with righting some wrong, or avenging some
+murder, yet it must be confessed that the author commonly succeeds
+better in the measure of his ruthlessness in devising crimes and
+giving his portraits of devils an extra touch of black. Mercy is
+not his strong point, however he may abound in justice; and he will
+not stickle at piling up the agony, if thereby he provides
+opportunity for enhancing the picturesqueness and completeness of
+the evil doer’s due.
+
+But this leads me to the admission that one charge, at least, does
+lie against the door of the riddle-story writer; and that is, that
+he is not sincere; he makes his mysteries backward, and knows the
+answer to his riddle before he states its terms. He deliberately
+supplies his reader, also, with all manner of false scents, well
+knowing them to be such; and concocts various seeming artless and
+innocent remarks and allusions, which in reality are diabolically
+artful, and would deceive the very elect. All this, I say, must be
+conceded; but it is not unfair; the very object, ostensibly, of the
+riddle story is to prompt you to sharpen your wits; and as you are
+yourself the real detective in the case, so you must regard your
+author as the real criminal whom you are to detect. Credit no
+statement of his save as supported by the clearest evidence; be
+continually repeating to yourself, “Timeo Danaos et dona
+ferentes,”—nay, never so much as then. But, as I said before,
+when the game is well set, you have no chance whatever against the
+dealer; and for my own part, I never try to be clever when I go up
+against these thimble-riggers; I believe all they tell me, and
+accept the most insolent gold bricks; and in that way I
+occasionally catch some of the very ablest of them napping; for
+they are so subtle that they will sometimes tell you the truth
+because they think you will suppose it to be a lie. I do not wish
+to catch them napping, however; I cling to the wisdom of ignorance,
+and childishly enjoy the way in which things work themselves out—
+the cul-de-sac resolving itself at the very last moment into a
+promising corridor toward the outer air. At every rebuff it is my
+happiness to be hopelessly bewildered; and I gape with admiration
+when the Gordian knot is untied. If the author be old-fashioned
+enough to apostrophize the Gentle Reader, I know he must mean me,
+and docilely give ear, and presently tumble head-foremost into the
+treacherous pit he has digged for me. In brief, I am there to be
+sold, and I get my money’s worth. No one can thoroughly enjoy
+riddle stories unless he is old enough, or young enough, or, at any
+rate, wise enough to appreciate the value of the faculty of being
+surprised. Those sardonic and omniscient persons who know
+everything beforehand, and smile compassionately or scornfully at
+the artless outcries of astonishment of those who are uninformed,
+may get an ill-natured satisfaction out of the persuasion that they
+are superior beings; but there is very little meat in that sort of
+happiness, and the uninformed have the better lot after all.
+
+I need hardly point out that there is a distinction and a
+difference between short riddle stories and long ones—novels. The
+former require far more technical art for their proper development;
+the enigma cannot be posed in so many ways, but must be stated once
+for all; there cannot be false scents, or but a few of them; there
+can be small opportunity for character drawing, and all kinds of
+ornament and comment must be reduced to their very lowest terms.
+Here, indeed, as everywhere, genius will have its way; and while a
+merely talented writer would deem it impossible to tell the story
+of “The Gold Bug” in less than a volume, Poe could do it in a few
+thousand words, and yet appear to have said everything worth
+saying. In the case of the Sherlock Holmes tales, they form a
+series, and our previous knowledge of the hero enables the writer
+to dispense with much description and accompaniment that would be
+necessary had that eminent personage been presented in only a
+single complication of events. Each special episode of the great
+analyst’s career can therefore be handled with the utmost economy,
+and yet fill all the requirements of intelligent interest and
+comprehension. But, as a rule, the riddle novel approaches its
+theme in a spirit essentially other than that which inspires the
+short tale. We are given, as it were, a wide landscape instead of
+a detailed genre picture. The number of the dramatis personae is
+much larger, and the parts given to many of them may be very small,
+though each should have his or her necessary function in the
+general plan. It is much easier to create perplexity on these
+terms; but on the other hand, the riddle novel demands a power of
+vivid character portrayal and of telling description which are not
+indispensable in the briefer narrative. A famous tale, published
+perhaps forty years ago, but which cannot be included in our
+series, tells the story of a murder the secret of which is
+admirably concealed till the last; and much of the fascination of
+the book is due to the ability with which the leading character,
+and some of the subordinate ones, are drawn. The author was a
+woman, and I have often marveled that women so seldom attempt this
+form of literature; many of them possess a good constructive
+faculty, and their love of detail and of mystery is notorious.
+Perhaps they are too fond of sentiment; and sentiment must be
+handled with caution in riddle stories. The fault of all riddle
+novels is that they inevitably involve two kinds of interest, and
+can seldom balance these so perfectly that one or the other of them
+shall not suffer. The mind of the reader becomes weary in its
+frequent journeys between human characters on one side the
+mysterious events on the other, and would prefer the more single-
+eyed treatment of the short tale. Wonder, too, is a very tender
+and short-lived emotion, and sometimes perishes after a few pages.
+Curiosity is tougher; but that too may be baffled too long, and end
+by tiring of the pursuit while it is yet in its early stages. Many
+excellent plots, admirable from the constructive point of view,
+have been wasted by stringing them out too far; the reader
+recognizes their merit, but loses his enthusiasm on account of a
+sort of monotony of strain; he wickedly turns to the concluding
+chapter, and the game is up. “The Woman in White,” by Wilkie
+Collins, was published about 1860, I think, in weekly installments,
+and certainly they were devoured with insatiable appetite by many
+thousands of readers. But I doubt whether a book of similar merit
+could command such a following to-day; and I will even confess that
+I have myself never read the concluding parts, and do not know to
+this day who the woman was or what were the wrongs from which she
+so poignantly suffered.
+
+The tales contained in the volumes herewith offered are the best
+riddle or detective stories in the world, according to the best
+judgment of the editors. They are the product of writers of all
+nations; and translation, in this case, is less apt to be
+misleading than with most other forms of literature, for a mystery
+or a riddle is equally captivating in all languages. Many of the
+good ones—perhaps some of the best ones—have been left out,
+either because we missed them in our search, or because we had to
+choose between them and others seemingly of equal excellence, and
+were obliged to consider space limitations which, however
+generously laid out, must have some end at last. Be that as it
+may, we believe that there are enough good stories here to satisfy
+the most Gargantuan hunger, and we feel sure that our volumes will
+never be crowded off the shelf which has once made room for them.
+If we have, now and then, a little transcended the strict
+definition of the class of fiction which our title would promise,
+we shall nevertheless not anticipate any serious quarrel with our
+readers; if there be room to question the right of any given story
+to appear in this company, there will be all the more reason for
+accepting it on its own merits; for it had to be very good indeed
+in order to overcome its technical disqualification. And if it did
+not rightfully belong here, there would probably be objections as
+strong to admitting it in any other collection. Between two or
+more stools, it would be a pity to let it fall to the ground; so
+let it be forgiven, and please us with whatever gift it has.
+
+In many cases where copyrights were still unexpired, we have to
+express our acknowledgments to writers and publishers who have
+accorded us the courtesy of their leave to reproduce what their
+genius or enterprise has created and put forth. To our readers we
+take pleasure in presenting what we know cannot fail to give them
+pleasure—a collection of the fruits of the finest literary
+ingenuity and nicest art accessible to the human mind. Gaudeat,
+non caveat emptor!
+
+JULIAN HAWTHORNE.
+
+
+
+
+American Mystery Stories
+
+
+
+
+F. Marion Crawford
+
+
+
+
+By the Waters of Paradise
+
+
+I
+
+
+I remember my childhood very distinctly. I do not think that the
+fact argues a good memory, for I have never been clever at learning
+words by heart, in prose or rhyme; so that I believe my remembrance
+of events depends much more upon the events themselves than upon my
+possessing any special facility for recalling them. Perhaps I am
+too imaginative, and the earliest impressions I received were of a
+kind to stimulate the imagination abnormally. A long series of
+little misfortunes, so connected with each other as to suggest a
+sort of weird fatality, so worked upon my melancholy temperament
+when I was a boy that, before I was of age, I sincerely believed
+myself to be under a curse, and not only myself, but my whole
+family and every individual who bore my name.
+
+I was born in the old place where my father, and his father, and
+all his predecessors had been born, beyond the memory of man. It
+is a very old house, and the greater part of it was originally a
+castle, strongly fortified, and surrounded by a deep moat supplied
+with abundant water from the hills by a hidden aqueduct. Many of
+the fortifications have been destroyed, and the moat has been
+filled up. The water from the aqueduct supplies great fountains,
+and runs down into huge oblong basins in the terraced gardens, one
+below the other, each surrounded by a broad pavement of marble
+between the water and the flower-beds. The waste surplus finally
+escapes through an artificial grotto, some thirty yards long, into
+a stream, flowing down through the park to the meadows beyond, and
+thence to the distant river. The buildings were extended a little
+and greatly altered more than two hundred years ago, in the time of
+Charles II., but since then little has been done to improve them,
+though they have been kept in fairly good repair, according to our
+fortunes.
+
+In the gardens there are terraces and huge hedges of box and
+evergreen, some of which used to be clipped into shapes of animals,
+in the Italian style. I can remember when I was a lad how I used
+to try to make out what the trees were cut to represent, and how I
+used to appeal for explanations to Judith, my Welsh nurse. She
+dealt in a strange mythology of her own, and peopled the gardens
+with griffins, dragons, good genii and bad, and filled my mind with
+them at the same time. My nursery window afforded a view of the
+great fountains at the head of the upper basin, and on moonlight
+nights the Welshwoman would hold me up to the glass and bid me look
+at the mist and spray rising into mysterious shapes, moving
+mystically in the white light like living things.
+
+“It’s the Woman of the Water,” she used to say; and sometimes she
+would threaten that if I did not go to sleep the Woman of the Water
+would steal up to the high window and carry me away in her wet
+arms.
+
+The place was gloomy. The broad basins of water and the tall
+evergreen hedges gave it a funereal look, and the damp-stained
+marble causeways by the pools might have been made of tombstones.
+The gray and weather-beaten walls and towers without, the dark and
+massively furnished rooms within, the deep, mysterious recesses and
+the heavy curtains, all affected my spirits. I was silent and sad
+from my childhood. There was a great clock tower above, from which
+the hours rang dismally during the day, and tolled like a knell in
+the dead of night. There was no light nor life in the house, for
+my mother was a helpless invalid, and my father had grown
+melancholy in his long task of caring for her. He was a thin, dark
+man, with sad eyes; kind, I think, but silent and unhappy. Next to
+my mother, I believe he loved me better than anything on earth, for
+he took immense pains and trouble in teaching me, and what he
+taught me I have never forgotten. Perhaps it was his only
+amusement, and that may be the reason why I had no nursery
+governess or teacher of any kind while he lived.
+
+I used to be taken to see my mother every day, and sometimes twice
+a day, for an hour at a time. Then I sat upon a little stool near
+her feet, and she would ask me what I had been doing, and what I
+wanted to do. I dare say she saw already the seeds of a profound
+melancholy in my nature, for she looked at me always with a sad
+smile, and kissed me with a sigh when I was taken away.
+
+One night, when I was just six years old, I lay awake in the
+nursery. The door was not quite shut, and the Welsh nurse was
+sitting sewing in the next room. Suddenly I heard her groan, and
+say in a strange voice, “One—two—one—two!” I was frightened,
+and I jumped up and ran to the door, barefooted as I was.
+
+“What is it, Judith?” I cried, clinging to her skirts. I can
+remember the look in her strange dark eyes as she answered:
+
+“One—two leaden coffins, fallen from the ceiling!” she crooned,
+working herself in her chair. “One—two—a light coffin and a
+heavy coffin, falling to the floor!”
+
+Then she seemed to notice me, and she took me back to bed and sang
+me to sleep with a queer old Welsh song.
+
+I do not know how it was, but the impression got hold of me that
+she had meant that my father and mother were going to die very
+soon. They died in the very room where she had been sitting that
+night. It was a great room, my day nursery, full of sun when there
+was any; and when the days were dark it was the most cheerful place
+in the house. My mother grew rapidly worse, and I was transferred
+to another part of the building to make place for her. They
+thought my nursery was gayer for her, I suppose; but she could not
+live. She was beautiful when she was dead, and I cried bitterly.
+
+“The light one, the light one—the heavy one to come,” crooned the
+Welshwoman. And she was right. My father took the room after my
+mother was gone, and day by day he grew thinner and paler and
+sadder.
+
+“The heavy one, the heavy one—all of lead,” moaned my nurse, one
+night in December, standing still, just as she was going to take
+away the light after putting me to bed. Then she took me up again
+and wrapped me in a little gown, and led me away to my father’s
+room. She knocked, but no one answered. She opened the door, and
+we found him in his easy chair before the fire, very white, quite
+dead.
+
+So I was alone with the Welshwoman till strange people came, and
+relations whom I had never seen; and then I heard them saying that
+I must be taken away to some more cheerful place. They were kind
+people, and I will not believe that they were kind only because I
+was to be very rich when I grew to be a man. The world never
+seemed to be a very bad place to me, nor all the people to be
+miserable sinners, even when I was most melancholy. I do not
+remember that anyone ever did me any great injustice, nor that I
+was ever oppressed or ill treated in any way, even by the boys at
+school. I was sad, I suppose, because my childhood was so gloomy,
+and, later, because I was unlucky in everything I undertook, till I
+finally believed I was pursued by fate, and I used to dream that
+the old Welsh nurse and the Woman of the Water between them had
+vowed to pursue me to my end. But my natural disposition should
+have been cheerful, as I have often thought.
+
+Among the lads of my age I was never last, or even among the last,
+in anything; but I was never first. If I trained for a race, I was
+sure to sprain my ankle on the day when I was to run. If I pulled
+an oar with others, my oar was sure to break. If I competed for a
+prize, some unforeseen accident prevented my winning it at the last
+moment. Nothing to which I put my hand succeeded, and I got the
+reputation of being unlucky, until my companions felt it was always
+safe to bet against me, no matter what the appearances might be. I
+became discouraged and listless in everything. I gave up the idea
+of competing for any distinction at the University, comforting
+myself with the thought that I could not fail in the examination
+for the ordinary degree. The day before the examination began I
+fell ill; and when at last I recovered, after a narrow escape from
+death, I turned my back upon Oxford, and went down alone to visit
+the old place where I had been born, feeble in health and
+profoundly disgusted and discouraged. I was twenty-one years of
+age, master of myself and of my fortune; but so deeply had the long
+chain of small unlucky circumstances affected me that I thought
+seriously of shutting myself up from the world to live the life of
+a hermit and to die as soon as possible. Death seemed the only
+cheerful possibility in my existence, and my thoughts soon dwelt
+upon it altogether.
+
+I had never shown any wish to return to my own home since I had
+been taken away as a little boy, and no one had ever pressed me to
+do so. The place had been kept in order after a fashion, and did
+not seem to have suffered during the fifteen years or more of my
+absence. Nothing earthly could affect those old gray walls that
+had fought the elements for so many centuries. The garden was more
+wild than I remembered it; the marble causeways about the pools
+looked more yellow and damp than of old, and the whole place at
+first looked smaller. It was not until I had wandered about the
+house and grounds for many hours that I realized the huge size of
+the home where I was to live in solitude. Then I began to delight
+in it, and my resolution to live alone grew stronger.
+
+The people had turned out to welcome me, of course, and I tried to
+recognize the changed faces of the old gardener and the old
+housekeeper, and to call them by name. My old nurse I knew at
+once. She had grown very gray since she heard the coffins fall in
+the nursery fifteen years before, but her strange eyes were the
+same, and the look in them woke all my old memories. She went over
+the house with me.
+
+“And how is the Woman of the Water?” I asked, trying to laugh a
+little. “Does she still play in the moonlight?”
+
+“She is hungry,” answered the Welshwoman, in a low voice.
+
+“Hungry? Then we will feed her.” I laughed. But old Judith
+turned very pale, and looked at me strangely.
+
+“Feed her? Aye—you will feed her well,” she muttered, glancing
+behind her at the ancient housekeeper, who tottered after us with
+feeble steps through the halls and passages.
+
+I did not think much of her words. She had always talked oddly, as
+Welshwomen will, and though I was very melancholy I am sure I was
+not superstitious, and I was certainly not timid. Only, as in a
+far-off dream, I seemed to see her standing with the light in her
+hand and muttering, “The heavy one—all of lead,” and then leading
+a little boy through the long corridors to see his father lying
+dead in a great easy chair before a smoldering fire. So we went
+over the house, and I chose the rooms where I would live; and the
+servants I had brought with me ordered and arranged everything, and
+I had no more trouble. I did not care what they did provided I was
+left in peace and was not expected to give directions; for I was
+more listless than ever, owing to the effects of my illness at
+college.
+
+I dined in solitary state, and the melancholy grandeur of the vast
+old dining-room pleased me. Then I went to the room I had selected
+for my study, and sat down in a deep chair, under a bright light,
+to think, or to let my thoughts meander through labyrinths of their
+own choosing, utterly indifferent to the course they might take.
+
+The tall windows of the room opened to the level of the ground upon
+the terrace at the head of the garden. It was in the end of July,
+and everything was open, for the weather was warm. As I sat alone
+I heard the unceasing splash of the great fountains, and I fell to
+thinking of the Woman of the Water. I rose and went out into the
+still night, and sat down upon a seat on the terrace, between two
+gigantic Italian flower pots. The air was deliciously soft and
+sweet with the smell of the flowers, and the garden was more
+congenial to me than the house. Sad people always like running
+water and the sound of it at night, though I cannot tell why. I
+sat and listened in the gloom, for it was dark below, and the pale
+moon had not yet climbed over the hills in front of me, though all
+the air above was light with her rising beams. Slowly the white
+halo in the eastern sky ascended in an arch above the wooded
+crests, making the outlines of the mountains more intensely black
+by contrast, as though the head of some great white saint were
+rising from behind a screen in a vast cathedral, throwing misty
+glories from below. I longed to see the moon herself, and I tried
+to reckon the seconds before she must appear. Then she sprang up
+quickly, and in a moment more hung round and perfect in the sky. I
+gazed at her, and then at the floating spray of the tall fountains,
+and down at the pools, where the water lilies were rocking softly
+in their sleep on the velvet surface of the moonlit water. Just
+then a great swan floated out silently into the midst of the basin,
+and wreathed his long neck, catching the water in his broad bill,
+and scattering showers of diamonds around him.
+
+Suddenly, as I gazed, something came between me and the light. I
+looked up instantly. Between me and the round disk of the moon
+rose a luminous face of a woman, with great strange eyes, and a
+woman’s mouth, full and soft, but not smiling, hooded in black,
+staring at me as I sat still upon my bench. She was close to me—
+so close that I could have touched her with my hand. But I was
+transfixed and helpless. She stood still for a moment, but her
+expression did not change. Then she passed swiftly away, and my
+hair stood up on my head, while the cold breeze from her white
+dress was wafted to my temples as she moved. The moonlight,
+shining through the tossing spray of the fountain, made traceries
+of shadow on the gleaming folds of her garments. In an instant she
+was gone and I was alone.
+
+I was strangely shaken by the vision, and some time passed before I
+could rise to my feet, for I was still weak from my illness, and
+the sight I had seen would have startled anyone. I did not reason
+with myself, for I was certain that I had looked on the unearthly,
+and no argument could have destroyed that belief. At last I got up
+and stood unsteadily, gazing in the direction in which I thought
+the face had gone; but there was nothing to be seen—nothing but
+the broad paths, the tall, dark evergreen hedges, the tossing water
+of the fountains and the smooth pool below. I fell back upon the
+seat and recalled the face I had seen. Strange to say, now that
+the first impression had passed, there was nothing startling in the
+recollection; on the contrary, I felt that I was fascinated by the
+face, and would give anything to see it again. I could retrace the
+beautiful straight features, the long dark eyes, and the wonderful
+mouth most exactly in my mind, and when I had reconstructed every
+detail from memory I knew that the whole was beautiful, and that I
+should love a woman with such a face.
+
+“I wonder whether she is the Woman of the Water!” I said to myself.
+Then rising once more, I wandered down the garden, descending one
+short flight of steps after another from terrace to terrace by the
+edge of the marble basins, through the shadow and through the
+moonlight; and I crossed the water by the rustic bridge above the
+artificial grotto, and climbed slowly up again to the highest
+terrace by the other side. The air seemed sweeter, and I was very
+calm, so that I think I smiled to myself as I walked, as though a
+new happiness had come to me. The woman’s face seemed always
+before me, and the thought of it gave me an unwonted thrill of
+pleasure, unlike anything I had ever felt before.
+
+I turned as I reached the house, and looked back upon the scene.
+It had certainly changed in the short hour since I had come out,
+and my mood had changed with it. Just like my luck, I thought, to
+fall in love with a ghost! But in old times I would have sighed,
+and gone to bed more sad than ever, at such a melancholy
+conclusion. To-night I felt happy, almost for the first time in my
+life. The gloomy old study seemed cheerful when I went in. The
+old pictures on the walls smiled at me, and I sat down in my deep
+chair with a new and delightful sensation that I was not alone.
+The idea of having seen a ghost, and of feeling much the better for
+it, was so absurd that I laughed softly, as I took up one of the
+books I had brought with me and began to read.
+
+That impression did not wear off. I slept peacefully, and in the
+morning I threw open my windows to the summer air and looked down
+at the garden, at the stretches of green and at the colored flower-
+beds, at the circling swallows and at the bright water.
+
+“A man might make a paradise of this place,” I exclaimed. “A man
+and a woman together!”
+
+From that day the old Castle no longer seemed gloomy, and I think I
+ceased to be sad; for some time, too, I began to take an interest
+in the place, and to try and make it more alive. I avoided my old
+Welsh nurse, lest she should damp my humor with some dismal
+prophecy, and recall my old self by bringing back memories of my
+dismal childhood. But what I thought of most was the ghostly
+figure I had seen in the garden that first night after my arrival.
+I went out every evening and wandered through the walks and paths;
+but, try as I might, I did not see my vision again. At last, after
+many days, the memory grew more faint, and my old moody nature
+gradually overcame the temporary sense of lightness I had
+experienced. The summer turned to autumn, and I grew restless. It
+began to rain. The dampness pervaded the gardens, and the outer
+halls smelled musty, like tombs; the gray sky oppressed me
+intolerably. I left the place as it was and went abroad,
+determined to try anything which might possibly make a second break
+in the monotonous melancholy from which I suffered.
+
+
+II
+
+
+Most people would be struck by the utter insignificance of the
+small events which, after the death of my parents, influenced my
+life and made me unhappy. The grewsome forebodings of a Welsh
+nurse, which chanced to be realized by an odd coincidence of
+events, should not seem enough to change the nature of a child and
+to direct the bent of his character in after years. The little
+disappointments of schoolboy life, and the somewhat less childish
+ones of an uneventful and undistinguished academic career, should
+not have sufficed to turn me out at one-and-twenty years of age a
+melancholic, listless idler. Some weakness of my own character may
+have contributed to the result, but in a greater degree it was due
+to my having a reputation for bad luck. However, I will not try to
+analyze the causes of my state, for I should satisfy nobody, least
+of all myself. Still less will I attempt to explain why I felt a
+temporary revival of my spirits after my adventure in the garden.
+It is certain that I was in love with the face I had seen, and that
+I longed to see it again; that I gave up all hope of a second
+visitation, grew more sad than ever, packed up my traps, and
+finally went abroad. But in my dreams I went back to my home, and
+it always appeared to me sunny and bright, as it had looked on that
+summer’s morning after I had seen the woman by the fountain.
+
+I went to Paris. I went farther, and wandered about Germany. I
+tried to amuse myself, and I failed miserably. With the aimless
+whims of an idle and useless man come all sorts of suggestions for
+good resolutions. One day I made up my mind that I would go and
+bury myself in a German university for a time, and live simply like
+a poor student. I started with the intention of going to Leipzig,
+determined to stay there until some event should direct my life or
+change my humor, or make an end of me altogether. The express
+train stopped at some station of which I did not know the name. It
+was dusk on a winter’s afternoon, and I peered through the thick
+glass from my seat. Suddenly another train came gliding in from
+the opposite direction, and stopped alongside of ours. I looked at
+the carriage which chanced to be abreast of mine, and idly read the
+black letters painted on a white board swinging from the brass
+handrail: BERLIN—COLOGNE—PARIS. Then I looked up at the window
+above. I started violently, and the cold perspiration broke out
+upon my forehead. In the dim light, not six feet from where I sat,
+I saw the face of a woman, the face I loved, the straight, fine
+features, the strange eyes, the wonderful mouth, the pale skin.
+Her head-dress was a dark veil which seemed to be tied about her
+head and passed over the shoulders under her chin. As I threw down
+the window and knelt on the cushioned seat, leaning far out to get
+a better view, a long whistle screamed through the station,
+followed by a quick series of dull, clanking sounds; then there was
+a slight jerk, and my train moved on. Luckily the window was
+narrow, being the one over the seat, beside the door, or I believe
+I would have jumped out of it then and there. In an instant the
+speed increased, and I was being carried swiftly away in the
+opposite direction from the thing I loved.
+
+For a quarter of an hour I lay back in my place, stunned by the
+suddenness of the apparition. At last one of the two other
+passengers, a large and gorgeous captain of the White Konigsberg
+Cuirassiers, civilly but firmly suggested that I might shut my
+window, as the evening was cold. I did so, with an apology, and
+relapsed into silence. The train ran swiftly on for a long time,
+and it was already beginning to slacken speed before entering
+another station, when I roused myself and made a sudden resolution.
+As the carriage stopped before the brilliantly lighted platform, I
+seized my belongings, saluted my fellow-passengers, and got out,
+determined to take the first express back to Paris.
+
+This time the circumstances of the vision had been so natural that
+it did not strike me that there was anything unreal about the face,
+or about the woman to whom it belonged. I did not try to explain
+to myself how the face, and the woman, could be traveling by a fast
+train from Berlin to Paris on a winter’s afternoon, when both were
+in my mind indelibly associated with the moonlight and the
+fountains in my own English home. I certainly would not have
+admitted that I had been mistaken in the dusk, attributing to what
+I had seen a resemblance to my former vision which did not really
+exist. There was not the slightest doubt in my mind, and I was
+positively sure that I had again seen the face I loved. I did not
+hesitate, and in a few hours I was on my way back to Paris. I
+could not help reflecting on my ill luck. Wandering as I had been
+for many months, it might as easily have chanced that I should be
+traveling in the same train with that woman, instead of going the
+other way. But my luck was destined to turn for a time.
+
+I searched Paris for several days. I dined at the principal
+hotels; I went to the theaters; I rode in the Bois de Boulogne in
+the morning, and picked up an acquaintance, whom I forced to drive
+with me in the afternoon. I went to mass at the Madeleine, and I
+attended the services at the English Church. I hung about the
+Louvre and Notre Dame. I went to Versailles. I spent hours in
+parading the Rue de Rivoli, in the neighborhood of Meurice’s
+corner, where foreigners pass and repass from morning till night.
+At last I received an invitation to a reception at the English
+Embassy. I went, and I found what I had sought so long.
+
+There she was, sitting by an old lady in gray satin and diamonds,
+who had a wrinkled but kindly face and keen gray eyes that seemed
+to take in everything they saw, with very little inclination to
+give much in return. But I did not notice the chaperon. I saw
+only the face that had haunted me for months, and in the excitement
+of the moment I walked quickly toward the pair, forgetting such a
+trifle as the necessity for an introduction.
+
+She was far more beautiful than I had thought, but I never doubted
+that it was she herself and no other. Vision or no vision before,
+this was the reality, and I knew it. Twice her hair had been
+covered, now at last I saw it, and the added beauty of its
+magnificence glorified the whole woman. It was rich hair, fine and
+abundant, golden, with deep ruddy tints in it like red bronze spun
+fine. There was no ornament in it, not a rose, not a thread of
+gold, and I felt that it needed nothing to enhance its splendor;
+nothing but her pale face, her dark strange eyes, and her heavy
+eyebrows. I could see that she was slender too, but strong withal,
+as she sat there quietly gazing at the moving scene in the midst of
+the brilliant lights and the hum of perpetual conversation.
+
+I recollected the detail of introduction in time, and turned aside
+to look for my host. I found him at last. I begged him to present
+me to the two ladies, pointing them out to him at the same time.
+
+“Yes—uh—by all means—uh,” replied his Excellency with a pleasant
+smile. He evidently had no idea of my name, which was not to be
+wondered at.
+
+“I am Lord Cairngorm,” I observed.
+
+“Oh—by all means,” answered the Ambassador with the same
+hospitable smile. “Yes—uh—the fact is, I must try and find out
+who they are; such lots of people, you know.”
+
+“Oh, if you will present me, I will try and find out for you,” said
+I, laughing.
+
+“Ah, yes—so kind of you—come along,” said my host. We threaded
+the crowd, and in a few minutes we stood before the two ladies.
+
+“’Lowmintrduce L’d Cairngorm,” he said; then, adding quickly to me,
+“Come and dine to-morrow, won’t you?” he glided away with his
+pleasant smile and disappeared in the crowd.
+
+I sat down beside the beautiful girl, conscious that the eyes of
+the duenna were upon me.
+
+“I think we have been very near meeting before,” I remarked, by way
+of opening the conversation.
+
+My companion turned her eyes full upon me with an air of inquiry.
+She evidently did not recall my face, if she had ever seen me.
+
+“Really—I cannot remember,” she observed, in a low and musical
+voice. “When?”
+
+“In the first place, you came down from Berlin by the express ten
+days ago. I was going the other way, and our carriages stopped
+opposite each other. I saw you at the window.”
+
+“Yes—we came that way, but I do not remember—” She hesitated.
+
+“Secondly,” I continued, “I was sitting alone in my garden last
+summer—near the end of July—do you remember? You must have
+wandered in there through the park; you came up to the house and
+looked at me—”
+
+“Was that you?” she asked, in evident surprise. Then she broke
+into a laugh. “I told everybody I had seen a ghost; there had
+never been any Cairngorms in the place since the memory of man. We
+left the next day, and never heard that you had come there; indeed,
+I did not know the castle belonged to you.”
+
+“Where were you staying?” I asked.
+
+“Where? Why, with my aunt, where I always stay. She is your
+neighbor, since it IS you.”
+
+“I—beg your pardon—but then—is your aunt Lady Bluebell? I did
+not quite catch—”
+
+“Don’t be afraid. She is amazingly deaf. Yes. She is the relict
+of my beloved uncle, the sixteenth or seventeenth Baron Bluebell—I
+forget exactly how many of them there have been. And I—do you
+know who I am?” She laughed, well knowing that I did not.
+
+“No,” I answered frankly. “I have not the least idea. I asked to
+be introduced because I recognized you. Perhaps—perhaps you are a
+Miss Bluebell?”
+
+“Considering that you are a neighbor, I will tell you who I am,”
+she answered. “No; I am of the tribe of Bluebells, but my name is
+Lammas, and I have been given to understand that I was christened
+Margaret. Being a floral family, they call me Daisy. A dreadful
+American man once told me that my aunt was a Bluebell and that I
+was a Harebell—with two l’s and an e—because my hair is so thick.
+I warn you, so that you may avoid making such a bad pun.”
+
+“Do I look like a man who makes puns?” I asked, being very
+conscious of my melancholy face and sad looks.
+
+Miss Lammas eyed me critically.
+
+“No; you have a mournful temperament. I think I can trust you,”
+she answered. “Do you think you could communicate to my aunt the
+fact that you are a Cairngorm and a neighbor? I am sure she would
+like to know.”
+
+I leaned toward the old lady, inflating my lungs for a yell. But
+Miss Lammas stopped me.
+
+“That is not of the slightest use,” she remarked. “You can write
+it on a bit of paper. She is utterly deaf.”
+
+“I have a pencil,” I answered; “but I have no paper. Would my cuff
+do, do you think?”
+
+“Oh, yes!” replied Miss Lammas, with alacrity; “men often do that.”
+
+I wrote on my cuff: “Miss Lammas wishes me to explain that I am
+your neighbor, Cairngorm.” Then I held out my arm before the old
+lady’s nose. She seemed perfectly accustomed to the proceeding,
+put up her glasses, read the words, smiled, nodded, and addressed
+me in the unearthly voice peculiar to people who hear nothing.
+
+“I knew your grandfather very well,” she said. Then she smiled and
+nodded to me again, and to her niece, and relapsed into silence.
+
+“It is all right,” remarked Miss Lammas. “Aunt Bluebell knows she
+is deaf, and does not say much, like the parrot. You see, she knew
+your grandfather. How odd that we should be neighbors! Why have
+we never met before?”
+
+“If you had told me you knew my grandfather when you appeared in
+the garden, I should not have been in the least surprised,” I
+answered rather irrelevantly. “I really thought you were the ghost
+of the old fountain. How in the world did you come there at that
+hour?”
+
+“We were a large party and we went out for a walk. Then we thought
+we should like to see what your park was like in the moonlight, and
+so we trespassed. I got separated from the rest, and came upon you
+by accident, just as I was admiring the extremely ghostly look of
+your house, and wondering whether anybody would ever come and live
+there again. It looks like the castle of Macbeth, or a scene from
+the opera. Do you know anybody here?”
+
+“Hardly a soul! Do you?”
+
+“No. Aunt Bluebell said it was our duty to come. It is easy for
+her to go out; she does not bear the burden of the conversation.”
+
+“I am sorry you find it a burden,” said I. “Shall I go away?”
+
+Miss Lammas looked at me with a sudden gravity in her beautiful
+eyes, and there was a sort of hesitation about the lines of her
+full, soft mouth.
+
+“No,” she said at last, quite simply, “don’t go away. We may like
+each other, if you stay a little longer—and we ought to, because
+we are neighbors in the country.”
+
+I suppose I ought to have thought Miss Lammas a very odd girl.
+There is, indeed, a sort of freemasonry between people who discover
+that they live near each other and that they ought to have known
+each other before. But there was a sort of unexpected frankness
+and simplicity in the girl’s amusing manner which would have struck
+anyone else as being singular, to say the least of it. To me,
+however, it all seemed natural enough. I had dreamed of her face
+too long not to be utterly happy when I met her at last and could
+talk to her as much as I pleased. To me, the man of ill luck in
+everything, the whole meeting seemed too good to be true. I felt
+again that strange sensation of lightness which I had experienced
+after I had seen her face in the garden. The great rooms seemed
+brighter, life seemed worth living; my sluggish, melancholy blood
+ran faster, and filled me with a new sense of strength. I said to
+myself that without this woman I was but an imperfect being, but
+that with her I could accomplish everything to which I should set
+my hand. Like the great Doctor, when he thought he had cheated
+Mephistopheles at last, I could have cried aloud to the fleeting
+moment, Verweile doch, du bist so schon!
+
+“Are you always gay?” I asked, suddenly. “How happy you must be!”
+
+“The days would sometimes seem very long if I were gloomy,” she
+answered, thoughtfully. “Yes, I think I find life very pleasant,
+and I tell it so.”
+
+“How can you ‘tell life’ anything?” I inquired. “If I could catch
+my life and talk to it, I would abuse it prodigiously, I assure
+you.”
+
+“I dare say. You have a melancholy temper. You ought to live out-
+of-doors, dig potatoes, make hay, shoot, hunt, tumble into ditches,
+and come home muddy and hungry for dinner. It would be much better
+for you than moping in your rook tower and hating everything.”
+
+“It is rather lonely down there,” I murmured, apologetically,
+feeling that Miss Lammas was quite right.
+
+“Then marry, and quarrel with your wife,” she laughed. “Anything
+is better than being alone.”
+
+“I am a very peaceable person. I never quarrel with anybody. You
+can try it. You will find it quite impossible.”
+
+“Will you let me try?” she asked, still smiling.
+
+“By all means—especially if it is to be only a preliminary
+canter,” I answered, rashly.
+
+“What do you mean?” she inquired, turning quickly upon me.
+
+“Oh—nothing. You might try my paces with a view to quarreling in
+the future. I cannot imagine how you are going to do it. You will
+have to resort to immediate and direct abuse.”
+
+“No. I will only say that if you do not like your life, it is your
+own fault. How can a man of your age talk of being melancholy, or
+of the hollowness of existence? Are you consumptive? Are you
+subject to hereditary insanity? Are you deaf, like Aunt Bluebell?
+Are you poor, like—lots of people? Have you been crossed in love?
+Have you lost the world for a woman, or any particular woman for
+the sake of the world? Are you feeble-minded, a cripple, an
+outcast? Are you—repulsively ugly?” She laughed again. “Is
+there any reason in the world why you should not enjoy all you have
+got in life?”
+
+“No. There is no reason whatever, except that I am dreadfully
+unlucky, especially in small things.”
+
+“Then try big things, just for a change,” suggested Miss Lammas.
+“Try and get married, for instance, and see how it turns out.”
+
+“If it turned out badly it would be rather serious.”
+
+“Not half so serious as it is to abuse everything unreasonably. If
+abuse is your particular talent, abuse something that ought to be
+abused. Abuse the Conservatives—or the Liberals—it does not
+matter which, since they are always abusing each other. Make
+yourself felt by other people. You will like it, if they don’t.
+It will make a man of you. Fill your mouth with pebbles, and howl
+at the sea, if you cannot do anything else. It did Demosthenes no
+end of good, you know. You will have the satisfaction of imitating
+a great man.”
+
+“Really, Miss Lammas, I think the list of innocent exercises you
+propose—”
+
+“Very well—if you don’t care for that sort of thing, care for some
+other sort of thing. Care for something, or hate something. Don’t
+be idle. Life is short, and though art may be long, plenty of
+noise answers nearly as well.”
+
+“I do care for something—I mean, somebody,” I said.
+
+“A woman? Then marry her. Don’t hesitate.”
+
+“I do not know whether she would marry me,” I replied. “I have
+never asked her.”
+
+“Then ask her at once,” answered Miss Lammas. “I shall die happy
+if I feel I have persuaded a melancholy fellow creature to rouse
+himself to action. Ask her, by all means, and see what she says.
+If she does not accept you at once, she may take you the next time.
+Meanwhile, you will have entered for the race. If you lose, there
+are the ‘All-aged Trial Stakes,’ and the ‘Consolation Race.’”
+
+“And plenty of selling races into the bargain. Shall I take you at
+your word, Miss Lammas?”
+
+“I hope you will,” she answered.
+
+“Since you yourself advise me, I will. Miss Lammas, will you do me
+the honor to marry me?”
+
+For the first time in my life the blood rushed to my head and my
+sight swam. I cannot tell why I said it. It would be useless to
+try to explain the extraordinary fascination the girl exercised
+over me, or the still more extraordinary feeling of intimacy with
+her which had grown in me during that half hour. Lonely, sad,
+unlucky as I had been all my life, I was certainly not timid, nor
+even shy. But to propose to marry a woman after half an hour’s
+acquaintance was a piece of madness of which I never believed
+myself capable, and of which I should never be capable again, could
+I be placed in the same situation. It was as though my whole being
+had been changed in a moment by magic—by the white magic of her
+nature brought into contact with mine. The blood sank back to my
+heart, and a moment later I found myself staring at her with
+anxious eyes. To my amazement she was as calm as ever, but her
+beautiful mouth smiled, and there was a mischievous light in her
+dark-brown eyes.
+
+“Fairly caught,” she answered. “For an individual who pretends to
+be listless and sad you are not lacking in humor. I had really not
+the least idea what you were going to say. Wouldn’t it be
+singularly awkward for you if I had said ‘Yes’? I never saw
+anybody begin to practice so sharply what was preached to him—with
+so very little loss of time!”
+
+“You probably never met a man who had dreamed of you for seven
+months before being introduced.”
+
+“No, I never did,” she answered gayly. “It smacks of the romantic.
+Perhaps you are a romantic character, after all. I should think
+you were if I believed you. Very well; you have taken my advice,
+entered for a Stranger’s Race and lost it. Try the All-aged Trial
+Stakes. You have another cuff, and a pencil. Propose to Aunt
+Bluebell; she would dance with astonishment, and she might recover
+her hearing.”
+
+
+III
+
+
+That was how I first asked Margaret Lammas to be my wife, and I
+will agree with anyone who says I behaved very foolishly. But I
+have not repented of it, and I never shall. I have long ago
+understood that I was out of my mind that evening, but I think my
+temporary insanity on that occasion has had the effect of making me
+a saner man ever since. Her manner turned my head, for it was so
+different from what I had expected. To hear this lovely creature,
+who, in my imagination, was a heroine of romance, if not of
+tragedy, talking familiarly and laughing readily was more than my
+equanimity could bear, and I lost my head as well as my heart. But
+when I went back to England in the spring, I went to make certain
+arrangements at the Castle—certain changes and improvements which
+would be absolutely necessary. I had won the race for which I had
+entered myself so rashly, and we were to be married in June.
+
+Whether the change was due to the orders I had left with the
+gardener and the rest of the servants, or to my own state of mind,
+I cannot tell. At all events, the old place did not look the same
+to me when I opened my window on the morning after my arrival.
+There were the gray walls below me and the gray turrets flanking
+the huge building; there were the fountains, the marble causeways,
+the smooth basins, the tall box hedges, the water lilies and the
+swans, just as of old. But there was something else there, too—
+something in the air, in the water, and in the greenness that I did
+not recognize—a light over everything by which everything was
+transfigured. The clock in the tower struck seven, and the strokes
+of the ancient bell sounded like a wedding chime. The air sang
+with the thrilling treble of the song-birds, with the silvery music
+of the plashing water and the softer harmony of the leaves stirred
+by the fresh morning wind. There was a smell of new-mown hay from
+the distant meadows, and of blooming roses from the beds below,
+wafted up together to my window. I stood in the pure sunshine and
+drank the air and all the sounds and the odors that were in it; and
+I looked down at my garden and said: “It is Paradise, after all.”
+I think the men of old were right when they called heaven a garden,
+and Eden a garden inhabited by one man and one woman, the Earthly
+Paradise.
+
+I turned away, wondering what had become of the gloomy memories I
+had always associated with my home. I tried to recall the
+impression of my nurse’s horrible prophecy before the death of my
+parents—an impression which hitherto had been vivid enough. I
+tried to remember my old self, my dejection, my listlessness, my
+bad luck, my petty disappointments. I endeavored to force myself
+to think as I used to think, if only to satisfy myself that I had
+not lost my individuality. But I succeeded in none of these
+efforts. I was a different man, a changed being, incapable of
+sorrow, of ill luck, or of sadness. My life had been a dream, not
+evil, but infinitely gloomy and hopeless. It was now a reality,
+full of hope, gladness, and all manner of good. My home had been
+like a tomb; to-day it was Paradise. My heart had been as though
+it had not existed; to-day it beat with strength and youth and the
+certainty of realized happiness. I reveled in the beauty of the
+world, and called loveliness out of the future to enjoy it before
+time should bring it to me, as a traveler in the plains looks up to
+the mountains, and already tastes the cool air through the dust of
+the road.
+
+Here, I thought, we will live and live for years. There we will
+sit by the fountain toward evening and in the deep moonlight. Down
+those paths we will wander together. On those benches we will rest
+and talk. Among those eastern hills we will ride through the soft
+twilight, and in the old house we will tell tales on winter nights,
+when the logs burn high, and the holly berries are red, and the old
+clock tolls out the dying year. On these old steps, in these dark
+passages and stately rooms, there will one day be the sound of
+little pattering feet, and laughing child voices will ring up to
+the vaults of the ancient hall. Those tiny footsteps shall not be
+slow and sad as mine were, nor shall the childish words be spoken
+in an awed whisper. No gloomy Welshwoman shall people the dusky
+corners with weird horrors, nor utter horrid prophecies of death
+and ghastly things. All shall be young, and fresh, and joyful, and
+happy, and we will turn the old luck again, and forget that there
+was ever any sadness.
+
+So I thought, as I looked out of my window that morning and for
+many mornings after that, and every day it all seemed more real
+than ever before, and much nearer. But the old nurse looked at me
+askance, and muttered odd sayings about the Woman of the Water. I
+cared little what she said, for I was far too happy.
+
+At last the time came near for the wedding. Lady Bluebell and all
+the tribe of Bluebells, as Margaret called them, were at Bluebell
+Grange, for we had determined to be married in the country, and to
+come straight to the Castle afterwards. We cared little for
+traveling, and not at all for a crowded ceremony at St. George’s in
+Hanover Square, with all the tiresome formalities afterwards. I
+used to ride over to the Grange every day, and very often Margaret
+would come with her aunt and some of her cousins to the Castle. I
+was suspicious of my own taste, and was only too glad to let her
+have her way about the alterations and improvements in our home.
+
+We were to be married on the thirtieth of July, and on the evening
+of the twenty-eighth Margaret drove over with some of the Bluebell
+party. In the long summer twilight we all went out into the
+garden. Naturally enough, Margaret and I were left to ourselves,
+and we wandered down by the marble basins.
+
+“It is an odd coincidence,” I said; “it was on this very night last
+year that I first saw you.”
+
+“Considering that it is the month of July,” answered Margaret with
+a laugh, “and that we have been here almost every day, I don’t
+think the coincidence is so extraordinary, after all.”
+
+“No, dear,” said I, “I suppose not. I don’t know why it struck me.
+We shall very likely be here a year from today, and a year from
+that. The odd thing, when I think of it, is that you should be
+here at all. But my luck has turned. I ought not to think
+anything odd that happens now that I have you. It is all sure to
+be good.”
+
+“A slight change in your ideas since that remarkable performance of
+yours in Paris,” said Margaret. “Do you know, I thought you were
+the most extraordinary man I had ever met.”
+
+“I thought you were the most charming woman I had ever seen. I
+naturally did not want to lose any time in frivolities. I took you
+at your word, I followed your advice, I asked you to marry me, and
+this is the delightful result—what’s the matter?”
+
+Margaret had started suddenly, and her hand tightened on my arm.
+An old woman was coming up the path, and was close to us before we
+saw her, for the moon had risen, and was shining full in our faces.
+The woman turned out to be my old nurse.
+
+“It’s only Judith, dear—don’t be frightened,” I said. Then I
+spoke to the Welshwoman: “What are you about, Judith? Have you
+been feeding the Woman of the Water?”
+
+“Aye—when the clock strikes, Willie—my Lord, I mean,” muttered
+the old creature, drawing aside to let us pass, and fixing her
+strange eyes on Margaret’s face.
+
+“What does she mean?” asked Margaret, when we had gone by.
+
+“Nothing, darling. The old thing is mildly crazy, but she is a
+good soul.”
+
+We went on in silence for a few moments, and came to the rustic
+bridge just above the artificial grotto through which the water ran
+out into the park, dark and swift in its narrow channel. We
+stopped, and leaned on the wooden rail. The moon was now behind
+us, and shone full upon the long vista of basins and on the huge
+walls and towers of the Castle above.
+
+“How proud you ought to be of such a grand old place!” said
+Margaret, softly.
+
+“It is yours now, darling,” I answered. “You have as good a right
+to love it as I—but I only love it because you are to live in it,
+dear.”
+
+Her hand stole out and lay on mine, and we were both silent. Just
+then the clock began to strike far off in the tower. I counted—
+eight—nine—ten—eleven—I looked at my watch—twelve—thirteen—I
+laughed. The bell went on striking.
+
+“The old clock has gone crazy, like Judith,” I exclaimed. Still it
+went on, note after note ringing out monotonously through the still
+air. We leaned over the rail, instinctively looking in the
+direction whence the sound came. On and on it went. I counted
+nearly a hundred, out of sheer curiosity, for I understood that
+something had broken and that the thing was running itself down.
+
+Suddenly there was a crack as of breaking wood, a cry and a heavy
+splash, and I was alone, clinging to the broken end of the rail of
+the rustic bridge.
+
+I do not think I hesitated while my pulse beat twice. I sprang
+clear of the bridge into the black rushing water, dived to the
+bottom, came up again with empty hands, turned and swam downward
+through the grotto in the thick darkness, plunging and diving at
+every stroke, striking my head and hands against jagged stones and
+sharp corners, clutching at last something in my fingers and
+dragging it up with all my might. I spoke, I cried aloud, but
+there was no answer. I was alone in the pitchy darkness with my
+burden, and the house was five hundred yards away. Struggling
+still, I felt the ground beneath my feet, I saw a ray of
+moonlight—the grotto widened, and the deep water became a broad
+and shallow brook as I stumbled over the stones and at last laid
+Margaret’s body on the bank in the park beyond.
+
+“Aye, Willie, as the clock struck!” said the voice of Judith, the
+Welsh nurse, as she bent down and looked at the white face. The
+old woman must have turned back and followed us, seen the accident,
+and slipped out by the lower gate of the garden. “Aye,” she
+groaned, “you have fed the Woman of the Water this night, Willie,
+while the clock was striking.”
+
+I scarcely heard her as I knelt beside the lifeless body of the
+woman I loved, chafing the wet white temples and gazing wildly into
+the wide-staring eyes. I remember only the first returning look of
+consciousness, the first heaving breath, the first movement of
+those dear hands stretching out toward me.
+
+
+That is not much of a story, you say. It is the story of my life.
+That is all. It does not pretend to be anything else. Old Judith
+says my luck turned on that summer’s night when I was struggling in
+the water to save all that was worth living for. A month later
+there was a stone bridge above the grotto, and Margaret and I stood
+on it and looked up at the moonlit Castle, as we had done once
+before, and as we have done many times since. For all those things
+happened ten years ago last summer, and this is the tenth Christmas
+Eve we have spent together by the roaring logs in the old hall,
+talking of old times; and every year there are more old times to
+talk of. There are curly-headed boys, too, with red-gold hair and
+dark-brown eyes like their mother’s, and a little Margaret, with
+solemn black eyes like mine. Why could not she look like her
+mother, too, as well as the rest of them?
+
+The world is very bright at this glorious Christmas time, and
+perhaps there is little use in calling up the sadness of long ago,
+unless it be to make the jolly firelight seem more cheerful, the
+good wife’s face look gladder, and to give the children’s laughter
+a merrier ring, by contrast with all that is gone. Perhaps, too,
+some sad-faced, listless, melancholy youth, who feels that the
+world is very hollow, and that life is like a perpetual funeral
+service, just as I used to feel myself, may take courage from my
+example, and having found the woman of his heart, ask her to marry
+him after half an hour’s acquaintance. But, on the whole, I would
+not advise any man to marry, for the simple reason that no man will
+ever find a wife like mine, and being obliged to go farther, he
+will necessarily fare worse. My wife has done miracles, but I will
+not assert that any other woman is able to follow her example.
+
+Margaret always said that the old place was beautiful, and that I
+ought to be proud of it. I dare say she is right. She has even
+more imagination than I. But I have a good answer and a plain one,
+which is this,—that all the beauty of the Castle comes from her.
+She has breathed upon it all, as the children blow upon the cold
+glass window panes in winter; and as their warm breath crystallizes
+into landscapes from fairyland, full of exquisite shapes and
+traceries upon the blank surface, so her spirit has transformed
+every gray stone of the old towers, every ancient tree and hedge in
+the gardens, every thought in my once melancholy self. All that
+was old is young, and all that was sad is glad, and I am the
+gladdest of all. Whatever heaven may be, there is no earthly
+paradise without woman, nor is there anywhere a place so desolate,
+so dreary, so unutterably miserable that a woman cannot make it
+seem heaven to the man she loves and who loves her.
+
+I hear certain cynics laugh, and cry that all that has been said
+before. Do not laugh, my good cynic. You are too small a man to
+laugh at such a great thing as love. Prayers have been said before
+now by many, and perhaps you say yours, too. I do not think they
+lose anything by being repeated, nor you by repeating them. You
+say that the world is bitter, and full of the Waters of Bitterness.
+Love, and so live that you may be loved—the world will turn sweet
+for you, and you shall rest like me by the Waters of Paradise.
+
+
+From “The Play-Actress and the Upper Berth,” by F. Marion Crawford.
+Copyright, 1896, by G. P. Putnam’s Sons.
+
+
+
+
+Mary E. Wilkins Freeman
+
+
+
+
+The Shadows on the Wall
+
+
+“Henry had words with Edward in the study the night before Edward
+died,” said Caroline Glynn.
+
+She was elderly, tall, and harshly thin, with a hard colourlessness
+of face. She spoke not with acrimony, but with grave severity.
+Rebecca Ann Glynn, younger, stouter and rosy of face between her
+crinkling puffs of gray hair, gasped, by way of assent. She sat in
+a wide flounce of black silk in the corner of the sofa, and rolled
+terrified eyes from her sister Caroline to her sister Mrs. Stephen
+Brigham, who had been Emma Glynn, the one beauty of the family. She
+was beautiful still, with a large, splendid, full-blown beauty; she
+filled a great rocking-chair with her superb bulk of femininity,
+and swayed gently back and forth, her black silks whispering and
+her black frills fluttering. Even the shock of death (for her
+brother Edward lay dead in the house,) could not disturb her
+outward serenity of demeanor. She was grieved over the loss of her
+brother: he had been the youngest, and she had been fond of him,
+but never had Emma Brigham lost sight of her own importance amidst
+the waters of tribulation. She was always awake to the
+consciousness of her own stability in the midst of vicissitudes and
+the splendor of her permanent bearing.
+
+But even her expression of masterly placidity changed before her
+sister Caroline’s announcement and her sister Rebecca Ann’s gasp of
+terror and distress in response.
+
+“I think Henry might have controlled his temper, when poor Edward
+was so near his end,” said she with an asperity which disturbed
+slightly the roseate curves of her beautiful mouth.
+
+“Of course he did not KNOW,” murmured Rebecca Ann in a faint tone
+strangely out of keeping with her appearance.
+
+One involuntarily looked again to be sure that such a feeble pipe
+came from that full-swelling chest.
+
+“Of course he did not know it,” said Caroline quickly. She turned
+on her sister with a strange sharp look of suspicion. “How could
+he have known it?” said she. Then she shrank as if from the
+other’s possible answer. “Of course you and I both know he could
+not,” said she conclusively, but her pale face was paler than it
+had been before.
+
+Rebecca gasped again. The married sister, Mrs. Emma Brigham, was
+now sitting up straight in her chair; she had ceased rocking, and
+was eyeing them both intently with a sudden accentuation of family
+likeness in her face. Given one common intensity of emotion and
+similar lines showed forth, and the three sisters of one race were
+evident.
+
+“What do you mean?” said she impartially to them both. Then she,
+too, seemed to shrink before a possible answer. She even laughed
+an evasive sort of laugh. “I guess you don’t mean anything,” said
+she, but her face wore still the expression of shrinking horror.
+
+“Nobody means anything,” said Caroline firmly. She rose and
+crossed the room toward the door with grim decisiveness.
+
+“Where are you going?” asked Mrs. Brigham.
+
+“I have something to see to,” replied Caroline, and the others at
+once knew by her tone that she had some solemn and sad duty to
+perform in the chamber of death.
+
+“Oh,” said Mrs. Brigham.
+
+After the door had closed behind Caroline, she turned to Rebecca.
+
+“Did Henry have many words with him?” she asked.
+
+“They were talking very loud,” replied Rebecca evasively, yet with
+an answering gleam of ready response to the other’s curiosity in
+the quick lift of her soft blue eyes.
+
+Mrs. Brigham looked at her. She had not resumed rocking. She
+still sat up straight with a slight knitting of intensity on her
+fair forehead, between the pretty rippling curves of her auburn
+hair.
+
+“Did you—hear anything?” she asked in a low voice with a glance
+toward the door.
+
+“I was just across the hall in the south parlor, and that door was
+open and this door ajar,” replied Rebecca with a slight flush.
+
+“Then you must have—”
+
+“I couldn’t help it.”
+
+“Everything?”
+
+“Most of it.”
+
+“What was it?”
+
+“The old story.”
+
+“I suppose Henry was mad, as he always was, because Edward was
+living on here for nothing, when he had wasted all the money father
+left him.”
+
+Rebecca nodded with a fearful glance at the door.
+
+When Emma spoke again her voice was still more hushed. “I know how
+he felt,” said she. “He had always been so prudent himself, and
+worked hard at his profession, and there Edward had never done
+anything but spend, and it must have looked to him as if Edward was
+living at his expense, but he wasn’t.”
+
+“No, he wasn’t.”
+
+“It was the way father left the property—that all the children
+should have a home here—and he left money enough to buy the food
+and all if we had all come home.”
+
+“Yes.”
+
+“And Edward had a right here according to the terms of father’s
+will, and Henry ought to have remembered it.”
+
+“Yes, he ought.”
+
+“Did he say hard things?”
+
+“Pretty hard from what I heard.”
+
+“What?”
+
+“I heard him tell Edward that he had no business here at all, and
+he thought he had better go away.”
+
+“What did Edward say?”
+
+“That he would stay here as long as he lived and afterward, too, if
+he was a mind to, and he would like to see Henry get him out; and
+then—”
+
+“What?”
+
+“Then he laughed.”
+
+“What did Henry say.”
+
+“I didn’t hear him say anything, but—”
+
+“But what?”
+
+“I saw him when he came out of this room.”
+
+“He looked mad?”
+
+“You’ve seen him when he looked so.”
+
+Emma nodded; the expression of horror on her face had deepened.
+
+“Do you remember that time he killed the cat because she had
+scratched him?”
+
+“Yes. Don’t!”
+
+Then Caroline reentered the room. She went up to the stove in
+which a wood fire was burning—it was a cold, gloomy day of fall—
+and she warmed her hands, which were reddened from recent washing
+in cold water.
+
+Mrs. Brigham looked at her and hesitated. She glanced at the door,
+which was still ajar, as it did not easily shut, being still
+swollen with the damp weather of the summer. She rose and pushed
+it together with a sharp thud which jarred the house. Rebecca
+started painfully with a half exclamation. Caroline looked at her
+disapprovingly.
+
+“It is time you controlled your nerves, Rebecca,” said she.
+
+“I can’t help it,” replied Rebecca with almost a wail. “I am
+nervous. There’s enough to make me so, the Lord knows.”
+
+“What do you mean by that?” asked Caroline with her old air of
+sharp suspicion, and something between challenge and dread of its
+being met.
+
+Rebecca shrank.
+
+“Nothing,” said she.
+
+“Then I wouldn’t keep speaking in such a fashion.”
+
+Emma, returning from the closed door, said imperiously that it
+ought to be fixed, it shut so hard.
+
+“It will shrink enough after we have had the fire a few days,”
+replied Caroline. “If anything is done to it it will be too small;
+there will be a crack at the sill.”
+
+“I think Henry ought to be ashamed of himself for talking as he did
+to Edward,” said Mrs. Brigham abruptly, but in an almost inaudible
+voice.
+
+“Hush!” said Caroline, with a glance of actual fear at the closed
+door.
+
+“Nobody can hear with the door shut.”
+
+“He must have heard it shut, and—”
+
+“Well, I can say what I want to before he comes down, and I am not
+afraid of him.”
+
+“I don’t know who is afraid of him! What reason is there for
+anybody to be afraid of Henry?” demanded Caroline.
+
+Mrs. Brigham trembled before her sister’s look. Rebecca gasped
+again. “There isn’t any reason, of course. Why should there be?”
+
+“I wouldn’t speak so, then. Somebody might overhear you and think
+it was queer. Miranda Joy is in the south parlor sewing, you
+know.”
+
+“I thought she went upstairs to stitch on the machine.”
+
+“She did, but she has come down again.”
+
+“Well, she can’t hear.”
+
+“I say again I think Henry ought to be ashamed of himself. I
+shouldn’t think he’d ever get over it, having words with poor
+Edward the very night before he died. Edward was enough sight
+better disposition than Henry, with all his faults. I always
+thought a great deal of poor Edward, myself.”
+
+Mrs. Brigham passed a large fluff of handkerchief across her eyes;
+Rebecca sobbed outright.
+
+“Rebecca,” said Caroline admonishingly, keeping her mouth stiff and
+swallowing determinately.
+
+“I never heard him speak a cross word, unless he spoke cross to
+Henry that last night. I don’t know, but he did from what Rebecca
+overheard,” said Emma.
+
+“Not so much cross as sort of soft, and sweet, and aggravating,”
+sniffled Rebecca.
+
+“He never raised his voice,” said Caroline; “but he had his way.”
+
+“He had a right to in this case.”
+
+“Yes, he did.”
+
+“He had as much of a right here as Henry,” sobbed Rebecca, “and now
+he’s gone, and he will never be in this home that poor father left
+him and the rest of us again.”
+
+“What do you really think ailed Edward?” asked Emma in hardly more
+than a whisper. She did not look at her sister.
+
+Caroline sat down in a nearby armchair, and clutched the arms
+convulsively until her thin knuckles whitened.
+
+“I told you,” said she.
+
+Rebecca held her handkerchief over her mouth, and looked at them
+above it with terrified, streaming eyes.
+
+“I know you said that he had terrible pains in his stomach, and had
+spasms, but what do you think made him have them?”
+
+“Henry called it gastric trouble. You know Edward has always had
+dyspepsia.”
+
+Mrs. Brigham hesitated a moment. “Was there any talk of an—
+examination?” said she.
+
+Then Caroline turned on her fiercely.
+
+“No,” said she in a terrible voice. “No.”
+
+The three sisters’ souls seemed to meet on one common ground of
+terrified understanding through their eyes. The old-fashioned
+latch of the door was heard to rattle, and a push from without made
+the door shake ineffectually. “It’s Henry,” Rebecca sighed rather
+than whispered. Mrs. Brigham settled herself after a noiseless
+rush across the floor into her rocking-chair again, and was swaying
+back and forth with her head comfortably leaning back, when the
+door at last yielded and Henry Glynn entered. He cast a covertly
+sharp, comprehensive glance at Mrs. Brigham with her elaborate
+calm; at Rebecca quietly huddled in the corner of the sofa with her
+handkerchief to her face and only one small reddened ear as
+attentive as a dog’s uncovered and revealing her alertness for his
+presence; at Caroline sitting with a strained composure in her
+armchair by the stove. She met his eyes quite firmly with a look
+of inscrutable fear, and defiance of the fear and of him.
+
+Henry Glynn looked more like this sister than the others. Both had
+the same hard delicacy of form and feature, both were tall and
+almost emaciated, both had a sparse growth of gray blond hair far
+back from high intellectual foreheads, both had an almost noble
+aquilinity of feature. They confronted each other with the
+pitiless immovability of two statues in whose marble lineaments
+emotions were fixed for all eternity.
+
+Then Henry Glynn smiled and the smile transformed his face. He
+looked suddenly years younger, and an almost boyish recklessness
+and irresolution appeared in his face. He flung himself into a
+chair with a gesture which was bewildering from its incongruity
+with his general appearance. He leaned his head back, flung one
+leg over the other, and looked laughingly at Mrs. Brigham.
+
+“I declare, Emma, you grow younger every year,” he said.
+
+She flushed a little, and her placid mouth widened at the corners.
+She was susceptible to praise.
+
+“Our thoughts to-day ought to belong to the one of us who will
+NEVER grow older,” said Caroline in a hard voice.
+
+Henry looked at her, still smiling. “Of course, we none of us
+forget that,” said he, in a deep, gentle voice, “but we have to
+speak to the living, Caroline, and I have not seen Emma for a long
+time, and the living are as dear as the dead.”
+
+“Not to me,” said Caroline.
+
+She rose, and went abruptly out of the room again. Rebecca also
+rose and hurried after her, sobbing loudly.
+
+Henry looked slowly after them.
+
+“Caroline is completely unstrung,” said he. Mrs. Brigham rocked. A
+confidence in him inspired by his manner was stealing over her. Out
+of that confidence she spoke quite easily and naturally.
+
+“His death was very sudden,” said she.
+
+Henry’s eyelids quivered slightly but his gaze was unswerving.
+
+“Yes,” said he; “it was very sudden. He was sick only a few
+hours.”
+
+“What did you call it?”
+
+“Gastric.”
+
+“You did not think of an examination?”
+
+“There was no need. I am perfectly certain as to the cause of his
+death.”
+
+Suddenly Mrs. Brigham felt a creep as of some live horror over her
+very soul. Her flesh prickled with cold, before an inflection of
+his voice. She rose, tottering on weak knees.
+
+“Where are you going?” asked Henry in a strange, breathless voice.
+
+Mrs. Brigham said something incoherent about some sewing which she
+had to do, some black for the funeral, and was out of the room. She
+went up to the front chamber which she occupied. Caroline was
+there. She went close to her and took her hands, and the two
+sisters looked at each other.
+
+“Don’t speak, don’t, I won’t have it!” said Caroline finally in an
+awful whisper.
+
+“I won’t,” replied Emma.
+
+That afternoon the three sisters were in the study, the large front
+room on the ground floor across the hall from the south parlor,
+when the dusk deepened.
+
+Mrs. Brigham was hemming some black material. She sat close to the
+west window for the waning light. At last she laid her work on her
+lap.
+
+“It’s no use, I cannot see to sew another stitch until we have a
+light,” said she.
+
+Caroline, who was writing some letters at the table, turned to
+Rebecca, in her usual place on the sofa.
+
+“Rebecca, you had better get a lamp,” she said.
+
+Rebecca started up; even in the dusk her face showed her agitation.
+
+“It doesn’t seem to me that we need a lamp quite yet,” she said in
+a piteous, pleading voice like a child’s.
+
+“Yes, we do,” returned Mrs. Brigham peremptorily. “We must have a
+light. I must finish this to-night or I can’t go to the funeral,
+and I can’t see to sew another stitch.”
+
+“Caroline can see to write letters, and she is farther from the
+window than you are,” said Rebecca.
+
+“Are you trying to save kerosene or are you lazy, Rebecca Glynn?”
+cried Mrs. Brigham. “I can go and get the light myself, but I have
+this work all in my lap.”
+
+Caroline’s pen stopped scratching.
+
+“Rebecca, we must have the light,” said she.
+
+“Had we better have it in here?” asked Rebecca weakly.
+
+“Of course! Why not?” cried Caroline sternly.
+
+“I am sure I don’t want to take my sewing into the other room, when
+it is all cleaned up for to-morrow,” said Mrs. Brigham.
+
+“Why, I never heard such a to-do about lighting a lamp.”
+
+Rebecca rose and left the room. Presently she entered with a lamp—
+a large one with a white porcelain shade. She set it on a table,
+an old-fashioned card-table which was placed against the opposite
+wall from the window. That wall was clear of bookcases and books,
+which were only on three sides of the room. That opposite wall was
+taken up with three doors, the one small space being occupied by
+the table. Above the table on the old-fashioned paper, of a white
+satin gloss, traversed by an indeterminate green scroll, hung quite
+high a small gilt and black-framed ivory miniature taken in her
+girlhood of the mother of the family. When the lamp was set on the
+table beneath it, the tiny pretty face painted on the ivory seemed
+to gleam out with a look of intelligence.
+
+“What have you put that lamp over there for?” asked Mrs. Brigham,
+with more of impatience than her voice usually revealed. “Why
+didn’t you set it in the hall and have done with it. Neither
+Caroline nor I can see if it is on that table.”
+
+“I thought perhaps you would move,” replied Rebecca hoarsely.
+
+“If I do move, we can’t both sit at that table. Caroline has her
+paper all spread around. Why don’t you set the lamp on the study
+table in the middle of the room, then we can both see?”
+
+Rebecca hesitated. Her face was very pale. She looked with an
+appeal that was fairly agonizing at her sister Caroline.
+
+“Why don’t you put the lamp on this table, as she says?” asked
+Caroline, almost fiercely. “Why do you act so, Rebecca?”
+
+“I should think you WOULD ask her that,” said Mrs. Brigham. “She
+doesn’t act like herself at all.”
+
+Rebecca took the lamp and set it on the table in the middle of the
+room without another word. Then she turned her back upon it
+quickly and seated herself on the sofa, and placed a hand over her
+eyes as if to shade them, and remained so.
+
+“Does the light hurt your eyes, and is that the reason why you
+didn’t want the lamp?” asked Mrs. Brigham kindly.
+
+“I always like to sit in the dark,” replied Rebecca chokingly. Then
+she snatched her handkerchief hastily from her pocket and began to
+weep. Caroline continued to write, Mrs. Brigham to sew.
+
+Suddenly Mrs. Brigham as she sewed glanced at the opposite wall.
+The glance became a steady stare. She looked intently, her work
+suspended in her hands. Then she looked away again and took a few
+more stitches, then she looked again, and again turned to her task.
+At last she laid her work in her lap and stared concentratedly. She
+looked from the wall around the room, taking note of the various
+objects; she looked at the wall long and intently. Then she turned
+to her sisters.
+
+“What IS that?” said she.
+
+“What?” asked Caroline harshly; her pen scratched loudly across the
+paper.
+
+Rebecca gave one of her convulsive gasps.
+
+“That strange shadow on the wall,” replied Mrs. Brigham.
+
+Rebecca sat with her face hidden: Caroline dipped her pen in the
+inkstand.
+
+“Why don’t you turn around and look?” asked Mrs. Brigham in a
+wondering and somewhat aggrieved way.
+
+“I am in a hurry to finish this letter, if Mrs. Wilson Ebbit is
+going to get word in time to come to the funeral,” replied Caroline
+shortly.
+
+Mrs. Brigham rose, her work slipping to the floor, and she began
+walking around the room, moving various articles of furniture, with
+her eyes on the shadow.
+
+Then suddenly she shrieked out:
+
+“Look at this awful shadow! What is it? Caroline, look, look!
+Rebecca, look! WHAT IS IT?”
+
+All Mrs. Brigham’s triumphant placidity was gone. Her handsome
+face was livid with horror. She stood stiffly pointing at the
+shadow.
+
+“Look!” said she, pointing her finger at it. “Look! What is it?”
+
+Then Rebecca burst out in a wild wail after a shuddering glance at
+the wall:
+
+“Oh, Caroline, there it is again! There it is again!”
+
+“Caroline Glynn, you look!” said Mrs. Brigham. “Look! What is
+that dreadful shadow?”
+
+Caroline rose, turned, and stood confronting the wall.
+
+“How should I know?” she said.
+
+“It has been there every night since he died,” cried Rebecca.
+
+“Every night?”
+
+“Yes. He died Thursday and this is Saturday; that makes three
+nights,” said Caroline rigidly. She stood as if holding herself
+calm with a vise of concentrated will.
+
+“It—it looks like—like—” stammered Mrs. Brigham in a tone of
+intense horror.
+
+“I know what it looks like well enough,” said Caroline. “I’ve got
+eyes in my head.”
+
+“It looks like Edward,” burst out Rebecca in a sort of frenzy of
+fear. “Only—”
+
+“Yes, it does,” assented Mrs. Brigham, whose horror-stricken tone
+matched her sister’s, “only— Oh, it is awful! What is it,
+Caroline?”
+
+“I ask you again, how should I know?” replied Caroline. “I see it
+there like you. How should I know any more than you?”
+
+“It MUST be something in the room,” said Mrs. Brigham, staring
+wildly around.
+
+“We moved everything in the room the first night it came,” said
+Rebecca; “it is not anything in the room.”
+
+Caroline turned upon her with a sort of fury. “Of course it is
+something in the room,” said she. “How you act! What do you mean
+by talking so? Of course it is something in the room.”
+
+“Of course, it is,” agreed Mrs. Brigham, looking at Caroline
+suspiciously. “Of course it must be. It is only a coincidence. It
+just happens so. Perhaps it is that fold of the window curtain
+that makes it. It must be something in the room.”
+
+“It is not anything in the room,” repeated Rebecca with obstinate
+horror.
+
+The door opened suddenly and Henry Glynn entered. He began to
+speak, then his eyes followed the direction of the others’. He
+stood stock still staring at the shadow on the wall. It was life
+size and stretched across the white parallelogram of a door, half
+across the wall space on which the picture hung.
+
+“What is that?” he demanded in a strange voice.
+
+“It must be due to something in the room, Mrs. Brigham said
+faintly.
+
+“It is not due to anything in the room,” said Rebecca again with
+the shrill insistency of terror.
+
+“How you act, Rebecca Glynn,” said Caroline.
+
+Henry Glynn stood and stared a moment longer. His face showed a
+gamut of emotions—horror, conviction, then furious incredulity.
+Suddenly he began hastening hither and thither about the room. He
+moved the furniture with fierce jerks, turning ever to see the
+effect upon the shadow on the wall. Not a line of its terrible
+outlines wavered.
+
+“It must be something in the room!” he declared in a voice which
+seemed to snap like a lash.
+
+His face changed. The inmost secrecy of his nature seemed evident
+until one almost lost sight of his lineaments. Rebecca stood close
+to her sofa, regarding him with woeful, fascinated eyes. Mrs.
+Brigham clutched Caroline’s hand. They both stood in a corner out
+of his way. For a few moments he raged about the room like a caged
+wild animal. He moved every piece of furniture; when the moving of
+a piece did not affect the shadow, he flung it to the floor, his
+sisters watching.
+
+Then suddenly he desisted. He laughed and began straightening the
+furniture which he had flung down.
+
+“What an absurdity,” he said easily. “Such a to-do about a
+shadow.”
+
+“That’s so,” assented Mrs. Brigham, in a scared voice which she
+tried to make natural. As she spoke she lifted a chair near her.
+
+“I think you have broken the chair that Edward was so fond of,”
+said Caroline.
+
+Terror and wrath were struggling for expression on her face. Her
+mouth was set, her eyes shrinking. Henry lifted the chair with a
+show of anxiety.
+
+“Just as good as ever,” he said pleasantly. He laughed again,
+looking at his sisters. “Did I scare you?” he said. “I should
+think you might be used to me by this time. You know my way of
+wanting to leap to the bottom of a mystery, and that shadow does
+look—queer, like—and I thought if there was any way of accounting
+for it I would like to without any delay.”
+
+“You don’t seem to have succeeded,” remarked Caroline dryly, with a
+slight glance at the wall.
+
+Henry’s eyes followed hers and he quivered perceptibly.
+
+“Oh, there is no accounting for shadows,” he said, and he laughed
+again. “A man is a fool to try to account for shadows.”
+
+Then the supper bell rang, and they all left the room, but Henry
+kept his back to the wall, as did, indeed, the others.
+
+Mrs. Brigham pressed close to Caroline as she crossed the hall. “He
+looked like a demon!” she breathed in her ear.
+
+Henry led the way with an alert motion like a boy; Rebecca brought
+up the rear; she could scarcely walk, her knees trembled so.
+
+“I can’t sit in that room again this evening,” she whispered to
+Caroline after supper.
+
+“Very well, we will sit in the south room,” replied Caroline. “I
+think we will sit in the south parlor,” she said aloud; “it isn’t
+as damp as the study, and I have a cold.”
+
+So they all sat in the south room with their sewing. Henry read
+the newspaper, his chair drawn close to the lamp on the table.
+About nine o’clock he rose abruptly and crossed the hall to the
+study. The three sisters looked at one another. Mrs. Brigham
+rose, folded her rustling skirts compactly around her, and began
+tiptoeing toward the door.
+
+“What are you going to do?” inquired Rebecca agitatedly.
+
+“I am going to see what he is about,” replied Mrs. Brigham
+cautiously.
+
+She pointed as she spoke to the study door across the hall; it was
+ajar. Henry had striven to pull it together behind him, but it had
+somehow swollen beyond the limit with curious speed. It was still
+ajar and a streak of light showed from top to bottom. The hall
+lamp was not lit.
+
+“You had better stay where you are,” said Caroline with guarded
+sharpness.
+
+“I am going to see,” repeated Mrs. Brigham firmly.
+
+Then she folded her skirts so tightly that her bulk with its
+swelling curves was revealed in a black silk sheath, and she went
+with a slow toddle across the hall to the study door. She stood
+there, her eye at the crack.
+
+In the south room Rebecca stopped sewing and sat watching with
+dilated eyes. Caroline sewed steadily. What Mrs. Brigham,
+standing at the crack in the study door, saw was this:
+
+Henry Glynn, evidently reasoning that the source of the strange
+shadow must be between the table on which the lamp stood and the
+wall, was making systematic passes and thrusts all over and through
+the intervening space with an old sword which had belonged to his
+father. Not an inch was left unpierced. He seemed to have divided
+the space into mathematical sections. He brandished the sword with
+a sort of cold fury and calculation; the blade gave out flashes of
+light, the shadow remained unmoved. Mrs. Brigham, watching, felt
+herself cold with horror.
+
+Finally Henry ceased and stood with the sword in hand and raised as
+if to strike, surveying the shadow on the wall threateningly. Mrs.
+Brigham toddled back across the hall and shut the south room door
+behind her before she related what she had seen.
+
+“He looked like a demon!” she said again. “Have you got any of
+that old wine in the house, Caroline? I don’t feel as if I could
+stand much more.”
+
+Indeed, she looked overcome. Her handsome placid face was worn and
+strained and pale.
+
+“Yes, there’s plenty,” said Caroline; “you can have some when you
+go to bed.”
+
+“I think we had all better take some,” said Mrs. Brigham. “Oh, my
+God, Caroline, what—”
+
+“Don’t ask and don’t speak,” said Caroline.
+
+“No, I am not going to,” replied Mrs. Brigham; “but—”
+
+Rebecca moaned aloud.
+
+“What are you doing that for?” asked Caroline harshly.
+
+“Poor Edward,” returned Rebecca.
+
+“That is all you have to groan for,” said Caroline. “There is
+nothing else.”
+
+“I am going to bed,” said Mrs. Brigham. “I sha’n’t be able to be
+at the funeral if I don’t.”
+
+Soon the three sisters went to their chambers and the south parlor
+was deserted. Caroline called to Henry in the study to put out the
+light before he came upstairs. They had been gone about an hour
+when he came into the room bringing the lamp which had stood in the
+study. He set it on the table and waited a few minutes, pacing up
+and down. His face was terrible, his fair complexion showed livid;
+his blue eyes seemed dark blanks of awful reflections.
+
+Then he took the lamp up and returned to the library. He set the
+lamp on the centre table, and the shadow sprang out on the wall.
+Again he studied the furniture and moved it about, but
+deliberately, with none of his former frenzy. Nothing affected the
+shadow. Then he returned to the south room with the lamp and again
+waited. Again he returned to the study and placed the lamp on the
+table, and the shadow sprang out upon the wall. It was midnight
+before he went upstairs. Mrs. Brigham and the other sisters, who
+could not sleep, heard him.
+
+The next day was the funeral. That evening the family sat in the
+south room. Some relatives were with them. Nobody entered the
+study until Henry carried a lamp in there after the others had
+retired for the night. He saw again the shadow on the wall leap to
+an awful life before the light.
+
+The next morning at breakfast Henry Glynn announced that he had to
+go to the city for three days. The sisters looked at him with
+surprise. He very seldom left home, and just now his practice had
+been neglected on account of Edward’s death. He was a physician.
+
+“How can you leave your patients now?” asked Mrs. Brigham
+wonderingly.
+
+“I don’t know how to, but there is no other way,” replied Henry
+easily. “I have had a telegram from Doctor Mitford.”
+
+“Consultation?” inquired Mrs. Brigham.
+
+“I have business,” replied Henry.
+
+Doctor Mitford was an old classmate of his who lived in a
+neighboring city and who occasionally called upon him in the case
+of a consultation.
+
+After he had gone Mrs. Brigham said to Caroline that after all
+Henry had not said that he was going to consult with Doctor
+Mitford, and she thought it very strange.
+
+“Everything is very strange,” said Rebecca with a shudder.
+
+“What do you mean?” inquired Caroline sharply.
+
+“Nothing,” replied Rebecca.
+
+Nobody entered the library that day, nor the next, nor the next.
+The third day Henry was expected home, but he did not arrive and
+the last train from the city had come.
+
+“I call it pretty queer work,” said Mrs. Brigham. “The idea of a
+doctor leaving his patients for three days anyhow, at such a time
+as this, and I know he has some very sick ones; he said so. And
+the idea of a consultation lasting three days! There is no sense
+in it, and NOW he has not come. I don’t understand it, for my
+part.”
+
+“I don’t either,” said Rebecca.
+
+They were all in the south parlor. There was no light in the study
+opposite, and the door was ajar.
+
+Presently Mrs. Brigham rose—she could not have told why; something
+seemed to impel her, some will outside her own. She went out of
+the room, again wrapping her rustling skirts around that she might
+pass noiselessly, and began pushing at the swollen door of the
+study.
+
+“She has not got any lamp,” said Rebecca in a shaking voice.
+
+Caroline, who was writing letters, rose again, took a lamp (there
+were two in the room) and followed her sister. Rebecca had risen,
+but she stood trembling, not venturing to follow.
+
+The doorbell rang, but the others did not hear it; it was on the
+south door on the other side of the house from the study. Rebecca,
+after hesitating until the bell rang the second time, went to the
+door; she remembered that the servant was out.
+
+Caroline and her sister Emma entered the study. Caroline set the
+lamp on the table. They looked at the wall. “Oh, my God,” gasped
+Mrs. Brigham, “there are—there are TWO—shadows.” The sisters
+stood clutching each other, staring at the awful things on the
+wall. Then Rebecca came in, staggering, with a telegram in her
+hand. “Here is—a telegram,” she gasped. “Henry is—dead.”
+
+
+From “The Wind in the Rosebush,” by Mary E. Wilkins Freeman.
+Copyright, 1903, by Doubleday, Page & Company.
+
+
+
+
+Melville Davisson Post
+
+
+
+
+Introduction to The Corpus Delicti
+
+
+The high ground of the field of crime has not been explored; it has
+not even been entered. The book stalls have been filled to
+weariness with tales based upon plans whereby the DETECTIVE, or
+FERRETING power of the State might be baffled. But, prodigious
+marvel! no writer has attempted to construct tales based upon plans
+whereby the PUNISHING power of the State might be baffled.
+
+The distinction, if one pauses for a moment to consider it, is
+striking. It is possible, even easy, deliberately to plan crimes
+so that the criminal agent and the criminal agency cannot be
+detected. Is it possible to plan and execute wrongs in such a
+manner that they will have all the effect and all the resulting
+profit of desperate crimes and yet not be crimes before the law?
+
+We are prone to forget that the law is no perfect structure, that
+it is simply the result of human labor and human genius, and that
+whatever laws human ingenuity can create for the protection of men,
+those same laws human ingenuity can evade. The Spirit of Evil is
+no dwarf; he has developed equally with the Spirit of Good.
+
+All wrongs are not crimes. Indeed only those wrongs are crimes in
+which certain technical elements are present. The law provides a
+Procrustean standard for all crimes. Thus a wrong, to become
+criminal, must fit exactly into the measure laid down by the law,
+else it is no crime; if it varies never so little from the legal
+measure, the law must, and will, refuse to regard it as criminal,
+no matter how injurious a wrong it may be. There is no measure of
+morality, or equity, or common right that can be applied to the
+individual case. The gauge of the law is iron-bound. The wrong
+measured by this gauge is either a crime or it is not. There is no
+middle ground.
+
+Hence is it, that if one knows well the technicalities of the law,
+one may commit horrible wrongs that will yield all the gain and all
+the resulting effect of the highest crimes, and yet the wrongs
+perpetrated will constitute no one of the crimes described by the
+law. Thus the highest crimes, even murder, may be committed in
+such manner that although the criminal is known and the law holds
+him in custody, yet it cannot punish him. So it happens that in
+this year of our Lord of the nineteenth century, the skillful
+attorney marvels at the stupidity of the rogue who, committing
+crimes by the ordinary methods, subjects himself to unnecessary
+peril, when the result which he seeks can easily be attained by
+other methods, equally expeditious and without danger of liability
+in any criminal tribunal. This is the field into which the author
+has ventured, and he believes it to be new and full of interest.
+
+It may be objected that the writer has prepared here a text-book
+for the shrewd knave. To this it is answered that, if he instructs
+the enemies, he also warns the friends of law and order; and that
+Evil has never yet been stronger because the sun shone on it.
+
+
+[See Lord Hale’s Rule, Russell on Crimes. For the law in New York
+see 18th N. Y. Reports, 179; also N. Y. Reports, 49, page 137. The
+doctrine there laid down obtains in almost every State, with the
+possible exception of a few Western States, where the decisions are
+muddy.]
+
+
+
+
+The Corpus Delicti
+
+
+I
+
+
+“That man Mason,” said Samuel Walcott, “is the mysterious member of
+this club. He is more than that; he is the mysterious man of New
+York.”
+
+“I was much surprised to see him,” answered his companion, Marshall
+St. Clair, of the great law firm of Seward, St. Clair & De Muth.
+“I had lost track of him since he went to Paris as counsel for the
+American stockholders of the Canal Company. When did he come back
+to the States?”
+
+“He turned up suddenly in his ancient haunts about four months
+ago,” said Walcott, “as grand, gloomy, and peculiar as Napoleon
+ever was in his palmiest days. The younger members of the club
+call him ‘Zanona Redivivus.’ He wanders through the house usually
+late at night, apparently without noticing anything or anybody.
+His mind seems to be deeply and busily at work, leaving his bodily
+self to wander as it may happen. Naturally, strange stories are
+told of him; indeed, his individuality and his habit of doing some
+unexpected thing, and doing it in such a marvelously original
+manner that men who are experts at it look on in wonder, cannot
+fail to make him an object of interest.
+
+“He has never been known to play at any game whatever, and yet one
+night he sat down to the chess table with old Admiral Du Brey. You
+know the Admiral is the great champion since he beat the French and
+English officers in the tournament last winter. Well, you also
+know that the conventional openings at chess are scientifically and
+accurately determined. To the utter disgust of Du Brey, Mason
+opened the game with an unheard-of attack from the extremes of the
+board. The old Admiral stopped and, in a kindly patronizing way,
+pointed out the weak and absurd folly of his move and asked him to
+begin again with some one of the safe openings. Mason smiled and
+answered that if one had a head that he could trust he should use
+it; if not, then it was the part of wisdom to follow blindly the
+dead forms of some man who had a head. Du Brey was naturally angry
+and set himself to demolish Mason as quickly as possible. The game
+was rapid for a few moments. Mason lost piece after piece. His
+opening was broken and destroyed and its utter folly apparent to
+the lookers-on. The Admiral smiled and the game seemed all one-
+sided, when, suddenly, to his utter horror, Du Brey found that his
+king was in a trap. The foolish opening had been only a piece of
+shrewd strategy. The old Admiral fought and cursed and sacrificed
+his pieces, but it was of no use. He was gone. Mason checkmated
+him in two moves and arose wearily.
+
+“‘Where in Heaven’s name, man,’ said the old Admiral,
+thunderstruck, ‘did you learn that masterpiece?’
+
+“‘Just here,’ replied Mason. ‘To play chess, one should know his
+opponent. How could the dead masters lay down rules by which you
+could be beaten, sir? They had never seen you’; and thereupon he
+turned and left the room. Of course, St. Clair, such a strange man
+would soon become an object of all kinds of mysterious rumors.
+Some are true and some are not. At any rate, I know that Mason is
+an unusual man with a gigantic intellect. Of late he seems to have
+taken a strange fancy to me. In fact, I seem to be the only member
+of the club that he will talk with, and I confess that he startles
+and fascinates me. He is an original genius, St. Clair, of an
+unusual order.”
+
+“I recall vividly,” said the younger man, “that before Mason went
+to Paris he was considered one of the greatest lawyers of this city
+and he was feared and hated by the bar at large. He came here, I
+believe, from Virginia and began with the high-grade criminal
+practice. He soon became famous for his powerful and ingenious
+defenses. He found holes in the law through which his clients
+escaped, holes that by the profession at large were not suspected
+to exist, and that frequently astonished the judges. His ability
+caught the attention of the great corporations. They tested him
+and found in him learning and unlimited resources. He pointed out
+methods by which they could evade obnoxious statutes, by which they
+could comply with the apparent letter of the law and yet violate
+its spirit, and advised them well in that most important of all
+things, just how far they could bend the law without breaking it.
+At the time he left for Paris he had a vast clientage and was in
+the midst of a brilliant career. The day he took passage from New
+York, the bar lost sight of him. No matter how great a man may be,
+the wave soon closes over him in a city like this. In a few years
+Mason was forgotten. Now only the older practitioners would recall
+him, and they would do so with hatred and bitterness. He was a
+tireless, savage, uncompromising fighter, always a recluse.”
+
+“Well,” said Walcott, “he reminds me of a great world-weary cynic,
+transplanted from some ancient mysterious empire. When I come into
+the man’s presence I feel instinctively the grip of his intellect.
+I tell you, St. Clair, Randolph Mason is the mysterious man of New
+York.”
+
+At this moment a messenger boy came into the room and handed Mr.
+Walcott a telegram. “St. Clair,” said that gentleman, rising, “the
+directors of the Elevated are in session, and we must hurry.” The
+two men put on their coats and left the house.
+
+Samuel Walcott was not a club man after the manner of the Smart
+Set, and yet he was in fact a club man. He was a bachelor in the
+latter thirties, and resided in a great silent house on the avenue.
+On the street he was a man of substance, shrewd and progressive,
+backed by great wealth. He had various corporate interests in the
+larger syndicates, but the basis and foundation of his fortune was
+real estate. His houses on the avenue were the best possible
+property, and his elevator row in the importers’ quarter was indeed
+a literal gold mine. It was known that, many years before, his
+grandfather had died and left him the property, which, at that
+time, was of no great value. Young Walcott had gone out into the
+gold-fields and had been lost sight of and forgotten. Ten years
+afterwards he had turned up suddenly in New York and taken
+possession of his property, then vastly increased in value. His
+speculations were almost phenomenally successful, and, backed by
+the now enormous value of his real property, he was soon on a level
+with the merchant princes. His judgment was considered sound, and
+he had the full confidence of his business associates for safety
+and caution. Fortune heaped up riches around him with a lavish
+hand. He was unmarried and the halo of his wealth caught the keen
+eye of the matron with marriageable daughters. He was invited out,
+caught by the whirl of society, and tossed into its maelstrom. In
+a measure he reciprocated. He kept horses and a yacht. His
+dinners at Delmonico’s and the club were above reproach. But with
+all he was a silent man with a shadow deep in his eyes, and seemed
+to court the society of his fellows, not because he loved them, but
+because he either hated or feared solitude. For years the strategy
+of the match-maker had gone gracefully afield, but Fate is
+relentless. If she shields the victim from the traps of men, it is
+not because she wishes him to escape, but because she is pleased to
+reserve him for her own trap. So it happened that, when Virginia
+St. Clair assisted Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant at her midwinter
+reception, this same Samuel Walcott fell deeply and hopelessly and
+utterly in love, and it was so apparent to the beaten generals
+present, that Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant applauded herself, so to
+speak, with encore after encore. It was good to see this
+courteous, silent man literally at the feet of the young debutante.
+He was there of right. Even the mothers of marriageable daughters
+admitted that. The young girl was brown-haired, brown-eyed, and
+tall enough, said the experts, and of the blue blood royal, with
+all the grace, courtesy, and inbred genius of such princely
+heritage.
+
+Perhaps it was objected by the censors of the Smart Set that Miss
+St. Clair’s frankness and honesty were a trifle old-fashioned, and
+that she was a shadowy bit of a Puritan; and perhaps it was of
+these same qualities that Samuel Walcott received his hurt. At any
+rate the hurt was there and deep, and the new actor stepped up into
+the old time-worn, semi-tragic drama, and began his role with a
+tireless, utter sincerity that was deadly dangerous if he lost.
+
+
+II
+
+
+Perhaps a week after the conversation between St. Clair and
+Walcott, Randolph Mason stood in the private waiting-room of the
+club with his hands behind his back.
+
+He was a man apparently in the middle forties; tall and reasonably
+broad across the shoulders; muscular without being either stout or
+lean. His hair was thin and of a brown color, with erratic streaks
+of gray. His forehead was broad and high and of a faint reddish
+color. His eyes were restless inky black, and not over-large. The
+nose was big and muscular and bowed. The eyebrows were black and
+heavy, almost bushy. There were heavy furrows, running from the
+nose downward and outward to the corners of the mouth. The mouth
+was straight and the jaw was heavy, and square.
+
+Looking at the face of Randolph Mason from above, the expression in
+repose was crafty and cynical; viewed from below upward, it was
+savage and vindictive, almost brutal; while from the front, if
+looked squarely in the face, the stranger was fascinated by the
+animation of the man and at once concluded that his expression was
+fearless and sneering. He was evidently of Southern extraction and
+a man of unusual power.
+
+A fire smoldered on the hearth. It was a crisp evening in the
+early fall, and with that far-off touch of melancholy which ever
+heralds the coming winter, even in the midst of a city. The man’s
+face looked tired and ugly. His long white hands were clasped
+tight together. His entire figure and face wore every mark of
+weakness and physical exhaustion; but his eyes contradicted. They
+were red and restless.
+
+In the private dining-room the dinner party was in the best of
+spirits. Samuel Walcott was happy. Across the table from him was
+Miss Virginia St. Clair, radiant, a tinge of color in her cheeks.
+On either side, Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant and Marshall St. Clair were
+brilliant and lighthearted. Walcott looked at the young girl and
+the measure of his worship was full. He wondered for the
+thousandth time how she could possibly love him and by what earthly
+miracle she had come to accept him, and how it would be always to
+have her across the table from him, his own table in his own house.
+
+They were about to rise from the table when one of the waiters
+entered the room and handed Walcott an envelope. He thrust it
+quickly into his pocket. In the confusion of rising the others did
+not notice him, but his face was ash white and his hands trembled
+violently as he placed the wraps around the bewitching shoulders of
+Miss St. Clair.
+
+“Marshall,” he said, and despite the powerful effort his voice was
+hollow, “you will see the ladies safely cared for, I am called to
+attend a grave matter.”
+
+“All right, Walcott,” answered the young man, with cheery good
+nature, “you are too serious, old man, trot along.”
+
+“The poor dear,” murmured Mrs. Steuvisant, after Walcott had helped
+them to the carriage and turned to go up the steps of the club,—
+“The poor dear is hard hit, and men are such funny creatures when
+they are hard hit.”
+
+Samuel Walcott, as his fate would, went direct to the private
+writing-room and opened the door. The lights were not turned on
+and in the dark he did not see Mason motionless by the mantel-
+shelf. He went quickly across the room to the writing-table,
+turned on one of the lights, and, taking the envelope from his
+pocket, tore it open. Then he bent down by the light to read the
+contents. As his eyes ran over the paper, his jaw fell. The skin
+drew away from his cheekbones and his face seemed literally to sink
+in. His knees gave way under him and he would have gone down in a
+heap had it not been for Mason’s long arms that closed around him
+and held him up. The human economy is ever mysterious. The moment
+the new danger threatened, the latent power of the man as an
+animal, hidden away in the centers of intelligence, asserted
+itself. His hand clutched the paper and, with a half slide, he
+turned in Mason’s arms. For a moment he stared up at the ugly man
+whose thin arms felt like wire ropes.
+
+“You are under the dead-fall, aye,” said Mason. “The cunning of my
+enemy is sublime.”
+
+“Your enemy?” gasped Walcott. “When did you come into it? How in
+God’s name did you know it? How your enemy?”
+
+Mason looked down at the wide bulging eyes of the man.
+
+“Who should know better than I?” he said. “Haven’t I broken
+through all the traps and plots that she could set?”
+
+“She? She trap you?” The man’s voice was full of horror.
+
+“The old schemer,” muttered Mason. “The cowardly old schemer, to
+strike in the back; but we can beat her. She did not count on my
+helping you—I, who know her so well.”
+
+Mason’s face was red, and his eyes burned. In the midst of it all
+he dropped his hands and went over to the fire. Samuel Walcott
+arose, panting, and stood looking at Mason, with his hands behind
+him on the table. The naturally strong nature and the rigid school
+in which the man had been trained presently began to tell. His
+composure in part returned and he thought rapidly. What did this
+strange man know? Was he simply making shrewd guesses, or had he
+some mysterious knowledge of this matter? Walcott could not know
+that Mason meant only Fate, that he believed her to be his great
+enemy. Walcott had never before doubted his own ability to meet
+any emergency. This mighty jerk had carried him off his feet. He
+was unstrung and panic-stricken. At any rate this man had promised
+help. He would take it. He put the paper and envelope carefully
+into his pocket, smoothed out his rumpled coat, and going over to
+Mason touched him on the shoulder.
+
+“Come,” he said, “if you are to help me we must go.”
+
+The man turned and followed him without a word. In the hall Mason
+put on his hat and overcoat, and the two went out into the street.
+Walcott hailed a cab, and the two were driven to his house on the
+avenue. Walcott took out his latchkey, opened the door, and led
+the way into the library. He turned on the light and motioned
+Mason to seat himself at the table. Then he went into another room
+and presently returned with a bundle of papers and a decanter of
+brandy. He poured out a glass of the liquor and offered it to
+Mason. The man shook his head. Walcott poured the contents of the
+glass down his own throat. Then he set the decanter down and drew
+up a chair on the side of the table opposite Mason.
+
+“Sir,” said Walcott, in a voice deliberate, indeed, but as hollow
+as a sepulcher, “I am done for. God has finally gathered up the
+ends of the net, and it is knotted tight.”
+
+“Am I not here to help you?” said Mason, turning savagely. “I can
+beat Fate. Give me the details of her trap.”
+
+He bent forward and rested his arms on the table. His streaked
+gray hair was rumpled and on end, and his face was ugly. For a
+moment Walcott did not answer. He moved a little into the shadow;
+then he spread the bundle of old yellow papers out before him.
+
+“To begin with,” he said, “I am a living lie, a gilded crime-made
+sham, every bit of me. There is not an honest piece anywhere. It
+is all lie. I am a liar and a thief before men. The property
+which I possess is not mine, but stolen from a dead man. The very
+name which I bear is not my own, but is the bastard child of a
+crime. I am more than all that—I am a murderer; a murderer before
+the law; a murderer before God; and worse than a murderer before
+the pure woman whom I love more than anything that God could make.”
+
+He paused for a moment and wiped the perspiration from his face.
+
+“Sir,” said Mason, “this is all drivel, infantile drivel. What you
+are is of no importance. How to get out is the problem, how to get
+out.”
+
+Samuel Walcott leaned forward, poured out a glass of brandy and
+swallowed it.
+
+“Well,” he said, speaking slowly, “my right name is Richard Warren.
+In the spring of 1879 I came to New York and fell in with the real
+Samuel Walcott, a young man with a little money and some property
+which his grandfather had left him. We became friends, and
+concluded to go to the far west together. Accordingly we scraped
+together what money we could lay our hands on, and landed in the
+gold-mining regions of California. We were young and
+inexperienced, and our money went rapidly. One April morning we
+drifted into a little shack camp, away up in the Sierra Nevadas,
+called Hell’s Elbow. Here we struggled and starved for perhaps a
+year. Finally, in utter desperation, Walcott married the daughter
+of a Mexican gambler, who ran an eating house and a poker joint.
+With them we lived from hand to mouth in a wild God-forsaken way
+for several years. After a time the woman began to take a strange
+fancy to me. Walcott finally noticed it, and grew jealous.
+
+“One night, in a drunken brawl, we quarreled, and I killed him. It
+was late at night, and, beside the woman, there were four of us in
+the poker room,—the Mexican gambler, a half-breed devil called
+Cherubim Pete, Walcott, and myself. When Walcott fell, the half-
+breed whipped out his weapon, and fired at me across the table; but
+the woman, Nina San Croix, struck his arm, and, instead of killing
+me, as he intended, the bullet mortally wounded her father, the
+Mexican gambler. I shot the half-breed through the forehead, and
+turned round, expecting the woman to attack me. On the contrary,
+she pointed to the window, and bade me wait for her on the cross
+trail below.
+
+“It was fully three hours later before the woman joined me at the
+place indicated. She had a bag of gold dust, a few jewels that
+belonged to her father, and a package of papers. I asked her why
+she had stayed behind so long, and she replied that the men were
+not killed outright, and that she had brought a priest to them and
+waited until they had died. This was the truth, but not all the
+truth. Moved by superstition or foresight, the woman had induced
+the priest to take down the sworn statements of the two dying men,
+seal it, and give it to her. This paper she brought with her. All
+this I learned afterwards. At the time I knew nothing of this
+damning evidence.
+
+“We struck out together for the Pacific coast. The country was
+lawless. The privations we endured were almost past belief. At
+times the woman exhibited cunning and ability that were almost
+genius; and through it all, often in the very fingers of death, her
+devotion to me never wavered. It was doglike, and seemed to be her
+only object on earth. When we reached San Francisco, the woman put
+these papers into my hands.” Walcott took up the yellow package,
+and pushed it across the table to Mason.
+
+“She proposed that I assume Walcott’s name, and that we come boldly
+to New York and claim the property. I examined the papers, found a
+copy of the will by which Walcott inherited the property, a bundle
+of correspondence, and sufficient documentary evidence to establish
+his identity beyond the shadow of a doubt. Desperate gambler as I
+now was, I quailed before the daring plan of Nina San Croix. I
+urged that I, Richard Warren, would be known, that the attempted
+fraud would be detected and would result in investigation, and
+perhaps unearth the whole horrible matter.
+
+“The woman pointed out how much I resembled Walcott, what vast
+changes ten years of such life as we had led would naturally be
+expected to make in men, how utterly impossible it would be to
+trace back the fraud to Walcott’s murder at Hell’s Elbow, in the
+wild passes of the Sierra Nevadas. She bade me remember that we
+were both outcasts, both crime-branded, both enemies of man’s law
+and God’s; that we had nothing to lose; we were both sunk to the
+bottom. Then she laughed, and said that she had not found me a
+coward until now, but that if I had turned chicken-hearted, that
+was the end of it, of course. The result was, we sold the gold
+dust and jewels in San Francisco, took on such evidences of
+civilization as possible, and purchased passage to New York on the
+best steamer we could find.
+
+“I was growing to depend on the bold gambler spirit of this woman,
+Nina San Croix; I felt the need of her strong, profligate nature.
+She was of a queer breed and a queerer school. Her mother was the
+daughter of a Spanish engineer, and had been stolen by the Mexican,
+her father. She herself had been raised and educated as best might
+be in one of the monasteries along the Rio Grande, and had there
+grown to womanhood before her father, fleeing into the mountains of
+California, carried her with him.
+
+“When we landed in New York I offered to announce her as my wife,
+but she refused, saying that her presence would excite comment and
+perhaps attract the attention of Walcott’s relatives. We therefore
+arranged that I should go alone into the city, claim the property,
+and announce myself as Samuel Walcott, and that she should remain
+under cover until such time as we would feel the ground safe under
+us.
+
+“Every detail of the plan was fatally successful. I established my
+identity without difficulty and secured the property. It had
+increased vastly in value, and I, as Samuel Walcott, soon found
+myself a rich man. I went to Nina San Croix in hiding and gave her
+a large sum of money, with which she purchased a residence in a
+retired part of the city, far up in the northern suburb. Here she
+lived secluded and unknown while I remained in the city, living
+here as a wealthy bachelor.
+
+“I did not attempt to abandon the woman, but went to her from time
+to time in disguise and under cover of the greatest secrecy. For a
+time everything ran smooth, the woman was still devoted to me above
+everything else, and thought always of my welfare first and seemed
+content to wait so long as I thought best. My business expanded.
+I was sought after and consulted and drawn into the higher life of
+New York, and more and more felt that the woman was an albatross on
+my neck. I put her off with one excuse after another. Finally she
+began to suspect me and demanded that I should recognize her as my
+wife. I attempted to point out the difficulties. She met them all
+by saying that we should both go to Spain, there I could marry her
+and we could return to America and drop into my place in society
+without causing more than a passing comment.
+
+“I concluded to meet the matter squarely once for all. I said that
+I would convert half of the property into money and give it to her,
+but that I would not marry her. She did not fly into a storming
+rage as I had expected, but went quietly out of the room and
+presently returned with two papers, which she read. One was the
+certificate of her marriage to Walcott duly authenticated; the
+other was the dying statement of her father, the Mexican gambler,
+and of Samuel Walcott, charging me with murder. It was in proper
+form and certified by the Jesuit priest.
+
+“‘Now,’ she said, sweetly, when she had finished, ‘which do you
+prefer, to recognize your wife, or to turn all the property over to
+Samuel Walcott’s widow and hang for his murder?’
+
+“I was dumfounded and horrified. I saw the trap that I was in and
+I consented to do anything she should say if she would only destroy
+the papers. This she refused to do. I pleaded with her and
+implored her to destroy them. Finally she gave them to me with a
+great show of returning confidence, and I tore them into bits and
+threw them into the fire.
+
+“That was three months ago. We arranged to go to Spain and do as
+she said. She was to sail this morning and I was to follow. Of
+course I never intended to go. I congratulated myself on the fact
+that all trace of evidence against me was destroyed and that her
+grip was now broken. My plan was to induce her to sail, believing
+that I would follow. When she was gone I would marry Miss St.
+Clair, and if Nina San Croix should return I would defy her and
+lock her up as a lunatic. But I was reckoning like an infernal
+ass, to imagine for a moment that I could thus hoodwink such a
+woman as Nina San Croix.
+
+“To-night I received this.” Walcott took the envelope from his
+pocket and gave it to Mason. “You saw the effect of it; read it
+and you will understand why. I felt the death hand when I saw her
+writing on the envelope.”
+
+Mason took the paper from the envelope. It was written in Spanish,
+and ran:
+
+
+“Greeting to RICHARD WARREN.
+
+“The great Senor does his little Nina injustice to think she would
+go away to Spain and leave him to the beautiful American. She is
+not so thoughtless. Before she goes, she shall be, Oh so very
+rich! and the dear Senor shall be, Oh so very safe! The Archbishop
+and the kind Church hate murderers.
+
+“NINA SAN CROIX.
+
+“Of course, fool, the papers you destroyed were copies.
+
+“N. SAN C.”
+
+
+To this was pinned a line in a delicate aristocratic hand saying
+that the Archbishop would willingly listen to Madam San Croix’s
+statement if she would come to him on Friday morning at eleven.
+
+“You see,” said Walcott, desperately, “there is no possible way
+out. I know the woman—when she decides to do a thing that is the
+end of it. She has decided to do this.”
+
+Mason turned around from the table, stretched out his long legs,
+and thrust his hands deep into his pockets. Walcott sat with his
+head down, watching Mason hopelessly, almost indifferently, his
+face blank and sunken. The ticking of the bronze clock on the
+mantel shelf was loud, painfully loud. Suddenly Mason drew his
+knees in and bent over, put both his bony hands on the table, and
+looked at Walcott.
+
+“Sir,” he said, “this matter is in such shape that there is only
+one thing to do. This growth must be cut out at the roots, and cut
+out quickly. This is the first fact to be determined, and a fool
+would know it. The second fact is that you must do it yourself.
+Hired killers are like the grave and the daughters of the horse
+leech,—they cry always, ‘Give, Give.’ They are only palliatives,
+not cures. By using them you swap perils. You simply take a stay
+of execution at best. The common criminal would know this. These
+are the facts of your problem. The master plotters of crime would
+see here but two difficulties to meet:
+
+“A practical method for accomplishing the body of the crime.
+
+“A cover for the criminal agent.
+
+“They would see no farther, and attempt to guard no farther. After
+they had provided a plan for the killing, and a means by which the
+killer could cover his trail and escape from the theater of the
+homicide, they would believe all the requirements of the problems
+met, and would stop. The greatest, the very giants among them,
+have stopped here and have been in great error.
+
+“In every crime, especially in the great ones, there exists a third
+element, preeminently vital. This third element the master
+plotters have either overlooked or else have not had the genius to
+construct. They plan with rare cunning to baffle the victim. They
+plan with vast wisdom, almost genius, to baffle the trailer. But
+they fail utterly to provide any plan for baffling the punisher.
+Ergo, their plots are fatally defective and often result in ruin.
+Hence the vital necessity for providing the third element—the
+escape ipso jure.”
+
+Mason arose, walked around the table, and put his hand firmly on
+Samuel Walcott’s shoulder. “This must be done to-morrow night,” he
+continued; “you must arrange your business matters to-morrow and
+announce that you are going on a yacht cruise, by order of your
+physician, and may not return for some weeks. You must prepare
+your yacht for a voyage, instruct your men to touch at a certain
+point on Staten Island, and wait until six o’clock day after
+tomorrow morning. If you do not come aboard by that time, they are
+to go to one of the South American ports and remain until further
+orders. By this means your absence for an indefinite period will
+be explained. You will go to Nina San Croix in the disguise which
+you have always used, and from her to the yacht, and by this means
+step out of your real status and back into it without leaving
+traces. I will come here to-morrow evening and furnish you with
+everything that you shall need and give you full and exact
+instructions in every particular. These details you must execute
+with the greatest care, as they will be vitally essential to the
+success of my plan.”
+
+Through it all Walcott had been silent and motionless. Now he
+arose, and in his face there must have been some premonition of
+protest, for Mason stepped back and put out his hand. “Sir,” he
+said, with brutal emphasis, “not a word. Remember that you are
+only the hand, and the hand does not think.” Then he turned around
+abruptly and went out of the house.
+
+
+III
+
+
+The place which Samuel Walcott had selected for the residence of
+Nina San Croix was far up in the northern suburb of New York. The
+place was very old. The lawn was large and ill kept; the house, a
+square old-fashioned brick, was set far back from the street, and
+partly hidden by trees. Around it all was a rusty iron fence. The
+place had the air of genteel ruin, such as one finds in the
+Virginias.
+
+On a Thursday of November, about three o’clock in the afternoon, a
+little man, driving a dray, stopped in the alley at the rear of the
+house. As he opened the back gate an old negro woman came down the
+steps from the kitchen and demanded to know what he wanted. The
+drayman asked if the lady of the house was in. The old negro
+answered that she was asleep at this hour and could not be seen.
+
+“That is good,” said the little man, “now there won’t be any row.
+I brought up some cases of wine which she ordered from our house
+last week and which the Boss told me to deliver at once, but I
+forgot it until to-day. Just let me put it in the cellar now,
+Auntie, and don’t say a word to the lady about it and she won’t
+ever know that it was not brought up on time.”
+
+The drayman stopped, fished a silver dollar out of his pocket, and
+gave it to the old negro. “There now, Auntie,” he said, “my job
+depends upon the lady not knowing about this wine; keep it mum.”
+
+“Dat’s all right, honey,” said the old servant, beaming like a May
+morning. “De cellar door is open, carry it all in and put it in de
+back part and nobody ain’t never going to know how long it has been
+in dar.”
+
+The old negro went back into the kitchen and the little man began
+to unload the dray. He carried in five wine cases and stowed them
+away in the back part of the cellar as the old woman had directed.
+Then, after having satisfied himself that no one was watching, he
+took from the dray two heavy paper sacks, presumably filled with
+flour, and a little bundle wrapped in an old newspaper; these he
+carefully hid behind the wine cases in the cellar. After awhile he
+closed the door, climbed on his dray, and drove off down the alley.
+
+About eight o’clock in the evening of the same day, a Mexican
+sailor dodged in the front gate and slipped down to the side of the
+house. He stopped by the window and tapped on it with his finger.
+In a moment a woman opened the door. She was tall, lithe, and
+splendidly proportioned, with a dark Spanish face and straight
+hair. The man stepped inside. The woman bolted the door and
+turned round.
+
+“Ah,” she said, smiling, “it is you, Senor? How good of you!”
+
+The man started. “Whom else did you expect?” he said quickly.
+
+“Oh!” laughed the woman, “perhaps the Archbishop.”
+
+“Nina!” said the man, in a broken voice that expressed love,
+humility, and reproach. His face was white under the black
+sunburn.
+
+For a moment the woman wavered. A shadow flitted over her eyes,
+then she stepped back. “No,” she said, “not yet.”
+
+The man walked across to the fire, sank down in a chair, and
+covered his face with his hands. The woman stepped up noiselessly
+behind him and leaned over the chair. The man was either in great
+agony or else he was a superb actor, for the muscles of his neck
+twitched violently and his shoulders trembled.
+
+“Oh,” he muttered, as though echoing his thoughts, “I can’t do it,
+I can’t!”
+
+The woman caught the words and leaped up as though some one had
+struck her in the face. She threw back her head. Her nostrils
+dilated and her eyes flashed.
+
+“You can’t do it!” she cried. “Then you do love her! You shall do
+it! Do you hear me? You shall do it! You killed him! You got
+rid of him! but you shall not get rid of me. I have the evidence,
+all of it. The Archbishop will have it to-morrow. They shall hang
+you! Do you hear me? They shall hang you!”
+
+The woman’s voice rose, it was loud and shrill. The man turned
+slowly round without looking up, and stretched out his arms toward
+the woman. She stopped and looked down at him. The fire glittered
+for a moment and then died out of her eyes, her bosom heaved and
+her lips began to tremble. With a cry she flung herself into his
+arms, caught him around the neck, and pressed his face up close
+against her cheek.
+
+“Oh! Dick, Dick,” she sobbed, “I do love you so! I can’t live
+without you! Not another hour, Dick! I do want you so much, so
+much, Dick!”
+
+The man shifted his right arm quickly, slipped a great Mexican
+knife out of his sleeve, and passed his fingers slowly up the
+woman’s side until he felt the heart beat under his hand, then he
+raised the knife, gripped the handle tight, and drove the keen
+blade into the woman’s bosom. The hot blood gushed out over his
+arm, and down on his leg. The body, warm and limp, slipped down in
+his arms. The man got up, pulled out the knife, and thrust it into
+a sheath at his belt, unbuttoned the dress, and slipped it off of
+the body. As he did this a bundle of papers dropped upon the
+floor; these he glanced at hastily and put into his pocket. Then
+he took the dead woman up in his arms, went out into the hall, and
+started to go up the stairway. The body was relaxed and heavy, and
+for that reason difficult to carry. He doubled it up into an awful
+heap, with the knees against the chin, and walked slowly and
+heavily up the stairs and out into the bathroom. There he laid the
+corpse down on the tiled floor. Then he opened the window, closed
+the shutters, and lighted the gas. The bathroom was small and
+contained an ordinary steel tub, porcelain lined, standing near the
+window and raised about six inches above the floor. The sailor
+went over to the tub, pried up the metal rim of the outlet with his
+knife, removed it, and fitted into its place a porcelain disk which
+he took from his pocket; to this disk was attached a long platinum
+wire, the end of which he fastened on the outside of the tub.
+After he had done this he went back to the body, stripped off its
+clothing, put it down in the tub and began to dismember it with the
+great Mexican knife. The blade was strong and sharp as a razor.
+The man worked rapidly and with the greatest care.
+
+When he had finally cut the body into as small pieces as possible,
+he replaced the knife in its sheath, washed his hands, and went out
+of the bathroom and downstairs to the lower hall. The sailor
+seemed perfectly familiar with the house. By a side door he passed
+into the cellar. There he lighted the gas, opened one of the wine
+cases, and, taking up all the bottles that he could conveniently
+carry, returned to the bathroom. There he poured the contents into
+the tub on the dismembered body, and then returned to the cellar
+with the empty bottles, which he replaced in the wine cases. This
+he continued to do until all the cases but one were emptied and the
+bath tub was more than half full of liquid. This liquid was
+sulphuric acid.
+
+When the sailor returned to the cellar with the last empty wine
+bottles, he opened the fifth case, which really contained wine,
+took some of it out, and poured a little into each of the empty
+bottles in order to remove any possible odor of the sulphuric acid.
+Then he turned out the gas and brought up to the bathroom with him
+the two paper flour sacks and the little heavy bundle. These sacks
+were filled with nitrate of soda. He set them down by the door,
+opened the little bundle, and took out two long rubber tubes, each
+attached to a heavy gas burner, not unlike the ordinary burners of
+a small gas stove. He fastened the tubes to two of the gas jets,
+put the burners under the tub, turned the gas on full, and lighted
+it. Then he threw into the tub the woman’s clothing and the papers
+which he had found on her body, after which he took up the two
+heavy sacks of nitrate of soda and dropped them carefully into the
+sulphuric acid. When he had done this he went quickly out of the
+bathroom and closed the door.
+
+The deadly acids at once attacked the body and began to destroy it;
+as the heat increased, the acids boiled and the destructive process
+was rapid and awful. From time to time the sailor opened the door
+of the bathroom cautiously, and, holding a wet towel over his mouth
+and nose, looked in at his horrible work. At the end of a few
+hours there was only a swimming mass in the tub. When the man
+looked at four o’clock, it was all a thick murky liquid. He turned
+off the gas quickly and stepped back out of the room. For perhaps
+half an hour he waited in the hall; finally, when the acids had
+cooled so that they no longer gave off fumes, he opened the door
+and went in, took hold of the platinum wire and, pulling the
+porcelain disk from the stopcock, allowed the awful contents of the
+tub to run out. Then he turned on the hot water, rinsed the tub
+clean, and replaced the metal outlet. Removing the rubber tubes,
+he cut them into pieces, broke the porcelain disk, and, rolling up
+the platinum wire, washed it all down the sewer pipe.
+
+The fumes had escaped through the open window; this he now closed
+and set himself to putting the bathroom in order, and effectually
+removing every trace of his night’s work. The sailor moved around
+with the very greatest degree of care. Finally, when he had
+arranged everything to his complete satisfaction, he picked up the
+two burners, turned out the gas, and left the bathroom, closing the
+door after him. From the bathroom he went directly to the attic,
+concealed the two rusty burners under a heap of rubbish, and then
+walked carefully and noiselessly down the stairs and through the
+lower hall. As he opened the door and stepped into the room where
+he had killed the woman, two police officers sprang out and seized
+him. The man screamed like a wild beast taken in a trap and sank
+down.
+
+“Oh! oh!” he cried, “it was no use! it was no use to do it!” Then
+he recovered himself in a manner and was silent. The officers
+handcuffed him, summoned the patrol, and took him at once to the
+station house. There he said he was a Mexican sailor and that his
+name was Victor Ancona; but he would say nothing further. The
+following morning he sent for Randolph Mason and the two were long
+together.
+
+
+IV
+
+
+The obscure defendant charged with murder has little reason to
+complain of the law’s delays. The morning following the arrest of
+Victor Ancona, the newspapers published long sensational articles,
+denounced him as a fiend, and convicted him. The grand jury, as it
+happened, was in session. The preliminaries were soon arranged and
+the case was railroaded into trial. The indictment contained a
+great many counts, and charged the prisoner with the murder of Nina
+San Croix by striking, stabbing, choking, poisoning, and so forth.
+
+The trial had continued for three days and had appeared so
+overwhelmingly one-sided that the spectators who were crowded in
+the court room had grown to be violent and bitter partisans, to
+such an extent that the police watched them closely. The attorneys
+for the People were dramatic and denunciatory, and forced their
+case with arrogant confidence. Mason, as counsel for the prisoner,
+was indifferent and listless. Throughout the entire trial he had
+sat almost motionless at the table, his gaunt form bent over, his
+long legs drawn up under his chair, and his weary, heavy-muscled
+face, with its restless eyes, fixed and staring out over the heads
+of the jury, was like a tragic mask. The bar, and even the judge,
+believed that the prisoner’s counsel had abandoned his case.
+
+The evidence was all in and the People rested. It had been shown
+that Nina San Croix had resided for many years in the house in
+which the prisoner was arrested; that she had lived by herself,
+with no other companion than an old negro servant; that her past
+was unknown, and that she received no visitors, save the Mexican
+sailor, who came to her house at long intervals. Nothing whatever
+was shown tending to explain who the prisoner was or whence he had
+come. It was shown that on Tuesday preceding the killing the
+Archbishop had received a communication from Nina San Croix, in
+which she said she desired to make a statement of the greatest
+import, and asking for an audience. To this the Archbishop replied
+that he would willingly grant her a hearing if she would come to
+him at eleven o’clock on Friday morning. Two policemen testified
+that about eight o’clock on the night of Thursday they had noticed
+the prisoner slip into the gate of Nina San Croix’s residence and
+go down to the side of the house, where he was admitted; that his
+appearance and seeming haste had attracted their attention; that
+they had concluded that it was some clandestine amour, and out of
+curiosity had both slipped down to the house and endeavored to find
+a position from which they could see into the room, but were unable
+to do so, and were about to go back to the street when they heard a
+woman’s voice cry out in, great anger: “I know that you love her
+and that you want to get rid of me, but you shall not do it! You
+murdered him, but you shall not murder me! I have all the evidence
+to convict you of murdering him! The Archbishop will have it to-
+morrow! They shall hang you! Do you hear me? They shall hang you
+for this murder!” that thereupon one of the policemen proposed that
+they should break into the house and see what was wrong, but the
+other had urged that it was only the usual lovers’ quarrel and if
+they should interfere they would find nothing upon which a charge
+could be based and would only be laughed at by the chief; that they
+had waited and listened for a time, but hearing nothing further had
+gone back to the street and contented themselves with keeping a
+strict watch on the house.
+
+The People proved further, that on Thursday evening Nina San Croix
+had given the old negro domestic a sum of money and dismissed her,
+with the instruction that she was not to return until sent for.
+The old woman testified that she had gone directly to the house of
+her son, and later had discovered that she had forgotten some
+articles of clothing which she needed; that thereupon she had
+returned to the house and had gone up the back way to her room,—
+this was about eight o’clock; that while there she had heard Nina
+San Croix’s voice in great passion and remembered that she had used
+the words stated by the policemen; that these sudden, violent cries
+had frightened her greatly and she had bolted the door and been
+afraid to leave the room; shortly thereafter, she had heard heavy
+footsteps ascending the stairs, slowly and with great difficulty,
+as though some one were carrying a heavy burden; that therefore her
+fear had increased and that she had put out the light and hidden
+under the bed. She remembered hearing the footsteps moving about
+upstairs for many hours, how long she could not tell. Finally,
+about half-past four in the morning, she crept out, opened the
+door, slipped downstairs, and ran out into the street. There she
+had found the policemen and requested them to search the house.
+
+The two officers had gone to the house with the woman. She had
+opened the door and they had had just time to step back into the
+shadow when the prisoner entered. When arrested, Victor Ancona had
+screamed with terror, and cried out, “It was no use! it was no use
+to do it!”
+
+The Chief of Police had come to the house and instituted a careful
+search. In the room below, from which the cries had come, he found
+a dress which was identified as belonging to Nina San Croix and
+which she was wearing when last seen by the domestic, about six
+o’clock that evening. This dress was covered with blood, and had a
+slit about two inches long in the left side of the bosom, into
+which the Mexican knife, found on the prisoner, fitted perfectly.
+These articles were introduced in evidence, and it was shown that
+the slit would be exactly over the heart of the wearer, and that
+such a wound would certainly result in death. There was much blood
+on one of the chairs and on the floor. There was also blood on the
+prisoner’s coat and the leg of his trousers, and the heavy Mexican
+knife was also bloody. The blood was shown by the experts to be
+human blood.
+
+The body of the woman was not found, and the most rigid and
+tireless search failed to develop the slightest trace of the
+corpse, or the manner of its disposal. The body of the woman had
+disappeared as completely as though it had vanished into the air.
+
+When counsel announced that he had closed for the People, the judge
+turned and looked gravely down at Mason. “Sir,” he said, “the
+evidence for the defense may now be introduced.”
+
+Randolph Mason arose slowly and faced the judge.
+
+“If your Honor please,” he said, speaking slowly and distinctly,
+“the defendant has no evidence to offer.” He paused while a murmur
+of astonishment ran over the court room. “But, if your Honor
+please,” he continued, “I move that the jury be directed to find
+the prisoner not guilty.”
+
+The crowd stirred. The counsel for the People smiled. The judge
+looked sharply at the speaker over his glasses. “On what ground?”
+he said curtly.
+
+“On the ground,” replied Mason, “that the corpus delicti has not
+been proven.”
+
+“Ah!” said the judge, for once losing his judicial gravity. Mason
+sat down abruptly. The senior counsel for the prosecution was on
+his feet in a moment.
+
+“What!” he said, “the gentleman bases his motion on a failure to
+establish the corpus delicti? Does he jest, or has he forgotten
+the evidence? The term ‘corpus delicti’ is technical, and means
+the body of the crime, or the substantial fact that a crime has
+been committed. Does anyone doubt it in this case? It is true
+that no one actually saw the prisoner kill the decedent, and that
+he has so successfully hidden the body that it has not been found,
+but the powerful chain of circumstances, clear and close-linked,
+proving motive, the criminal agency, and the criminal act, is
+overwhelming.
+
+“The victim in this case is on the eve of making a statement that
+would prove fatal to the prisoner. The night before the statement
+is to be made he goes to her residence. They quarrel. Her voice
+is heard, raised high in the greatest passion, denouncing him, and
+charging that he is a murderer, that she has the evidence and will
+reveal it, that he shall be hanged, and that he shall not be rid of
+her. Here is the motive for the crime, clear as light. Are not
+the bloody knife, the bloody dress, the bloody clothes of the
+prisoner, unimpeachable witnesses to the criminal act? The
+criminal agency of the prisoner has not the shadow of a possibility
+to obscure it. His motive is gigantic. The blood on him, and his
+despair when arrested, cry ‘Murder! murder!’ with a thousand
+tongues.
+
+“Men may lie, but circumstances cannot. The thousand hopes and
+fears and passions of men may delude, or bias the witness. Yet it
+is beyond the human mind to conceive that a clear, complete chain
+of concatenated circumstances can be in error. Hence it is that
+the greatest jurists have declared that such evidence, being rarely
+liable to delusion or fraud, is safest and most powerful. The
+machinery of human justice cannot guard against the remote and
+improbable doubt. The inference is persistent in the affairs of
+men. It is the only means by which the human mind reaches the
+truth. If you forbid the jury to exercise it, you bid them work
+after first striking off their hands. Rule out the irresistible
+inference, and the end of justice is come in this land; and you may
+as well leave the spider to weave his web through the abandoned
+court room.”
+
+The attorney stopped, looked down at Mason with a pompous sneer,
+and retired to his place at the table. The judge sat thoughtful
+and motionless. The jurymen leaned forward in their seats.
+
+“If your Honor please,” said Mason, rising, “this is a matter of
+law, plain, clear, and so well settled in the State of New York
+that even counsel for the People should know it. The question
+before your Honor is simple. If the corpus delicti, the body of
+the crime, has been proven, as required by the laws of the
+commonwealth, then this case should go to the jury. If not, then
+it is the duty of this Court to direct the jury to find the
+prisoner not guilty. There is here no room for judicial
+discretion. Your Honor has but to recall and apply the rigid rule
+announced by our courts prescribing distinctly how the corpus
+delicti in murder must be proven.
+
+“The prisoner here stands charged with the highest crime. The law
+demands, first, that the crime, as a fact, be established. The
+fact that the victim is indeed dead must first be made certain
+before anyone can be convicted for her killing, because, so long as
+there remains the remotest doubt as to the death, there can be no
+certainty as to the criminal agent, although the circumstantial
+evidence indicating the guilt of the accused may be positive,
+complete, and utterly irresistible. In murder, the corpus delicti,
+or body of the crime, is composed of two elements:
+
+“Death, as a result.
+
+“The criminal agency of another as the means.
+
+“It is the fixed and immutable law of this State, laid down in the
+leading case of Ruloff v. The People, and binding upon this Court,
+that both components of the corpus delicti shall not be established
+by circumstantial evidence. There must be direct proof of one or
+the other of these two component elements of the corpus delicti.
+If one is proven by direct evidence, the other may be presumed; but
+both shall not be presumed from circumstances, no matter how
+powerful, how cogent, or how completely overwhelming the
+circumstances may be. In other words, no man can be convicted of
+murder in the State of New York, unless the body of the victim be
+found and identified, or there be direct proof that the prisoner
+did some act adequate to produce death, and did it in such a manner
+as to account for the disappearance of the body.”
+
+The face of the judge cleared and grew hard. The members of the
+bar were attentive and alert; they were beginning to see the legal
+escape open up. The audience were puzzled; they did not yet
+understand. Mason turned to the counsel for the People. His ugly
+face was bitter with contempt.
+
+“For three days,” he said, “I have been tortured by this useless
+and expensive farce. If counsel for the People had been other than
+play-actors, they would have known in the beginning that Victor
+Ancona could not be convicted for murder, unless he were confronted
+in this court room with a living witness, who had looked into the
+dead face of Nina San Croix; or, if not that, a living witness who
+had seen him drive the dagger into her bosom.
+
+“I care not if the circumstantial evidence in this case were so
+strong and irresistible as to be overpowering; if the judge on the
+bench, if the jury, if every man within sound of my voice, were
+convinced of the guilt of the prisoner to the degree of certainty
+that is absolute; if the circumstantial evidence left in the mind
+no shadow of the remotest improbable doubt; yet, in the absence of
+the eyewitness, this prisoner cannot be punished, and this Court
+must compel the jury to acquit him.”
+
+The audience now understood, and they were dumfounded. Surely this
+was not the law. They had been taught that the law was common
+sense, and this,—this was anything else.
+
+Mason saw it all, and grinned. “In its tenderness,” he sneered,
+“the law shields the innocent. The good law of New York reaches
+out its hand and lifts the prisoner out of the clutches of the
+fierce jury that would hang him.”
+
+Mason sat down. The room was silent. The jurymen looked at each
+other in amazement. The counsel for the People arose. His face
+was white with anger, and incredulous.
+
+“Your Honor,” he said, “this doctrine is monstrous. Can it be said
+that, in order to evade punishment, the murderer has only to hide
+or destroy the body of the victim, or sink it into the sea? Then,
+if he is not seen to kill, the law is powerless and the murderer
+can snap his finger in the face of retributive justice. If this is
+the law, then the law for the highest crime is a dead letter. The
+great commonwealth winks at murder and invites every man to kill
+his enemy, provided he kill him in secret and hide him. I repeat,
+your Honor,”—the man’s voice was now loud and angry and rang
+through the court room—“that this doctrine is monstrous!”
+
+“So said Best, and Story, and many another,” muttered Mason, “and
+the law remained.”
+
+“The Court,” said the judge, abruptly, “desires no further
+argument.”
+
+The counsel for the People resumed his seat. His face lighted up
+with triumph. The Court was going to sustain him.
+
+The judge turned and looked down at the jury. He was grave, and
+spoke with deliberate emphasis.
+
+“Gentlemen of the jury,” he said, “the rule of Lord Hale obtains in
+this State and is binding upon me. It is the law as stated by
+counsel for the prisoner: that to warrant conviction of murder
+there must be direct proof either of the death, as of the finding
+and identification of the corpse, or of criminal violence adequate
+to produce death, and exerted in such a manner as to account for
+the disappearance of the body; and it is only when there is direct
+proof of the one that the other can be established by
+circumstantial evidence. This is the law, and cannot now be
+departed from. I do not presume to explain its wisdom. Chief-
+Justice Johnson has observed, in the leading case, that it may have
+its probable foundation in the idea that where direct proof is
+absent as to both the fact of the death and of criminal violence
+capable of producing death, no evidence can rise to the degree of
+moral certainty that the individual is dead by criminal
+intervention, or even lead by direct inference to this result; and
+that, where the fact of death is not certainly ascertained, all
+inculpatory circumstantial evidence wants the key necessary for its
+satisfactory interpretation, and cannot be depended on to furnish
+more than probable results. It may be, also, that such a rule has
+some reference to the dangerous possibility that a general
+preconception of guilt, or a general excitement of popular feeling,
+may creep in to supply the place of evidence, if, upon other than
+direct proof of death or a cause of death, a jury are permitted to
+pronounce a prisoner guilty.
+
+“In this case the body has not been found and there is no direct
+proof of criminal agency on the part of the prisoner, although the
+chain of circumstantial evidence is complete and irresistible in
+the highest degree. Nevertheless, it is all circumstantial
+evidence, and under the laws of New York the prisoner cannot be
+punished. I have no right of discretion. The law does not permit
+a conviction in this case, although every one of us may be morally
+certain of the prisoner’s guilt. I am, therefore, gentlemen of the
+jury, compelled to direct you to find the prisoner not guilty.”
+
+“Judge,” interrupted the foreman, jumping up in the box, “we cannot
+find that verdict under our oath; we know that this man is guilty.”
+
+“Sir,” said the judge, “this is a matter of law in which the wishes
+of the jury cannot be considered. The clerk will write a verdict
+of not guilty, which you, as foreman, will sign.”
+
+The spectators broke out into a threatening murmur that began to
+grow and gather volume. The judge rapped on his desk and ordered
+the bailiffs promptly to suppress any demonstration on the part of
+the audience. Then he directed the foreman to sign the verdict
+prepared by the clerk. When this was done he turned to Victor
+Ancona; his face was hard and there was a cold glitter in his eyes.
+
+“Prisoner at the bar,” he said, “you have been put to trial before
+this tribunal on a charge of cold-blooded and atrocious murder.
+The evidence produced against you was of such powerful and
+overwhelming character that it seems to have left no doubt in the
+minds of the jury, nor indeed in the mind of any person present in
+this court room.
+
+“Had the question of your guilt been submitted to these twelve
+arbiters, a conviction would certainly have resulted and the death
+penalty would have been imposed. But the law, rigid, passionless,
+even-eyed, has thrust in between you and the wrath of your fellows
+and saved you from it. I do not cry out against the impotency of
+the law; it is perhaps as wise as imperfect humanity could make it.
+I deplore, rather, the genius of evil men who, by cunning design,
+are enabled to slip through the fingers of this law. I have no
+word of censure or admonition for you, Victor Ancona. The law of
+New York compels me to acquit you. I am only its mouthpiece, with
+my individual wishes throttled. I speak only those things which
+the law directs I shall speak.
+
+“You are now at liberty to leave this court room, not guiltless of
+the crime of murder, perhaps, but at least rid of its punishment.
+The eyes of men may see Cain’s mark on your brow, but the eyes of
+the Law are blind to it.”
+
+When the audience fully realized what the judge had said they were
+amazed and silent. They knew as well as men could know, that
+Victor Ancona was guilty of murder, and yet he was now going out of
+the court room free. Could it happen that the law protected only
+against the blundering rogue? They had heard always of the boasted
+completeness of the law which magistrates from time immemorial had
+labored to perfect, and now when the skillful villain sought to
+evade it, they saw how weak a thing it was.
+
+
+V
+
+
+The wedding march of Lohengrin floated out from the Episcopal
+Church of St. Mark, clear and sweet, and perhaps heavy with its
+paradox of warning. The theater of this coming contract before
+high heaven was a wilderness of roses worth the taxes of a county.
+The high caste of Manhattan, by the grace of the check book, were
+present, clothed in Parisian purple and fine linen, cunningly and
+marvelously wrought.
+
+Over in her private pew, ablaze with jewels, and decked with
+fabrics from the deft hand of many a weaver, sat Mrs. Miriam
+Steuvisant as imperious and self-complacent as a queen. To her it
+was all a kind of triumphal procession, proclaiming her ability as
+a general. With her were a choice few of the genus homo, which
+obtains at the five-o’clock teas, instituted, say the sages, for
+the purpose of sprinkling the holy water of Lethe.
+
+“Czarina,” whispered Reggie Du Puyster, leaning forward, “I salute
+you. The ceremony sub jugum is superb.”
+
+“Walcott is an excellent fellow,” answered Mrs. Steuvisant; “not a
+vice, you know, Reggie.”
+
+“Aye, Empress,” put in the others, “a purist taken in the net. The
+clean-skirted one has come to the altar. Vive la vertu!”
+
+Samuel Walcott, still sunburned from his cruise, stood before the
+chancel with the only daughter of the blue blooded St. Clairs. His
+face was clear and honest and his voice firm. This was life and
+not romance. The lid of the sepulcher had closed and he had
+slipped from under it. And now, and ever after, the hand red with
+murder was clean as any.
+
+The minister raised his voice, proclaiming the holy union before
+God, and this twain, half pure, half foul, now by divine ordinance
+one flesh, bowed down before it. No blood cried from the ground.
+The sunlight of high noon streamed down through the window panes
+like a benediction.
+
+Back in the pew of Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant, Reggie Du Puyster turned
+down his thumb. “Habet!” he said.
+
+
+From “The Strange Schemes of Randolph Mason,” by Melville Davisson
+Post. Copyright, 1896, by G. P. Putnam’s Sons.
+
+
+
+
+Ambrose Bierce
+
+
+
+
+An Heiress from Redhorse
+
+
+CORONADO, June 20th.
+
+I find myself more and more interested in him. It is not, I am
+sure, his—do you know any noun corresponding to the adjective
+“handsome”? One does not like to say “beauty” when speaking of a
+man. He is handsome enough, heaven knows; I should not even care
+to trust you with him—faithful of all possible wives that you are—
+when he looks his best, as he always does. Nor do I think the
+fascination of his manner has much to do with it. You recollect
+that the charm of art inheres in that which is undefinable, and to
+you and me, my dear Irene, I fancy there is rather less of that in
+the branch of art under consideration than to girls in their first
+season. I fancy I know how my fine gentleman produces many of his
+effects, and could, perhaps, give him a pointer on heightening
+them. Nevertheless, his manner is something truly delightful. I
+suppose what interests me chiefly is the man’s brains. His
+conversation is the best I have ever heard, and altogether unlike
+anyone’s else. He seems to know everything, as, indeed, he ought,
+for he has been everywhere, read everything, seen all there is to
+see—sometimes I think rather more than is good for him—and had
+acquaintance with the QUEEREST people. And then his voice—Irene,
+when I hear it I actually feel as if I ought to have PAID AT THE
+DOOR, though, of course, it is my own door.
+
+
+July 3d.
+
+I fear my remarks about Dr. Barritz must have been, being
+thoughtless, very silly, or you would not have written of him with
+such levity, not to say disrespect. Believe me, dearest, he has
+more dignity and seriousness (of the kind, I mean, which is not
+inconsistent with a manner sometimes playful and always charming)
+than any of the men that you and I ever met. And young Raynor—you
+knew Raynor at Monterey—tells me that the men all like him, and
+that he is treated with something like deference everywhere. There
+is a mystery, too—something about his connection with the
+Blavatsky people in Northern India. Raynor either would not or
+could not tell me the particulars. I infer that Dr. Barritz is
+thought—don’t you dare to laugh at me—a magician! Could anything
+be finer than that? An ordinary mystery is not, of course, as good
+as a scandal, but when it relates to dark and dreadful practices—
+to the exercise of unearthly powers—could anything be more
+piquant? It explains, too, the singular influence the man has upon
+me. It is the undefinable in his art—black art. Seriously, dear,
+I quite tremble when he looks me full in the eyes with those
+unfathomable orbs of his, which I have already vainly attempted to
+describe to you. How dreadful if we have the power to make one
+fall in love! Do you know if the Blavatsky crowd have that power—
+outside of Sepoy?
+
+
+July 1
+
+The strangest thing! Last evening while Auntie was attending one
+of the hotel hops (I hate them) Dr. Barritz called. It was
+scandalously late—I actually believe he had talked with Auntie in
+the ballroom, and learned from her that I was alone. I had been
+all the evening contriving how to worm out of him the truth about
+his connection with the Thugs in Sepoy, and all of that black
+business, but the moment he fixed his eyes on me (for I admitted
+him, I’m ashamed to say) I was helpless, I trembled, I blushed, I—
+O Irene, Irene, I love the man beyond expression, and you know how
+it is yourself!
+
+Fancy! I, an ugly duckling from Redhorse—daughter (they say) of
+old Calamity Jim—certainly his heiress, with no living relation
+but an absurd old aunt, who spoils me a thousand and fifty ways—
+absolutely destitute of everything but a million dollars and a hope
+in Paris—I daring to love a god like him! My dear, if I had you
+here, I could tear your hair out with mortification.
+
+I am convinced that he is aware of my feeling, for he stayed but a
+few moments, said nothing but what another man might have said half
+as well, and pretending that he had an engagement went away. I
+learned to-day (a little bird told me—the bell bird) that he went
+straight to bed. How does that strike you as evidence of exemplary
+habits?
+
+
+July 17th.
+
+That little wretch, Raynor, called yesterday, and his babble set me
+almost wild. He never runs down—that is to say, when he
+exterminates a score of reputations, more or less, he does not
+pause between one reputation and the next. (By the way, he
+inquired about you, and his manifestations of interest in you had,
+I confess, a good deal of vraisemblance.)
+
+Mr. Raynor observes no game laws; like Death (which he would
+inflict if slander were fatal) he has all seasons for his own. But
+I like him, for we knew one another at Redhorse when we were young
+and true-hearted and barefooted. He was known in those far fair
+days as “Giggles,” and I—O Irene, can you ever forgive me?—I was
+called “Gunny.” God knows why; perhaps in allusion to the material
+of my pinafores; perhaps because the name is in alliteration with
+“Giggles,” for Gig and I were inseparable playmates, and the miners
+may have thought it a delicate compliment to recognize some kind of
+relationship between us.
+
+Later, we took in a third—another of Adversity’s brood, who, like
+Garrick between Tragedy and Comedy, had a chronic inability to
+adjudicate the rival claims (to himself) of Frost and Famine.
+Between him and the grave there was seldom anything more than a
+single suspender and the hope of a meal which would at the same
+time support life and make it insupportable. He literally picked
+up a precarious living for himself and an aged mother by
+“chloriding the dumps,” that is to say, the miners permitted him to
+search the heaps of waste rock for such pieces of “pay ore” as had
+been overlooked; and these he sacked up and sold at the Syndicate
+Mill. He became a member of our firm—“Gunny, Giggles, and Dumps,”
+thenceforth—through my favor; for I could not then, nor can I now,
+be indifferent to his courage and prowess in defending against
+Giggles the immemorial right of his sex to insult a strange and
+unprotected female—myself. After old Jim struck it in the
+Calamity, and I began to wear shoes and go to school, and in
+emulation Giggles took to washing his face, and became Jack Raynor,
+of Wells, Fargo & Co., and old Mrs. Barts was herself chlorided to
+her fathers, Dumps drifted over to San Juan Smith and turned stage
+driver, and was killed by road agents, and so forth.
+
+Why do I tell you all this, dear? Because it is heavy on my heart.
+Because I walk the Valley of Humility. Because I am subduing
+myself to permanent consciousness of my unworthiness to unloose the
+latchet of Dr. Barritz’s shoe. Because-oh, dear, oh, dear—there’s
+a cousin of Dumps at this hotel! I haven’t spoken to him. I never
+had any acquaintance with him, but—do you suppose he has
+recognized me? Do, please, give me in your next your candid, sure-
+enough opinion about it, and say you don’t think so. Do you think
+He knows about me already and that is why He left me last evening
+when He saw that I blushed and trembled like a fool under His eyes?
+You know I can’t bribe ALL the newspapers, and I can’t go back on
+anybody who was good to Gunny at Redhorse—not if I’m pitched out
+of society into the sea. So the skeleton sometimes rattles behind
+the door. I never cared much before, as you know, but now—NOW it
+is not the same. Jack Raynor I am sure of—he will not tell him.
+He seems, indeed, to hold him in such respect as hardly to dare
+speak to him at all, and I’m a good deal that way myself. Dear,
+dear! I wish I had something besides a million dollars! If Jack
+were three inches taller I’d marry him alive and go back to
+Redhorse and wear sackcloth again to the end of my miserable days.
+
+
+July 25th.
+
+We had a perfectly splendid sunset last evening, and I must tell
+you all about it. I ran away from Auntie and everybody, and was
+walking alone on the beach. I expect you to believe, you infidel!
+that I had not looked out of my window on the seaward side of the
+hotel and seen him walking alone on the beach. If you are not lost
+to every feeling of womanly delicacy you will accept my statement
+without question. I soon established myself under my sunshade and
+had for some time been gazing out dreamily over the sea, when he
+approached, walking close to the edge of the water—it was ebb
+tide. I assure you the wet sand actually brightened about his
+feet! As he approached me, he lifted his hat, saying: “Miss
+Dement, may I sit with you?—or will you walk with me?”
+
+The possibility that neither might be agreeable seems not to have
+occurred to him. Did you ever know such assurance? Assurance? My
+dear, it was gall, downright GALL! Well, I didn’t find it
+wormwood, and replied, with my untutored Redhorse heart in my
+throat: “I—I shall be pleased to do ANYTHING.” Could words have
+been more stupid? There are depths of fatuity in me, friend o’ my
+soul, which are simply bottomless!
+
+He extended his hand, smiling, and I delivered mine into it without
+a moment’s hesitation, and when his fingers closed about it to
+assist me to my feet, the consciousness that it trembled made me
+blush worse than the red west. I got up, however, and after a
+while, observing that he had not let go my hand, I pulled on it a
+little, but unsuccessfully. He simply held on, saying nothing, but
+looking down into my face with some kind of a smile—I didn’t know—
+how could I?—whether it was affectionate, derisive, or what, for
+I did not look at him. How beautiful he was!—with the red fires
+of the sunset burning in the depths of his eyes. Do you know,
+dear, if the Thugs and Experts of the Blavatsky region have any
+special kind of eyes? Ah, you should have seen his superb
+attitude, the godlike inclination of his head as he stood over me
+after I had got upon my feet! It was a noble picture, but I soon
+destroyed it, for I began at once to sink again to the earth.
+There was only one thing for him to do, and he did it; he supported
+me with an arm about my waist.
+
+“Miss Dement, are you ill?” he said.
+
+It was not an exclamation; there was neither alarm nor solicitude
+in it. If he had added: “I suppose that is about what I am
+expected to say,” he would hardly have expressed his sense of the
+situation more clearly. His manner filled me with shame and
+indignation, for I was suffering acutely. I wrenched my hand out
+of his, grasped the arm supporting me, and, pushing myself free,
+fell plump into the sand and sat helpless. My hat had fallen off
+in the struggle, and my hair tumbled about my face and shoulders in
+the most mortifying way.
+
+“Go away from me,” I cried, half choking. “Oh, PLEASE go away,
+you—you Thug! How dare you think THAT when my leg is asleep?”
+
+I actually said those identical words! And then I broke down and
+sobbed. Irene, I BLUBBERED!
+
+“His manner altered in an instant—I could see that much through my
+fingers and hair. He dropped on one knee beside me, parted the
+tangle of hair, and said, in the tenderest way: My poor girl, God
+knows I have not intended to pain you. How should I?—I who love
+you—I who have loved you for—for years and years!”
+
+He had pulled my wet hands away from my face and was covering them
+with kisses. My cheeks were like two coals, my whole face was
+flaming and, I think, steaming. What could I do? I hid it on his
+shoulder—there was no other place. And, oh, my dear friend, how
+my leg tingled and thrilled, and how I wanted to kick!
+
+We sat so for a long time. He had released one of my hands to pass
+his arm about me again, and I possessed myself of my handkerchief
+and was drying my eyes and my nose. I would not look up until that
+was done; he tried in vain to push me a little away and gaze into
+my eyes. Presently, when it was all right, and it had grown a bit
+dark, I lifted my head, looked him straight in the eyes, and smiled
+my best—my level best, dear.
+
+“What do you mean,” I said, “by ‘years and years’?”
+
+“Dearest,” he replied, very gravely, very earnestly, “in the
+absence of the sunken cheeks, the hollow eyes, the lank hair, the
+slouching gait, the rags, dirt, and youth, can you not—will you
+not understand? Gunny, I’m Dumps!”
+
+In a moment I was upon my feet and he upon his. I seized him by
+the lapels of his coat and peered into his handsome face in the
+deepening darkness. I was breathless with excitement.
+
+“And you are not dead?” I asked, hardly knowing what I said.
+
+“Only dead in love, dear. I recovered from the road agent’s
+bullet, but this, I fear, is fatal.”
+
+“But about Jack—Mr. Raynor? Don’t you know—”
+
+“I am ashamed to say, darling, that it was through that unworthy
+person’s invitation that I came here from Vienna.”
+
+Irene, they have played it upon your affectionate friend,
+
+MARY JANE DEMENT.
+
+
+P.S.—The worst of it is that there is no mystery. That was an
+invention of Jack to arouse my curiosity and interest. James is
+not a Thug. He solemnly assures me that in all his wanderings he
+has never set foot in Sepoy.
+
+
+
+
+The Man and the Snake
+
+
+I
+
+
+It is of veritabyll report, and attested of so many that there be
+nowe of wyse and learned none to gaynsaye it, that ye serpente hys
+eye hath a magnetick propertie that whosoe falleth into its svasion
+is drawn forwards in despyte of his wille, and perisheth miserabyll
+by ye creature hys byte.
+
+
+Stretched at ease upon a sofa, in gown and slippers, Harker Brayton
+smiled as he read the foregoing sentence in old Morryster’s
+“Marvells of Science.” “The only marvel in the matter,” he said to
+himself, “is that the wise and learned in Morryster’s day should
+have believed such nonsense as is rejected by most of even the
+ignorant in ours.”
+
+A train of reflections followed—for Brayton was a man of thought—
+and he unconsciously lowered his book without altering the
+direction of his eyes. As soon as the volume had gone below the
+line of sight, something in an obscure corner of the room recalled
+his attention to his surroundings. What he saw, in the shadow
+under his bed, were two small points of light, apparently about an
+inch apart. They might have been reflections of the gas jet above
+him, in metal nail heads; he gave them but little thought and
+resumed his reading. A moment later something—some impulse which
+it did not occur to him to analyze—impelled him to lower the book
+again and seek for what he saw before. The points of light were
+still there. They seemed to have become brighter than before,
+shining with a greenish luster which he had not at first observed.
+He thought, too, that they might have moved a trifle—were somewhat
+nearer. They were still too much in the shadow, however, to reveal
+their nature and origin to an indolent attention, and he resumed
+his reading. Suddenly something in the text suggested a thought
+which made him start and drop the book for the third time to the
+side of the sofa, whence, escaping from his hand, it fell sprawling
+to the floor, back upward. Brayton, half-risen, was staring
+intently into the obscurity beneath the bed, where the points of
+light shone with, it seemed to him, an added fire. His attention
+was now fully aroused, his gaze eager and imperative. It
+disclosed, almost directly beneath the foot rail of the bed, the
+coils of a large serpent—the points of light were its eyes! Its
+horrible head, thrust flatly forth from the innermost coil and
+resting upon the outermost, was directed straight toward him, the
+definition of the wide, brutal jaw and the idiotlike forehead
+serving to show the direction of its malevolent gaze. The eyes
+were no longer merely luminous points; they looked into his own
+with a meaning, a malign significance.
+
+
+II
+
+
+A snake in a bedroom of a modern city dwelling of the better sort
+is, happily, not so common a phenomenon as to make explanation
+altogether needless. Harker Brayton, a bachelor of thirty-five, a
+scholar, idler, and something of an athlete, rich, popular, and of
+sound health, had returned to San Francisco from all manner of
+remote and unfamiliar countries. His tastes, always a trifle
+luxurious, had taken on an added exuberance from long privation;
+and the resources of even the Castle Hotel being inadequate for
+their perfect gratification, he had gladly accepted the hospitality
+of his friend, Dr. Druring, the distinguished scientist. Dr.
+Druring’s house, a large, old-fashioned one in what was now an
+obscure quarter of the city, had an outer and visible aspect of
+reserve. It plainly would not associate with the contiguous
+elements of its altered environment, and appeared to have developed
+some of the eccentricities which come of isolation. One of these
+was a “wing,” conspicuously irrelevant in point of architecture,
+and no less rebellious in the matter of purpose; for it was a
+combination of laboratory, menagerie, and museum. It was here that
+the doctor indulged the scientific side of his nature in the study
+of such forms of animal life as engaged his interest and comforted
+his taste—which, it must be confessed, ran rather to the lower
+forms. For one of the higher types nimbly and sweetly to recommend
+itself unto his gentle senses, it had at least to retain certain
+rudimentary characteristics allying it to such “dragons of the
+prime” as toads and snakes. His scientific sympathies were
+distinctly reptilian; he loved nature’s vulgarians and described
+himself as the Zola of zoology. His wife and daughters, not having
+the advantage to share his enlightened curiosity regarding the
+works and ways of our ill-starred fellow-creatures, were, with
+needless austerity, excluded from what he called the Snakery, and
+doomed to companionship with their own kind; though, to soften the
+rigors of their lot, he had permitted them, out of his great
+wealth, to outdo the reptiles in the gorgeousness of their
+surroundings and to shine with a superior splendor.
+
+Architecturally, and in point of “furnishing,” the Snakery had a
+severe simplicity befitting the humble circumstances of its
+occupants, many of whom, indeed, could not safely have been
+intrusted with the liberty which is necessary to the full enjoyment
+of luxury, for they had the troublesome peculiarity of being alive.
+In their own apartments, however, they were under as little
+personal restraint as was compatible with their protection from the
+baneful habit of swallowing one another; and, as Brayton had
+thoughtfully been apprised, it was more than a tradition that some
+of them had at divers times been found in parts of the premises
+where it would have embarrassed them to explain their presence.
+Despite the Snakery and its uncanny associations—to which, indeed,
+he gave little attention—Brayton found life at the Druring mansion
+very much to his mind.
+
+
+III
+
+
+Beyond a smart shock of surprise and a shudder of mere loathing,
+Mr. Brayton was not greatly affected. His first thought was to
+ring the call bell and bring a servant; but, although the bell cord
+dangled within easy reach, he made no movement toward it; it had
+occurred to his mind that the act might subject him to the
+suspicion of fear, which he certainly did not feel. He was more
+keenly conscious of the incongruous nature of the situation than
+affected by its perils; it was revolting, but absurd.
+
+The reptile was of a species with which Brayton was unfamiliar.
+Its length he could only conjecture; the body at the largest
+visible part seemed about as thick as his forearm. In what way was
+it dangerous, if in any way? Was it venomous? Was it a
+constrictor? His knowledge of nature’s danger signals did not
+enable him to say; he had never deciphered the code.
+
+If not dangerous, the creature was at least offensive. It was de
+trop—“matter out of place”—an impertinence. The gem was unworthy
+of the setting. Even the barbarous taste of our time and country,
+which had loaded the walls of the room with pictures, the floor
+with furniture, and the furniture with bric-a-brac, had not quite
+fitted the place for this bit of the savage life of the jungle.
+Besides—insupportable thought!—the exhalations of its breath
+mingled with the atmosphere which he himself was breathing!
+
+These thoughts shaped themselves with greater or less definition in
+Brayton’s mind, and begot action. The process is what we call
+consideration and decision. It is thus that we are wise and
+unwise. It is thus that the withered leaf in an autumn breeze
+shows greater or less intelligence than its fellows, falling upon
+the land or upon the lake. The secret of human action is an open
+one—something contracts our muscles. Does it matter if we give to
+the preparatory molecular changes the name of will?
+
+Brayton rose to his feet and prepared to back softly away from the
+snake, without disturbing it, if possible, and through the door.
+People retire so from the presence of the great, for greatness is
+power, and power is a menace. He knew that he could walk backward
+without obstruction, and find the door without error. Should the
+monster follow, the taste which had plastered the walls with
+paintings had consistently supplied a rack of murderous Oriental
+weapons from which he could snatch one to suit the occasion. In
+the meantime the snake’s eyes burned with a more pitiless
+malevolence than ever.
+
+Brayton lifted his right foot free of the floor to step backward.
+That moment he felt a strong aversion to doing so.
+
+“I am accounted brave,” he murmured; “is bravery, then, no more
+than pride? Because there are none to witness the shame shall I
+retreat?”
+
+He was steadying himself with his right hand upon the back of a
+chair, his foot suspended.
+
+“Nonsense!” he said aloud; “I am not so great a coward as to fear
+to seem to myself afraid.”
+
+He lifted the foot a little higher by slightly bending the knee,
+and thrust it sharply to the floor—an inch in front of the other!
+He could not think how that occurred. A trial with the left foot
+had the same result; it was again in advance of the right. The
+hand upon the chair back was grasping it; the arm was straight,
+reaching somewhat backward. One might have seen that he was
+reluctant to lose his hold. The snake’s malignant head was still
+thrust forth from the inner coil as before, the neck level. It had
+not moved, but its eyes were now electric sparks, radiating an
+infinity of luminous needles.
+
+The man had an ashy pallor. Again he took a step forward, and
+another, partly dragging the chair, which, when finally released,
+fell upon the floor with a crash. The man groaned; the snake made
+neither sound nor motion, but its eyes were two dazzling suns. The
+reptile itself was wholly concealed by them. They gave off
+enlarging rings of rich and vivid colors, which at their greatest
+expansion successively vanished like soap bubbles; they seemed to
+approach his very face, and anon were an immeasurable distance
+away. He heard, somewhere, the continual throbbing of a great
+drum, with desultory bursts of far music, inconceivably sweet, like
+the tones of an aeolian harp. He knew it for the sunrise melody of
+Memnon’s statue, and thought he stood in the Nileside reeds,
+hearing, with exalted sense, that immortal anthem through the
+silence of the centuries.
+
+The music ceased; rather, it became by insensible degrees the
+distant roll of a retreating thunderstorm. A landscape, glittering
+with sun and rain, stretched before him, arched with a vivid
+rainbow, framing in its giant curve a hundred visible cities. In
+the middle distance a vast serpent, wearing a crown, reared its
+head out of its voluminous convolutions and looked at him with his
+dead mother’s eyes. Suddenly this enchanting landscape seemed to
+rise swiftly upward, like the drop scene at a theater, and vanished
+in a blank. Something struck him a hard blow upon the face and
+breast. He had fallen to the floor; the blood ran from his broken
+nose and his bruised lips. For a moment he was dazed and stunned,
+and lay with closed eyes, his face against the door. In a few
+moments he had recovered, and then realized that his fall, by
+withdrawing his eyes, had broken the spell which held him. He felt
+that now, by keeping his gaze averted, he would be able to retreat.
+But the thought of the serpent within a few feet of his head, yet
+unseen—perhaps in the very act of springing upon him and throwing
+its coils about his throat—was too horrible. He lifted his head,
+stared again into those baleful eyes, and was again in bondage.
+
+The snake had not moved, and appeared somewhat to have lost its
+power upon the imagination; the gorgeous illusions of a few moments
+before were not repeated. Beneath that flat and brainless brow its
+black, beady eyes simply glittered, as at first, with an expression
+unspeakably malignant. It was as if the creature, knowing its
+triumph assured, had determined to practice no more alluring wiles.
+
+Now ensued a fearful scene. The man, prone upon the floor, within
+a yard of his enemy, raised the upper part of his body upon his
+elbows, his head thrown back, his legs extended to their full
+length. His face was white between its gouts of blood; his eyes
+were strained open to their uttermost expansion. There was froth
+upon his lips; it dropped off in flakes. Strong convulsions ran
+through his body, making almost serpentine undulations. He bent
+himself at the waist, shifting his legs from side to side. And
+every movement left him a little nearer to the snake. He thrust
+his hands forward to brace himself back, yet constantly advanced
+upon his elbows.
+
+
+IV
+
+
+Dr. Druring and his wife sat in the library. The scientist was in
+rare good humor.
+
+“I have just obtained, by exchange with another collector,” he
+said, “a splendid specimen of the Ophiophagus.”
+
+“And what may that be?” the lady inquired with a somewhat languid
+interest.
+
+“Why, bless my soul, what profound ignorance! My dear, a man who
+ascertains after marriage that his wife does not know Greek, is
+entitled to a divorce. The Ophiophagus is a snake which eats other
+snakes.”
+
+“I hope it will eat all yours,” she said, absently shifting the
+lamp. “But how does it get the other snakes? By charming them, I
+suppose.”
+
+“That is just like you, dear,” said the doctor, with an affectation
+of petulance. “You know how irritating to me is any allusion to
+that vulgar superstition about the snake’s power of fascination.”
+
+The conversation was interrupted by a mighty cry which rang through
+the silent house like the voice of a demon shouting in a tomb.
+Again and yet again it sounded, with terrible distinctness. They
+sprang to their feet, the man confused, the lady pale and
+speechless with fright. Almost before the echoes of the last cry
+had died away the doctor was out of the room, springing up the
+staircase two steps at a time. In the corridor, in front of
+Brayton’s chamber, he met some servants who had come from the upper
+floor. Together they rushed at the door without knocking. It was
+unfastened, and gave way. Brayton lay upon his stomach on the
+floor, dead. His head and arms were partly concealed under the
+foot rail of the bed. They pulled the body away, turning it upon
+the back. The face was daubed with blood and froth, the eyes were
+wide open, staring—a dreadful sight!
+
+“Died in a fit,” said the scientist, bending his knee and placing
+his hand upon the heart. While in that position he happened to
+glance under the bed. “Good God!” he added; “how did this thing
+get in here?”
+
+He reached under the bed, pulled out the snake, and flung it, still
+coiled, to the center of the room, whence, with a harsh, shuffling
+sound, it slid across the polished floor till stopped by the wall,
+where it lay without motion. It was a stuffed snake; its eyes were
+two shoe buttons.
+
+
+From “Tales of Soldiers and Civilians,” by Ambrose Bierce.
+Copyright, 1891, by E. L. G. Steele.
+
+
+
+
+Edgar Allan Poe
+
+
+
+
+The Oblong Box
+
+
+Some years ago, I engaged passage from Charleston, S. C, to the
+city of New York, in the fine packet-ship “Independence,” Captain
+Hardy. We were to sail on the fifteenth of the month (June),
+weather permitting; and on the fourteenth, I went on board to
+arrange some matters in my stateroom.
+
+I found that we were to have a great many passengers, including a
+more than usual number of ladies. On the list were several of my
+acquaintances, and among other names, I was rejoiced to see that of
+Mr. Cornelius Wyatt, a young artist, for whom I entertained
+feelings of warm friendship. He had been with me a fellow-student
+at C—— University, where we were very much together. He had the
+ordinary temperament of genius, and was a compound of misanthropy,
+sensibility, and enthusiasm. To these qualities he united the
+warmest and truest heart which ever beat in a human bosom.
+
+I observed that his name was carded upon THREE state-rooms; and,
+upon again referring to the list of passengers, I found that he had
+engaged passage for himself, wife, and two sisters—his own. The
+state-rooms were sufficiently roomy, and each had two berths, one
+above the other. These berths, to be sure, were so exceedingly
+narrow as to be insufficient for more than one person; still, I
+could not comprehend why there were THREE staterooms for these four
+persons. I was, just at that epoch, in one of those moody frames
+of mind which make a man abnormally inquisitive about trifles: and
+I confess, with shame, that I busied myself in a variety of ill-
+bred and preposterous conjectures about this matter of the
+supernumerary stateroom. It was no business of mine, to be sure,
+but with none the less pertinacity did I occupy myself in attempts
+to resolve the enigma. At last I reached a conclusion which
+wrought in me great wonder why I had not arrived at it before. “It
+is a servant of course,” I said; “what a fool I am, not sooner to
+have thought of so obvious a solution!” And then I again repaired
+to the list—but here I saw distinctly that NO servant was to come
+with the party, although, in fact, it had been the original design
+to bring one—for the words “and servant” had been first written
+and then over-scored. “Oh, extra baggage, to be sure,” I now said
+to myself—“something he wishes not to be put in the hold—
+something to be kept under his own eye—ah, I have it—a painting
+or so—and this is what he has been bargaining about with Nicolino,
+the Italian Jew.” This idea satisfied me, and I dismissed my
+curiosity for the nonce.
+
+Wyatt’s two sisters I knew very well, and most amiable and clever
+girls they were. His wife he had newly married, and I had never
+yet seen her. He had often talked about her in my presence,
+however, and in his usual style of enthusiasm. He described her as
+of surpassing beauty, wit, and accomplishment. I was, therefore,
+quite anxious to make her acquaintance.
+
+On the day in which I visited the ship (the fourteenth), Wyatt and
+party were also to visit it—so the captain informed me—and I
+waited on board an hour longer than I had designed, in hope of
+being presented to the bride, but then an apology came. “Mrs. W.
+was a little indisposed, and would decline coming on board until
+to-morrow, at the hour of sailing.”
+
+The morrow having arrived, I was going from my hotel to the wharf,
+when Captain Hardy met me and said that, “owing to circumstances”
+(a stupid but convenient phrase), “he rather thought the
+‘Independence’ would not sail for a day or two, and that when all
+was ready, he would send up and let me know.” This I thought
+strange, for there was a stiff southerly breeze; but as “the
+circumstances” were not forthcoming, although I pumped for them
+with much perseverance, I had nothing to do but to return home and
+digest my impatience at leisure.
+
+I did not receive the expected message from the captain for nearly
+a week. It came at length, however, and I immediately went on
+board. The ship was crowded with passengers, and every thing was
+in the bustle attendant upon making sail. Wyatt’s party arrived in
+about ten minutes after myself. There were the two sisters, the
+bride, and the artist—the latter in one of his customary fits of
+moody misanthropy. I was too well used to these, however, to pay
+them any special attention. He did not even introduce me to his
+wife;—this courtesy devolving, per force, upon his sister Marian—
+a very sweet and intelligent girl, who, in a few hurried words,
+made us acquainted.
+
+Mrs. Wyatt had been closely veiled; and when she raised her veil,
+in acknowledging my bow, I confess that I was very profoundly
+astonished. I should have been much more so, however, had not long
+experience advised me not to trust, with too implicit a reliance,
+the enthusiastic descriptions of my friend, the artist, when
+indulging in comments upon the loveliness of woman. When beauty
+was the theme, I well knew with what facility he soared into the
+regions of the purely ideal.
+
+The truth is, I could not help regarding Mrs. Wyatt as a decidedly
+plain-looking woman. If not positively ugly, she was not, I think,
+very far from it. She was dressed, however, in exquisite taste—
+and then I had no doubt that she had captivated my friend’s heart
+by the more enduring graces of the intellect and soul. She said
+very few words, and passed at once into her state-room with Mr. W.
+
+My old inquisitiveness now returned. There was NO servant—THAT
+was a settled point. I looked, therefore, for the extra baggage.
+After some delay, a cart arrived at the wharf, with an oblong pine
+box, which was every thing that seemed to be expected. Immediately
+upon its arrival we made sail, and in a short time were safely over
+the bar and standing out to sea.
+
+The box in question was, as I say, oblong. It was about six feet
+in length by two and a half in breadth; I observed it attentively,
+and like to be precise. Now this shape was PECULIAR; and no sooner
+had I seen it, than I took credit to myself for the accuracy of my
+guessing. I had reached the conclusion, it will be remembered,
+that the extra baggage of my friend, the artist, would prove to be
+pictures, or at least a picture; for I knew he had been for several
+weeks in conference with Nicolino:—and now here was a box, which,
+from its shape, COULD possibly contain nothing in the world but a
+copy of Leonardo’s “Last Supper;” and a copy of this very “Last
+Supper,” done by Rubini the younger, at Florence, I had known, for
+some time, to be in the possession of Nicolino. This point,
+therefore, I considered as sufficiently settled. I chuckled
+excessively when I thought of my acumen. It was the first time I
+had ever known Wyatt to keep from me any of his artistical secrets;
+but here he evidently intended to steal a march upon me, and
+smuggle a fine picture to New York, under my very nose; expecting
+me to know nothing of the matter. I resolved to quiz him WELL, now
+and hereafter.
+
+One thing, however, annoyed me not a little. The box did NOT go
+into the extra stateroom. It was deposited in Wyatt’s own; and
+there, too, it remained, occupying very nearly the whole of the
+floor—no doubt to the exceeding discomfort of the artist and his
+wife;—this the more especially as the tar or paint with which it
+was lettered in sprawling capitals, emitted a strong, disagreeable,
+and, to my fancy, a peculiarly disgusting odor. On the lid were
+painted the words—“Mrs. Adelaide Curtis, Albany, New York. Charge
+of Cornelius Wyatt, Esq. This side up. To be handled with care.”
+
+Now, I was aware that Mrs. Adelaide Curtis, of Albany, was the
+artist’s wife’s mother,—but then I looked upon the whole address
+as a mystification, intended especially for myself. I made up my
+mind, of course, that the box and contents would never get farther
+north than the studio of my misanthropic friend, in Chambers
+Street, New York.
+
+For the first three or four days we had fine weather, although the
+wind was dead ahead; having chopped round to the northward,
+immediately upon our losing sight of the coast. The passengers
+were, consequently, in high spirits and disposed to be social. I
+MUST except, however, Wyatt and his sisters, who behaved stiffly,
+and, I could not help thinking, uncourteously to the rest of the
+party. Wyatt’s conduct I did not so much regard. He was gloomy,
+even beyond his usual habit—in fact he was MOROSE—but in him I
+was prepared for eccentricity. For the sisters, however, I could
+make no excuse. They secluded themselves in their staterooms
+during the greater part of the passage, and absolutely refused,
+although I repeatedly urged them, to hold communication with any
+person on board.
+
+Mrs. Wyatt herself was far more agreeable. That is to say, she was
+CHATTY; and to be chatty is no slight recommendation at sea. She
+became EXCESSIVELY intimate with most of the ladies; and, to my
+profound astonishment, evinced no equivocal disposition to coquet
+with the men. She amused us all very much. I say “amused”—and
+scarcely know how to explain myself. The truth is, I soon found
+that Mrs. W. was far oftener laughed AT than WITH. The gentlemen
+said little about her; but the ladies, in a little while,
+pronounced her “a good-hearted thing, rather indifferent looking,
+totally uneducated, and decidedly vulgar.” The great wonder was,
+how Wyatt had been entrapped into such a match. Wealth was the
+general solution—but this I knew to be no solution at all; for
+Wyatt had told me that she neither brought him a dollar nor had any
+expectations from any source whatever. “He had married,” he said,
+“for love, and for love only; and his bride was far more than
+worthy of his love.” When I thought of these expressions, on the
+part of my friend, I confess that I felt indescribably puzzled.
+Could it be possible that he was taking leave of his senses? What
+else could I think? HE, so refined, so intellectual, so
+fastidious, with so exquisite a perception of the faulty, and so
+keen an appreciation of the beautiful! To be sure, the lady seemed
+especially fond of HIM—particularly so in his absence—when she
+made herself ridiculous by frequent quotations of what had been
+said by her “beloved husband, Mr. Wyatt.” The word “husband”
+seemed forever—to use one of her own delicate expressions—forever
+“on the tip of her tongue.” In the meantime, it was observed by
+all on board, that he avoided HER in the most pointed manner, and,
+for the most part, shut himself up alone in his state-room, where,
+in fact, he might have been said to live altogether, leaving his
+wife at full liberty to amuse herself as she thought best, in the
+public society of the main cabin.
+
+My conclusion, from what I saw and heard, was, that, the artist, by
+some unaccountable freak of fate, or perhaps in some fit of
+enthusiastic and fanciful passion, had been induced to unite
+himself with a person altogether beneath him, and that the natural
+result, entire and speedy disgust, had ensued. I pitied him from
+the bottom of my heart—but could not, for that reason, quite
+forgive his incommunicativeness in the matter of the “Last Supper.”
+For this I resolved to have my revenge.
+
+One day he came upon deck, and, taking his arm as had been my wont,
+I sauntered with him backward and forward. His gloom, however
+(which I considered quite natural under the circumstances), seemed
+entirely unabated. He said little, and that moodily, and with
+evident effort. I ventured a jest or two, and he made a sickening
+attempt at a smile. Poor fellow!—as I thought of HIS WIFE, I
+wondered that he could have heart to put on even the semblance of
+mirth. At last I ventured a home thrust. I determined to commence
+a series of covert insinuations, or innuendoes, about the oblong
+box—just to let him perceive, gradually, that I was NOT altogether
+the butt, or victim, of his little bit of pleasant mystification.
+My first observation was by way of opening a masked battery. I
+said something about the “peculiar shape of THAT box—,” and, as I
+spoke the words, I smiled knowingly, winked, and touched him gently
+with my forefinger in the ribs.
+
+The manner in which Wyatt received this harmless pleasantry
+convinced me, at once, that he was mad. At first he stared at me
+as if he found it impossible to comprehend the witticism of my
+remark; but as its point seemed slowly to make its way into his
+brain, his eyes, in the same proportion, seemed protruding from
+their sockets. Then he grew very red—then hideously pale—then,
+as if highly amused with what I had insinuated, he began a loud and
+boisterous laugh, which, to my astonishment, he kept up, with
+gradually increasing vigor, for ten minutes or more. In
+conclusion, he fell flat and heavily upon the deck. When I ran to
+uplift him, to all appearance he was DEAD.
+
+I called assistance, and, with much difficulty, we brought him to
+himself. Upon reviving he spoke incoherently for some time. At
+length we bled him and put him to bed. The next morning he was
+quite recovered, so far as regarded his mere bodily health. Of his
+mind I say nothing, of course. I avoided him during the rest of
+the passage, by advice of the captain, who seemed to coincide with
+me altogether in my views of his insanity, but cautioned me to say
+nothing on this head to any person on board.
+
+Several circumstances occurred immediately after this fit of Wyatt
+which contributed to heighten the curiosity with which I was
+already possessed. Among other things, this: I had been nervous—
+drank too much strong green tea, and slept ill at night—in fact,
+for two nights I could not be properly said to sleep at all. Now,
+my state-room opened into the main cabin, or dining-room, as did
+those of all the single men on board. Wyatt’s three rooms were in
+the after-cabin, which was separated from the main one by a slight
+sliding door, never locked even at night. As we were almost
+constantly on a wind, and the breeze was not a little stiff, the
+ship heeled to leeward very considerably; and whenever her
+starboard side was to leeward, the sliding door between the cabins
+slid open, and so remained, nobody taking the trouble to get up and
+shut it. But my berth was in such a position, that when my own
+state-room door was open, as well as the sliding door in question
+(and my own door was ALWAYS open on account of the heat,) I could
+see into the after-cabin quite distinctly, and just at that portion
+of it, too, where were situated the state-rooms of Mr. Wyatt.
+Well, during two nights (NOT consecutive) while I lay awake, I
+clearly saw Mrs. W., about eleven o’clock upon each night, steal
+cautiously from the state-room of Mr. W., and enter the extra room,
+where she remained until daybreak, when she was called by her
+husband and went back. That they were virtually separated was
+clear. They had separate apartments—no doubt in contemplation of
+a more permanent divorce; and here, after all I thought was the
+mystery of the extra stateroom.
+
+There was another circumstance, too, which interested me much.
+During the two wakeful nights in question, and immediately after
+the disappearance of Mrs. Wyatt into the extra stateroom, I was
+attracted by certain singular cautious, subdued noises in that of
+her husband. After listening to them for some time, with
+thoughtful attention, I at length succeeded perfectly in
+translating their import. They were sounds occasioned by the
+artist in prying open the oblong box, by means of a chisel and
+mallet—the latter being apparently muffled, or deadened, by some
+soft woollen or cotton substance in which its head was enveloped.
+
+In this manner I fancied I could distinguish the precise moment
+when he fairly disengaged the lid—also, that I could determine
+when he removed it altogether, and when he deposited it upon the
+lower berth in his room; this latter point I knew, for example, by
+certain slight taps which the lid made in striking against the
+wooden edges of the berth, as he endeavored to lay it down VERY
+gently—there being no room for it on the floor. After this there
+was a dead stillness, and I heard nothing more, upon either
+occasion, until nearly daybreak; unless, perhaps, I may mention a
+low sobbing, or murmuring sound, so very much suppressed as to be
+nearly inaudible—if, indeed, the whole of this latter noise were
+not rather produced by my own imagination. I say it seemed to
+RESEMBLE sobbing or sighing—but, of course, it could not have been
+either. I rather think it was a ringing in my own ears. Mr.
+Wyatt, no doubt, according to custom, was merely giving the rein to
+one of his hobbies—indulging in one of his fits of artistic
+enthusiasm. He had opened his oblong box, in order to feast his
+eyes on the pictorial treasure within. There was nothing in this,
+however, to make him SOB. I repeat, therefore, that it must have
+been simply a freak of my own fancy, distempered by good Captain
+Hardy’s green tea. Just before dawn, on each of the two nights of
+which I speak, I distinctly heard Mr. Wyatt replace the lid upon
+the oblong box, and force the nails into their old places by means
+of the muffled mallet. Having done this, he issued from his state-
+room, fully dressed, and proceeded to call Mrs. W. from hers.
+
+We had been at sea seven days, and were now off Cape Hatteras, when
+there came a tremendously heavy blow from the southwest. We were,
+in a measure, prepared for it, however, as the weather had been
+holding out threats for some time. Every thing was made snug, alow
+and aloft; and as the wind steadily freshened, we lay to, at
+length, under spanker and foretopsail, both double-reefed.
+
+In this trim we rode safely enough for forty-eight hours—the ship
+proving herself an excellent sea-boat in many respects, and
+shipping no water of any consequence. At the end of this period,
+however, the gale had freshened into a hurricane, and our after—
+sail split into ribbons, bringing us so much in the trough of the
+water that we shipped several prodigious seas, one immediately
+after the other. By this accident we lost three men overboard with
+the caboose, and nearly the whole of the larboard bulwarks.
+Scarcely had we recovered our senses, before the foretopsail went
+into shreds, when we got up a storm staysail and with this did
+pretty well for some hours, the ship heading the sea much more
+steadily than before.
+
+The gale still held on, however, and we saw no signs of its
+abating. The rigging was found to be ill-fitted, and greatly
+strained; and on the third day of the blow, about five in the
+afternoon, our mizzen-mast, in a heavy lurch to windward, went by
+the board. For an hour or more, we tried in vain to get rid of it,
+on account of the prodigious rolling of the ship; and, before we
+had succeeded, the carpenter came aft and announced four feet of
+water in the hold. To add to our dilemma, we found the pumps
+choked and nearly useless.
+
+All was now confusion and despair—but an effort was made to
+lighten the ship by throwing overboard as much of her cargo as
+could be reached, and by cutting away the two masts that remained.
+This we at last accomplished—but we were still unable to do any
+thing at the pumps; and, in the meantime, the leak gained on us
+very fast.
+
+At sundown, the gale had sensibly diminished in violence, and as
+the sea went down with it, we still entertained faint hopes of
+saving ourselves in the boats. At eight P. M., the clouds broke
+away to windward, and we had the advantage of a full moon—a piece
+of good fortune which served wonderfully to cheer our drooping
+spirits.
+
+After incredible labor we succeeded, at length, in getting the
+longboat over the side without material accident, and into this we
+crowded the whole of the crew and most of the passengers. This
+party made off immediately, and, after undergoing much suffering,
+finally arrived, in safety, at Ocracoke Inlet, on the third day
+after the wreck.
+
+Fourteen passengers, with the captain, remained on board, resolving
+to trust their fortunes to the jolly-boat at the stern. We lowered
+it without difficulty, although it was only by a miracle that we
+prevented it from swamping as it touched the water. It contained,
+when afloat, the captain and his wife, Mr. Wyatt and party, a
+Mexican officer, wife, four children, and myself, with a negro
+valet.
+
+We had no room, of course, for any thing except a few positively
+necessary instruments, some provisions, and the clothes upon our
+backs. No one had thought of even attempting to save any thing
+more. What must have been the astonishment of all, then, when
+having proceeded a few fathoms from the ship, Mr. Wyatt stood up in
+the stern-sheets, and coolly demanded of Captain Hardy that the
+boat should be put back for the purpose of taking in his oblong
+box!
+
+“Sit down, Mr. Wyatt,” replied the captain, somewhat sternly, “you
+will capsize us if you do not sit quite still. Our gunwhale is
+almost in the water now.”
+
+“The box!” vociferated Mr. Wyatt, still standing—“the box, I say!
+Captain Hardy, you cannot, you will not refuse me. Its weight will
+be but a trifle—it is nothing—mere nothing. By the mother who
+bore you—for the love of Heaven—by your hope of salvation, I
+implore you to put back for the box!”
+
+The captain, for a moment, seemed touched by the earnest appeal of
+the artist, but he regained his stern composure, and merely said:
+
+“Mr. Wyatt, you are mad. I cannot listen to you. Sit down, I say,
+or you will swamp the boat. Stay—hold him—seize him!—he is
+about to spring overboard! There—I knew it—he is over!”
+
+As the captain said this, Mr. Wyatt, in fact, sprang from the boat,
+and, as we were yet in the lee of the wreck, succeeded, by almost
+superhuman exertion, in getting hold of a rope which hung from the
+fore-chains. In another moment he was on board, and rushing
+frantically down into the cabin.
+
+In the meantime, we had been swept astern of the ship, and being
+quite out of her lee, were at the mercy of the tremendous sea which
+was still running. We made a determined effort to put back, but
+our little boat was like a feather in the breath of the tempest.
+We saw at a glance that the doom of the unfortunate artist was
+sealed.
+
+As our distance from the wreck rapidly increased, the madman (for
+as such only could we regard him) was seen to emerge from the
+companion—way, up which by dint of strength that appeared
+gigantic, he dragged, bodily, the oblong box. While we gazed in
+the extremity of astonishment, he passed, rapidly, several turns of
+a three-inch rope, first around the box and then around his body.
+In another instant both body and box were in the sea—disappearing
+suddenly, at once and forever.
+
+We lingered awhile sadly upon our oars, with our eyes riveted upon
+the spot. At length we pulled away. The silence remained unbroken
+for an hour. Finally, I hazarded a remark.
+
+“Did you observe, captain, how suddenly they sank? Was not that an
+exceedingly singular thing? I confess that I entertained some
+feeble hope of his final deliverance, when I saw him lash himself
+to the box, and commit himself to the sea.”
+
+“They sank as a matter of course,” replied the captain, “and that
+like a shot. They will soon rise again, however—BUT NOT TILL THE
+SALT MELTS.”
+
+“The salt!” I ejaculated.
+
+“Hush!” said the captain, pointing to the wife and sisters of the
+deceased. “We must talk of these things at some more appropriate
+time.”
+
+
+We suffered much, and made a narrow escape, but fortune befriended
+us, as well as our mates in the long-boat. We landed, in fine,
+more dead than alive, after four days of intense distress, upon the
+beach opposite Roanoke Island. We remained here a week, were not
+ill-treated by the wreckers, and at length obtained a passage to
+New York.
+
+About a month after the loss of the “Independence,” I happened to
+meet Captain Hardy in Broadway. Our conversation turned,
+naturally, upon the disaster, and especially upon the sad fate of
+poor Wyatt. I thus learned the following particulars.
+
+The artist had engaged passage for himself, wife, two sisters and a
+servant. His wife was, indeed, as she had been represented, a most
+lovely, and most accomplished woman. On the morning of the
+fourteenth of June (the day in which I first visited the ship), the
+lady suddenly sickened and died. The young husband was frantic
+with grief—but circumstances imperatively forbade the deferring
+his voyage to New York. It was necessary to take to her mother the
+corpse of his adored wife, and, on the other hand, the universal
+prejudice which would prevent his doing so openly was well known.
+Nine-tenths of the passengers would have abandoned the ship rather
+than take passage with a dead body.
+
+In this dilemma, Captain Hardy arranged that the corpse, being
+first partially embalmed, and packed, with a large quantity of
+salt, in a box of suitable dimensions, should be conveyed on board
+as merchandise. Nothing was to be said of the lady’s decease; and,
+as it was well understood that Mr. Wyatt had engaged passage for
+his wife, it became necessary that some person should personate her
+during the voyage. This the deceased lady’s-maid was easily
+prevailed on to do. The extra state-room, originally engaged for
+this girl during her mistress’ life, was now merely retained. In
+this state-room the pseudo-wife, slept, of course, every night. In
+the daytime she performed, to the best of her ability, the part of
+her mistress—whose person, it had been carefully ascertained, was
+unknown to any of the passengers on board.
+
+My own mistake arose, naturally enough, through too careless, too
+inquisitive, and too impulsive a temperament. But of late, it is a
+rare thing that I sleep soundly at night. There is a countenance
+which haunts me, turn as I will. There is an hysterical laugh
+which will forever ring within my ears.
+
+
+
+
+The Gold-Bug
+
+What ho! what ho! this fellow is dancing mad!
+He hath been bitten by the Tarantula.
+ —All in the Wrong.
+
+
+Many years ago, I contracted an intimacy with a Mr. William
+Legrand. He was of an ancient Huguenot family, and had once been
+wealthy: but a series of misfortunes had reduced him to want. To
+avoid the mortification consequent upon his disasters, he left New
+Orleans, the city of his forefathers, and took up his residence at
+Sullivan’s Island, near Charleston, South Carolina.
+
+This island is a very singular one. It consists of little else
+than the sea sand, and is about three miles long. Its breadth at
+no point exceeds a quarter of a mile. It is separated from the
+mainland by a scarcely perceptible creek, oozing its way through a
+wilderness of reeds and slime, a favorite resort of the marsh hen.
+The vegetation, as might be supposed, is scant, or at least
+dwarfish. No trees of any magnitude are to be seen. Near the
+western extremity, where Fort Moultrie stands, and where are some
+miserable frame buildings, tenanted, during summer, by the
+fugitives from Charleston dust and fever, may be found, indeed, the
+bristly palmetto; but the whole island, with the exception of this
+western point, and a line of hard, white beach on the seacoast, is
+covered with a dense undergrowth of the sweet myrtle so much prized
+by the horticulturists of England. The shrub here often attains
+the height of fifteen or twenty feet, and forms an almost
+impenetrable coppice, burdening the air with its fragrance.
+
+In the inmost recesses of this coppice, not far from the eastern or
+more remote end of the island, Legrand had built himself a small
+hut, which he occupied when I first, by mere accident, made his
+acquaintance. This soon ripened into friendship—for there was
+much in the recluse to excite interest and esteem. I found him
+well educated, with unusual powers of mind, but infected with
+misanthropy, and subject to perverse moods of alternate enthusiasm
+and melancholy. He had with him many books, but rarely employed
+them. His chief amusements were gunning and fishing, or sauntering
+along the beach and through the myrtles, in quest of shells or
+entomological specimens—his collection of the latter might have
+been envied by a Swammerdamm. In these excursions he was usually
+accompanied by an old negro, called Jupiter, who had been
+manumitted before the reverses of the family, but who could be
+induced, neither by threats nor by promises, to abandon what he
+considered his right of attendance upon the footsteps of his young
+“Massa Will.” It is not improbable that the relatives of Legrand,
+conceiving him to be somewhat unsettled in intellect, had contrived
+to instill this obstinacy into Jupiter, with a view to the
+supervision and guardianship of the wanderer.
+
+The winters in the latitude of Sullivan’s Island are seldom very
+severe, and in the fall of the year it is a rare event indeed when
+a fire is considered necessary. About the middle of October, 18—,
+there occurred, however, a day of remarkable chilliness. Just
+before sunset I scrambled my way through the evergreens to the hut
+of my friend, whom I had not visited for several weeks—my
+residence being, at that time, in Charleston, a distance of nine
+miles from the island, while the facilities of passage and
+repassage were very far behind those of the present day. Upon
+reaching the hut I rapped, as was my custom, and getting no reply,
+sought for the key where I knew it was secreted, unlocked the door,
+and went in. A fine fire was blazing upon the hearth. It was a
+novelty, and by no means an ungrateful one. I threw off an
+overcoat, took an armchair by the crackling logs, and awaited
+patiently the arrival of my hosts.
+
+Soon after dark they arrived, and gave me a most cordial welcome.
+Jupiter, grinning from ear to ear, bustled about to prepare some
+marsh hens for supper. Legrand was in one of his fits—how else
+shall I term them?—of enthusiasm. He had found an unknown
+bivalve, forming a new genus, and, more than this, he had hunted
+down and secured, with Jupiter’s assistance, a scarabaeus which he
+believed to be totally new, but in respect to which he wished to
+have my opinion on the morrow.
+
+“And why not to-night?” I asked, rubbing my hands over the blaze,
+and wishing the whole tribe of scarabaei at the devil.
+
+“Ah, if I had only known you were here!” said Legrand, “but it’s so
+long since I saw you; and how could I foresee that you would pay me
+a visit this very night of all others? As I was coming home I met
+Lieutenant G——, from the fort, and, very foolishly, I lent him
+the bug; so it will be impossible for you to see it until the
+morning. Stay here to-night, and I will send Jup down for it at
+sunrise. It is the loveliest thing in creation!”
+
+“What?—sunrise?”
+
+“Nonsense! no!—the bug. It is of a brilliant gold color—about
+the size of a large hickory nut—with two jet black spots near one
+extremity of the back, and another, somewhat longer, at the other.
+The antennae are—”
+
+“Dey ain’t NO tin in him, Massa Will, I keep a tellin’ on you,”
+here interrupted Jupiter; “de bug is a goole-bug, solid, ebery bit
+of him, inside and all, sep him wing—neber feel half so hebby a
+bug in my life.”
+
+“Well, suppose it is, Jup,” replied Legrand, somewhat more
+earnestly, it seemed to me, than the case demanded; “is that any
+reason for your letting the birds burn? The color”—here he turned
+to me—“is really almost enough to warrant Jupiter’s idea. You
+never saw a more brilliant metallic luster than the scales emit—
+but of this you cannot judge till to-morrow. In the meantime I can
+give you some idea of the shape.” Saying this, he seated himself
+at a small table, on which were a pen and ink, but no paper. He
+looked for some in a drawer, but found none.
+
+“Never mind,” he said at length, “this will answer;” and he drew
+from his waistcoat pocket a scrap of what I took to be very dirty
+foolscap, and made upon it a rough drawing with the pen. While he
+did this, I retained my seat by the fire, for I was still chilly.
+When the design was complete, he handed it to me without rising.
+As I received it, a loud growl was heard, succeeded by a scratching
+at the door. Jupiter opened it, and a large Newfoundland,
+belonging to Legrand, rushed in, leaped upon my shoulders, and
+loaded me with caresses; for I had shown him much attention during
+previous visits. When his gambols were over, I looked at the
+paper, and, to speak the truth, found myself not a little puzzled
+at what my friend had depicted.
+
+“Well!” I said, after contemplating it for some minutes, “this IS a
+strange scarabaeus, I must confess; new to me; never saw anything
+like it before—unless it was a skull, or a death’s head, which it
+more nearly resembles than anything else that has come under MY
+observation.”
+
+“A death’s head!” echoed Legrand. “Oh—yes—well, it has something
+of that appearance upon paper, no doubt. The two upper black spots
+look like eyes, eh? and the longer one at the bottom like a mouth—
+and then the shape of the whole is oval.”
+
+“Perhaps so,” said I; “but, Legrand, I fear you are no artist. I
+must wait until I see the beetle itself, if I am to form any idea
+of its personal appearance.”
+
+“Well, I don’t know,” said he, a little nettled, “I draw tolerably—
+SHOULD do it at least—have had good masters, and flatter myself
+that I am not quite a blockhead.”
+
+“But, my dear fellow, you are joking then,” said I, “this is a very
+passable SKULL—indeed, I may say that it is a very EXCELLENT
+skull, according to the vulgar notions about such specimens of
+physiology—and your scarabaeus must be the queerest scarabaeus in
+the world if it resembles it. Why, we may get up a very thrilling
+bit of superstition upon this hint. I presume you will call the
+bug Scarabaeus caput hominis, or something of that kind—there are
+many similar titles in the Natural Histories. But where are the
+antennae you spoke of?”
+
+“The antennae!” said Legrand, who seemed to be getting
+unaccountably warm upon the subject; “I am sure you must see the
+antennae. I made them as distinct as they are in the original
+insect, and I presume that is sufficient.”
+
+“Well, well,” I said, “perhaps you have—still I don’t see them;”
+and I handed him the paper without additional remark, not wishing
+to ruffle his temper; but I was much surprised at the turn affairs
+had taken; his ill humor puzzled me—and, as for the drawing of the
+beetle, there were positively NO antennae visible, and the whole
+DID bear a very close resemblance to the ordinary cuts of a death’s
+head.
+
+He received the paper very peevishly, and was about to crumple it,
+apparently to throw it in the fire, when a casual glance at the
+design seemed suddenly to rivet his attention. In an instant his
+face grew violently red—in another excessively pale. For some
+minutes he continued to scrutinize the drawing minutely where he
+sat. At length he arose, took a candle from the table, and
+proceeded to seat himself upon a sea chest in the farthest corner
+of the room. Here again he made an anxious examination of the
+paper, turning it in all directions. He said nothing, however, and
+his conduct greatly astonished me; yet I thought it prudent not to
+exacerbate the growing moodiness of his temper by any comment.
+Presently he took from his coat pocket a wallet, placed the paper
+carefully in it, and deposited both in a writing desk, which he
+locked. He now grew more composed in his demeanor; but his
+original air of enthusiasm had quite disappeared. Yet he seemed
+not so much sulky as abstracted. As the evening wore away he
+became more and more absorbed in reverie, from which no sallies of
+mine could arouse him. It had been my intention to pass the night
+at the hut, as I had frequently done before, but, seeing my host in
+this mood, I deemed it proper to take leave. He did not press me
+to remain, but, as I departed, he shook my hand with even more than
+his usual cordiality.
+
+It was about a month after this (and during the interval I had seen
+nothing of Legrand) when I received a visit, at Charleston, from
+his man, Jupiter. I had never seen the good old negro look so
+dispirited, and I feared that some serious disaster had befallen my
+friend.
+
+“Well, Jup,” said I, “what is the matter now?—how is your master?”
+
+“Why, to speak the troof, massa, him not so berry well as mought
+be.”
+
+“Not well! I am truly sorry to hear it. What does he complain
+of?”
+
+“Dar! dot’s it!—him neber ’plain of notin’—but him berry sick for
+all dat.”
+
+“VERY sick, Jupiter!—why didn’t you say so at once? Is he
+confined to bed?”
+
+“No, dat he aint!—he aint ’fin’d nowhar—dat’s just whar de shoe
+pinch—my mind is got to be berry hebby ’bout poor Massa Will.”
+
+“Jupiter, I should like to understand what it is you are talking
+about. You say your master is sick. Hasn’t he told you what ails
+him?”
+
+“Why, massa, ’taint worf while for to git mad about de matter—
+Massa Will say noffin at all aint de matter wid him—but den what
+make him go about looking dis here way, wid he head down and he
+soldiers up, and as white as a goose? And den he keep a syphon all
+de time—”
+
+“Keeps a what, Jupiter?”
+
+“Keeps a syphon wid de figgurs on de slate—de queerest figgurs I
+ebber did see. Ise gittin’ to be skeered, I tell you. Hab for to
+keep mighty tight eye ’pon him ’noovers. Todder day he gib me slip
+’fore de sun up and was gone de whole ob de blessed day. I had a
+big stick ready cut for to gib him deuced good beating when he did
+come—but Ise sich a fool dat I hadn’t de heart arter all—he
+looked so berry poorly.”
+
+“Eh?—what?—ah yes!—upon the whole I think you had better not be
+too severe with the poor fellow—don’t flog him, Jupiter—he can’t
+very well stand it—but can you form no idea of what has occasioned
+this illness, or rather this change of conduct? Has anything
+unpleasant happened since I saw you?”
+
+“No, massa, dey aint bin noffin onpleasant SINCE den—’twas ’FORE
+den I’m feared—’twas de berry day you was dare.”
+
+“How? what do you mean.”
+
+“Why, massa, I mean de bug—dare now.”
+
+“The what?”
+
+“De bug—I’m berry sartin dat Massa Will bin bit somewhere ’bout de
+head by dat goole-bug.”
+
+“And what cause have you, Jupiter, for such a supposition?”
+
+“Claws enuff, massa, and mouff, too. I nebber did see sich a
+deuced bug—he kick and he bite eberyting what cum near him. Massa
+Will cotch him fuss, but had for to let him go ’gin mighty quick, I
+tell you—den was de time he must ha’ got de bite. I didn’t like
+de look ob de bug mouff, myself, nohow, so I wouldn’t take hold oh
+him wid my finger, but I cotch him wid a piece oh paper dat I
+found. I rap him up in de paper and stuff a piece of it in he
+mouff—dat was de way.”
+
+“And you think, then, that your master was really bitten by the
+beetle, and that the bite made him sick?”
+
+“I don’t think noffin about it—I nose it. What make him dream
+’bout de goole so much, if ’taint cause he bit by the goole-bug?
+Ise heered ’bout dem goole-bugs ’fore dis.”
+
+“But how do you know he dreams about gold?”
+
+“How I know? why, ’cause he talk about it in he sleep—dat’s how I
+nose.”
+
+“Well, Jup, perhaps you are right; but to what fortunate
+circumstance am I to attribute the honor of a visit from you to-
+day?”
+
+“What de matter, massa?”
+
+“Did you bring any message from Mr. Legrand?”
+
+“No, massa, I bring dis here pissel;” and here Jupiter handed me a
+note which ran thus:
+
+
+“MY DEAR ——
+
+“Why have I not seen you for so long a time? I hope you have not
+been so foolish as to take offense at any little brusquerie of
+mine; but no, that is improbable.
+
+“Since I saw you I have had great cause for anxiety. I have
+something to tell you, yet scarcely know how to tell it, or whether
+I should tell it at all.
+
+“I have not been quite well for some days past, and poor old Jup
+annoys me, almost beyond endurance, by his well-meant attentions.
+Would you believe it?—he had prepared a huge stick, the other day,
+with which to chastise me for giving him the slip, and spending the
+day, solus, among the hills on the mainland. I verily believe that
+my ill looks alone saved me a flogging.
+
+“I have made no addition to my cabinet since we met. If you can,
+in any way, make it convenient, come over with Jupiter. DO come.
+I wish to see you TO-NIGHT, upon business of importance. I assure
+you that it is of the HIGHEST importance.
+
+“Ever yours,
+
+“WILLIAM LEGRAND.”
+
+
+There was something in the tone of this note which gave me great
+uneasiness. Its whole style differed materially from that of
+Legrand. What could he be dreaming of? What new crotchet
+possessed his excitable brain? What “business of the highest
+importance” could HE possibly have to transact? Jupiter’s account
+of him boded no good. I dreaded lest the continued pressure of
+misfortune had, at length, fairly unsettled the reason of my
+friend. Without a moment’s hesitation, therefore, I prepared to
+accompany the negro.
+
+Upon reaching the wharf, I noticed a scythe and three spades, all
+apparently new, lying in the bottom of the boat in which we were to
+embark.
+
+“What is the meaning of all this, Jup?” I inquired.
+
+“Him syfe, massa, and spade.”
+
+“Very true; but what are they doing here?”
+
+“Him de syfe and de spade what Massa Will sis ’pon my buying for
+him in de town, and de debbil’s own lot of money I had to gib for
+em.”
+
+“But what, in the name of all that is mysterious, is your ‘Massa
+Will’ going to do with scythes and spades?”
+
+“Dat’s more dan I know, and debbil take me if I don’t b’lieve ’tis
+more dan he know too. But it’s all cum ob de bug.”
+
+Finding that no satisfaction was to be obtained of Jupiter, whose
+whole intellect seemed to be absorbed by “de bug,” I now stepped
+into the boat, and made sail. With a fair and strong breeze we
+soon ran into the little cove to the northward of Fort Moultrie,
+and a walk of some two miles brought us to the hut. It was about
+three in the afternoon when we arrived. Legrand had been awaiting
+us in eager expectation. He grasped my hand with a nervous
+empressement which alarmed me and strengthened the suspicions
+already entertained. His countenance was pale even to ghastliness,
+and his deep-set eyes glared with unnatural luster. After some
+inquiries respecting his health, I asked him, not knowing what
+better to say, if he had yet obtained the scarabaeus from
+Lieutenant G——.
+
+“Oh, yes,” he replied, coloring violently, “I got it from him the
+next morning. Nothing should tempt me to part with that
+scarabaeus. Do you know that Jupiter is quite right about it?”
+
+“In what way?” I asked, with a sad foreboding at heart.
+
+“In supposing it to be a bug of REAL GOLD.” He said this with an
+air of profound seriousness, and I felt inexpressibly shocked.
+
+“This bug is to make my fortune,” he continued, with a triumphant
+smile; “to reinstate me in my family possessions. Is it any
+wonder, then, that I prize it? Since Fortune has thought fit to
+bestow it upon me, I have only to use it properly, and I shall
+arrive at the gold of which it is the index. Jupiter, bring me
+that scarabaeus!”
+
+“What! de bug, massa? I’d rudder not go fer trubble dat bug; you
+mus’ git him for your own self.” Hereupon Legrand arose, with a
+grave and stately air, and brought me the beetle from a glass case
+in which it was enclosed. It was a beautiful scarabaeus, and, at
+that time, unknown to naturalists—of course a great prize in a
+scientific point of view. There were two round black spots near
+one extremity of the back, and a long one near the other. The
+scales were exceedingly hard and glossy, with all the appearance of
+burnished gold. The weight of the insect was very remarkable, and,
+taking all things into consideration, I could hardly blame Jupiter
+for his opinion respecting it; but what to make of Legrand’s
+concordance with that opinion, I could not, for the life of me,
+tell.
+
+“I sent for you,” said he, in a grandiloquent tone, when I had
+completed my examination of the beetle, “I sent for you that I
+might have your counsel and assistance in furthering the views of
+Fate and of the bug—”
+
+“My dear Legrand,” I cried, interrupting him, “you are certainly
+unwell, and had better use some little precautions. You shall go
+to bed, and I will remain with you a few days, until you get over
+this. You are feverish and—”
+
+“Feel my pulse,” said he.
+
+I felt it, and, to say the truth, found not the slightest
+indication of fever.
+
+“But you may be ill and yet have no fever. Allow me this once to
+prescribe for you. In the first place go to bed. In the next—”
+
+“You are mistaken,” he interposed, “I am as well as I can expect to
+be under the excitement which I suffer. If you really wish me
+well, you will relieve this excitement.”
+
+“And how is this to be done?”
+
+“Very easily. Jupiter and myself are going upon an expedition into
+the hills, upon the mainland, and, in this expedition, we shall
+need the aid of some person in whom we can confide. You are the
+only one we can trust. Whether we succeed or fail, the excitement
+which you now perceive in me will be equally allayed.”
+
+“I am anxious to oblige you in any way,” I replied; “but do you
+mean to say that this infernal beetle has any connection with your
+expedition into the hills?”
+
+“It has.”
+
+“Then, Legrand, I can become a party to no such absurd proceeding.”
+
+“I am sorry—very sorry—for we shall have to try it by ourselves.”
+
+“Try it by yourselves! The man is surely mad!—but stay!—how long
+do you propose to be absent?”
+
+“Probably all night. We shall start immediately, and be back, at
+all events, by sunrise.”
+
+“And will you promise me, upon your honor, that when this freak of
+yours is over, and the bug business (good God!) settled to your
+satisfaction, you will then return home and follow my advice
+implicitly, as that of your physician?”
+
+“Yes; I promise; and now let us be off, for we have no time to
+lose.”
+
+With a heavy heart I accompanied my friend. We started about four
+o’clock—Legrand, Jupiter, the dog, and myself. Jupiter had with
+him the scythe and spades—the whole of which he insisted upon
+carrying—more through fear, it seemed to me, of trusting either of
+the implements within reach of his master, than from any excess of
+industry or complaisance. His demeanor was dogged in the extreme,
+and “dat deuced bug” were the sole words which escaped his lips
+during the journey. For my own part, I had charge of a couple of
+dark lanterns, while Legrand contented himself with the scarabaeus,
+which he carried attached to the end of a bit of whipcord; twirling
+it to and fro, with the air of a conjurer, as he went. When I
+observed this last, plain evidence of my friend’s aberration of
+mind, I could scarcely refrain from tears. I thought it best,
+however, to humor his fancy, at least for the present, or until I
+could adopt some more energetic measures with a chance of success.
+In the meantime I endeavored, but all in vain, to sound him in
+regard to the object of the expedition. Having succeeded in
+inducing me to accompany him, he seemed unwilling to hold
+conversation upon any topic of minor importance, and to all my
+questions vouchsafed no other reply than “we shall see!”
+
+We crossed the creek at the head of the island by means of a skiff,
+and, ascending the high grounds on the shore of the mainland,
+proceeded in a northwesterly direction, through a tract of country
+excessively wild and desolate, where no trace of a human footstep
+was to be seen. Legrand led the way with decision; pausing only
+for an instant, here and there, to consult what appeared to be
+certain landmarks of his own contrivance upon a former occasion.
+
+In this manner we journeyed for about two hours, and the sun was
+just setting when we entered a region infinitely more dreary than
+any yet seen. It was a species of table-land, near the summit of
+an almost inaccessible hill, densely wooded from base to pinnacle,
+and interspersed with huge crags that appeared to lie loosely upon
+the soil, and in many cases were prevented from precipitating
+themselves into the valleys below, merely by the support of the
+trees against which they reclined. Deep ravines, in various
+directions, gave an air of still sterner solemnity to the scene.
+
+The natural platform to which we had clambered was thickly
+overgrown with brambles, through which we soon discovered that it
+would have been impossible to force our way but for the scythe; and
+Jupiter, by direction of his master, proceeded to clear for us a
+path to the foot of an enormously tall tulip tree, which stood,
+with some eight or ten oaks, upon the level, and far surpassed them
+all, and all other trees which I had then ever seen, in the beauty
+of its foliage and form, in the wide spread of its branches, and in
+the general majesty of its appearance. When we reached this tree,
+Legrand turned to Jupiter, and asked him if he thought he could
+climb it. The old man seemed a little staggered by the question,
+and for some moments made no reply. At length he approached the
+huge trunk, walked slowly around it, and examined it with minute
+attention. When he had completed his scrutiny, he merely said:
+
+“Yes, massa, Jup climb any tree he ebber see in he life.”
+
+“Then up with you as soon as possible, for it will soon be too dark
+to see what we are about.”
+
+“How far mus’ go up, massa?” inquired Jupiter.
+
+“Get up the main trunk first, and then I will tell you which way to
+go—and here—stop! take this beetle with you.”
+
+“De bug, Massa Will!—de goole-bug!” cried the negro, drawing back
+in dismay—“what for mus’ tote de bug way up de tree?—d—n if I
+do!”
+
+“If you are afraid, Jup, a great big negro like you, to take hold
+of a harmless little dead beetle, why you can carry it up by this
+string—but, if you do not take it up with you in some way, I shall
+be under the necessity of breaking your head with this shovel.”
+
+“What de matter now, massa?” said Jup, evidently shamed into
+compliance; “always want for to raise fuss wid old nigger. Was
+only funnin anyhow. ME feered de bug! what I keer for de bug?”
+Here he took cautiously hold of the extreme end of the string, and,
+maintaining the insect as far from his person as circumstances
+would permit, prepared to ascend the tree.
+
+In youth, the tulip tree, or Liriodendron tulipiferum, the most
+magnificent of American foresters, has a trunk peculiarly smooth,
+and often rises to a great height without lateral branches; but, in
+its riper age, the bark becomes gnarled and uneven, while many
+short limbs make their appearance on the stem. Thus the difficulty
+of ascension, in the present case, lay more in semblance than in
+reality. Embracing the huge cylinder, as closely as possible, with
+his arms and knees, seizing with his hands some projections, and
+resting his naked toes upon others, Jupiter, after one or two
+narrow escapes from falling, at length wriggled himself into the
+first great fork, and seemed to consider the whole business as
+virtually accomplished. The RISK of the achievement was, in fact,
+now over, although the climber was some sixty or seventy feet from
+the ground.
+
+“Which way mus’ go now, Massa Will?” he asked.
+
+“Keep up the largest branch—the one on this side,” said Legrand.
+The negro obeyed him promptly, and apparently with but little
+trouble; ascending higher and higher, until no glimpse of his squat
+figure could be obtained through the dense foliage which enveloped
+it. Presently his voice was heard in a sort of halloo.
+
+“How much fudder is got to go?”
+
+“How high up are you?” asked Legrand.
+
+“Ebber so fur,” replied the negro; “can see de sky fru de top oh de
+tree.”
+
+“Never mind the sky, but attend to what I say. Look down the trunk
+and count the limbs below you on this side. How many limbs have
+you passed?”
+
+“One, two, tree, four, fibe—I done pass fibe big limb, massa, ’pon
+dis side.”
+
+“Then go one limb higher.”
+
+In a few minutes the voice was heard again, announcing that the
+seventh limb was attained.
+
+“Now, Jup,” cried Legrand, evidently much excited, “I want you to
+work your way out upon that limb as far as you can. If you see
+anything strange let me know.”
+
+By this time what little doubt I might have entertained of my poor
+friend’s insanity was put finally at rest. I had no alternative
+but to conclude him stricken with lunacy, and I became seriously
+anxious about getting him home. While I was pondering upon what
+was best to be done, Jupiter’s voice was again heard.
+
+“Mos feered for to ventur pon dis limb berry far—’tis dead limb
+putty much all de way.”
+
+“Did you say it was a DEAD limb, Jupiter?” cried Legrand in a
+quavering voice.
+
+“Yes, massa, him dead as de door-nail—done up for sartin—done
+departed dis here life.”
+
+“What in the name of heaven shall I do?” asked Legrand, seemingly
+in the greatest distress.
+
+“Do!” said I, glad of an opportunity to interpose a word, “why come
+home and go to bed. Come now!—that’s a fine fellow. It’s getting
+late, and, besides, you remember your promise.”
+
+“Jupiter,” cried he, without heeding me in the least, “do you hear
+me?”
+
+“Yes, Massa Will, hear you ebber so plain.”
+
+“Try the wood well, then, with your knife, and see if you think it
+VERY rotten.”
+
+“Him rotten, massa, sure nuff,” replied the negro in a few moments,
+“but not so berry rotten as mought be. Mought venture out leetle
+way pon de limb by myself, dat’s true.”
+
+“By yourself!—what do you mean?”
+
+“Why, I mean de bug. ’Tis BERRY hebby bug. Spose I drop him down
+fuss, an den de limb won’t break wid just de weight of one nigger.”
+
+“You infernal scoundrel!” cried Legrand, apparently much relieved,
+“what do you mean by telling me such nonsense as that? As sure as
+you drop that beetle I’ll break your neck. Look here, Jupiter, do
+you hear me?”
+
+“Yes, massa, needn’t hollo at poor nigger dat style.”
+
+“Well! now listen!—if you will venture out on the limb as far as
+you think safe, and not let go the beetle, I’ll make you a present
+of a silver dollar as soon as you get down.”
+
+“I’m gwine, Massa Will—deed I is,” replied the negro very
+promptly—“mos out to the eend now.”
+
+“OUT TO THE END!” here fairly screamed Legrand; “do you say you are
+out to the end of that limb?”
+
+“Soon be to de eend, massa—o-o-o-o-oh! Lor-gol-a-marcy! what IS
+dis here pon de tree?”
+
+“Well!” cried Legrand, highly delighted, “what is it?”
+
+“Why ’taint noffin but a skull—somebody bin lef him head up de
+tree, and de crows done gobble ebery bit ob de meat off.”
+
+“A skull, you say!—very well,—how is it fastened to the limb?—
+what holds it on?”
+
+“Sure nuff, massa; mus look. Why dis berry curious sarcumstance,
+pon my word—dare’s a great big nail in de skull, what fastens ob
+it on to de tree.”
+
+“Well now, Jupiter, do exactly as I tell you—do you hear?”
+
+“Yes, massa.”
+
+“Pay attention, then—find the left eye of the skull.”
+
+“Hum! hoo! dat’s good! why dey ain’t no eye lef at all.”
+
+“Curse your stupidity! do you know your right hand from your left?”
+
+“Yes, I knows dat—knows all about dat—’tis my lef hand what I
+chops de wood wid.”
+
+“To be sure! you are left-handed; and your left eye is on the same
+side as your left hand. Now, I suppose, you can find the left eye
+of the skull, or the place where the left eye has been. Have you
+found it?”
+
+Here was a long pause. At length the negro asked:
+
+“Is de lef eye of de skull pon de same side as de lef hand of de
+skull too?—cause de skull aint got not a bit oh a hand at all—
+nebber mind! I got de lef eye now—here de lef eye! what mus do
+wid it?”
+
+“Let the beetle drop through it, as far as the string will reach—
+but be careful and not let go your hold of the string.”
+
+“All dat done, Massa Will; mighty easy ting for to put de bug fru
+de hole—look out for him dare below!”
+
+During this colloquy no portion of Jupiter’s person could be seen;
+but the beetle, which he had suffered to descend, was now visible
+at the end of the string, and glistened, like a globe of burnished
+gold, in the last rays of the setting sun, some of which still
+faintly illumined the eminence upon which we stood. The scarabaeus
+hung quite clear of any branches, and, if allowed to fall, would
+have fallen at our feet. Legrand immediately took the scythe, and
+cleared with it a circular space, three or four yards in diameter,
+just beneath the insect, and, having accomplished this, ordered
+Jupiter to let go the string and come down from the tree.
+
+Driving a peg, with great nicety, into the ground, at the precise
+spot where the beetle fell, my friend now produced from his pocket
+a tape measure. Fastening one end of this at that point of the
+trunk of the tree which was nearest the peg, he unrolled it till it
+reached the peg and thence further unrolled it, in the direction
+already established by the two points of the tree and the peg, for
+the distance of fifty feet—Jupiter clearing away the brambles with
+the scythe. At the spot thus attained a second peg was driven, and
+about this, as a center, a rude circle, about four feet in
+diameter, described. Taking now a spade himself, and giving one to
+Jupiter and one to me, Legrand begged us to set about digging as
+quickly as possible.
+
+To speak the truth, I had no especial relish for such amusement at
+any time, and, at that particular moment, would willingly have
+declined it; for the night was coming on, and I felt much fatigued
+with the exercise already taken; but I saw no mode of escape, and
+was fearful of disturbing my poor friend’s equanimity by a refusal.
+Could I have depended, indeed, upon Jupiter’s aid, I would have had
+no hesitation in attempting to get the lunatic home by force; but I
+was too well assured of the old negro’s disposition, to hope that
+he would assist me, under any circumstances, in a personal contest
+with his master. I made no doubt that the latter had been infected
+with some of the innumerable Southern superstitions about money
+buried, and that his fantasy had received confirmation by the
+finding of the scarabaeus, or, perhaps, by Jupiter’s obstinacy in
+maintaining it to be “a bug of real gold.” A mind disposed to
+lunacy would readily be led away by such suggestions—especially if
+chiming in with favorite preconceived ideas—and then I called to
+mind the poor fellow’s speech about the beetle’s being “the index
+of his fortune.” Upon the whole, I was sadly vexed and puzzled,
+but, at length, I concluded to make a virtue of necessity—to dig
+with a good will, and thus the sooner to convince the visionary, by
+ocular demonstration, of the fallacy of the opinion he entertained.
+
+The lanterns having been lit, we all fell to work with a zeal
+worthy a more rational cause; and, as the glare fell upon our
+persons and implements, I could not help thinking how picturesque a
+group we composed, and how strange and suspicious our labors must
+have appeared to any interloper who, by chance, might have stumbled
+upon our whereabouts.
+
+We dug very steadily for two hours. Little was said; and our chief
+embarrassment lay in the yelpings of the dog, who took exceeding
+interest in our proceedings. He, at length, became so obstreperous
+that we grew fearful of his giving the alarm to some stragglers in
+the vicinity,—or, rather, this was the apprehension of Legrand;—
+for myself, I should have rejoiced at any interruption which might
+have enabled me to get the wanderer home. The noise was, at
+length, very effectually silenced by Jupiter, who, getting out of
+the hole with a dogged air of deliberation, tied the brute’s mouth
+up with one of his suspenders, and then returned, with a grave
+chuckle, to his task.
+
+When the time mentioned had expired, we had reached a depth of five
+feet, and yet no signs of any treasure became manifest. A general
+pause ensued, and I began to hope that the farce was at an end.
+Legrand, however, although evidently much disconcerted, wiped his
+brow thoughtfully and recommenced. We had excavated the entire
+circle of four feet diameter, and now we slightly enlarged the
+limit, and went to the farther depth of two feet. Still nothing
+appeared. The gold-seeker, whom I sincerely pitied, at length
+clambered from the pit, with the bitterest disappointment imprinted
+upon every feature, and proceeded, slowly and reluctantly, to put
+on his coat, which he had thrown off at the beginning of his labor.
+In the meantime I made no remark. Jupiter, at a signal from his
+master, began to gather up his tools. This done, and the dog
+having been unmuzzled, we turned in profound silence toward home.
+
+We had taken, perhaps, a dozen steps in this direction, when, with
+a loud oath, Legrand strode up to Jupiter, and seized him by the
+collar. The astonished negro opened his eyes and mouth to the
+fullest extent, let fall the spades, and fell upon his knees.
+
+“You scoundrel!” said Legrand, hissing out the syllables from
+between his clenched teeth—“you infernal black villain!—speak, I
+tell you!—answer me this instant, without prevarication!—which—
+which is your left eye?”
+
+“Oh, my golly, Massa Will! aint dis here my lef eye for sartain?”
+roared the terrified Jupiter, placing his hand upon his RIGHT organ
+of vision, and holding it there with a desperate pertinacity, as if
+in immediate, dread of his master’s attempt at a gouge.
+
+“I thought so!—I knew it! hurrah!” vociferated Legrand, letting
+the negro go and executing a series of curvets and caracols, much
+to the astonishment of his valet, who, arising from his knees,
+looked, mutely, from his master to myself, and then from myself to
+his master.
+
+“Come! we must go back,” said the latter, “the game’s not up yet;”
+and he again led the way to the tulip tree.
+
+“Jupiter,” said he, when we reached its foot, “come here! was the
+skull nailed to the limb with the face outward, or with the face to
+the limb?”
+
+“De face was out, massa, so dat de crows could get at de eyes good,
+widout any trouble.”
+
+“Well, then, was it this eye or that through which you dropped the
+beetle?” here Legrand touched each of Jupiter’s eyes.
+
+“’Twas dis eye, massa—de lef eye—jis as you tell me,” and here it
+was his right eye that the negro indicated.
+
+“That will do—we must try it again.”
+
+Here my friend, about whose madness I now saw, or fancied that I
+saw, certain indications of method, removed the peg which marked
+the spot where the beetle fell, to a spot about three inches to the
+westward of its former position. Taking, now, the tape measure
+from the nearest point of the trunk to the peg, as before, and
+continuing the extension in a straight line to the distance of
+fifty feet, a spot was indicated, removed, by several yards, from
+the point at which we had been digging.
+
+Around the new position a circle, somewhat larger than in the
+former instance, was now described, and we again set to work with
+the spade. I was dreadfully weary, but, scarcely understanding
+what had occasioned the change in my thoughts, I felt no longer any
+great aversion from the labor imposed. I had become most
+unaccountably interested—nay, even excited. Perhaps there was
+something, amid all the extravagant demeanor of Legrand—some air
+of forethought, or of deliberation, which impressed me. I dug
+eagerly, and now and then caught myself actually looking, with
+something that very much resembled expectation, for the fancied
+treasure, the vision of which had demented my unfortunate
+companion. At a period when such vagaries of thought most fully
+possessed me, and when we had been at work perhaps an hour and a
+half, we were again interrupted by the violent howlings of the dog.
+His uneasiness, in the first instance, had been, evidently, but the
+result of playfulness or caprice, but he now assumed a bitter and
+serious tone. Upon Jupiter’s again attempting to muzzle him, he
+made furious resistance, and, leaping into the hole, tore up the
+mold frantically with his claws. In a few seconds he had uncovered
+a mass of human bones, forming two complete skeletons, intermingled
+with several buttons of metal, and what appeared to be the dust of
+decayed woolen. One or two strokes of a spade upturned the blade
+of a large Spanish knife, and, as we dug farther, three or four
+loose pieces of gold and silver coin came to light.
+
+At sight of these the joy of Jupiter could scarcely be restrained,
+but the countenance of his master wore an air of extreme
+disappointment. He urged us, however, to continue our exertions,
+and the words were hardly uttered when I stumbled and fell forward,
+having caught the toe of my boot in a large ring of iron that lay
+half buried in the loose earth.
+
+We now worked in earnest, and never did I pass ten minutes of more
+intense excitement. During this interval we had fairly unearthed
+an oblong chest of wood, which, from its perfect preservation and
+wonderful hardness, had plainly been subjected to some mineralizing
+process—perhaps that of the bichloride of mercury. This box was
+three feet and a half long, three feet broad, and two and a half
+feet deep. It was firmly secured by bands of wrought iron,
+riveted, and forming a kind of open trelliswork over the whole. On
+each side of the chest, near the top, were three rings of iron—six
+in all—by means of which a firm hold could be obtained by six
+persons. Our utmost united endeavors served only to disturb the
+coffer very slightly in its bed. We at once saw the impossibility
+of removing so great a weight. Luckily, the sole fastenings of the
+lid consisted of two sliding bolts. These we drew back—trembling
+and panting with anxiety. In an instant, a treasure of
+incalculable value lay gleaming before us. As the rays of the
+lanterns fell within the pit, there flashed upward a glow and a
+glare, from a confused heap of gold and of jewels, that absolutely
+dazzled our eyes.
+
+I shall not pretend to describe the feelings with which I gazed.
+Amazement was, of course, predominant. Legrand appeared exhausted
+with excitement, and spoke very few words. Jupiter’s countenance
+wore, for some minutes, as deadly a pallor as it is possible, in
+the nature of things, for any negro’s visage to assume. He seemed
+stupefied—thunderstricken. Presently he fell upon his knees in
+the pit, and burying his naked arms up to the elbows in gold, let
+them there remain, as if enjoying the luxury of a bath. At length,
+with a deep sigh, he exclaimed, as if in a soliloquy:
+
+“And dis all cum of de goole-bug! de putty goole-bug! de poor
+little goole-bug, what I boosed in that sabage kind oh style!
+Ain’t you shamed oh yourself, nigger?—answer me dat!”
+
+It became necessary, at last, that I should arouse both master and
+valet to the expediency of removing the treasure. It was growing
+late, and it behooved us to make exertion, that we might get
+everything housed before daylight. It was difficult to say what
+should be done, and much time was spent in deliberation—so
+confused were the ideas of all. We, finally, lightened the box by
+removing two thirds of its contents, when we were enabled, with
+some trouble, to raise it from the hole. The articles taken out
+were deposited among the brambles, and the dog left to guard them,
+with strict orders from Jupiter neither, upon any pretense, to stir
+from the spot, nor to open his mouth until our return. We then
+hurriedly made for home with the chest; reaching the hut in safety,
+but after excessive toil, at one o’clock in the morning. Worn out
+as we were, it was not in human nature to do more immediately. We
+rested until two, and had supper; starting for the hills
+immediately afterwards, armed with three stout sacks, which, by
+good luck, were upon the premises. A little before four we arrived
+at the pit, divided the remainder of the booty, as equally as might
+be, among us, and, leaving the holes unfilled, again set out for
+the hut, at which, for the second time, we deposited our golden
+burdens, just as the first faint streaks of the dawn gleamed from
+over the treetops in the east.
+
+We were now thoroughly broken down; but the intense excitement of
+the time denied us repose. After an unquiet slumber of some three
+or four hours’ duration, we arose, as if by preconcert, to make
+examination of our treasure.
+
+The chest had been full to the brim, and we spent the whole day,
+and the greater part of the next night, in a scrutiny of its
+contents. There had been nothing like order or arrangement.
+Everything had been heaped in promiscuously. Having assorted all
+with care, we found ourselves possessed of even vaster wealth than
+we had at first supposed. In coin there was rather more than four
+hundred and fifty thousand dollars—estimating the value of the
+pieces, as accurately as we could, by the tables of the period.
+There was not a particle of silver. All was gold of antique date
+and of great variety—French, Spanish, and German money, with a few
+English guineas, and some counters, of which we had never seen
+specimens before. There were several very large and heavy coins,
+so worn that we could make nothing of their inscriptions. There
+was no American money. The value of the jewels we found more
+difficulty in estimating. There were diamonds—some of them
+exceedingly large and fine—a hundred and ten in all, and not one
+of them small; eighteen rubies of remarkable brilliancy;—three
+hundred and ten emeralds, all very beautiful; and twenty-one
+sapphires, with an opal. These stones had all been broken from
+their settings and thrown loose in the chest. The settings
+themselves, which we picked out from among the other gold, appeared
+to have been beaten up with hammers, as if to prevent
+identification. Besides all this, there was a vast quantity of
+solid gold ornaments; nearly two hundred massive finger and ears
+rings; rich chains—thirty of these, if I remember; eighty-three
+very large and heavy crucifixes; five gold censers of great value;
+a prodigious golden punch bowl, ornamented with richly chased vine
+leaves and Bacchanalian figures; with two sword handles exquisitely
+embossed, and many other smaller articles which I cannot recollect.
+The weight of these valuables exceeded three hundred and fifty
+pounds avoirdupois; and in this estimate I have not included one
+hundred and ninety-seven superb gold watches; three of the number
+being worth each five hundred dollars, if one. Many of them were
+very old, and as timekeepers valueless; the works having suffered,
+more or less, from corrosion—but all were richly jeweled and in
+cases of great worth. We estimated the entire contents of the
+chest, that night, at a million and a half of dollars; and upon the
+subsequent disposal of the trinkets and jewels (a few being
+retained for our own use), it was found that we had greatly
+undervalued the treasure.
+
+When, at length, we had concluded our examination, and the intense
+excitement of the time had, in some measure, subsided, Legrand, who
+saw that I was dying with impatience for a solution of this most
+extraordinary riddle, entered into a full detail of all the
+circumstances connected with it.
+
+“You remember,” said he, “the night when I handed you the rough
+sketch I had made of the scarabaeus. You recollect, also, that I
+became quite vexed at you for insisting that my drawing resembled a
+death’s head. When you first made this assertion I thought you
+were jesting; but afterwards I called to mind the peculiar spots on
+the back of the insect, and admitted to myself that your remark had
+some little foundation in fact. Still, the sneer at my graphic
+powers irritated me—for I am considered a good artist—and,
+therefore, when you handed me the scrap of parchment, I was about
+to crumple it up and throw it angrily into the fire.”
+
+“The scrap of paper, you mean,” said I.
+
+“No; it had much of the appearance of paper, and at first I
+supposed it to be such, but when I came to draw upon it, I
+discovered it at once to be a piece of very thin parchment. It was
+quite dirty, you remember. Well, as I was in the very act of
+crumpling it up, my glance fell upon the sketch at which you had
+been looking, and you may imagine my astonishment when I perceived,
+in fact, the figure of a death’s head just where, it seemed to me,
+I had made the drawing of the beetle. For a moment I was too much
+amazed to think with accuracy. I knew that my design was very
+different in detail from this—although there was a certain
+similarity in general outline. Presently I took a candle, and
+seating myself at the other end of the room, proceeded to
+scrutinize the parchment more closely. Upon turning it over, I saw
+my own sketch upon the reverse, just as I had made it. My first
+idea, now, was mere surprise at the really remarkable similarity of
+outline—at the singular coincidence involved in the fact that,
+unknown to me, there should have been a skull upon the other side
+of the parchment, immediately beneath my figure of the scarabaeus,
+and that this skull, not only in outline, but in size, should so
+closely resemble my drawing. I say the singularity of this
+coincidence absolutely stupefied me for a time. This is the usual
+effect of such coincidences. The mind struggles to establish a
+connection—a sequence of cause and effect—and, being unable to do
+so, suffers a species of temporary paralysis. But, when I
+recovered from this stupor, there dawned upon me gradually a
+conviction which startled me even far more than the coincidence. I
+began distinctly, positively, to remember that there had been NO
+drawing upon the parchment, when I made my sketch of the
+scarabaeus. I became perfectly certain of this; for I recollected
+turning up first one side and then the other, in search of the
+cleanest spot. Had the skull been then there, of course I could
+not have failed to notice it. Here was indeed a mystery which I
+felt it impossible to explain; but, even at that early moment,
+there seemed to glimmer, faintly, within the most remote and secret
+chambers of my intellect, a glow-wormlike conception of that truth
+which last night’s adventure brought to so magnificent a
+demonstration. I arose at once, and putting the parchment securely
+away, dismissed all further reflection until I should be alone.
+
+“When you had gone, and when Jupiter was fast asleep, I betook
+myself to a more methodical investigation of the affair. In the
+first place I considered the manner in which the parchment had come
+into my possession. The spot where we discovered the scarabaeus
+was on the coast of the mainland, about a mile eastward of the
+island, and but a short distance above high-water mark. Upon my
+taking hold of it, it gave me a sharp bite, which caused me to let
+it drop. Jupiter, with his accustomed caution, before seizing the
+insect, which had flown toward him, looked about him for a leaf, or
+something of that nature, by which to take hold of it. It was at
+this moment that his eyes, and mine also, fell upon the scrap of
+parchment, which I then supposed to be paper. It was lying half
+buried in the sand, a corner sticking up. Near the spot where we
+found it, I observed the remnants of the hull of what appeared to
+have been a ship’s longboat. The wreck seemed to have been there
+for a very great while, for the resemblance to boat timbers could
+scarcely be traced.
+
+“Well, Jupiter picked up the parchment, wrapped the beetle in it,
+and gave it to me. Soon afterwards we turned to go home, and on
+the way met Lieutenant G——. I showed him the insect, and he
+begged me to let him take it to the fort. Upon my consenting, he
+thrust it forthwith into his waistcoat pocket, without the
+parchment in which it had been wrapped, and which I had continued
+to hold in my hand during his inspection. Perhaps he dreaded my
+changing my mind, and thought it best to make sure of the prize at
+once—you know how enthusiastic he is on all subjects connected
+with Natural History. At the same time, without being conscious of
+it, I must have deposited the parchment in my own pocket.
+
+“You remember that when I went to the table, for the purpose of
+making a sketch of the beetle, I found no paper where it was
+usually kept. I looked in the drawer, and found none there. I
+searched my pockets, hoping to find an old letter, when my hand
+fell upon the parchment. I thus detail the precise mode in which
+it came into my possession, for the circumstances impressed me with
+peculiar force.
+
+“No doubt you will think me fanciful—but I had already established
+a kind of CONNECTION. I had put together two links of a great
+chain. There was a boat lying upon a seacoast, and not far from
+the boat was a parchment—NOT A PAPER—with a skull depicted upon
+it. You will, of course, ask ‘where is the connection?’ I reply
+that the skull, or death’s head, is the well-known emblem of the
+pirate. The flag of the death’s head is hoisted in all
+engagements.
+
+“I have said that the scrap was parchment, and not paper.
+Parchment is durable—almost imperishable. Matters of little
+moment are rarely consigned to parchment; since, for the mere
+ordinary purposes of drawing or writing, it is not nearly so well
+adapted as paper. This reflection suggested some meaning—some
+relevancy—in the death’s head. I did not fail to observe, also,
+the FORM of the parchment. Although one of its corners had been,
+by some accident, destroyed, it could be seen that the original
+form was oblong. It was just such a slip, indeed, as might have
+been chosen for a memorandum—for a record of something to be long
+remembered, and carefully preserved.”
+
+“But,” I interposed, “you say that the skull was NOT upon the
+parchment when you made the drawing of the beetle. How then do you
+trace any connection between the boat and the skull—since this
+latter, according to your own admission, must have been designed
+(God only knows how or by whom) at some period subsequent to your
+sketching the scarabaeus?”
+
+“Ah, hereupon turns the whole mystery; although the secret, at this
+point, I had comparatively little difficulty in solving. My steps
+were sure, and could afford but a single result. I reasoned, for
+example, thus: When I drew the scarabaeus, there was no skull
+apparent upon the parchment. When I had completed the drawing I
+gave it to you, and observed you narrowly until you returned it.
+YOU, therefore, did not design the skull, and no one else was
+present to do it. Then it was not done by human agency. And
+nevertheless it was done.
+
+“At this stage of my reflections I endeavored to remember, and DID
+remember, with entire distinctness, every incident which occurred
+about the period in question. The weather was chilly (oh, rare and
+happy accident!), and a fire was blazing upon the hearth. I was
+heated with exercise and sat near the table. You, however, had
+drawn a chair close to the chimney. Just as I placed the parchment
+in your hand, and as you were in the act of inspecting it, Wolf,
+the Newfoundland, entered, and leaped upon your shoulders. With
+your left hand you caressed him and kept him off, while your right,
+holding the parchment, was permitted to fall listlessly between
+your knees, and in close proximity to the fire. At one moment I
+thought the blaze had caught it, and was about to caution you, but,
+before I could speak, you had withdrawn it, and were engaged in its
+examination. When I considered all these particulars, I doubted
+not for a moment that HEAT had been the agent in bringing to light,
+upon the parchment, the skull which I saw designed upon it. You
+are well aware that chemical preparations exist, and have existed
+time out of mind, by means of which it is possible to write upon
+either paper or vellum, so that the characters shall become visible
+only when subjected to the action of fire. Zaffre, digested in
+aqua regia, and diluted with four times its weight of water, is
+sometimes employed; a green tint results. The regulus of cobalt,
+dissolved in spirit of niter, gives a red. These colors disappear
+at longer or shorter intervals after the material written upon
+cools, but again become apparent upon the reapplication of heat.
+
+“I now scrutinized the death’s head with care. Its outer edges—
+the edges of the drawing nearest the edge of the vellum—were far
+more DISTINCT than the others. It was clear that the action of the
+caloric had been imperfect or unequal. I immediately kindled a
+fire, and subjected every portion of the parchment to a glowing
+heat. At first, the only effect was the strengthening of the faint
+lines in the skull; but, upon persevering in the experiment, there
+became visible, at the corner of the slip, diagonally opposite to
+the spot in which the death’s head was delineated, the figure of
+what I at first supposed to be a goat. A closer scrutiny, however,
+satisfied me that it was intended for a kid.”
+
+“Ha! ha!” said I, “to be sure I have no right to laugh at you—a
+million and a half of money is too serious a matter for mirth—but
+you are not about to establish a third link in your chain—you will
+not find any especial connection between your pirates and a goat—
+pirates, you know, have nothing to do with goats; they appertain to
+the farming interest.”
+
+“But I have just said that the figure was NOT that of a goat.”
+
+“Well, a kid then—pretty much the same thing.”
+
+“Pretty much, but not altogether,” said Legrand. “You may have
+heard of one CAPTAIN Kidd. I at once looked upon the figure of the
+animal as a kind of punning or hieroglyphical signature. I say
+signature; because its position upon the vellum suggested this
+idea. The death’s head at the corner diagonally opposite, had, in
+the same manner, the air of a stamp, or seal. But I was sorely put
+out by the absence of all else—of the body to my imagined
+instrument—of the text for my context.”
+
+“I presume you expected to find a letter between the stamp and the
+signature.”
+
+“Something of that kind. The fact is, I felt irresistibly
+impressed with a presentiment of some vast good fortune impending.
+I can scarcely say why. Perhaps, after all, it was rather a desire
+than an actual belief;—but do you know that Jupiter’s silly words,
+about the bug being of solid gold, had a remarkable effect upon my
+fancy? And then the series of accidents and coincidents—these
+were so VERY extraordinary. Do you observe how mere an accident it
+was that these events should have occurred upon the SOLE day of all
+the year in which it has been, or may be sufficiently cool for
+fire, and that without the fire, or without the intervention of the
+dog at the precise moment in which he appeared, I should never have
+become aware of the death’s head, and so never the possessor of the
+treasure?”
+
+“But proceed—I am all impatience.”
+
+“Well; you have heard, of course, the many stories current—the
+thousand vague rumors afloat about money buried, somewhere upon the
+Atlantic coast, by Kidd and his associates. These rumors must have
+had some foundation in fact. And that the rumors have existed so
+long and so continuous, could have resulted, it appeared to me,
+only from the circumstance of the buried treasures still REMAINING
+entombed. Had Kidd concealed his plunder for a time, and
+afterwards reclaimed it, the rumors would scarcely have reached us
+in their present unvarying form. You will observe that the stories
+told are all about money-seekers, not about money-finders. Had the
+pirate recovered his money, there the affair would have dropped.
+It seemed to me that some accident—say the loss of a memorandum
+indicating its locality—had deprived him of the means of
+recovering it, and that this accident had become known to his
+followers, who otherwise might never have heard that the treasure
+had been concealed at all, and who, busying themselves in vain,
+because unguided, attempts to regain it, had given first birth, and
+then universal currency, to the reports which are now so common.
+Have you ever heard of any important treasure being unearthed along
+the coast?”
+
+“Never.”
+
+“But that Kidd’s accumulations were immense, is well known. I took
+it for granted, therefore, that the earth still held them; and you
+will scarcely be surprised when I tell you that I felt a hope,
+nearly amounting to certainty, that the parchment so strangely
+found involved a lost record of the place of deposit.”
+
+“But how did you proceed?”
+
+“I held the vellum again to the fire, after increasing the heat,
+but nothing appeared. I now thought it possible that the coating
+of dirt might have something to do with the failure: so I carefully
+rinsed the parchment by pouring warm water over it, and, having
+done this, I placed it in a tin pan, with the skull downward, and
+put the pan upon a furnace of lighted charcoal. In a few minutes,
+the pan having become thoroughly heated, I removed the slip, and,
+to my inexpressible joy, found it spotted, in several places, with
+what appeared to be figures arranged in lines. Again I placed it
+in the pan, and suffered it to remain another minute. Upon taking
+it off, the whole was just as you see it now.”
+
+Here Legrand, having reheated the parchment, submitted it to my
+inspection. The following characters were rudely traced, in a red
+tint, between the death’s head and the goat:
+
+
+“53++!305))6*;4826)4+)4+).;806*;48!8]60))85;1+8*:+(;:+*8!83(88)5*!;
+46(;88*96*?;8)*+(;485);5*!2:*+(;4956*2(5*–4)8]8*;4069285);)6!8)4++;
+1(+9;48081;8:8+1;48!85;4)485!528806*81(+9;48;(88;4(+?34;48)4+;161;:
+188;+?;”
+
+
+“But,” said I, returning him the slip, “I am as much in the dark as
+ever. Were all the jewels of Golconda awaiting me upon my solution
+of this enigma, I am quite sure that I should be unable to earn
+them.”
+
+“And yet,” said Legrand, “the solution is by no means so difficult
+as you might be led to imagine from the first hasty inspection of
+the characters. These characters, as anyone might readily guess,
+form a cipher—that is to say, they convey a meaning; but then from
+what is known of Kidd, I could not suppose him capable of
+constructing any of the more abstruse cryptographs. I made up my
+mind, at once, that this was of a simple species—such, however, as
+would appear, to the crude intellect of the sailor, absolutely
+insoluble without the key.”
+
+“And you really solved it?”
+
+“Readily; I have solved others of an abstruseness ten thousand
+times greater. Circumstances, and a certain bias of mind, have led
+me to take interest in such riddles, and it may well be doubted
+whether human ingenuity can construct an enigma of the kind which
+human ingenuity may not, by proper application, resolve. In fact,
+having once established connected and legible characters, I
+scarcely gave a thought to the mere difficulty of developing their
+import.
+
+“In the present case—indeed in all cases of secret writing—the
+first question regards the LANGUAGE of the cipher; for the
+principles of solution, so far, especially, as the more simple
+ciphers are concerned, depend upon, and are varied by, the genius
+of the particular idiom. In general, there is no alternative but
+experiment (directed by probabilities) of every tongue known to him
+who attempts the solution, until the true one be attained. But,
+with the cipher now before us, all difficulty was removed by the
+signature. The pun upon the word ‘Kidd’ is appreciable in no other
+language than the English. But for this consideration I should
+have begun my attempts with the Spanish and French, as the tongues
+in which a secret of this kind would most naturally have been
+written by a pirate of the Spanish main. As it was, I assumed the
+cryptograph to be English.
+
+“You observe there are no divisions between the words. Had there
+been divisions the task would have been comparatively easy. In
+such cases I should have commenced with a collation and analysis of
+the shorter words, and, had a word of a single letter occurred, as
+is most likely, (a or I, for example,) I should have considered the
+solution as assured. But, there being no division, my first step
+was to ascertain the predominant letters, as well as the least
+frequent. Counting all, I constructed a table thus:
+
+
+Of the character 8 there are 33.
+ ; „ 26.
+ 4 „ 19.
+ +) „ 16.
+ * „ 13.
+ 5 „ 12.
+ 6 „ 11.
+ !1 „ 8.
+ 0 „ 6.
+ 92 „ 5.
+ :3 „ 4.
+ ? „ 3.
+ ] „ 2.
+ -. „ 1.
+
+
+“Now, in English, the letter which most frequently occurs is e.
+Afterwards, the succession runs thus: a o i d h n r s t u y c f g l
+m w b k p q x z. E predominates so remarkably, that an individual
+sentence of any length is rarely seen, in which it is not the
+prevailing character.
+
+“Here, then, we have, in the very beginning, the groundwork for
+something more than a mere guess. The general use which may be
+made of the table is obvious—but, in this particular cipher, we
+shall only very partially require its aid. As our predominant
+character is 8, we will commence by assuming it as the e of the
+natural alphabet. To verify the supposition, let us observe if the
+8 be seen often in couples—for e is doubled with great frequency
+in English—in such words, for example, as ‘meet,’ ‘fleet,’
+‘speed,’ ‘seen,’ ‘been,’ ‘agree,’ etc. In the present instance we
+see it doubled no less than five times, although the cryptograph is
+brief.
+
+“Let us assume 8, then, as e. Now, of all WORDS in the language,
+‘the’ is most usual; let us see, therefore, whether there are not
+repetitions of any three characters, in the same order of
+collocation, the last of them being 8. If we discover repetitions
+of such letters, so arranged, they will most probably represent the
+word ‘the.’ Upon inspection, we find no less than seven such
+arrangements, the characters being ;48. We may, therefore, assume
+that ; represents t, 4 represents h, and 8 represents e—the last
+being now well confirmed. Thus a great step has been taken.
+
+“But, having established a single word, we are enabled to establish
+a vastly important point; that is to say, several commencements and
+terminations of other words. Let us refer, for example, to the
+last instance but one, in which the combination ;48 occurs—not far
+from the end of the cipher. We know that the ; immediately ensuing
+is the commencement of a word, and, of the six characters
+succeeding this ‘the,’ we are cognizant of no less than five. Let
+us set these characters down, thus, by the letters we know them to
+represent, leaving a space for the unknown—
+
+
+t eeth.
+
+
+“Here we are enabled, at once, to discard the ‘th,’ as forming no
+portion of the word commencing with the first t; since, by
+experiment of the entire alphabet for a letter adapted to the
+vacancy, we perceive that no word can be formed of which this th
+can be a part. We are thus narrowed into
+
+
+t ee,
+
+
+and, going through the alphabet, if necessary, as before, we arrive
+at the word ‘tree,’ as the sole possible reading. We thus gain
+another letter, r, represented by (, with the words ‘the tree’ in
+juxtaposition.
+
+“Looking beyond these words, for a short distance, we again see the
+combination ;48, and employ it by way of TERMINATION to what
+immediately precedes. We have thus this arrangement:
+
+
+the tree ;4(4+?34 the,
+
+
+or, substituting the natural letters, where known, it reads thus:
+
+
+the tree thr+?3h the.
+
+
+“Now, if, in place of the unknown characters, we leave blank
+spaces, or substitute dots, we read thus:
+
+
+the tree thr...h the,
+
+
+when the word ‘through’ makes itself evident at once. But this
+discovery gives us three new letters, o, u, and g, represented by
++, ?, and 3.
+
+“Looking now, narrowly, through the cipher for combinations of
+known characters, we find, not very far from the beginning, this
+arrangement,
+
+
+83(88, or egree,
+
+
+which plainly, is the conclusion of the word ‘degree,’ and gives us
+another letter, d, represented by !.
+
+“Four letters beyond the word ‘degree,’ we perceive the combination
+
+
+;46(;88.
+
+
+“Translating the known characters, and representing the unknown by
+dots, as before, we read thus:
+
+
+th.rtee,
+
+
+an arrangement immediately suggestive of the word thirteen,’ and
+again furnishing us with two new characters, i and n, represented
+by 6 and *.
+
+“Referring, now, to the beginning of the cryptograph, we find the
+combination,
+
+
+53++!.
+
+
+“Translating as before, we obtain
+
+
+.good,
+
+
+which assures us that the first letter is A, and that the first two
+words are ‘A good.’
+
+“It is now time that we arrange our key, as far as discovered, in a
+tabular form, to avoid confusion. It will stand thus:
+
+
+5 represents a
+! „ d
+8 „ e
+3 „ g
+4 „ h
+6 „ i
+* „ n
++ „ o
+( „ r
+; „ t
+? „ u
+
+
+“We have, therefore, no less than eleven of the most important
+letters represented, and it will be unnecessary to proceed with the
+details of the solution. I have said enough to convince you that
+ciphers of this nature are readily soluble, and to give you some
+insight into the rationale of their development. But be assured
+that the specimen before us appertains to the very simplest species
+of cryptograph. It now only remains to give you the full
+translation of the characters upon the parchment, as unriddled.
+Here it is:
+
+
+“‘A good glass in the bishop’s hostel in the devil’s seat forty-one
+degrees and thirteen minutes northeast and by north main branch
+seventh limb east side shoot from the left eye of the death’s head
+a bee-line from the tree through the shot fifty feet out.’”
+
+
+“But,” said I, “the enigma seems still in as bad a condition as
+ever. How is it possible to extort a meaning from all this jargon
+about ‘devil’s seats,’ ‘death’s heads,’ and ‘bishop’s hostels’?”
+
+“I confess,” replied Legrand, “that the matter still wears a
+serious aspect, when regarded with a casual glance. My first
+endeavor was to divide the sentence into the natural division
+intended by the cryptographist.”
+
+“You mean, to punctuate it?”
+
+“Something of that kind.”
+
+“But how was it possible to effect this?”
+
+“I reflected that it had been a POINT with the writer to run his
+words together without division, so as to increase the difficulty
+of solution. Now, a not overacute man, in pursuing such an object,
+would be nearly certain to overdo the matter. When, in the course
+of his composition, he arrived at a break in his subject which
+would naturally require a pause, or a point, he would be
+exceedingly apt to run his characters, at this place, more than
+usually close together. If you will observe the MS., in the
+present instance, you will easily detect five such cases of unusual
+crowding. Acting upon this hint I made the division thus:
+
+
+“‘A good glass in the bishop’s hostel in the devil’s seat—forty-
+one degrees and thirteen minutes—northeast and by north—main
+branch seventh limb east side—shoot from the left eye of the
+death’s head—a bee-line from the tree through the shot fifty feet
+out.’”
+
+
+“Even this division,” said I, “leaves me still in the dark.”
+
+“It left me also in the dark,” replied Legrand, “for a few days;
+during which I made diligent inquiry in the neighborhood of
+Sullivan’s Island, for any building which went by name of the
+‘Bishop’s Hotel’; for, of course, I dropped the obsolete word
+‘hostel.’ Gaining no information on the subject, I was on the
+point of extending my sphere of search, and proceeding in a more
+systematic manner, when, one morning, it entered into my head,
+quite suddenly, that this ‘Bishop’s Hostel’ might have some
+reference to an old family, of the name of Bessop, which, time out
+of mind, had held possession of an ancient manor house, about four
+miles to the northward of the island. I accordingly went over to
+the plantation, and reinstituted my inquiries among the older
+negroes of the place. At length one of the most aged of the women
+said that she had heard of such a place as Bessop’s Castle, and
+thought that she could guide me to it, but that it was not a
+castle, nor a tavern, but a high rock.
+
+“I offered to pay her well for her trouble, and, after some demur,
+she consented to accompany me to the spot. We found it without
+much difficulty, when, dismissing her, I proceeded to examine the
+place. The ‘castle’ consisted of an irregular assemblage of cliffs
+and rocks—one of the latter being quite remarkable for its height
+as well as for its insulated and artificial appearance. I
+clambered to its apex, and then felt much at a loss as to what
+should be next done.
+
+“While I was busied in reflection, my eyes fell upon a narrow ledge
+in the eastern face of the rock, perhaps a yard below the summit
+upon which I stood. This ledge projected about eighteen inches,
+and was not more than a foot wide, while a niche in the cliff just
+above it gave it a rude resemblance to one of the hollow-backed
+chairs used by our ancestors. I made no doubt that here was the
+‘devil’s seat’ alluded to in the MS., and now I seemed to grasp the
+full secret of the riddle.
+
+“The ‘good glass,’ I knew, could have reference to nothing but a
+telescope; for the word ‘glass’ is rarely employed in any other
+sense by seamen. Now here, I at once saw, was a telescope to be
+used, and a definite point of view, ADMITTING NO VARIATION, from
+which to use it. Nor did I hesitate to believe that the phrases,
+‘forty-one degrees and thirteen minutes,’ and ‘northeast and by
+north,’ were intended as directions for the leveling of the glass.
+Greatly excited by these discoveries, I hurried home, procured a
+telescope, and returned to the rock.
+
+“I let myself down to the ledge, and found that it was impossible
+to retain a seat upon it except in one particular position. This
+fact confirmed my preconceived idea. I proceeded to use the glass.
+Of course, the ‘forty-one degrees and thirteen minutes’ could
+allude to nothing but elevation above the visible horizon, since
+the horizontal direction was clearly indicated by the words,
+‘northeast and by north.’ This latter direction I at once
+established by means of a pocket compass; then, pointing the glass
+as nearly at an angle of forty-one degrees of elevation as I could
+do it by guess, I moved it cautiously up or down, until my
+attention was arrested by a circular rift or opening in the foliage
+of a large tree that overtopped its fellows in the distance. In
+the center of this rift I perceived a white spot, but could not, at
+first, distinguish what it was. Adjusting the focus of the
+telescope, I again looked, and now made it out to be a human skull.
+
+“Upon this discovery I was so sanguine as to consider the enigma
+solved; for the phrase ‘main branch, seventh limb, east side,’
+could refer only to the position of the skull upon the tree, while
+‘shoot from the left eye of the death’s head’ admitted, also, of
+but one interpretation, in regard to a search for buried treasure.
+I perceived that the design was to drop a bullet from the left eye
+of the skull, and that a bee-line, or, in other words, a straight
+line, drawn from the nearest point of the trunk ‘through the shot’
+(or the spot where the bullet fell), and thence extended to a
+distance of fifty feet, would indicate a definite point—and
+beneath this point I thought it at least POSSIBLE that a deposit of
+value lay concealed.”
+
+“All this,” I said, “is exceedingly clear, and, although ingenious,
+still simple and explicit. When you left the Bishop’s Hotel, what
+then?”
+
+“Why, having carefully taken the bearings of the tree, I turned
+homeward. The instant that I left ‘the devil’s seat,’ however, the
+circular rift vanished; nor could I get a glimpse of it afterwards,
+turn as I would. What seems to me the chief ingenuity in this
+whole business, is the fact (for repeated experiment has convinced
+me it IS a fact) that the circular opening in question is visible
+from no other attainable point of view than that afforded by the
+narrow ledge upon the face of the rock.
+
+“In this expedition to the ‘Bishop’s Hotel’ I had been attended by
+Jupiter, who had, no doubt, observed, for some weeks past, the
+abstraction of my demeanor, and took especial care not to leave me
+alone. But, on the next day, getting up very early, I contrived to
+give him the slip, and went into the hills in search of the tree.
+After much toil I found it. When I came home at night my valet
+proposed to give me a flogging. With the rest of the adventure I
+believe you are as well acquainted as myself.”
+
+“I suppose,” said I, “you missed the spot, in the first attempt at
+digging, through Jupiter’s stupidity in letting the bug fall
+through the right instead of through the left eye of the skull.”
+
+“Precisely. This mistake made a difference of about two inches and
+a half in the ‘shot’—that is to say, in the position of the peg
+nearest the tree; and had the treasure been BENEATH the ‘shot,’ the
+error would have been of little moment; but ‘the shot,’ together
+with the nearest point of the tree, were merely two points for the
+establishment of a line of direction; of course the error, however
+trivial in the beginning, increased as we proceeded with the line,
+and by the time we had gone fifty feet threw us quite off the
+scent. But for my deep-seated impressions that treasure was here
+somewhere actually buried, we might have had all our labor in
+vain.”
+
+“But your grandiloquence, and your conduct in swinging the beetle—
+how excessively odd! I was sure you were mad. And why did you
+insist upon letting fall the bug, instead of a bullet, from the
+skull?”
+
+“Why, to be frank, I felt somewhat annoyed by your evident
+suspicions touching my sanity, and so resolved to punish you
+quietly, in my own way, by a little bit of sober mystification.
+For this reason I swung the beetle, and for this reason I let it
+fall from the tree. An observation of yours about its great weight
+suggested the latter idea.”
+
+“Yes, I perceive; and now there is only one point which puzzles me.
+What are we to make of the skeletons found in the hole?”
+
+“That is a question I am no more able to answer than yourself.
+There seems, however, only one plausible way of accounting for
+them—and yet it is dreadful to believe in such atrocity as my
+suggestion would imply. It is clear that Kidd—if Kidd indeed
+secreted this treasure, which I doubt not—it is clear that he must
+have had assistance in the labor. But this labor concluded, he may
+have thought it expedient to remove all participants in his secret.
+Perhaps a couple of blows with a mattock were sufficient, while his
+coadjutors were busy in the pit; perhaps it required a dozen—who
+shall tell?”
+
+
+
+
+Washington Irving
+
+
+
+
+Wolfert Webber, or Golden Dreams
+
+
+In the year of grace one thousand seven hundred and—blank—for I
+do not remember the precise date; however, it was somewhere in the
+early part of the last century,—there lived in the ancient city of
+the Manhattoes a worthy burgher, Wolfert Webber by name. He was
+descended from old Cobus Webber of the Brill[1] in Holland, one of
+the original settlers, famous for introducing the cultivation of
+cabbages, and who came over to the province during the
+protectorship of Oloffe Van Kortlandt, otherwise called “the
+Dreamer.”
+
+
+[1] The Brill is a fortified seaport of Holland, on the Meuse
+River, near Rotterdam.
+
+
+The field in which Cobus Webber first planted himself and his
+cabbages had remained ever since in the family, who continued in
+the same line of husbandry with that praiseworthy perseverance for
+which our Dutch burghers are noted. The whole family genius,
+during several generations, was devoted to the study and
+development of this one noble vegetable, and to this concentration
+of intellect may doubtless be ascribed the prodigious renown to
+which the Webber cabbages attained.
+
+The Webber dynasty continued in uninterrupted succession, and never
+did a line give more unquestionable proofs of legitimacy. The
+eldest son succeeded to the looks as well as the territory of his
+sire, and had the portraits of this line of tranquil potentates
+been taken, they would have presented a row of heads marvelously
+resembling, in shape and magnitude, the vegetables over which they
+reigned.
+
+The seat of government continued unchanged in the family mansion,—
+a Dutch-built house, with a front, or rather gable end, of yellow
+brick, tapering to a point, with the customary iron weathercock at
+the top. Everything about the building bore the air of long-
+settled ease and security. Flights of martins peopled the little
+coops nailed against its walls, and swallows built their nests
+under the eaves, and everyone knows that these house-loving birds
+bring good luck to the dwelling where they take up their abode. In
+a bright summer morning in early summer, it was delectable to hear
+their cheerful notes as they sported about in the pure, sweet air,
+chirping forth, as it were, the greatness and prosperity of the
+Webbers.
+
+Thus quietly and comfortably did this excellent family vegetate
+under the shade of a mighty buttonwood tree, which by little and
+little grew so great as entirely to overshadow their palace. The
+city gradually spread its suburbs round their domain. Houses
+sprang up to interrupt their prospects. The rural lanes in the
+vicinity began to grow into the bustle and populousness of streets;
+in short, with all the habits of rustic life they began to find
+themselves the inhabitants of a city. Still, however, they
+maintained their hereditary character and hereditary possessions,
+with all the tenacity of petty German princes in the midst of the
+empire. Wolfert was the last of the line, and succeeded to the
+patriarchal bench at the door, under the family tree, and swayed
+the scepter of his fathers,—a kind of rural potentate in the midst
+of the metropolis.
+
+To share the cares and sweets of sovereignty he had taken unto
+himself a helpmate, one of that excellent kind called “stirring
+women”; that is to say, she was one of those notable little
+housewives who are always busy where there is nothing to do. Her
+activity, however, took one particular direction,—her whole life
+seemed devoted to intense knitting; whether at home or abroad,
+walking or sitting, her needles were continually in motion, and it
+is even affirmed that by her unwearied industry she very nearly
+supplied her household with stockings throughout the year. This
+worthy couple were blessed with one daughter who was brought up
+with great tenderness and care; uncommon pains had been taken with
+her education, so that she could stitch in every variety of way,
+make all kinds of pickles and preserves, and mark her own name on a
+sampler. The influence of her taste was seen also in the family
+garden, where the ornamental began to mingle with the useful; whole
+rows of fiery marigolds and splendid hollyhocks bordered the
+cabbage beds, and gigantic sunflowers lolled their broad, jolly
+faces over the fences, seeming to ogle most affectionately the
+passers-by.
+
+Thus reigned and vegetated Wolfert Webber over his paternal acres,
+peacefully and contentedly. Not but that, like all other
+sovereigns, he had his occasional cares and vexations. The growth
+of his native city sometimes caused him annoyance. His little
+territory gradually became hemmed in by streets and houses, which
+intercepted air and sunshine. He was now and then subjected to the
+eruptions of the border population that infest the streets of a
+metropolis, who would make midnight forays into his dominions, and
+carry off captive whole platoons of his noblest subjects. Vagrant
+swine would make a descent, too, now and then, when the gate was
+left open, and lay all waste before them; and mischievous urchins
+would decapitate the illustrious sunflowers, the glory of the
+garden, as they lolled their heads so fondly over the walls. Still
+all these were petty grievances, which might now and then ruffle
+the surface of his mind, as a summer breeze will ruffle the surface
+of a mill pond, but they could not disturb the deep-seated quiet of
+his soul. He would but seize a trusty staff that stood behind the
+door, issue suddenly out, and anoint the back of the aggressor,
+whether pig or urchin, and then return within doors, marvelously
+refreshed and tranquilized.
+
+The chief cause of anxiety to honest Wolfert, however, was the
+growing prosperity of the city. The expenses of living doubled and
+trebled, but he could not double and treble the magnitude of his
+cabbages, and the number of competitors prevented the increase of
+price; thus, therefore, while everyone around him grew richer,
+Wolfert grew poorer, and he could not, for the life of him,
+perceive how the evil was to be remedied.
+
+This growing care, which increased from day to day, had its gradual
+effect upon our worthy burgher, insomuch that it at length
+implanted two or three wrinkles in his brow, things unknown before
+in the family of the Webbers, and it seemed to pinch up the corners
+of his cocked hat into an expression of anxiety totally opposite to
+the tranquil, broad-brimmed, low-crowned beavers of his illustrious
+progenitors.
+
+Perhaps even this would not have materially disturbed the serenity
+of his mind had he had only himself and his wife to care for; but
+there was his daughter gradually growing to maturity, and all the
+world knows that when daughters begin to ripen, no fruit nor flower
+requires so much looking after. I have no talent at describing
+female charms, else fain would I depict the progress of this little
+Dutch beauty: how her blue eyes grew deeper and deeper, and her
+cherry lips redder and redder, and how she ripened and ripened, and
+rounded and rounded, in the opening breath of sixteen summers,
+until, in her seventeenth spring, she seemed ready to burst out of
+her bodice, like a half-blown rosebud.
+
+Ah, well-a-day! Could I but show her as she was then, tricked out
+on a Sunday morning in the hereditary finery of the old Dutch
+clothespress, of which her mother had confided to her the key! The
+wedding dress of her grandmother, modernized for use, with sundry
+ornaments, handed down as heirlooms in the family. Her pale brown
+hair smoothed with buttermilk in flat, waving lines on each side of
+her fair forehead. The chain of yellow, virgin gold that encircled
+her neck; the little cross that just rested at the entrance of a
+soft valley of happiness, as if it would sanctify the place. The—
+but pooh! it is not for an old man like me to be prosing about
+female beauty; suffice it to say, Amy had attained her seventeenth
+year. Long since had her sampler exhibited hearts in couples
+desperately transfixed with arrows, and true lovers’ knots worked
+in deep blue silk, and it was evident she began to languish for
+some more interesting occupation than the rearing of sunflowers or
+pickling of cucumbers.
+
+At this critical period of female existence, when the heart within
+a damsel’s bosom, like its emblem, the miniature which hangs
+without, is apt to be engrossed by a single image, a new visitor
+began to make his appearance under the roof of Wolfert Webber.
+This was Dirk Waldron, the only son of a poor widow, but who could
+boast of more fathers than any lad in the province, for his mother
+had had four husbands, and this only child, so that, though born in
+her last wedlock, he might fairly claim to be the tardy fruit of a
+long course of cultivation. This son of four fathers united the
+merits and the vigor of all his sires. If he had not had a great
+family before him he seemed likely to have a great one after him,
+for you had only to look at the fresh, buxom youth to see that he
+was formed to be the founder of a mighty race.
+
+This youngster gradually became an intimate visitor of the family.
+He talked little, but he sat long. He filled the father’s pipe
+when it was empty, gathered up the mother’s knitting needle, or
+ball of worsted, when it fell to the ground, stroked the sleek coat
+of the tortoise-shell cat, and replenished the teapot for the
+daughter from the bright copper kettle that sang before the fire.
+All these quiet little offices may seem of trifling import, but
+when true love is translated into Low Dutch it is in this way that
+it eloquently expresses itself. They were not lost upon the Webber
+family. The winning youngster found marvelous favor in the eyes of
+the mother; the tortoise-shell cat, albeit the most staid and
+demure of her kind, gave indubitable signs of approbation of his
+visits; the teakettle seemed to sing out a cheering note of welcome
+at his approach; and if the sly glances of the daughter might be
+rightly read, as she sat bridling and dimpling, and sewing by her
+mother’s side, she was not a whit behind Dame Webber, or grimalkin,
+or the teakettle, in good will.
+
+Wolfert alone saw nothing of what was going on. Profoundly wrapt
+up in meditation on the growth of the city and his cabbages, he sat
+looking in the fire, and puffing his pipe in silence. One night,
+however, as the gentle Amy, according to custom, lighted her lover
+to the outer door, and he, according to custom, took his parting
+salute, the smack resounded so vigorously through the long, silent
+entry as to startle even the dull ear of Wolfert. He was slowly
+roused to a new source of anxiety. It had never entered into his
+head that this mere child, who, as it seemed, but the other day had
+been climbing about his knees and playing with dolls and baby
+houses, could all at once be thinking of lovers and matrimony. He
+rubbed his eyes, examined into the fact, and really found that
+while he had been dreaming of other matters, she had actually grown
+to be a woman, and, what was worse, had fallen in love. Here arose
+new cares for Wolfert. He was a kind father, but he was a prudent
+man. The young man was a lively, stirring lad, but then he had
+neither money nor land. Wolfert’s ideas all ran in one channel,
+and he saw no alternative in case of a marriage but to portion off
+the young couple with a corner of his cabbage garden, the whole of
+which was barely sufficient for the support of his family.
+
+Like a prudent father, therefore, he determined to nip this passion
+in the bud, and forbade the youngster the house, though sorely did
+it go against his fatherly heart, and many a silent tear did it
+cause in the bright eye of his daughter. She showed herself,
+however, a pattern of filial piety and obedience. She never pouted
+and sulked; she never flew in the face of parental authority; she
+never flew into a passion, nor fell into hysterics, as many
+romantic, novel-read young ladies would do. Not she, indeed. She
+was none such heroical, rebellious trumpery, I’ll warrant ye. On
+the contrary, she acquiesced like an obedient daughter, shut the
+street door in her lover’s face, and if ever she did grant him an
+interview, it was either out of the kitchen window or over the
+garden fence.
+
+Wolfert was deeply cogitating these matters in his mind, and his
+brow wrinkled with unusual care, as he wended his way one Saturday
+afternoon to a rural inn, about two miles from the city. It was a
+favorite resort of the Dutch part of the community, from being
+always held by a Dutch line of landlords, and retaining an air and
+relish of the good old times. It was a Dutch-built house, that had
+probably been a country seat of some opulent burgher in the early
+time of the settlement. It stood near a point of land called
+Corlear’s Hook,[1] which stretches out into the Sound, and against
+which the tide, at its flux and reflux, sets with extraordinary
+rapidity. The venerable and somewhat crazy mansion was
+distinguished from afar by a grove of elms and sycamores that
+seemed to wave a hospitable invitation, while a few weeping
+willows, with their dank, drooping foliage, resembling falling
+waters, gave an idea of coolness that rendered it an attractive
+spot during the heats of summer.
+
+
+[1] A point of land at the bend of the East River below Grand
+Street, New York City.
+
+
+Here, therefore, as I said, resorted many of the old inhabitants of
+the Manhattoes, where, while some played at shuffleboard[1] and
+quoits,[2] and ninepins, others smoked a deliberate pipe, and
+talked over public affairs.
+
+
+[1] A game played by pushing or shaking pieces of money or metal so
+as to make them reach certain marks on a board.
+
+[2] A game played by pitching a flattened, ring-shaped piece of
+iron, called a quoit, at a fixed object.
+
+
+It was on a blustering autumnal afternoon that Wolfert made his
+visit to the inn. The grove of elms and willows was stripped of
+its leaves, which whirled in rustling eddies about the fields. The
+ninepin alley was deserted, for the premature chilliness of the day
+had driven the company within doors. As it was Saturday afternoon
+the habitual club was in session, composed principally of regular
+Dutch burghers, though mingled occasionally with persons of various
+character and country, as is natural in a place of such motley
+population.
+
+Beside the fireplace, in a huge, leather-bottomed armchair, sat the
+dictator of this little world, the venerable Rem, or, as it was
+pronounced, “Ramm” Rapelye. He was a man of Walloon[1] race, and
+illustrious for the antiquity of his line, his great-grandmother
+having been the first white child born in the province. But he was
+still more illustrious for his wealth and dignity. He had long
+filled the noble office of alderman, and was a man to whom the
+governor himself took off his hat. He had maintained possession of
+the leather-bottomed chair from time immemorial, and had gradually
+waxed in bulk as he sat in his seat of government, until in the
+course of years he filled its whole magnitude. His word was
+decisive with his subjects, for he was so rich a man that he was
+never expected to support any opinion by argument. The landlord
+waited on him with peculiar officiousness,—not that he paid better
+than his neighbors, but then the coin of a rich man seems always to
+be so much more acceptable. The landlord had ever a pleasant word
+and a joke to insinuate in the ear of the august Ramm. It is true
+Ramm never laughed, and, indeed, ever maintained a mastiff-like
+gravity and even surliness of aspect; yet he now and then rewarded
+mine host with a token of approbation, which, though nothing more
+nor less than a kind of grunt, still delighted the landlord more
+than a broad laugh from a poorer man.
+
+
+[1] A people of French origin, inhabiting the frontiers between
+France and Flanders. A colony of one hundred and ten Walloons came
+to New York in 1624.
+
+
+“This will be a rough night for the money diggers,” said mine host,
+as a gust of wind bowled round the house and rattled at the
+windows.
+
+“What! are they at their works again?” said an English half-pay
+captain, with one eye, who was a very frequent attendant at the
+inn.
+
+“Aye are they,” said the landlord, “and well may they be. They’ve
+had luck of late. They say a great pot of money has been dug up in
+the fields just behind Stuyvesant’s orchard. Folks think it must
+have been buried there in old times by Peter Stuyvesant, the Dutch
+governor.”
+
+“Fudge!” said the one-eyed man of war, as he added a small portion
+of water to a bottom of brandy.
+
+“Well, you may believe it or not, as you please,” said mine host,
+somewhat nettled, “but everybody knows that the old governor buried
+a great deal of his money at the time of the Dutch troubles, when
+the English redcoats seized on the province. They say, too, the
+old gentleman walks, aye, and in the very same dress that he wears
+in the picture that hangs up in the family house.”
+
+“Fudge!” said the half-pay officer.
+
+“Fudge, if you please! But didn’t Corney Van Zandt see him at
+midnight, stalking about in the meadow with his wooden leg, and a
+drawn sword in his hand, that flashed like fire? And what can he
+be walking for but because people have been troubling the place
+where he buried his money in old times?”
+
+Here the landlord was interrupted by several guttural sounds from
+Ramm Rapelye, betokening that he was laboring with the unusual
+production of an idea. As he was too great a man to be slighted by
+a prudent publican, mine host respectfully paused until he should
+deliver himself. The corpulent frame of this mighty burgher now
+gave all the symptoms of a volcanic mountain on the point of an
+eruption. First there was a certain heaving of the abdomen, not
+unlike an earthquake; then was emitted a cloud of tobacco smoke
+from that crater, his mouth; then there was a kind of rattle in the
+throat, as if the idea were working its way up through a region of
+phlegm; then there were several disjointed members of a sentence
+thrown out, ending in a cough; at length his voice forced its way
+into a slow, but absolute tone of a man who feels the weight of his
+purse, if not of his ideas, every portion of his speech being
+marked by a testy puff of tobacco smoke.
+
+“Who talks of old Peter Stuyvesant’s walking? (puff). Have people
+no respect for persons? (puff—puff). Peter Stuyvesant knew better
+what to do with his money than to bury it (puff). I know the
+Stuyvesant family (puff), every one of them (puff); not a more
+respectable family in the province (puff)—old standards (puff)—
+warm householders (puff)—none of your upstarts (puff—puff—puff).
+Don’t talk to me of Peter Stuyvesant’s walking (puff—puff—puff—
+puff).”
+
+Here the redoubtable Ramm contracted his brow, clasped up his mouth
+till it wrinkled at each corner, and redoubled his smoking with
+such vehemence that the cloudy volumes soon wreathed round his
+head, as the smoke envelops the awful summit of Mount Aetna.
+
+A general silence followed the sudden rebuke of this very rich man.
+The subject, however, was too interesting to be readily abandoned.
+The conversation soon broke forth again from the lips of Peechy
+Prauw Van Hook, the chronicler of the club, one of those prosing,
+narrative old men who seem to be troubled with an incontinence of
+words as they grow old.
+
+Peechy could, at any time, tell as many stories in an evening as
+his hearers could digest in a month. He now resumed the
+conversation by affirming that, to his knowledge, money had, at
+different times, been digged up in various parts of the island.
+The lucky persons who had discovered them had always dreamed of
+them three times beforehand, and, what was worthy of remark, those
+treasures had never been found but by some descendant of the good
+old Dutch families, which clearly proved that they had been buried
+by Dutchmen in the olden time.
+
+“Fiddlestick with your Dutchmen!” cried the half-pay officer. “The
+Dutch had nothing to do with them. They were all buried by Kidd
+the pirate, and his crew.”
+
+Here a keynote was touched that roused the whole company. The name
+of Captain Kidd was like a talisman in those times, and was
+associated with a thousand marvelous stories.
+
+The half-pay officer took the lead, and in his narrations fathered
+upon Kidd all the plunderings and exploits of Morgan,[1]
+Blackbeard,[2] and the whole list of bloody buccaneers.
+
+
+[1] Sir Henry Morgan (1637–90), a noted Welsh buccaneer. He was
+captured and sent to England for trial, but Charles II., instead of
+punishing him, knighted him, and subsequently appointed him
+governor of Jamaica.
+
+[2] Edward Teach, one of the most cruel of the pirates, took
+command of a pirate ship in 1717, and thereafter committed all
+sorts of atrocities until he was slain by Lieutenant Maynard in
+1718. His nickname of “Blackbeard” was given him because of his
+black beard.
+
+
+The officer was a man of great weight among the peaceable members
+of the club, by reason of his warlike character and gunpowder
+tales. All his golden stories of Kidd, however, and of the booty
+he had buried, were obstinately rivaled by the tales of Peechy
+Prauw, who, rather than suffer his Dutch progenitors to be eclipsed
+by a foreign freebooter, enriched every field and shore in the
+neighborhood with the hidden wealth of Peter Stuyvesant and his
+contemporaries.
+
+Not a word of this conversation was lost upon Wolfert Webber. He
+returned pensively home, full of magnificent ideas. The soil of
+his native island seemed to be turned into gold dust, and every
+field to teem with treasure. His head almost reeled at the thought
+how often he must have heedlessly rambled over places where
+countless sums lay, scarcely covered by the turf beneath his feet.
+His mind was in an uproar with this whirl of new ideas. As he came
+in sight of the venerable mansion of his forefathers, and the
+little realm where the Webbers had so long and so contentedly
+flourished, his gorge rose at the narrowness of his destiny.
+
+“Unlucky Wolfert!” exclaimed he; “others can go to bed and dream
+themselves into whole mines of wealth; they have but to seize a
+spade in the morning, and turn up doubloons[1] like potatoes; but
+thou must dream of hardships, and rise to poverty, must dig thy
+field from year’s end to year’s end, and yet raise nothing but
+cabbages!”
+
+
+[1] Spanish gold coins, equivalent to $15.60.
+
+
+Wolfert Webber went to bed with a heavy heart, and it was long
+before the golden visions that disturbed his brain permitted him to
+sink into repose. The same visions, however, extended into his
+sleeping thoughts, and assumed a more definite form. He dreamed
+that he had discovered an immense treasure in the center of his
+garden. At every stroke of the spade he laid bare a golden ingot;
+diamond crosses sparkled out of the dust; bags of money turned up
+their bellies, corpulent with pieces-of-eight[1] or venerable
+doubloons; and chests wedged close with moidores,[2] ducats,[3] and
+pistareens,[4] yawned before his ravished eyes, and vomited forth
+their glittering contents.
+
+
+[1] Spanish coins, worth about $1 each.
+[2] Portuguese gold coins, valued at $6.50.
+[3] Coins of gold and silver, valued at $2 and $1 respectively.
+[4] Spanish silver coins, worth about $.20.
+
+
+Wolfert awoke a poorer man than ever. He had no heart to go about
+his daily concerns, which appeared so paltry and profitless, but
+sat all day long in the chimney corner, picturing to himself ingots
+and heaps of gold in the fire. The next night his dream was
+repeated. He was again in his garden digging, and laying open
+stores of hidden wealth. There was something very singular in this
+repetition. He passed another day of reverie, and though it was
+cleaning day, and the house, as usual in Dutch households,
+completely topsy-turvy, yet he sat unmoved amidst the general
+uproar.
+
+The third night he went to bed with a palpitating heart. He put on
+his red nightcap wrong side outward, for good luck. It was deep
+midnight before his anxious mind could settle itself into sleep.
+Again the golden dream was repeated, and again he saw his garden
+teeming with ingots and money bags.
+
+Wolfert rose the next morning in complete bewilderment. A dream,
+three times repeated, was never known to lie, and if so, his
+fortune was made.
+
+In his agitation he put on his waistcoat with the hind part before,
+and this was a corroboration of good luck.[1] He no longer doubted
+that a huge store of money lay buried somewhere in his cabbage
+field, coyly waiting to be sought for, and he repined at having so
+long been scratching about the surface of the soil instead of
+digging to the center.
+
+
+[1] It is an old superstition that to put on one’s clothes wrong
+side out forebodes good luck.
+
+
+He took his seat at the breakfast table, full of these
+speculations, asked his daughter to put a lump of gold into his
+tea, and on handing his wife a plate of slapjacks, begged her to
+help herself to a doubloon.
+
+His grand care now was how to secure this immense treasure without
+its being known. Instead of his working regularly in his grounds
+in the daytime, he now stole from his bed at night, and with spade
+and pickax went to work to rip up and dig about his paternal acres,
+from one end to the other. In a little time the whole garden,
+which had presented such a goodly and regular appearance, with its
+phalanx of cabbages, like a vegetable army in battle array, was
+reduced to a scene of devastation, while the relentless Wolfert,
+with nightcap on head and lantern and spade in hand, stalked
+through the slaughtered ranks, the destroying angel of his own
+vegetable world.
+
+Every morning bore testimony to the ravages of the preceding night
+in cabbages of all ages and conditions, from the tender sprout to
+the full-grown head, piteously rooted from their quiet beds like
+worthless weeds, and left to wither in the sunshine. In vain
+Wolfert’s wife remonstrated; in vain his darling daughter wept over
+the destruction of some favorite marigold. “Thou shalt have gold
+of another-guess[1] sort,” he would cry, chucking her under the
+chin; “thou shalt have a string of crooked ducats for thy wedding
+necklace, my child.” His family began really to fear that the poor
+man’s wits were diseased. He muttered in his sleep at night about
+mines of wealth, about pearls and diamonds, and bars of gold. In
+the daytime he was moody and abstracted, and walked about as if in
+a trance. Dame Webber held frequent councils with all the old
+women of the neighborhood; scarce an hour in the day but a knot of
+them might be seen wagging their white caps together round her
+door, while the poor woman made some piteous recital. The
+daughter, too, was fain to seek for more frequent consolation from
+the stolen interviews of her favored swain, Dirk Waldron. The
+delectable little Dutch songs with which she used to dulcify the
+house grew less and less frequent, and she would forget her sewing,
+and look wistfully in her father’s face as he sat pondering by the
+fireside. Wolfert caught her eye one day fixed on him thus
+anxiously, and for a moment was roused from his golden reveries.
+“Cheer up, my girl,” said he exultingly; “why dost thou droop?
+Thou shalt hold up thy head one day with the Brinckerhoffs, and the
+Schermerhorns, the Van Hornes, and the Van Dams.[2] By St.
+Nicholas, but the patroon[3] himself shall be glad to get thee for
+his son!”
+
+
+[1] A corruption of the old expression “another-gates,” or “of
+another gate,” meaning “of another way or manner”; hence, “of
+another kind.”
+
+[2] Names of rich and influential Dutch families in the old Dutch
+colony of New Amsterdam.
+
+[3] The patroons were members of the Dutch West India Company, who
+purchased land in New Netherlands of the Indians, and after
+fulfilling certain conditions imposed with a view to colonizing
+their territory, enjoyed feudal rights similar to those of the
+barons of the Middle Ages.
+
+
+Amy shook her head at his vainglorious boast, and was more than
+ever in doubt of the soundness of the good man’s intellect.
+
+In the meantime Wolfert went on digging and digging; but the field
+was extensive, and as his dream had indicated no precise spot, he
+had to dig at random. The winter set in before one tenth of the
+scene of promise had been explored.
+
+The ground became frozen hard, and the nights too cold for the
+labors of the spade.
+
+No sooner, however, did the returning warmth of spring loosen the
+soil, and the small frogs begin to pipe in the meadows, but Wolfert
+resumed his labors with renovated zeal. Still, however, the hours
+of industry were reversed.
+
+Instead of working cheerily all day, planting and setting out his
+vegetables, he remained thoughtfully idle, until the shades of
+night summoned him to his secret labors. In this way he continued
+to dig from night to night, and week to week, and month to month,
+but not a stiver[1] did he find. On the contrary, the more he
+digged the poorer he grew. The rich soil of his garden was digged
+away, and the sand and gravel from beneath was thrown to the
+surface, until the whole field presented an aspect of sandy
+barrenness.
+
+
+[1] A Dutch coin, worth about two cents; hence, anything of little
+worth.
+
+
+In the meantime, the seasons gradually rolled on. The little frogs
+which had piped in the meadows in early spring croaked as bullfrogs
+during the summer heats, and then sank into silence. The peach
+tree budded, blossomed, and bore its fruit. The swallows and
+martins came, twittered about the roof, built their nests, reared
+their young, held their congress along the eaves, and then winged
+their flight in search of another spring. The caterpillar spun its
+winding sheet, dangled in it from the great buttonwood tree before
+the house, turned into a moth, fluttered with the last sunshine of
+summer, and disappeared; and finally the leaves of the buttonwood
+tree turned yellow, then brown, then rustled one by one to the
+ground, and whirling about in little eddies of wind and dust,
+whispered that winter was at hand.
+
+Wolfert gradually woke from his dream of wealth as the year
+declined. He had reared no crop for the supply of his household
+during the sterility of winter. The season was long and severe,
+and for the first time the family was really straitened in its
+comforts. By degrees a revulsion of thought took place in
+Wolfert’s mind, common to those whose golden dreams have been
+disturbed by pinching realities. The idea gradually stole upon him
+that he should come to want. He already considered himself one of
+the most unfortunate men in the province, having lost such an
+incalculable amount of undiscovered treasure, and now, when
+thousands of pounds had eluded his search, to be perplexed for
+shillings and pence was cruel in the extreme.
+
+Haggard care gathered about his brow; he went about with a money-
+seeking air, his eyes bent downward into the dust, and carrying his
+hands in his pockets, as men are apt to do when they have nothing
+else to put into them. He could not even pass the city almshouse
+without giving it a rueful glance, as if destined to be his future
+abode.
+
+The strangeness of his conduct and of his looks occasioned much
+speculation and remark. For a long time he was suspected of being
+crazy, and then everybody pitied him; and at length it began to be
+suspected that he was poor, and then everybody avoided him.
+
+The rich old burghers of his acquaintance met him outside the door
+when he called, entertained him hospitably on the threshold,
+pressed him warmly by the hand at parting, shook their heads as he
+walked away, with the kindhearted expression of “poor Wolfert,” and
+turned a corner nimbly if by chance they saw him approaching as
+they walked the streets. Even the barber and the cobbler of the
+neighborhood, and a tattered tailor in an alley hard by, three of
+the poorest and merriest rogues in the world, eyed him with that
+abundant sympathy which usually attends a lack of means, and there
+is not a doubt but their pockets would have been at his command,
+only that they happened to be empty.
+
+Thus everybody deserted the Webber mansion, as if poverty were
+contagious, like the plague—everybody but honest Dirk Waldron, who
+still kept up his stolen visits to the daughter, and indeed seemed
+to wax more affectionate as the fortunes of his mistress were on
+the wane.
+
+Many months had elapsed since Wolfert had frequented his old
+resort, the rural inn. He was taking a long, lonely walk one
+Saturday afternoon, musing over his wants and disappointments, when
+his feet took instinctively their wonted direction, and on awaking
+out of a reverie, he found himself before the door of the inn. For
+some moments he hesitated whether to enter, but his heart yearned
+for companionship, and where can a ruined man find better
+companionship than at a tavern, where there is neither sober
+example nor sober advice to put him out of countenance?
+
+Wolfert found several of the old frequenters of the inn at their
+usual posts and seated in their usual places; but one was missing,
+the great Ramm Rapelye, who for many years had filled the leather-
+bottomed chair of state. His place was supplied by a stranger, who
+seemed, however, completely at home in the chair and the tavern.
+He was rather under size, but deep-chested, square, and muscular.
+His broad shoulders, double joints, and bow knees gave tokens of
+prodigious strength. His face was dark and weather-beaten; a deep
+scar, as if from the slash of a cutlass, had almost divided his
+nose, and made a gash in his upper lip, through which his teeth
+shone like a bulldog’s. A mop of iron-gray hair gave a grisly
+finish to this hard-favored visage. His dress was of an amphibious
+character. He wore an old hat edged with tarnished lace, and
+cocked in martial style on one side of his head; a rusty[1] blue
+military coat with brass buttons; and a wide pair of short
+petticoat trousers,—or rather breeches, for they were gathered up
+at the knees. He ordered everybody about him with an authoritative
+air, talking in a brattling[2] voice that sounded like the
+crackling of thorns under a pot, d—d the landlord and servants
+with perfect impunity, and was waited upon with greater
+obsequiousness than had ever been shown to the mighty Ramm himself.
+
+
+[1] Shabby.
+
+[2] Noisy.
+
+
+Wolfert’s curiosity was awakened to know who and what was this
+stranger who had thus usurped absolute sway in this ancient domain.
+Peechy Prauw took him aside into a remote corner of the hall, and
+there, in an under voice and with great caution, imparted to him
+all that he knew on the subject. The inn had been aroused several
+months before, on a dark, stormy night, by repeated long shouts
+that seemed like the howlings of a wolf. They came from the water
+side, and at length were distinguished to be hailing the house in
+the seafaring manner, “House ahoy!” The landlord turned out with
+his head waiter, tapster, hostler, and errand boy—that is to say,
+with his old negro Cuff. On approaching the place whence the voice
+proceeded, they found this amphibious-looking personage at the
+water’s edge, quite alone, and seated on a great oaken sea chest.
+How he came there,—whether he had been set on shore from some
+boat, or had floated to land on his chest,—nobody could tell, for
+he did not seem disposed to answer questions, and there was
+something in his looks and manners that put a stop to all
+questioning. Suffice it to say, he took possession of a corner
+room of the inn, to which his chest was removed with great
+difficulty. Here he had remained ever since, keeping about the inn
+and its vicinity. Sometimes, it is true, he disappeared for one,
+two, or three days at a time, going and returning without giving
+any notice or account of his movements. He always appeared to have
+plenty of money, though often of very strange, outlandish coinage,
+and he regularly paid his bill every evening before turning in.
+
+He had fitted up his room to his own fancy, having slung a hammock
+from the ceiling instead of a bed, and decorated the walls with
+rusty pistols and cutlasses of foreign workmanship. A greater part
+of his time was passed in this room, seated by the window, which
+commanded a wide view of the Sound, a short, old-fashioned pipe in
+his mouth, a glass of rum toddy[1] at his elbow, and a pocket
+telescope in his hand, with which he reconnoitered every boat that
+moved upon the water. Large square-rigged vessels seemed to excite
+but little attention; but the moment he descried anything with a
+shoulder-of-mutton[2] sail, or that a barge or yawl or jolly-boat
+hove in sight, up went the telescope, and he examined it with the
+most scrupulous attention.
+
+
+[1] A mixture of rum and hot water sweetened.
+
+[2] Triangular.
+
+
+All this might have passed without much notice, for in those times
+the province was so much the resort of adventurers of all
+characters and climes that any oddity in dress or behavior
+attracted but small attention. In a little while, however, this
+strange sea monster, thus strangely cast upon dry land, began to
+encroach upon the long established customs and customers of the
+place, and to interfere in a dictatorial manner in the affairs of
+the ninepin alley and the barroom, until in the end he usurped an
+absolute command over the whole inn. It was all in vain to attempt
+to withstand his authority. He was not exactly quarrelsome, but
+boisterous and peremptory, like one accustomed to tyrannize on a
+quarter-deck; and there was a dare-devil[1] air about everything he
+said and did that inspired wariness in all bystanders. Even the
+half-pay officer, so long the hero of the club, was soon silenced
+by him, and the quiet burghers stared with wonder at seeing their
+inflammable man of war so readily and quietly extinguished.
+
+
+[1] Reckless.
+
+
+And then the tales that he would tell were enough to make a
+peaceable man’s hair stand on end. There was not a sea fight, nor
+marauding nor freebooting adventure that had happened within the
+last twenty years, but he seemed perfectly versed in it. He
+delighted to talk of the exploits of the buccaneers in the West
+Indies and on the Spanish Main.[1] How his eyes would glisten as
+he described the waylaying of treasure ships; the desperate fights,
+yardarm and yardarm,[2] broadside and broadside;[3] the boarding
+and capturing huge Spanish galleons! With what chuckling relish
+would he describe the descent upon some rich Spanish colony, the
+rifling of a church, the sacking of a convent! You would have
+thought you heard some gormandizer dilating upon the roasting of a
+savory goose at Michaelmas,[4] as he described the roasting of some
+Spanish don to make him discover his treasure,—a detail given with
+a minuteness that made every rich old burgher present turn
+uncomfortably in his chair. All this would be told with infinite
+glee, as if he considered it an excellent joke, and then he would
+give such a tyrannical leer in the face of his next neighbor that
+the poor man would be fain to laugh out of sheer faint-heartedness.
+If anyone, however, pretended to contradict him in any of his
+stories, he was on fire in an instant. His very cocked hat assumed
+a momentary fierceness, and seemed to resent the contradiction.
+“How the devil should you know as well as I? I tell you it was as
+I say;” and he would at the same time let slip a broadside of
+thundering oaths[5] and tremendous sea phrases, such as had never
+been heard before within these peaceful walls.
+
+
+[1] The coast of the northern part of South America along the
+Caribbean Sea, the route formerly traversed by the Spanish treasure
+ships between the Old and New Worlds.
+
+[2] Ships are said to be yardarm and yardarm when so near as to
+touch or interlock their yards, which are the long pieces of timber
+designed to support and extend the square sails.
+
+[3] “Broadside and broadside,” i.e., with the side of one ship
+touching that of another.
+
+[4] The Feast of the Archangel Michael, a church festival
+celebrated on September 29th.
+
+[5] “Broadside of thundering oaths,” i.e., a volley of abuse.
+
+
+Indeed, the worthy burghers began to surmise that he knew more of
+those stories than mere hearsay. Day after day their conjectures
+concerning him grew more and more wild and fearful. The
+strangeness of his arrival, the strangeness of his manners, the
+mystery that surrounded him,—all made him something
+incomprehensible in their eyes. He was a kind of monster of the
+deep to them; he was a merman, he was a behemoth, he was a
+leviathan,—in short, they knew not what he was.
+
+The domineering spirit of this boisterous sea urchin at length grew
+quite intolerable. He was no respecter of persons; he contradicted
+the richest burghers without hesitation; he took possession of the
+sacred elbow chair, which time out of mind had been the seat of
+sovereignty of the illustrious Ramm Rapelye. Nay, he even went so
+far, in one of his rough, jocular moods, as to slap that mighty
+burgher on the back, drink his toddy, and wink in his face,—a
+thing scarcely to be believed. From this time Ramm Rapelye
+appeared no more at the inn. His example was followed by several
+of the most eminent customers, who were too rich to tolerate being
+bullied out of their opinions or being obliged to laugh at another
+man’s jokes. The landlord was almost in despair; but he knew not
+how to get rid of this sea monster and his sea chest, who seemed
+both to have grown like fixtures, or excrescences on his
+establishment.
+
+Such was the account whispered cautiously in Wolfert’s ear by the
+narrator, Peechy Prauw, as he held him by the button in a corner of
+the hall, casting a wary glance now and then toward the door of the
+barroom, lest he should be overheard by the terrible hero of his
+tale.
+
+Wolfert took his seat in a remote part of the room in silence,
+impressed with profound awe of this unknown, so versed in
+freebooting history. It was to him a wonderful instance of the
+revolutions of mighty empires, to find the venerable Ramm Rapelye
+thus ousted from the throne, and a rugged tarpaulin[1] dictating
+from his elbow chair, hectoring the patriarchs, and filling this
+tranquil little realm with brawl and bravado.
+
+
+[1] A kind of canvas used about a ship; hence, a sailor.
+
+
+The stranger was, on this evening, in a more than usually
+communicative mood, and was narrating a number of astounding
+stories of plunderings and burnings on the high seas. He dwelt
+upon them with peculiar relish, heightening the frightful
+particulars in proportion to their effect on his peaceful auditors.
+He gave a swaggering detail of the capture of a Spanish
+merchantman. She was lying becalmed during a long summer’s day,
+just off from the island which was one of the lurking places of the
+pirates. They had reconnoitered her with their spyglasses from the
+shore, and ascertained her character and force. At night a picked
+crew of daring fellows set off for her in a whaleboat. They
+approached with muffled oars, as she lay rocking idly with the
+undulations of the sea, and her sails flapping against the masts.
+They were close under the stern before the guard on deck was aware
+of their approach. The alarm was given; the pirates threw hand
+grenades[1] on deck, and sprang up the main chains,[2] sword in
+hand.
+
+
+[1] “Hand grenades,” i.e., small shells of iron or glass filled
+with gunpowder and thrown by hand.
+
+[2] “Main chains,” i.e., strong bars of iron bolted at the lower
+end to the side of a vessel, and secured at the upper end to the
+iron straps of the blocks by which the shrouds supporting the masts
+are extended.
+
+
+The crew flew to arms, but in great confusion; some were shot down,
+others took refuge in the tops, others were driven overboard and
+drowned, while others fought hand to hand from the main deck to the
+quarter-deck, disputing gallantly every inch of ground. There were
+three Spanish gentlemen on board, with their ladies, who made the
+most desperate resistance. They defended the companion way,[1] cut
+down several of their assailants, and fought like very devils, for
+they were maddened by the shrieks of the ladies from the cabin.
+One of the dons was old, and soon dispatched. The other two kept
+their ground vigorously, even though the captain of the pirates was
+among their assailants. Just then there was a shout of victory
+from the main deck. “The ship is ours!” cried the pirates.
+
+
+[1] The companion way is a staircase leading to the cabin of a
+ship.
+
+
+One of the dons immediately dropped his sword and surrendered; the
+other, who was a hot-headed youngster, and just married, gave the
+captain a slash in the face that laid all open. The captain just
+made out to articulate the words, “No quarter.”
+
+“And what did they do with their prisoners?” said Peechy Prauw
+eagerly.
+
+“Threw them all overboard,” was the answer. A dead pause followed
+the reply. Peechy Prauw sank quietly back, like a man who had
+unwarily stolen upon the lair of a sleeping lion. The honest
+burghers cast fearful glances at the deep scar slashed across the
+visage of the stranger, and moved their chairs a little farther
+off. The seaman, however, smoked on without moving a muscle, as
+though he either did not perceive, or did not regard, the
+unfavorable effect he had produced upon his hearers.
+
+The half-pay officer was the first to break the silence, for he was
+continually tempted to make ineffectual head against this tyrant of
+the seas, and to regain his lost consequence in the eyes of his
+ancient companions. He now tried to match the gunpowder tales of
+the stranger by others equally tremendous. Kidd, as usual, was his
+hero, concerning whom he seemed to have picked up many of the
+floating traditions of the province. The seaman had always evinced
+a settled pique against the one-eyed warrior. On this occasion he
+listened with peculiar impatience. He sat with one arm akimbo, the
+other elbow on the table, the hand holding on to the small pipe he
+was pettishly puffing, his legs crossed, drumming with one foot on
+the ground, and casting every now and then the side glance of a
+basilisk at the prosing captain. At length the latter spoke of
+Kidd’s having ascended the Hudson with some of his crew, to land
+his plunder in secrecy.
+
+“Kidd up the Hudson!” burst forth the seaman, with a tremendous
+oath; “Kidd never was up the Hudson!”
+
+“I tell you he was,” said the other. “Aye, and they say he buried
+a quantity of treasure on the little flat that runs out into the
+river, called the Devil’s Dans Kammer.”[1]
+
+
+[1] A huge, flat rock, projecting into the Hudson River above the
+Highlands.
+
+
+“The Devil’s Dans Kammer in your teeth!”[1] cried the seaman. “I
+tell you Kidd never was up the Hudson. What a plague do you know
+of Kidd and his haunts?”
+
+
+[1] “In your teeth,” a phrase to denote direct opposition or
+defiance.
+
+
+“What do I know?” echoed the half-pay officer. “Why, I was in
+London at the time of his trial; aye, and I had the pleasure of
+seeing him hanged at Execution Dock.”
+
+“Then, sir, let me tell you that you saw as pretty a fellow hanged
+as ever trod shoe leather. Aye!” putting his face nearer to that
+of the officer, “and there was many a landlubber[1] looked on that
+might much better have swung in his stead.”
+
+
+[1] A term of contempt used by seamen for those who pass their
+lives on land.
+
+
+The half-pay officer was silenced; but the indignation thus pent up
+in his bosom glowed with intense vehemence in his single eye, which
+kindled like a coal.
+
+Peechy Prauw, who never could remain silent, observed that the
+gentleman certainly was in the right. Kidd never did bury money up
+the Hudson, nor indeed in any of those parts, though many affirmed
+such to be the fact. It was Bradish[1] and others of the
+buccaneers who had buried money, some said in Turtle Bay,[2] others
+on Long Island, others in the neighborhood of Hell Gate. “Indeed,”
+added he, “I recollect an adventure of Sam, the negro fisherman,
+many years ago, which some think had something to do with the
+buccaneers. As we are all friends here, and as it will go no
+further, I’ll tell it to you.
+
+
+[1] Bradish was a pirate whose actions were blended in the popular
+mind with those of Kidd. He was boatswain of a ship which sailed
+from England in 1697, and which, like Kidd’s, bore the name of the
+Adventure. In the absence of the captain on shore, he seized the
+ship and set out on a piratical cruise. After amassing a fortune,
+he sailed for America and deposited a large amount of his wealth
+with a confederate on Long Island. He was apprehended in Rhode
+Island, sent to England, and executed.
+
+[2] A small cove in the East River two miles north of Corlear’s
+Hook.
+
+
+“Upon a dark night many years ago, as Black Sam was returning from
+fishing in Hell Gate—”
+
+Here the story was nipped in the bud by a sudden movement from the
+unknown, who, laying his iron fist on the table, knuckles downward,
+with a quiet force that indented the very boards, and looking
+grimly over his shoulder, with the grin of an angry bear,—
+“Hearkee, neighbor,” said he, with significant nodding of the head,
+“you’d better let the buccaneers and their money alone; they’re not
+for old men and old women to meddle with. They fought hard for
+their money—they gave body and soul for it; and wherever it lies
+buried, depend upon it he must have a tug with the devil who gets
+it!
+
+This sudden explosion was succeeded by a blank silence throughout
+the room. Peechy Prauw shrunk within himself, and even the one-
+eyed officer turned pale. Wolfert, who from a dark corner of the
+room had listened with intense eagerness to all this talk about
+buried treasure, looked with mingled awe and reverence at this bold
+buccaneer, for such he really suspected him to be. There was a
+chinking of gold and a sparkling of jewels in all his stories about
+the Spanish Main that gave a value to every period, and Wolfert
+would have given anything for the rummaging of the ponderous sea
+chest, which his imagination crammed full of golden chalices,
+crucifixes, and jolly round bags of doubloons.
+
+The dead stillness that had fallen upon the company was at length
+interrupted by the stranger, who pulled out a prodigious watch of
+curious and ancient workmanship, and which in Wolfert’s eyes had a
+decidedly Spanish look. On touching a spring, it struck ten
+o’clock, upon which the sailor called for his reckoning, and having
+paid it out of a handful of outlandish coin, he drank off the
+remainder of his beverage, and without taking leave of anyone,
+rolled out of the room, muttering to himself as he stamped upstairs
+to his chamber.
+
+It was some time before the company could recover from the silence
+into which they had been thrown. The very footsteps of the
+stranger, which were heard now and then as he traversed his
+chamber, inspired awe.
+
+Still the conversation in which they had been engaged was too
+interesting not to be resumed. A heavy thunder gust had gathered
+up unnoticed while they were lost in talk, and the torrents of rain
+that fell forbade all thoughts of setting off for home until the
+storm should subside. They drew nearer together, therefore, and
+entreated the worthy Peechy Prauw to continue the tale which had
+been so discourteously interrupted. He readily complied,
+whispering, however, in a tone scarcely above his breath, and
+drowned occasionally by the rolling of the thunder; and he would
+pause every now and then and listen, with evident awe, as he heard
+the heavy footsteps of the stranger pacing overhead. The following
+is the purport of his story:
+
+
+
+
+Adventure of the Black Fisherman
+
+
+Everybody knows Black Sam, the old negro fisherman, or, as he is
+commonly called, “Mud Sam,” who has fished about the Sound for the
+last half century. It is now many years since Sam, who was then as
+active a young negro as any in the province, and worked on the farm
+of Killian Suydam on Long Island, having finished his day’s work at
+an early hour, was fishing, one still summer evening, just about
+the neighborhood of Hell Gate.
+
+He was in a light skiff, and being well acquainted with the
+currents and eddies, had shifted his station, according to the
+shifting of the tide, from the Hen and Chickens to the Hog’s Back,
+from the Hog’s Back to the Pot, and from the Pot to the Frying Pan;
+but in the eagerness of his sport he did not see that the tide was
+rapidly ebbing, until the roaring of the whirlpools and eddies
+warned him of his danger, and he had some difficulty in shooting
+his skiff from among the rocks and breakers, and getting to the
+point of Blackwell’s Island.[1] Here he cast anchor for some time,
+waiting the turn of the tide to enable him to return homeward. As
+the night set in, it grew blustering and gusty. Dark clouds came
+bundling up in the west, and now and then a growl of thunder or a
+flash of lightning told that a summer storm was at hand. Sam
+pulled over, therefore, under the lee of Manhattan Island, and,
+coasting along, came to a snug nook, just under a steep, beetling
+rock, where he fastened his skiff to the root of a tree that shot
+out from a cleft, and spread its broad branches like a canopy over
+the water. The gust came scouring along, the wind threw up the
+river in white surges, the rain rattled among the leaves, the
+thunder bellowed worse than that which is now bellowing, the
+lightning seemed to lick up the surges of the stream; but Sam,
+snugly sheltered under rock and tree, lay crouching in his skiff,
+rocking upon the billows until he fell asleep.
+
+
+[1] A long, narrow island in the East River, between New York and
+Long Island City.
+
+
+When he woke all was quiet. The gust had passed away, and only now
+and then a faint gleam of lightning in the east showed which way it
+had gone. The night was dark and moonless, and from the state of
+the tide Sam concluded it was near midnight. He was on the point
+of making loose his skiff to return homeward when he saw a light
+gleaming along the water from a distance, which seemed rapidly
+approaching. As it drew near he perceived it came from a lantern
+in the bow of a boat gliding along under shadow of the land. It
+pulled up in a small cove close to where he was. A man jumped on
+shore, and searching about with the lantern, exclaimed, “This is
+the place—here’s the iron ring.” The boat was then made fast, and
+the man, returning on board, assisted his comrades in conveying
+something heavy on shore. As the light gleamed among them, Sam saw
+that they were five stout, desperate-looking fellows, in red woolen
+caps, with a leader in a three-cornered hat, and that some of them
+were armed with dirks, or long knives, and pistols. They talked
+low to one another, and occasionally in some outlandish tongue
+which he could not understand.
+
+On landing they made their way among the bushes, taking turns to
+relieve each other in lugging their burden up the rocky bank.
+Sam’s curiosity was now fully aroused, so leaving his skiff he
+clambered silently up a ridge that overlooked their path. They had
+stopped to rest for a moment, and the leader was looking about
+among the bushes with his lantern. “Have you brought the spades?”
+said one. “They are here,” replied another, who had them on his
+shoulder. “We must dig deep, where there will be no risk of
+discovery,” said a third.
+
+A cold chill ran through Sam’s veins. He fancied he saw before him
+a gang of murderers, about to bury their victim. His knees smote
+together. In his agitation he shook the branch of a tree with
+which he was supporting himself as he looked over the edge of the
+cliff.
+
+“What’s that?” cried one of the gang. “Some one stirs among the
+bushes!”
+
+The lantern was held up in the direction of the noise. One of the
+red-caps cocked a pistol, and pointed it toward the very place
+where Sam was standing. He stood motionless, breathless, expecting
+the next moment to be his last. Fortunately his dingy complexion
+was in his favor, and made no glare among the leaves.
+
+“’Tis no one,” said the man with the lantern. “What a plague! you
+would not fire off your pistol and alarm the country!”
+
+The pistol was uncocked, the burden was resumed, and the party
+slowly toiled along the bank. Sam watched them as they went, the
+light sending back fitful gleams through the dripping bushes, and
+it was not till they were fairly out of sight that he ventured to
+draw breath freely. He now thought of getting back to his boat,
+and making his escape out of the reach of such dangerous neighbors;
+but curiosity was all-powerful. He hesitated, and lingered, and
+listened. By and by he heard the strokes of spades. “They are
+digging the grave!” said he to himself, and the cold sweat started
+upon his forehead. Every stroke of a spade, as it sounded through
+the silent groves, went to his heart. It was evident there was as
+little noise made as possible; everything had an air of terrible
+mystery and secrecy. Sam had a great relish for the horrible; a
+tale of murder was a treat for him, and he was a constant attendant
+at executions. He could not resist an impulse, in spite of every
+danger, to steal nearer to the scene of mystery, and overlook the
+midnight fellows at their work. He crawled along cautiously,
+therefore, inch by inch, stepping with the utmost care among the
+dry leaves, lest their rustling should betray him. He came at
+length to where a steep rock intervened between him and the gang,
+for he saw the light of their lantern shining up against the
+branches of the trees on the other side. Sam slowly and silently
+clambered up the surface of the rock, and raising his head above
+its naked edge, beheld the villains immediately below him, and so
+near that though he dreaded discovery he dared not withdraw lest
+the least movement should be heard. In this way he remained, with
+his round black face peering above the edge of the rock, like the
+sun just emerging above the edge of the horizon, or the round-
+cheeked moon on the dial of a clock.
+
+The red-caps had nearly finished their work, the grave was filled
+up, and they were carefully replacing the turf. This done they
+scattered dry leaves over the place. “And now,” said the leader,
+“I defy the devil himself to find it out.”
+
+“The murderers!” exclaimed Sam involuntarily.
+
+The whole gang started, and looking up beheld the round black head
+of Sam just above them, his white eyes strained half out of their
+orbits, his white teeth chattering, and his whole visage shining
+with cold perspiration.
+
+“We’re discovered!” cried one.
+
+“Down with him!” cried another.
+
+Sam heard the cocking of a pistol, but did not pause for the
+report. He scrambled over rock and stone, through brush and brier,
+rolled down banks like a hedgehog, scrambled up others like a
+catamount. In every direction he heard some one or other of the
+gang hemming him in. At length he reached the rocky ridge along
+the river; one of the red-caps was hard behind him. A steep rock
+like a wall rose directly in his way; it seemed to cut off all
+retreat, when fortunately he espied the strong, cord-like branch of
+a grapevine reaching half way down it. He sprang at it with the
+force of a desperate man, seized it with both hands, and, being
+young and agile, succeeded in swinging himself to the summit of the
+cliff. Here he stood in full relief against the sky, when the red-
+cap cocked his pistol and fired. The ball whistled by Sam’s head.
+With the lucky thought of a man in an emergency, he uttered a yell,
+fell to the ground, and detached at the same time a fragment of the
+rock, which tumbled with a loud splash into the river.
+
+“I’ve done his business,” said the red-cap to one or two of his
+comrades as they arrived panting. “He’ll tell no tales, except to
+the fishes in the river.”
+
+His pursuers now turned to meet their companions. Sam, sliding
+silently down the surface of the rock, let himself quietly into his
+skiff, cast loose the fastening, and abandoned himself to the rapid
+current, which in that place runs like a mill stream, and soon
+swept him off from the neighborhood. It was not, however, until he
+had drifted a great distance that he ventured to ply his oars, when
+he made his skiff dart like an arrow through the strait of Hell
+Gate, never heeding the danger of Pot, Frying Pan, nor Hog’s Back
+itself, nor did he feel himself thoroughly secure until safely
+nestled in bed in the cockloft of the ancient farmhouse of the
+Suydams.
+
+
+Here the worthy Peechy Prauw paused to take breath, and to take a
+sip of the gossip tankard that stood at his elbow. His auditors
+remained with open mouths and outstretched necks, gaping like a
+nest of swallows for an additional mouthful.
+
+“And is that all?” exclaimed the half-pay officer.
+
+“That’s all that belongs to the story,” said Peechy Prauw.
+
+“And did Sam never find out what was buried by the red-caps?” said
+Wolfert eagerly, whose mind was haunted by nothing but ingots and
+doubloons.
+
+“Not that I know of,” said Peechy; “he had no time to spare from
+his work, and, to tell the truth, he did not like to run the risk
+of another race among the rocks. Besides, how should he recollect
+the spot where the grave had been digged? everything would look so
+different by daylight. And then, where was the use of looking for
+a dead body when there was no chance of hanging the murderers?”
+
+“Aye, but are you sure it was a dead body they buried?” said
+Wolfert.
+
+“To be sure,” cried Peechy Prauw exultingly. “Does it not haunt in
+the neighborhood to this very day?”
+
+“Haunts!” exclaimed several of the party, opening their eyes still
+wider, and edging their chairs still closer.
+
+“Aye, haunts,” repeated Peechy; “have none of you heard of Father
+Red-cap, who haunts the old burned farmhouse in the woods, on the
+border of the Sound, near Hell Gate?”
+
+“Oh, to be sure, I’ve heard tell of something of the kind, but then
+I took it for some old wives’ fable.”
+
+“Old wives’ fable or not,” said Peechy Prauw, “that farmhouse
+stands hard by the very spot. It’s been unoccupied time out of
+mind, and stands in a lonely part of the coast, but those who fish
+in the neighborhood have often heard strange noises there, and
+lights have been seen about the wood at night, and an old fellow in
+a red cap has been seen at the windows more than once, which people
+take to be the ghost of the body buried there. Once upon a time
+three soldiers took shelter in the building for the night, and
+rummaged it from top to bottom, when they found old Father Red-cap
+astride of a cider barrel in the cellar, with a jug in one hand and
+a goblet in the other. He offered them a drink out of his goblet,
+but just as one of the soldiers was putting it to his mouth—whew!—a
+flash of fire blazed through the cellar, blinded every mother’s
+son of them for several minutes, and when they recovered their
+eyesight, jug, goblet, and Red-cap had vanished, and nothing but
+the empty cider barrel remained.”
+
+Here the half-pay officer, who was growing very muzzy and sleepy,
+and nodding over his liquor, with half-extinguished eye, suddenly
+gleamed up like an expiring rush-light.
+
+“That’s all fudge!” said he, as Peechy finished his last story.
+
+“Well, I don’t vouch for the truth of it myself,” said Peechy
+Prauw, “though all the world knows that there’s something strange
+about that house and grounds; but as to the story of Mud Sam, I
+believe it just as well as if it had happened to myself.”
+
+
+The deep interest taken in this conversation by the company had
+made them unconscious of the uproar abroad among the elements, when
+suddenly they were electrified by a tremendous clap of thunder. A
+lumbering crash followed instantaneously, shaking the building to
+its very foundation. All started from their seats, imagining it
+the shock of an earthquake, or that old Father Red-cap was coming
+among them in all his terrors. They listened for a moment, but
+only heard the rain pelting against the windows and the wind
+howling among the trees. The explosion was soon explained by the
+apparition of an old negro’s bald head thrust in at the door, his
+white goggle eyes contrasting with his jetty poll, which was wet
+with rain, and shone like a bottle. In a jargon but half
+intelligible he announced that the kitchen chimney had been struck
+with lightning.
+
+A sullen pause of the storm, which now rose and sank in gusts,
+produced a momentary stillness. In this interval the report of a
+musket was heard, and a long shout, almost like a yell, resounded
+from the shores. Everyone crowded to the window; another musket
+shot was heard, and another long shout, mingled wildly with a
+rising blast of wind. It seemed as if the cry came up from the
+bosom of the waters, for though incessant flashes of lightning
+spread a light about the shore, no one was to be seen.
+
+Suddenly the window of the room overhead was opened, and a loud
+halloo uttered by the mysterious stranger. Several hailings passed
+from one party to the other, but in a language which none of the
+company in the barroom could understand, and presently they heard
+the window closed, and a great noise overhead, as if all the
+furniture were pulled and hauled about the room. The negro servant
+was summoned, and shortly afterwards was seen assisting the veteran
+to lug the ponderous sea chest downstairs.
+
+The landlord was in amazement. “What, you are not going on the
+water in such a storm?”
+
+“Storm!” said the other scornfully, “do you call such a sputter of
+weather a storm?”
+
+“You’ll get drenched to the skin; you’ll catch your death!” said
+Peechy Prauw affectionately.
+
+“Thunder and lightning!” exclaimed the veteran; “don’t preach about
+weather to a man that has cruised in whirlwinds and tornadoes.”
+
+The obsequious Peechy was again struck dumb. The voice from the
+water was heard once more in a tone of impatience; the bystanders
+stared with redoubled awe at this man of storms, who seemed to have
+come up out of the deep, and to be summoned back to it again. As,
+with the assistance of the negro, he slowly bore his ponderous sea
+chest toward the shore, they eyed it with a superstitious feeling,
+half doubting whether he were not really about to embark upon it
+and launch forth upon the wild waves. They followed him at a
+distance with a lantern.
+
+“Dowse[1] the light!” roared the hoarse voice from the water. “No
+one wants light here!”
+
+
+[1] Extinguish.
+
+
+“Thunder and lightning!” exclaimed the veteran, turning short upon
+them; “back to the house with you!”
+
+Wolfert and his companions shrank back in dismay. Still their
+curiosity would not allow them entirely to withdraw. A long sheet
+of lightning now flickered across the waves, and discovered a boat,
+filled with men, just under a rocky point, rising and sinking with
+the heaving surges, and swashing the waters at every heave. It was
+with difficulty held to the rocks by a boat hook, for the current
+rushed furiously round the point. The veteran hoisted one end of
+the lumbering sea chest on the gunwale of the boat, and seized the
+handle at the other end to lift it in, when the motion propelled
+the boat from the shore, the chest slipped off from the gunwale,
+and, sinking into the waves, pulled the veteran headlong after it.
+A loud shriek was uttered by all on shore, and a volley of
+execrations by those on board, but boat and man were hurried away
+by the rushing swiftness of the tide. A pitchy darkness succeeded.
+Wolfert Webber, indeed, fancied that he distinguished a cry for
+help, and that he beheld the drowning man beckoning for assistance;
+but when the lightning again gleamed along the water all was void;
+neither man nor boat was to be seen,—nothing but the dashing and
+weltering of the waves as they hurried past.
+
+The company returned to the tavern to await the subsiding of the
+storm. They resumed their seats and gazed on each other with
+dismay. The whole transaction had not occupied five minutes, and
+not a dozen words had been spoken. When they looked at the oaken
+chair they could scarcely realize the fact that the strange being
+who had so lately tenanted it, full of life and Herculean vigor,
+should already be a corpse. There was the very glass he had just
+drunk from; there lay the ashes from the pipe which he had smoked,
+as it were, with his last breath. As the worthy burghers pondered
+on these things, they felt a terrible conviction of the uncertainty
+of existence, and each felt as if the ground on which he stood was
+rendered less stable by his awful example.
+
+As, however, the most of the company were possessed of that
+valuable philosophy which enables a man to bear up with fortitude
+against the misfortunes of his neighbors, they soon managed to
+console themselves for the tragic end of the veteran. The landlord
+was particularly happy that the poor dear man had paid his
+reckoning before he went, and made a kind of farewell speech on the
+occasion.
+
+“He came,” said he, “in a storm, and he went in a storm; he came in
+the night, and he went in the night; he came nobody knows whence,
+and he has gone nobody knows where. For aught I know he has gone
+to sea once more on his chest, and may land to bother some people
+on the other side of the world; though it’s a thousand pities,”
+added he, “if he has gone to Davy Jones’s[1] locker, that he had
+not left his own locker[2] behind him.”
+
+
+[1] Davy Jones is the spirit of the sea, or the sea devil, and Davy
+Jones’s locker is the bottom of the ocean; hence, “gone to Davy
+Jones’s locker” signifies “dead and buried in the sea.”
+
+[2] Chest.
+
+
+“His locker! St. Nicholas preserve us!” cried Peechy Prauw. “I’d
+not have had that sea chest in the house for any money; I’ll
+warrant he’d come racketing after it at nights, and making a
+haunted house of the inn. And as to his going to sea in his chest,
+I recollect what happened to Skipper Onderdonk’s ship on his voyage
+from Amsterdam.
+
+“The boatswain died during a storm, so they wrapped him up in a
+sheet, and put him in his own sea chest, and threw him overboard;
+but they neglected, in their hurry-skurry, to say prayers over him,
+and the storm raged and roared louder than ever, and they saw the
+dead man seated in his chest, with his shroud for a sail, coming
+hard after the ship, and the sea breaking before him in great
+sprays like fire; and there they kept scudding day after day and
+night after night, expecting every moment to go to wreck; and every
+night they saw the dead boatswain in his sea chest trying to get up
+with them, and they heard his whistle above the blasts of wind, and
+he seemed to send great seas, mountain high, after them that would
+have swamped the ship if they had not put up the deadlights. And
+so it went on till they lost sight of him in the fogs off
+Newfoundland, and supposed he had veered ship and stood for Dead
+Man’s Isle.[1] So much for burying a man at sea without saying
+prayers over him.”
+
+
+[1] Probably Deadman’s Point, a small island near Deadman’s Bay,
+off the eastern coast of Newfoundland.
+
+
+The thunder gust which had hitherto detained the company was now at
+an end. The cuckoo clock in the hall told midnight; everyone
+pressed to depart, for seldom was such a late hour of the night
+trespassed on by these quiet burghers. As they sallied forth they
+found the heavens once more serene. The storm which had lately
+obscured them had rolled away, and lay piled up in fleecy masses on
+the horizon, lighted up by the bright crescent of the moon, which
+looked like a little silver lamp hung up in a palace of clouds.
+
+The dismal occurrence of the night, and the dismal narrations they
+had made, had left a superstitious feeling in every mind. They
+cast a fearful glance at the spot where the buccaneer had
+disappeared, almost expecting to see him sailing on his chest in
+the cool moonshine. The trembling rays glittered along the waters,
+but all was placid, and the current dimpled over the spot where he
+had gone down. The party huddled together in a little crowd as
+they repaired homeward, particularly when they passed a lonely
+field where a man had been murdered, and even the sexton, who had
+to complete his journey alone, though accustomed, one would think,
+to ghosts and goblins, went a long way round rather than pass by
+his own churchyard.
+
+Wolfert Webber had now carried home a fresh stock of stories and
+notions to ruminate upon. These accounts of pots of money and
+Spanish treasures, buried here and there and everywhere about the
+rocks and bays of these wild shores, made him almost dizzy.
+“Blessed St. Nicholas!” ejaculated he, half aloud, “is it not
+possible to come upon one of these golden hoards, and to make
+oneself rich in a twinkling? How hard that I must go on, delving
+and delving, day in and day out, merely to make a morsel of bread,
+when one lucky stroke of a spade might enable me to ride in my
+carriage for the rest of my life!”
+
+As he turned over in his thoughts all that had been told of the
+singular adventure of the negro fisherman, his imagination gave a
+totally different complexion[1] to the tale. He saw in the gang of
+red-caps nothing but a crew of pirates burying their spoils, and
+his cupidity was once more awakened by the possibility of at length
+getting on the traces of some of this lurking wealth. Indeed, his
+infected fancy tinged everything with gold. He felt like the
+greedy inhabitant of Bagdad when his eyes had been greased with the
+magic ointment of the dervish, that gave him to see all the
+treasures of the earth.[2] Caskets of buried jewels, chests of
+ingots, and barrels of outlandish coins seemed to court him from
+their concealments, and supplicate him to relieve them from their
+untimely graves.
+
+
+[1] Aspect.
+
+[2] See Story of the Blind Man, Baba Abdalla, in Arabian Nights’
+Entertainment. An inhabitant of Bagdad, Asiatic Turkey, meets with
+a dervish, or Turkish monk, who presents him with a vast treasure
+and with a box of magic ointment, which, applied to the left eye,
+enables one to see the treasures in the bosom of the earth, but on
+touching the right eye, causes blindness. Having applied it to the
+left eye with the result predicted, he uses it on his right eye, in
+the hope that still greater treasures may be revealed, and
+immediately becomes blind.
+
+
+On making private inquiries about the grounds said to be haunted by
+Feather Red-cap, he was more and more confirmed in his surmise. He
+learned that the place had several times been visited by
+experienced money diggers who had heard Black Sam’s story, though
+none of them had met with success. On the contrary, they had
+always been dogged with ill luck of some kind or other, in
+consequence, as Wolfert concluded, of not going to work at the
+proper time and with the proper ceremonials. The last attempt had
+been made by Cobus Quackenbos, who dug for a whole night, and met
+with incredible difficulty, for as fast as he threw one shovelful
+of earth out of the hole, two were thrown in by invisible hands.
+He succeeded so far, however, as to uncover an iron chest, when
+there was a terrible roaring, ramping, and raging of uncouth
+figures about the hole, and at length a shower of blows, dealt by
+invisible cudgels, fairly belabored him off of the forbidden
+ground. This Cobus Quackenbos had declared on his deathbed, so
+that there could not be any doubt of it. He was a man that had
+devoted many years of his life to money digging, and it was thought
+would have ultimately succeeded had he not died recently of a brain
+fever in the almshouse.
+
+Wolfert Webber was now in a worry of trepidation and impatience,
+fearful lest some rival adventurer should get a scent of the buried
+gold. He determined privately to seek out the black fisherman, and
+get him to serve as guide to the place where he had witnessed the
+mysterious scene of interment. Sam was easily found, for he was
+one of those old habitual beings that live about a neighborhood
+until they wear themselves a place in the public mind, and become,
+in a manner, public characters. There was not an unlucky urchin
+about town that did not know Sam the fisherman, and think that he
+had a right to play his tricks upon the old negro. Sam had led an
+amphibious life for more than half a century, about the shores of
+the bay and the fishing grounds of the Sound. He passed the
+greater part of his time on and in the water, particularly about
+Hell Gate, and might have been taken, in bad weather, for one of
+the hobgoblins that used to haunt that strait. There would he be
+seen, at all times and in all weathers, sometimes in his skiff,
+anchored among the eddies, or prowling like a shark about some
+wreck, where the fish are supposed to be most abundant; sometimes
+seated on a rock from hour to hour, looking, in the mist and
+drizzle, like a solitary heron watching for its prey. He was well
+acquainted with every hole and corner of the Sound, from the
+Wallabout[1] to Hell Gate, and from Hell Gate unto the Devil’s
+Stepping-Stones; and it was even affirmed that he knew all the fish
+in the river by their Christian names.
+
+
+[1] A bay of the East River, on which the Brooklyn Navy Yard is
+situated.
+
+
+Wolfert found him at his cabin, which was not much larger than a
+tolerable dog house. It was rudely constructed of fragments of
+wrecks and driftwood, and built on the rocky shore at the foot of
+the old fort, just about what at present forms the point of the
+Battery.[1] A “very ancient and fishlike smell”[2] pervaded the
+place. Oars, paddles, and fishing rods were leaning against the
+wall of the fort, a net was spread on the sand to dry, a skiff was
+drawn up on the beach, and at the door of his cabin was Mud Sam
+himself, indulging in the true negro luxury of sleeping in the
+sunshine.
+
+
+[1] The southern extremity of New York City.
+
+[2] See Shakespeare’s The Tempest, act ii., sc. 2.
+
+
+Many years had passed away since the time of Sam’s youthful
+adventure, and the snows of many a winter had grizzled the knotty
+wool upon his head. He perfectly recollected the circumstances,
+however, for he had often been called upon to relate them, though
+in his version of the story he differed in many points from Peechy
+Prauw, as is not infrequently the case with authentic historians.
+As to the subsequent researches of money diggers, Sam knew nothing
+about them; they were matters quite out of his line; neither did
+the cautious Wolfert care to disturb his thoughts on that point.
+His only wish was to secure the old fisherman as a pilot to the
+spot, and this was readily effected. The long time that had
+intervened since his nocturnal adventure had effaced all Sam’s awe
+of the place, and the promise of a trifling reward roused him at
+once from his sleep and his sunshine.
+
+The tide was adverse to making the expedition by water, and Wolfert
+was too impatient to get to the land of promise to wait for its
+turning; they set off, therefore, by land. A walk of four or five
+miles brought them to the edge of a wood, which at that time
+covered the greater part of the eastern side of the island. It was
+just beyond the pleasant region of Bloomen-dael.[1] Here they
+struck into a long lane, straggling among trees and bushes very
+much overgrown with weeds and mullein stalks, as if but seldom
+used, and so completely overshadowed as to enjoy but a kind of
+twilight. Wild vines entangled the trees and flaunted in their
+faces; brambles and briers caught their clothes as they passed; the
+garter snake glided across their path; the spotted toad hopped and
+waddled before them; and the restless catbird mewed at them from
+every thicket. Had Wolfert Webber been deeply read in romantic
+legend he might have fancied himself entering upon forbidden,
+enchanted ground, or that these were some of the guardians set to
+keep watch upon buried treasure. As it was, the loneliness of the
+place, and the wild stories connected with it, had their effect
+upon his mind.
+
+
+[1] At the time this story was written Bloomen-dael (Flowery
+Valley) was a village four miles from New York. It is now that
+part of New York known as Bloomingdale, on the west side, between
+about Seventieth and One Hundredth Streets.
+
+
+On reaching the lower end of the lane they found themselves near
+the shore of the Sound, in a kind of amphitheater surrounded by
+forest trees. The area had once been a grass plot, but was now
+shagged with briers and rank weeds. At one end, and just on the
+river bank, was a ruined building, little better than a heap of
+rubbish, with a stack of chimneys rising like a solitary tower out
+of the center. The current of the Sound rushed along just below
+it, with wildly grown trees drooping their branches into its waves.
+
+Wolfert had not a doubt that this was the haunted house of Father
+Red-cap, and called to mind the story of Peechy Prauw. The evening
+was approaching, and the light, falling dubiously among the woody
+places, gave a melancholy tone to the scene well calculated to
+foster any lurking feeling of awe or superstition. The night hawk,
+wheeling about in the highest regions of the air, emitted his
+peevish, boding cry. The woodpecker gave a lonely tap now and then
+on some hollow tree, and the firebird[1] streamed by them with his
+deep red plumage.
+
+
+[1] Orchard oriole.
+
+
+They now came to an inclosure that had once been a garden. It
+extended along the foot of a rocky ridge, but was little better
+than a wilderness of weeds, with here and there a matted rosebush,
+or a peach or plum tree, grown wild and ragged, and covered with
+moss. At the lower end of the garden they passed a kind of vault
+in the side of a bank, facing the water. It had the look of a root
+house.[1] The door, though decayed, was still strong, and appeared
+to have been recently patched up. Wolfert pushed it open. It gave
+a harsh grating upon its hinges, and striking against something
+like a box, a rattling sound ensued, and a skull rolled on the
+floor. Wolfert drew back shuddering, but was reassured on being
+informed by the negro that this was a family vault, belonging to
+one of the old Dutch families that owned this estate, an assertion
+corroborated by the sight of coffins of various sizes piled within.
+Sam had been familiar with all these scenes when a boy, and now
+knew that he could not be far from the place of which they were in
+quest.
+
+
+[1] “Root house,” i.e., a house for storing up potatoes, turnips,
+or other roots for the winter feed of cattle.
+
+
+They now made their way to the water’s edge, scrambling along
+ledges of rocks that overhung the waves, and obliged often to hold
+by shrubs and grapevines to avoid slipping into the deep and
+hurried stream. At length they came to a small cove, or rather
+indent of the shore. It was protected by steep rocks, and
+overshadowed by a thick copse of oaks and chestnuts, so as to be
+sheltered and almost concealed. The beach shelved gradually within
+the cove, but, the current swept deep and black and rapid along its
+jutting points. The negro paused, raised his remnant of a hat, and
+scratched his grizzled poll for a moment, as he regarded this nook;
+then suddenly clapping his hands, he stepped exultingly forward,
+and pointed to a large iron ring, stapled firmly in the rock, just
+where a broad shelf of stone furnished a commodious landing place.
+It was the very spot where the red-caps had landed. Years had
+changed the more perishable features of the scene; but rock and
+iron yield slowly to the influence of time. On looking more
+closely Wolfert remarked three crosses cut in the rock just above
+the ring, which had no doubt some mysterious signification. Old
+Sam now readily recognized the overhanging rock under which his
+skiff had been sheltered during the thunder gust. To follow up the
+course which the midnight gang had taken, however, was a harder
+task. His mind had been so much taken up on that eventful occasion
+by the persons of the drama as to pay but little attention to the
+scenes, and these places looked so different by night and day.
+After wandering about for some time, however, they came to an
+opening among the trees which Sam thought resembled the place.
+There was a ledge of rock of moderate height, like a wall, on one
+side, which he thought might be the very ridge whence he had
+overlooked the diggers. Wolfert examined it narrowly, and at
+length discovered three crosses similar to those on the above ring,
+cut deeply into the face of the rock, but nearly obliterated by
+moss that had grown over them. His heart leaped with joy, for he
+doubted not they were the private marks of the buccaneers. All now
+that remained was to ascertain the precise spot where the treasure
+lay buried, for otherwise he might dig at random in the
+neighborhood of the crosses, without coming upon the spoils, and he
+had already had enough of such profitless labor. Here, however,
+the old negro was perfectly at a loss, and indeed perplexed him by
+a variety of opinions, for his recollections were all confused.
+Sometimes he declared it must have been at the foot of a mulberry
+tree hard by; then beside a great white stone; then under a small
+green knoll, a short distance from the ledge of rocks, until at
+length Wolfert became as bewildered as himself.
+
+The shadows of evening were now spreading themselves over the
+woods, and rock and tree began to mingle together. It was
+evidently too late to attempt anything further at present, and,
+indeed, Wolfert had come unprovided with implements to prosecute
+his researches. Satisfied, therefore, with having ascertained the
+place, he took note of all its landmarks, that he might recognize
+it again, and set out on his return homeward, resolved to prosecute
+this golden enterprise without delay.
+
+The leading anxiety which had hitherto absorbed every feeling being
+now in some measure appeased, fancy began to wander, and to conjure
+up a thousand shapes and chimeras as he returned through this
+haunted region. Pirates hanging in chains seemed to swing from
+every tree, and he almost expected to see some Spanish don, with
+his throat cut from ear to ear, rising slowly out of the ground,
+and shaking the ghost of a money bag.
+
+Their way back lay through the desolate garden, and Wolfert’s
+nerves had arrived at so sensitive a state that the flitting of a
+bird, the rustling of a leaf, or the falling of a nut was enough to
+startle him. As they entered the confines of the garden, they
+caught sight of a figure at a distance advancing slowly up one of
+the walks, and bending under the weight of a burden. They paused
+and regarded him attentively. He wore what appeared to be a woolen
+cap, and, still more alarming, of a most sanguinary red.
+
+The figure moved slowly on, ascended the bank, and stopped at the
+very door of the sepulchral vault. Just before entering it he
+looked around. What was the affright of Wolfert when he recognized
+the grisly visage of the drowned buccaneer! He uttered an
+ejaculation of horror. The figure slowly raised his iron fist and
+shook it with a terrible menace. Wolfert did not pause to see any
+more, but hurried off as fast as his legs could carry him, nor was
+Sam slow in following at his heels, having all his ancient terrors
+revived. Away, then, did they scramble through bush and brake,
+horribly frightened at every bramble that tugged at their skirts,
+nor did they pause to breathe until they had blundered their way
+through this perilous wood, and fairly reached the highroad to the
+city.
+
+Several days elapsed before Wolfert could summon courage enough to
+prosecute the enterprise, so much had he been dismayed by the
+apparition, whether living or dead, of the grisly buccaneer. In
+the meantime, what a conflict of mind did he suffer! He neglected
+all his concerns, was moody and restless all day, lost his
+appetite, wandered in his thoughts and words, and committed a
+thousand blunders. His rest was broken, and when he fell asleep
+the nightmare, in shape of a huge money bag, sat squatted upon his
+breast. He babbled about incalculable sums, fancied himself
+engaged in money digging, threw the bedclothes right and left, in
+the idea that he was shoveling away the dirt, groped under the bed
+in quest of the treasure, and lugged forth, as he supposed, an
+inestimable pot of gold.
+
+Dame Webber and her daughter were in despair at what they conceived
+a returning touch of insanity. There are two family oracles, one
+or other of which Dutch housewives consult in all cases of great
+doubt and perplexity,—the dominie and the doctor. In the present
+instance they repaired to the doctor. There was at that time a
+little dark, moldy man of medicine, famous among the old wives of
+the Manhattoes for his skill, not only in the healing art, but in
+all matters of strange and mysterious nature. His name was Dr.
+Knipperhausen, but he was more commonly known by the appellation of
+the “High German Doctor.”[1] To him did the poor women repair for
+counsel and assistance touching the mental vagaries of Wolfert
+Webber.
+
+
+[1] The same, no doubt, of whom mention is made in the history of
+Dolph Heyliger.
+
+
+They found the doctor seated in his little study, clad in his dark
+camlet[1] robe of knowledge, with his black velvet cap, after the
+manner of Boerhaave,[2] Van Helmont,[3] and other medical sages, a
+pair of green spectacles set in black horn upon his clubbed nose,
+and poring over a German folio that reflected back the darkness of
+his physiognomy. The doctor listened to their statement of the
+symptoms of Wolfert’s malady with profound attention, but when they
+came to mention his raving about buried money the little man
+pricked up his ears. Alas, poor women! they little knew the aid
+they had called in.
+
+
+[1] A fabric made of goat’s hair and silk, or wool and cotton.
+
+[2] Hermann Boerhaave (1668–1738), a celebrated Dutch physician and
+philosopher.
+
+[3] Jan Baptista Van Helmont (1577–1644), a celebrated Flemish
+physician and chemist.
+
+
+Dr. Knipperhausen had been half his life engaged in seeking the
+short cuts to fortune, in quest of which so many a long lifetime is
+wasted. He had passed some years of his youth among the Harz[1]
+mountains of Germany, and had derived much valuable instruction
+from the miners touching the mode of seeking treasure buried in the
+earth. He had prosecuted his studies, also, under a traveling sage
+who united the mysteries of medicine with magic and legerdemain.
+His mind, therefore, had become stored with all kinds of mystic
+lore; he had dabbled a little in astrology, alchemy, divination;[2]
+knew how to detect stolen money, and to tell where springs of water
+lay hidden; in a word, by the dark nature of his knowledge he had
+acquired the name of the “High German Doctor,” which is pretty
+nearly equivalent to that of necromancer. The doctor had often
+heard rumors of treasure being buried in various parts of the
+island, and had long been anxious to get on the traces of it. No
+sooner were Wolfert’s waking and sleeping vagaries confided to him
+than he beheld in them the confirmed symptoms of a case of money
+digging, and lost no time in probing it to the bottom. Wolfert had
+long been sorely oppressed in mind by the golden secret, and as a
+family physician is a kind of father confessor, he was glad of any
+opportunity of unburdening himself. So far from curing, the doctor
+caught the malady from his patient. The circumstances unfolded to
+him awakened all his cupidity; he had not a doubt of money being
+buried somewhere in the neighborhood of the mysterious crosses, and
+offered to join Wolfert in the search. He informed him that much
+secrecy and caution must be observed in enterprises of the kind;
+that money is only to be dug for at night, with certain forms and
+ceremonies and burning of drugs, the repeating of mystic words,
+and, above all, that the seekers must first be provided with a
+divining rod,[3] which had the wonderful property of pointing to
+the very spot on the surface of the earth under which treasure lay
+hidden. As the doctor had given much of his mind to these matters
+he charged himself with all the necessary preparations, and, as the
+quarter of the moon was propitious, he undertook to have the
+divining rod ready by a certain night.
+
+
+[1] A mountain chain in northwestern Germany, between the Elbe and
+the Weser.
+
+[2] Astrology, alchemy, and divination were three imaginary arts.
+The first pretended to judge of the influence of the stars on human
+affairs, and to foretell events by their positions and aspects; the
+second aimed to transmute the baser metals into gold, and to find a
+universal remedy for diseases; while the third dealt with the
+discovery of secret or future events by preternatural means.
+
+[3] A divining rod is a rod used by those who pretend to discover
+water or metals underground. It is commonly made of witch hazel,
+with forked branches.
+
+
+Wolfert’s heart leaped with joy at having met with so learned and
+able a coadjutor. Everything went on secretly but swimmingly. The
+doctor had many consultations with his patient, and the good women
+of the household lauded the comforting effect of his visits. In
+the meantime the wonderful divining rod, that great key to nature’s
+secrets, was duly prepared. The doctor had thumbed over all his
+books of knowledge for the occasion, and the black fisherman was
+engaged to take them in his skiff to the scene of enterprise, to
+work with spade and pickax in unearthing the treasure, and to
+freight his bark with the weighty spoils they were certain of
+finding.
+
+At length the appointed night arrived for this perilous
+undertaking. Before Wolfert left his home he counseled his wife
+and daughter to go to bed, and feel no alarm if he should not
+return during the night. Like reasonable women, on being told not
+to feel alarm they fell immediately into a panic. They saw at once
+by his manner that something unusual was in agitation; all their
+fears about the unsettled state of his mind were revived with
+tenfold force; they hung about him, entreating him not to expose
+himself to the night air, but all in vain. When once Wolfert was
+mounted on his hobby,[1] it was no easy manner to get him out of
+the saddle. It was a clear, starlight night when he issued out of
+the portal of the Webber palace. He wore a large flapped hat, tied
+under the chin with a handkerchief of his daughter’s, to secure him
+from the night damp, while Dame Webber threw her long red cloak
+about his shoulders, and fastened it round his neck.
+
+
+[1] Hobby, or hobbyhorse, a favorite theme of thought; hence, “to
+mount a hobby” is to follow a favorite pursuit.
+
+
+The doctor had been no less carefully armed and accoutered by his
+housekeeper, the vigilant Frau Ilsy, and sallied forth in his
+camlet robe by way of surcoat,[1] his black velvet cap under his
+cocked hat, a thick clasped book under his arm, a basket of drugs
+and dried herbs in one hand, and in the other the miraculous rod of
+divination.
+
+
+[1] Overcoat.
+
+
+The great church clock struck ten as Wolfert and the doctor passed
+by the churchyard, and the watchman bawled in hoarse voice a long
+and doleful “All’s well!” A deep sleep had already fallen upon
+this primitive little burgh; nothing disturbed this awful silence
+excepting now and then the bark of some profligate, night-walking
+dog, or the serenade of some romantic cat. It is true Wolfert
+fancied more than once that he heard the sound of a stealthy
+footfall at a distance behind them; but it might have been merely
+the echo of their own steps along the quiet streets. He thought
+also at one time that he saw a tall figure skulking after them,
+stopping when they stopped and moving on as they proceeded; but the
+dim and uncertain lamplight threw such vague gleams and shadows
+that this might all have been mere fancy.
+
+They found the old fisherman waiting for them, smoking his pipe in
+the stern of the skiff, which was moored just in front of his
+little cabin. A pickax and spade were lying in the bottom of the
+boat, with a dark lantern, and a stone bottle of good Dutch
+courage,[1] in which honest Sam no doubt put even more faith than
+Dr. Knipperhausen in his drugs.
+
+
+[1] Dutch courage is courage that results from indulgence in Dutch
+gin or Hollands; here applied to the gin itself.
+
+
+Thus, then, did these three worthies embark in their cockleshell of
+a skiff upon this nocturnal expedition, with a wisdom and valor
+equaled only by the three wise men of Gotham,[1] who adventured to
+sea in a bowl. The tide was rising and running rapidly up the
+Sound. The current bore them along, almost without the aid of an
+oar. The profile of the town lay all in shadow. Here and there a
+light feebly glimmered from some sick chamber, or from the cabin
+window of some vessel at anchor in the stream. Not a cloud
+obscured the deep, starry firmament, the lights of which wavered on
+the surface of the placid river, and a shooting meteor, streaking
+its pale course in the very direction they were taking, was
+interpreted by the doctor into a most propitious omen.
+
+
+ [1] “Three wise men of Gotham,
+ They went to sea in a bowl—
+ And if the bowl had been stronger,
+ My tale had been longer.”
+ Mother Goose Melody.
+
+
+[1] Gotham was a village proverbial for the blundering simplicity of
+its inhabitants. At first the name referred to an English village.
+Irving applied it to New York City.
+
+
+In a little while they glided by the point of Corlear’s Hook, with
+the rural inn which had been the scene of such night adventures.
+The family had retired to rest, and the house was dark and still.
+Wolfert felt a chill pass over him as they passed the point where
+the buccaneer had disappeared. He pointed it out to Dr.
+Knipperhausen. While regarding it they thought they saw a boat
+actually lurking at the very place; but the shore cast such a
+shadow over the border of the water that they could discern nothing
+distinctly. They had not proceeded far when they heard the low
+sounds of distant oars, as if cautiously pulled. Sam plied his
+oars with redoubled vigor, and knowing all the eddies and currents
+of the stream, soon left their followers, if such they were, far
+astern. In a little while they stretched across Turtle Bay and
+Kip’s Bay,[1] then shrouded themselves in the deep shadows of the
+Manhattan shore, and glided swiftly along, secure from observation.
+At length the negro shot his skiff into a little cove, darkly
+embowered by trees, and made it fast to the well-known iron ring.
+They now landed, and lighting the lantern gathered their various
+implements and proceeded slowly through the bushes. Every sound
+startled them, even that of their own footsteps among the dry
+leaves, and the hooting of a screech owl, from the shattered
+chimney of the neighboring ruin, made their blood run cold.
+
+
+[1] A small bay in the East River below Corlear’s Hook.
+
+
+In spite of all Wolfert’s caution in taking note of the landmarks,
+it was some time before they could find the open place among the
+trees, where the treasure was supposed to be buried. At length
+they came to the ledge of rock, and on examining its surface by the
+aid of the lantern, Wolfert recognized the three mystic crosses.
+Their hearts beat quick, for the momentous trial was at hand that
+was to determine their hopes.
+
+The lantern was now held by Wolfert Webber, while the doctor
+produced the divining rod. It was a forked twig, one end of which
+was grasped firmly in each hand, while the center, forming the
+stem, pointed perpendicularly upward. The doctor moved his wand
+about, within a certain distance of the earth, from place to place,
+but for some time without any effect, while Wolfert kept the light
+of the lantern turned full upon it, and watched it with the most
+breathless interest. At length the rod began slowly to turn. The
+doctor grasped it with greater earnestness, his hands trembling
+with the agitation of his mind. The wand continued to turn
+gradually, until at length the stem had reversed its position, and
+pointed perpendicularly downward, and remained pointing to one spot
+as fixedly as the needle to the pole.
+
+“This is the spot!” said the doctor, in an almost inaudible tone.
+
+Wolfert’s heart was in his throat.
+
+“Shall I dig?” said the negro, grasping the spade.
+
+“Pots tausend,[1] no!” replied the little doctor hastily. He now
+ordered his companions to keep close by him, and to maintain the
+most inflexible silence; that certain precautions must be taken and
+ceremonies used to prevent the evil spirits which kept about buried
+treasure from doing them any harm. He then drew a circle about the
+place, enough to include the whole party. He next gathered dry
+twigs and leaves and made a fire, upon which he threw certain drugs
+and dried herbs which he had brought in his basket. A thick smoke
+rose, diffusing a potent odor savoring marvelously of brimstone and
+asafetida, which, however grateful it might be to the olfactory
+nerves of spirits, nearly strangled poor Wolfert, and produced a
+fit of coughing and wheezing that made the whole grove resound.
+Dr. Knipperhausen then unclasped the volume which he had brought
+under his arm, which was printed in red and black characters in
+German text. While Wolfert held the lantern, the doctor, by the
+aid of his spectacles, read off several forms of conjuration in
+Latin and German. He then ordered Sam to seize the pickax and
+proceed to work. The close-bound soil gave obstinate signs of not
+having been disturbed for many a year. After having picked his way
+through the surface, Sam came to a bed of sand and gravel, which he
+threw briskly to right and left with the spade.
+
+
+[1] A German exclamation of anger, equivalent to the English
+“zounds!”
+
+
+“Hark!” said Wolfert, who fancied he heard a trampling among the
+dry leaves and a rustling through the bushes. Sam paused for a
+moment, and they listened. No footstep was near. The bat flitted
+by them in silence; a bird, roused from its roost by the light
+which glared up among the trees, flew circling about the flame. In
+the profound stillness of the woodland they could distinguish the
+current rippling along the rocky shore, and the distant murmuring
+and roaring of Hell Gate.
+
+The negro continued his labors, and had already digged a
+considerable hole. The doctor stood on the edge, reading formulae
+every now and then from his black-letter volume, or throwing more
+drugs and herbs upon the fire, while Wolfert bent anxiously over
+the pit, watching every stroke of the spade. Anyone witnessing the
+scene thus lighted up by fire, lantern, and the reflection of
+Wolfert’s red mantle, might have mistaken the little doctor for
+some foul magician, busied in his incantations, and the grizzly-
+headed negro for some swart goblin obedient to his commands.
+
+At length the spade of the fisherman struck upon something that
+sounded hollow. The sound vibrated to Wolfert’s heart. He struck
+his spade again.
+
+“’Tis a chest,” said Sam.
+
+“Full of gold, I’ll warrant it!” cried Wolfert, clasping his hands
+with rapture.
+
+Scarcely had he uttered the words when a sound from above caught
+his ear. He cast up his eyes, and lo! by the expiring light of the
+fire he beheld, just over the disk of the rock, what appeared to be
+the grim visage of the drowned buccaneer, grinning hideously down
+upon him.
+
+Wolfert gave a loud cry and let fall the lantern. His panic
+communicated itself to his companions. The negro leaped out of the
+hole, the doctor dropped his book and basket, and began to pray in
+German. All was horror and confusion. The fire was scattered
+about, the lantern extinguished. In their hurry-scurry[1] they ran
+against and confounded one another. They fancied a legion of
+hobgoblins let loose upon them, and that they saw, by the fitful
+gleams of the scattered embers, strange figures, in red caps,
+gibbering and ramping around them. The doctor ran one way, the
+negro another, and Wolfert made for the water side. As he plunged
+struggling onward through brush and brake, he heard the tread of
+some one in pursuit. He scrambled frantically forward. The
+footsteps gained upon him. He felt himself grasped by his cloak,
+when suddenly his pursuer was attacked in turn; a fierce fight and
+struggle ensued, a pistol was discharged that lit up rock and bush
+for a second, and showed two figures grappling together; all was
+then darker than ever. The contest continued, the combatants
+clinched each other, and panted and groaned, and rolled among the
+rocks. There was snarling and growling as of a cur, mingled with
+curses, in which Wolfert fancied he could recognize the voice of
+the buccaneer. He would fain have fled, but he was on the brink of
+a precipice, and could go no farther.
+
+
+[1] A swift, disorderly movement.
+
+
+Again the parties were on their feet, again there was a tugging and
+struggling, as if strength alone could decide the combat, until one
+was precipitated from the brow of the cliff, and sent headlong into
+the deep stream that whirled below. Wolfert heard the plunge, and
+a kind of strangling, bubbling murmur, but the darkness of the
+night hid everything from him, and the swiftness of the current
+swept everything instantly out of hearing. One of the combatants
+was disposed of, but whether friend or foe Wolfert could not tell,
+nor whether they might not both be foes. He heard the survivor
+approach, and his terror revived. He saw, where the profile of the
+rocks rose against the horizon, a human form advancing. He could
+not be mistaken; it must be the buccaneer. Whither should he fly?—a
+precipice was on one side, a murderer on the other. The enemy
+approached—he was close at hand. Wolfert attempted to let himself
+down the face of the cliff. His cloak caught in a thorn that grew
+on the edge. He was jerked from off his feet, and held dangling in
+the air, half choked by the string with which his careful wife had
+fastened the garment around his neck. Wolfert thought his last
+moment was arrived; already had he committed his soul to St.
+Nicholas, when the string broke, and he tumbled down the bank,
+bumping from rock to rock and bush to bush, and leaving the red
+cloak fluttering like a bloody banner in the air.
+
+It was a long while before Wolfert came to himself. When he opened
+his eyes, the ruddy streaks of morning were already shooting up the
+sky. He found himself grievously battered, and lying in the bottom
+of a boat. He attempted to sit up, but was too sore and stiff to
+move. A voice requested him in a friendly accents to lie still.
+He turned his eyes toward the speaker; it was Dirk Waldron. He had
+dogged the party, at the earnest request of Dame Webber and her
+daughter, who, with the laudable curiosity of their sex, had pried
+into the secret consultations of Wolfert and the doctor. Dirk had
+been completely distanced in following the light skiff of the
+fisherman, and had just come in time to rescue the poor money
+digger from his pursuer.
+
+Thus ended this perilous enterprise. The doctor and Black Sam
+severally found their way back to the Manhattoes, each having some
+dreadful tale of peril to relate. As to poor Wolfert, instead of
+returning in triumph, laden with bags of gold, he was borne home on
+a shutter, followed by a rabble-rout[1] of curious urchins. His
+wife and daughter saw the dismal pageant from a distance, and
+alarmed the neighborhood with their cries; they thought the poor
+man had suddenly settled the great debt of nature in one of his
+wayward moods. Finding him, however, still living, they had him
+speedily to bed, and a jury of old matrons of the neighborhood
+assembled to determine how he should be doctored. The whole town
+was in a buzz with the story of the money diggers. Many repaired
+to the scene of the previous night’s adventures; but though they
+found the very place of the digging, they discovered nothing that
+compensated them for their trouble. Some say they found the
+fragments of an oaken chest, and an iron pot lid, which savored
+strongly of hidden money, and that in the old family vault there
+were traces of bales and boxes; but this is all very dubious.
+
+
+[1] A noisy throng.
+
+
+In fact, the secret of all this story has never to this day been
+discovered. Whether any treasure were ever actually buried at that
+place; whether, if so, it were carried off at night by those who
+had buried it; or whether it still remains there under the
+guardianship of gnomes and spirits until it shall be properly
+sought for, is all matter of conjecture. For my part, I incline to
+the latter opinion, and make no doubt that great sums lie buried,
+both there and in other parts of this island and its neighborhood,
+ever since the times of the buccaneers and the Dutch colonists; and
+I would earnestly recommend the search after them to such of my
+fellow citizens as are not engaged in any other speculations.
+
+There were many conjectures formed, also, as to who and what was
+the strange man of the seas, who had domineered over the little
+fraternity at Corlear’s Hook for a time, disappeared so strangely,
+and reappeared so fearfully. Some supposed him a smuggler
+stationed at that place to assist his comrades in landing their
+goods among the rocky coves of the island. Others, that he was one
+of the ancient comrades of Kidd or Bradish, returned to convey away
+treasures formerly hidden in the vicinity. The only circumstance
+that throws anything like a vague light on this mysterious matter
+is a report which prevailed of a strange, foreign-built shallop,
+with much the look of a picaroon,[1] having been seen hovering
+about the Sound for several days without landing or reporting
+herself, though boats were seen going to and from her at night; and
+that she was seen standing out of the mouth of the harbor, in the
+gray of the dawn, after the catastrophe of the money diggers.
+
+
+[1] A piratical vessel.
+
+
+I must not omit to mention another report, also, which I confess is
+rather apocryphal, of the buccaneer who is supposed to have been
+drowned, being seen before daybreak, with a lantern in his hand,
+seated astride of his great sea chest, and sailing through Hell
+Gate, which just then began to roar and bellow with redoubled fury.
+
+While all the gossip world was thus filled with talk and rumor,
+poor Wolfert lay sick and sorrowfully in his bed, bruised in body
+and sorely beaten down in mind. His wife and daughter did all they
+could to bind up his wounds, both corporal and spiritual. The good
+old dame never stirred from his bedside, where she sat knitting
+from morning till night, while his daughter busied herself about
+him with the fondest care. Nor did they lack assistance from
+abroad. Whatever may be said of the desertion of friends in
+distress, they had no complaint of the kind to make. Not an old
+wife of the neighborhood but abandoned her work to crowd to the
+mansion of Wolfert Webber, to inquire after his health and the
+particulars of his story. Not one came, moreover, without her
+little pipkin of pennyroyal, sage, balm, or other herb tea,
+delighted at an opportunity of signalizing her kindness and her
+doctorship. What drenchings did not the poor Wolfert undergo, and
+all in vain! It was a moving sight to behold him wasting away day
+by day, growing thinner and thinner and ghastlier and ghastlier,
+and staring with rueful visage from under an old patchwork
+counterpane, upon the jury of matrons kindly assembled to sigh and
+groan and look unhappy around him.
+
+Dirk Waldron was the only being that seemed to shed a ray of
+sunshine into this house of mourning. He came in with cheery look
+and manly spirit, and tried to reanimate the expiring heart of the
+poor money digger, but it was all in vain. Wolfert was completely
+done over.[1] If anything was wanting to complete his despair, it
+was a notice, served upon him in the midst of his distress, that
+the corporation was about to run a new street through the very
+center of his cabbage garden. He now saw nothing before him but
+poverty and ruin; his last reliance, the garden of his forefathers,
+was to be laid waste, and what then was to become of his poor wife
+and child?
+
+
+[1] Exhausted.
+
+
+His eyes filled with tears as they followed the dutiful Amy out of
+the room one morning. Dirk Waldron was seated beside him; Wolfert
+grasped his hand, pointed after his daughter, and for the first
+time since his illness broke the silence he had maintained.
+
+“I am going!” said he, shaking his head feebly, “and when I am
+gone, my poor daughter—”
+
+“Leave her to me, father!” said Dirk manfully; “I’ll take care of
+her!”
+
+Wolfert looked up in the face of the cheery, strapping youngster,
+and saw there was none better able to take care of a woman.
+
+“Enough,” said he, “she is yours! And now fetch me a lawyer—let
+me make my will and die.”
+
+The lawyer was brought,—a dapper, bustling, round-headed little
+man, Roorback (or Rollebuck, as it was pronounced) by name. At the
+sight of him the women broke into loud lamentations, for they
+looked upon the signing of a will as the signing of a death
+warrant. Wolfert made a feeble motion for them to be silent. Poor
+Amy buried her face and her grief in the bed curtain. Dame Webber
+resumed her knitting to hide her distress, which betrayed itself,
+however, in a pellucid tear, which trickled silently down, and hung
+at the end of her peaked nose; while the cat, the only unconcerned
+member of the family, played with the good dame’s ball of worsted
+as it rolled about the floor.
+
+Wolfert lay on his back, his nightcap drawn over his forehead, his
+eyes closed, his whole visage the picture of death. He begged the
+lawyer to be brief, for he felt his end approaching, and that he
+had no time to lose. The lawyer nibbed[1] his pen, spread out his
+paper, and prepared to write.
+
+
+[1] In Irving’s time, quills were made into pens by pointing or
+“nibbing” their ends.
+
+
+“I give and bequeath,” said Wolfert faintly, “my small farm—”
+
+“What! all?” exclaimed the lawyer.
+
+Wolfert half opened his eyes and looked upon the lawyer.
+
+“Yes, all,” said he.
+
+“What! all that great patch of land with cabbages and sunflowers,
+which the corporation is just going to run a main street through?”
+
+“The same,” said Wolfert, with a heavy sigh, and sinking back upon
+his pillow.
+
+“I wish him joy that inherits it!” said the little lawyer,
+chuckling and rubbing his hands involuntarily.
+
+“What do you mean?” said Wolfert, again opening his eyes.
+
+“That he’ll be one of the richest men in the place,” cried little
+Rollebuck.
+
+The expiring Wolfert seemed to step back from the threshold of
+existence; his eyes again lighted up; he raised himself in his bed,
+shoved back his red worsted nightcap, and stared broadly at the
+lawyer.
+
+“You don’t say so!” exclaimed he.
+
+“Faith but I do!” rejoined the other. “Why, when that great field
+and that huge meadow come to be laid out in streets and cut up into
+snug building lots,—why, whoever owns it need not pull off his hat
+to the patroon!”
+
+“Say you so?” cried Wolfert, half thrusting one leg out of bed;
+“why, then, I think I’ll not make my will yet.”
+
+To the surprise of everybody the dying man actually recovered. The
+vital spark, which had glimmered faintly in the socket, received
+fresh fuel from the oil of gladness which the little lawyer poured
+into his soul. It once more burned up into a flame.
+
+Give physic to the heart, ye who would revive the body of a spirit-
+broken man! In a few days Wolfert left his room; in a few days
+more his table was covered with deeds, plans of streets and
+building lots. Little Rollebuck was constantly with him, his right
+hand man and adviser, and instead of making his will assisted in
+the more agreeable task of making his fortune. In fact Wolfert
+Webber was one of those worthy Dutch burghers of the Manhattoes
+whose fortunes have been made, in a manner, in spite of themselves;
+who have tenaciously held on to their hereditary acres, raising
+turnips and cabbages about the skirts of the city, hardly able to
+make both ends meet, until the corporation has cruelly driven
+streets through their abodes, and they have suddenly awakened out
+of their lethargy, and, to their astonishment, found themselves
+rich men.
+
+Before many months had elapsed a great, bustling street passed
+through the very center of the Webber garden, just where Wolfert
+had dreamed of finding a treasure. His golden dream was
+accomplished; he did, indeed, find an unlooked-for source of
+wealth, for, when his paternal lands were distributed into building
+lots and rented out to safe tenants, instead of producing a paltry
+crop of cabbages they returned him an abundant crop of rent,
+insomuch that on quarter day it was a goodly sight to see his
+tenants knocking at the door from morning till night, each with a
+little round-bellied bag of money, a golden produce of the soil.
+
+The ancient mansion of his forefathers was still kept up, but,
+instead of being a little yellow-fronted Dutch house in a garden,
+it now stood boldly in the midst of a street, the grand home of the
+neighborhood; for Wolfert enlarged it with a wing on each side, and
+a cupola or tea room on top, where he might climb up and smoke his
+pipe in hot weather, and in the course of time the whole mansion
+was overrun by the chubby-faced progeny of Amy Webber and Dirk
+Waldron.
+
+As Wolfert waxed old and rich and corpulent he also set up a great
+gingerbread-colored carriage, drawn by a pair of black Flanders
+mares with tails that swept the ground; and to commemorate the
+origin of his greatness he had for his crest a full-blown cabbage
+painted on the panels, with the pithy motto, ALLES KOPF, that is to
+say, ALL HEAD, meaning thereby that he had risen by sheer head
+work.
+
+To fill the measure of his greatness, in the fullness of time the
+renowned Ramm Rapelye slept with his fathers, and Wolfert Webber
+succeeded to the leather-bottomed armchair in the inn parlor at
+Corlear’s Hook; where he long reigned, greatly honored and
+respected, insomuch that he was never known to tell a story without
+its being believed, nor to utter a joke without its being laughed
+at.
+
+
+
+
+Introduction to “Wieland’s Madness,” from “Wieland, or The
+Transformation.”
+
+
+ From Virtue’s blissful paths away
+ The double-tongued are sure to stray;
+ Good is a forth-right journey still.
+ And mazy paths but lead to ill.
+
+
+“WIELAND” is the first American novel. It appeared in 1798; its
+author was soon recognized as the earliest American novelist; and
+he remained the greatest, until Fenimore Cooper brought forth his
+Leather-stocking Tales, a quarter of a century later.
+
+Although modern sophistication easily points out flaws in Charles
+Brockden Brown’s story-structure, and reproves him for
+improbability, morbidness, and a style often too elevated, yet his
+work lives. His downright originality is worthy of Cooper himself,
+and his weird imaginations and horribly sustained scenes of terror
+have been surpassed by few writers save Edgar Allan Poe.
+
+
+
+
+Charles Brockden Brown
+
+
+
+
+FIRST PART
+
+
+I
+
+
+
+
+Wieland’s Madness
+
+
+[As the story opens, the narratress, Clara Wieland, is entering
+upon the happy realization of her love for Henry Pleyel, closest
+friend of her brother “Wieland.”
+
+Their woodland home, Mettingen, on the banks of the then remote
+Schuylkill, is the abode of music, letters and thorough culture.
+The peace of high thinking and simple outdoor life hovers over
+all.]
+
+
+One sunny afternoon I was standing in the door of my house, when I
+marked a person passing close to the edge of the bank that was in
+front. His pace was a careless and lingering one, and had none of
+that gracefulness and ease which distinguish a person with certain
+advantages of education from a clown. His gait was rustic and
+awkward. His form was ungainly and disproportioned. Shoulders
+broad and square, breast sunken, his head drooping, his body of
+uniform breadth, supported by long and lank legs, were the
+ingredients of his frame. His garb was not ill adapted to such a
+figure. A slouched hat, tarnished by the weather, a coat of thick
+gray cloth, cut and wrought, as it seemed, by a country tailor,
+blue worsted stockings, and shoes fastened by thongs and deeply
+discolored by dust, which brush had never disturbed, constituted
+his dress.
+
+There was nothing remarkable in these appearances: they were
+frequently to be met with on the road and in the harvest-field. I
+cannot tell why I gazed upon them, on this occasion, with more than
+ordinary attention, unless it were that such figures were seldom
+seen by me except on the road or field. This lawn was only
+traversed by men whose views were directed to the pleasures of the
+walk or the grandeur of the scenery.
+
+He passed slowly along, frequently pausing, as if to examine the
+prospect more deliberately, but never turning his eye toward the
+house, so as to allow me a view of his countenance. Presently he
+entered a copse at a small distance, and disappeared. My eye
+followed him while he remained in sight. If his image remained for
+any duration in my fancy after his departure, it was because no
+other object occurred sufficient to expel it.
+
+I continued in the same spot for half an hour, vaguely, and by
+fits, contemplating the image of this wanderer, and drawing from
+outward appearances those inferences, with respect to the
+intellectual history of this person, which experience affords us.
+I reflected on the alliance which commonly subsists between
+ignorance and the practice of agriculture, and indulged myself in
+airy speculations as to the influence of progressive knowledge in
+dissolving this alliance and embodying the dreams of the poets. I
+asked why the plow and the hoe might not become the trade of every
+human being, and how this trade might be made conducive to, or at
+least consistent with, the acquisition of wisdom and eloquence.
+
+Weary with these reflections, I returned to the kitchen to perform
+some household office. I had usually but one servant, and she was
+a girl about my own age. I was busy near the chimney, and she was
+employed near the door of the apartment, when some one knocked.
+The door was opened by her, and she was immediately addressed with,
+“Prythee, good girl, canst thou supply a thirsty man with a glass
+of buttermilk?” She answered that there was none in the house.
+“Aye, but there is some in the dairy yonder. Thou knowest as well
+as I, though Hermes never taught thee, that, though every dairy be
+a house, every house is not a dairy.” To this speech, though she
+understood only a part of it, she replied by repeating her
+assurances that she had none to give. “Well, then,” rejoined the
+stranger, “for charity’s sweet sake, hand me forth a cup of cold
+water.” The girl said she would go to the spring and fetch it.
+“Nay, give me the cup, and suffer me to help myself. Neither
+manacled nor lame, I should merit burial in the maw of carrion
+crows if I laid this task upon thee.” She gave him the cup, and he
+turned to go to the spring.
+
+I listened to this dialogue in silence. The words uttered by the
+person without affected me as somewhat singular; but what chiefly
+rendered them remarkable was the tone that accompanied them. It
+was wholly new. My brother’s voice and Pleyel’s were musical and
+energetic. I had fondly imagined that, in this respect, they were
+surpassed by none. Now my mistake was detected. I cannot pretend
+to communicate the impression that was made upon me by these
+accents, or to depict the degree in which force and sweetness were
+blended in them. They were articulated with a distinctness that
+was unexampled in my experience. But this was not all. The voice
+was not only mellifluent and clear, but the emphasis was so just,
+and the modulation so impassioned, that it seemed as if a heart of
+stone could not fail of being moved by it. It imparted to me an
+emotion altogether involuntary and uncontrollable. When he uttered
+the words, “for charity’s sweet sake,” I dropped the cloth that I
+held in my hand; my heart overflowed with sympathy and my eyes with
+unbidden tears.
+
+This description will appear to you trifling or incredible. The
+importance of these circumstances will be manifested in the sequel.
+The manner in which I was affected on this occasion was, to my own
+apprehension, a subject of astonishment. The tones were indeed
+such as I never heard before; but that they should in an instant,
+as it were, dissolve me in tears, will not easily be believed by
+others, and can scarcely be comprehended by myself.
+
+It will be readily supposed that I was somewhat inquisitive as to
+the person and demeanor of our visitant. After a moment’s pause, I
+stepped to the door and looked after him. Judge my surprise when I
+beheld the selfsame figure that had appeared a half-hour before
+upon the bank. My fancy had conjured up a very different image. A
+form and attitude and garb were instantly created worthy to
+accompany such elocution; but this person was, in all visible
+respects, the reverse of this phantom. Strange as it may seem, I
+could not speedily reconcile myself to this disappointment.
+Instead of returning to my employment, I threw myself in a chair
+that was placed opposite the door, and sunk into a fit of musing.
+
+My attention was in a few minutes recalled by the stranger, who
+returned with the empty cup in his hand. I had not thought of the
+circumstance, or should certainly have chosen a different seat. He
+no sooner showed himself, than a confused sense of impropriety,
+added to the suddenness of the interview, for which, not having
+foreseen it, I had made no preparation, threw me into a state of
+the most painful embarrassment. He brought with him a placid brow;
+but no sooner had he cast his eyes upon me than his face was as
+glowingly suffused as my own. He placed the cup upon the bench,
+stammered out thanks, and retired.
+
+It was some time before I could recover my wonted composure. I had
+snatched a view of the stranger’s countenance. The impression that
+it made was vivid and indelible. His cheeks were pallid and lank,
+his eyes sunken, his forehead overshadowed by coarse straggling
+hairs, his teeth large and irregular, though sound and brilliantly
+white, and his chin discolored by a tetter. His skin was of coarse
+grain and sallow hue. Every feature was wide of beauty, and the
+outline of his face reminded you of an inverted cone.
+
+And yet his forehead, so far as shaggy locks would allow it to be
+seen, his eyes lustrously black, and possessing, in the midst of
+haggardness, a radiance inexpressibly serene and potent, and
+something in the rest of his features which it would be in vain to
+describe, but which served to betoken a mind of the highest order,
+were essential ingredients in the portrait. This, in the effects
+which immediately flowed from it, I count among the most
+extraordinary incidents of my life. This face, seen for a moment,
+continued for hours to occupy my fancy, to the exclusion of almost
+every other image. I had proposed to spend the evening with my
+brother; but I could not resist the inclination of forming a sketch
+upon paper of this memorable visage. Whether my hand was aided by
+any peculiar inspiration, or I was deceived by my own fond
+conceptions, this portrait, though hastily executed, appeared
+unexceptionable to my own taste.
+
+I placed it at all distances and in all lights; my eyes were
+riveted upon it. Half the night passed away in wakefulness and in
+contemplation of this picture. So flexible, and yet so stubborn,
+is the human mind! So obedient to impulses the most transient and
+brief, and yet so unalterably observant of the direction which is
+given to it! How little did I then foresee the termination of that
+chain of which this may be regarded as the first link!
+
+Next day arose in darkness and storm. Torrents of rain fell during
+the whole day, attended with incessant thunder, which reverberated
+in stunning echoes from the opposite declivity. The inclemency of
+the air would not allow me to walk out. I had, indeed, no
+inclination to leave my apartment. I betook myself to the
+contemplation of this portrait, whose attractions time had rather
+enhanced than diminished. I laid aside my usual occupations, and,
+seating myself at a window, consumed the day in alternately looking
+out upon the storm and gazing at the picture which lay upon a table
+before me. You will perhaps deem this conduct somewhat singular,
+and ascribe it to certain peculiarities of temper. I am not aware
+of any such peculiarities. I can account for my devotion to this
+image no otherwise than by supposing that its properties were rare
+and prodigious. Perhaps you will suspect that such were the first
+inroads of a passion incident to every female heart, and which
+frequently gains a footing by means even more slight and more
+improbable than these. I shall not controvert the reasonableness
+of the suspicion, but leave you at liberty to draw from my
+narrative what conclusions you please.
+
+Night at length returned, and the storm ceased. The air was once
+more clear and calm, and bore an affecting contrast to that uproar
+of the elements by which it had been preceded. I spent the
+darksome hours, as I spent the day, contemplative and seated at the
+window. Why was my mind absorbed in thoughts ominous and dreary?
+Why did my bosom heave with sighs and my eyes overflow with tears?
+Was the tempest that had just passed a signal of the ruin which
+impended over me? My soul fondly dwelt upon the images of my
+brother and his children; yet they only increased the mournfulness
+of my contemplations. The smiles of the charming babes were as
+bland as formerly. The same dignity sat on the brow of their
+father, and yet I thought of them with anguish. Something
+whispered that the happiness we at present enjoyed was set on
+mutable foundations. Death must happen to all. Whether our
+felicity was to be subverted by it to-morrow, or whether it was
+ordained that we should lay down our heads full of years and of
+honor, was a question that no human being could solve. At other
+times these ideas seldom intruded. I either forbore to reflect
+upon the destiny that is reserved for all men, or the reflection
+was mixed up with images that disrobed it of terror; but now the
+uncertainty of life occurred to me without any of its usual and
+alleviating accompaniments. I said to myself, We must die. Sooner
+or later, we must disappear forever from the face of the earth.
+Whatever be the links that hold us to life, they must be broken.
+This scene of existence is, in all its parts, calamitous. The
+greater number is oppressed with immediate evils, and those the
+tide of whose fortunes is full, how small is their portion of
+enjoyment, since they know that it will terminate!
+
+For some time I indulged myself, without reluctance, in these
+gloomy thoughts; but at length the delection which they produced
+became insupportably painful. I endeavored to dissipate it with
+music. I had all my grandfather’s melody as well as poetry by
+rote. I now lighted by chance on a ballad which commemorated the
+fate of a German cavalier who fell at the siege of Nice under
+Godfrey of Bouillon. My choice was unfortunate; for the scenes of
+violence and carnage which were here wildly but forcibly portrayed
+only suggested to my thoughts a new topic in the horrors of war.
+
+I sought refuge, but ineffectually, in sleep. My mind was thronged
+by vivid but confused images, and no effort that I made was
+sufficient to drive them away. In this situation I heard the
+clock, which hung in the room, give the signal for twelve. It was
+the same instrument which formerly hung in my father’s chamber, and
+which, on account of its being his workmanship, was regarded by
+everyone of our family with veneration. It had fallen to me in the
+division of his property, and was placed in this asylum. The sound
+awakened a series of reflections respecting his death. I was not
+allowed to pursue them; for scarcely had the vibrations ceased,
+when my attention was attracted by a whisper, which, at first,
+appeared to proceed from lips that were laid close to my ear.
+
+No wonder that a circumstance like this startled me. In the first
+impulse of my terror, I uttered a slight scream and shrunk to the
+opposite side of the bed. In a moment, however, I recovered from
+my trepidation. I was habitually indifferent to all the causes of
+fear by which the majority are afflicted. I entertained no
+apprehension of either ghosts or robbers. Our security had never
+been molested by either, and I made use of no means to prevent or
+counterwork their machinations. My tranquillity on this occasion
+was quickly retrieved. The whisper evidently proceeded from one
+who was posted at my bedside. The first idea that suggested itself
+was that it was uttered by the girl who lived with me as a servant.
+Perhaps somewhat had alarmed her, or she was sick, and had come to
+request my assistance. By whispering in my ear she intended to
+rouse without alarming me.
+
+Full of this persuasion, I called, “Judith, is it you? What do you
+want? Is there anything the matter with you?” No answer was
+returned. I repeated my inquiry, but equally in vain. Cloudy as
+was the atmosphere, and curtained as my bed was, nothing was
+visible. I withdrew the curtain, and, leaning my head on my elbow,
+I listened with the deepest attention to catch some new sound.
+Meanwhile, I ran over in my thoughts every circumstance that could
+assist my conjectures.
+
+My habitation was a wooden edifice, consisting of two stories. In
+each story were two rooms, separated by an entry, or middle
+passage, with which they communicated by opposite doors. The
+passage on the lower story had doors at the two ends, and a
+staircase. Windows answered to the doors on the upper story.
+Annexed to this, on the eastern side, were wings, divided in like
+manner into an upper and lower room; one of them comprised a
+kitchen, and chamber above it for the servant, and communicated on
+both stories with the parlor adjoining it below and the chamber
+adjoining it above. The opposite wing is of smaller dimensions,
+the rooms not being above eight feet square. The lower of these
+was used as a depository of household implements; the upper was a
+closet in which I deposited my books and papers. They had but one
+inlet, which was from the room adjoining. There was no window in
+the lower one, and in the upper a small aperture which communicated
+light and air, but would scarcely admit the body. The door which
+led into this was close to my bed head, and was always locked but
+when I myself was within. The avenues below were accustomed to be
+closed and bolted at nights.
+
+The maid was my only companion; and she could not reach my chamber
+without previously passing through the opposite chamber and the
+middle passage, of which, however, the doors were usually
+unfastened. If she had occasioned this noise, she would have
+answered my repeated calls. No other conclusion, therefore, was
+left me, but that I had mistaken the sounds, and that my
+imagination had transformed some casual noise into the voice of a
+human creature. Satisfied with this solution, I was preparing to
+relinquish my listening attitude, when my ear was again saluted
+with a new and yet louder whispering. It appeared, as before, to
+issue from lips that touched my pillow. A second effort of
+attention, however, clearly showed me that the sounds issued from
+within the closet, the door of which was not more than eight inches
+from my pillow.
+
+This second interruption occasioned a shock less vehement than the
+former. I started, but gave no audible token of alarm. I was so
+much mistress of my feelings as to continue listening to what
+should be said. The whisper was distinct, hoarse, and uttered so
+as to show that the speaker was desirous of being heard by some one
+near, but, at the same time, studious to avoid being overheard by
+any other:—
+
+“Stop! stop, I say, madman as you are! there are better means than
+that. Curse upon your rashness! There is no need to shoot.”
+
+Such were the words uttered, in a tone of eagerness and anger,
+within so small a distance of my pillow. What construction could I
+put upon them? My heart began to palpitate with dread of some
+unknown danger. Presently, another voice, but equally near me, was
+heard whispering in answer, “Why not? I will draw a trigger in
+this business; but perdition be my lot if I do more!” To this the
+first voice returned, in a tone which rage had heightened in a
+small degree above a whisper, “Coward! stand aside, and see me do
+it. I will grasp her throat; I will do her business in an instant;
+she shall not have time so much as to groan.” What wonder that I
+was petrified by sounds so dreadful! Murderers lurked in my
+closet. They were planning the means of my destruction. One
+resolved to shoot, and the other menaced suffocation. Their means
+being chosen, they would forthwith break the door. Flight
+instantly suggested itself as most eligible in circumstances so
+perilous. I deliberated not a moment; but, fear adding wings to my
+speed, I leaped out of bed, and, scantily robed as I was, rushed
+out of the chamber, downstairs, and into the open air. I can
+hardly recollect the process of turning keys and withdrawing bolts.
+My terrors urged me forward with almost a mechanical impulse. I
+stopped not till I reached my brother’s door. I had not gained the
+threshold, when, exhausted by the violence of my emotions and by my
+speed, I sunk down in a fit.
+
+How long I remained in this situation I know not. When I
+recovered, I found myself stretched on a bed, surrounded by my
+sister and her female servants. I was astonished at the scene
+before me, but gradually recovered the recollection of what had
+happened. I answered their importunate inquiries as well as I was
+able. My brother and Pleyel, whom the storm of the preceding day
+chanced to detain here, informing themselves of every particular,
+proceeded with lights and weapons to my deserted habitation. They
+entered my chamber and my closet, and found everything in its
+proper place and customary order. The door of the closet was
+locked, and appeared not to have been opened in my absence. They
+went to Judith’s apartment. They found her asleep and in safety.
+Pleyel’s caution induced him to forbear alarming the girl; and,
+finding her wholly ignorant of what had passed, they directed her
+to return to her chamber. They then fastened the doors and
+returned.
+
+My friends were disposed to regard this transaction as a dream.
+That persons should be actually immured in this closet, to which,
+in the circumstances of the time, access from without or within was
+apparently impossible, they could not seriously believe. That any
+human beings had intended murder, unless it were to cover a scheme
+of pillage, was incredible; but that no such design had been formed
+was evident from the security in which the furniture of the house
+and the closet remained.
+
+I revolved every incident and expression that had occurred. My
+senses assured me of the truth of them; and yet their abruptness
+and improbability made me, in my turn, somewhat incredulous. The
+adventure had made a deep impression on my fancy; and it was not
+till after a week’s abode at my brother’s that I resolved to resume
+the possession of my own dwelling.
+
+There was another circumstance that enhanced the mysteriousness of
+this event. After my recovery, it was obvious to inquire by what
+means the attention of the family had been drawn to my situation.
+I had fallen before I had reached the threshold or was able to give
+any signal. My brother related that, while this was transacting in
+my chamber, he himself was awake, in consequence of some slight
+indisposition, and lay, according to his custom, musing on some
+favorite topic. Suddenly the silence, which was remarkably
+profound, was broken by a voice of most piercing shrillness, that
+seemed to be uttered by one in the hall below his chamber. “Awake!
+arise!” it exclaimed; “hasten to succor one that is dying at your
+door!”
+
+This summons was effectual. There was no one in the house who was
+not roused by it. Pleyel was the first to obey, and my brother
+overtook him before he reached the hall. What was the general
+astonishment when your friend was discovered stretched upon the
+grass before the door, pale, ghastly, and with every mark of death!
+
+But how was I to regard this midnight conversation? Hoarse and
+manlike voices conferring on the means of death, so near my bed,
+and at such an hour! How had my ancient security vanished! That
+dwelling which had hitherto been an inviolate asylum was now beset
+with danger to my life. That solitude formerly so dear to me could
+no longer be endured. Pleyel, who had consented to reside with us
+during the months of spring, lodged in the vacant chamber, in order
+to quiet my alarms. He treated my fears with ridicule, and in a
+short time very slight traces of them remained; but, as it was
+wholly indifferent to him whether his nights were passed at my
+house or at my brother’s, this arrangement gave general
+satisfaction.
+
+
+II
+
+
+I will enumerate the various inquiries and conjectures which these
+incidents occasioned. After all our efforts, we came no nearer to
+dispelling the mist in which they were involved; and time, instead
+of facilitating a solution, only accumulated our doubts.
+
+In the midst of thoughts excited by these events, I was not
+unmindful of my interview with the stranger. I related the
+particulars, and showed the portrait to my friends. Pleyel
+recollected to have met with a figure resembling my description in
+the city; but neither his face or garb made the same impression
+upon him that it made upon me. It was a hint to rally me upon my
+prepossessions, and to amuse us with a thousand ludicrous anecdotes
+which he had collected in his travels. He made no scruple to
+charge me with being in love; and threatened to inform the swain,
+when he met him, of his good fortune.
+
+Pleyel’s temper made him susceptible of no durable impressions.
+His conversation was occasionally visited by gleams of his ancient
+vivacity; but, though his impetuosity was sometimes inconvenient,
+there was nothing to dread from his malice. I had no fear that my
+character or dignity would suffer in his hands, and was not
+heartily displeased when he declared his intention of profiting by
+his first meeting with the stranger to introduce him to our
+acquaintance.
+
+Some weeks after this I had spent a toilsome day, and, as the sun
+declined, found myself disposed to seek relief in a walk. The
+river bank is, at this part of it and for some considerable space
+upward, so rugged and steep as not to be easily descended. In a
+recess of this declivity, near the southern verge of my little
+demesne, was placed a slight building, with seats and lattices.
+From a crevice of the rock to which this edifice was attached there
+burst forth a stream of the purest water, which, leaping from ledge
+to ledge for the space of sixty feet, produced a freshness in the
+air, and a murmur, the most delicious and soothing imaginable.
+These, added to the odors of the cedars which embowered it, and of
+the honeysuckle which clustered among the lattices, rendered this
+my favorite retreat in summer.
+
+On this occasion I repaired hither. My spirits drooped through the
+fatigue of long attention, and I threw myself upon a bench, in a
+state, both mentally and personally, of the utmost supineness. The
+lulling sounds of the waterfall, the fragrance, and the dusk,
+combined to becalm my spirits, and, in a short time, to sink me
+into sleep. Either the uneasiness of my posture, or some slight
+indisposition, molested my repose with dreams of no cheerful hue.
+After various incoherences had taken their turn to occupy my fancy,
+I at length imagined myself walking, in the evening twilight, to my
+brother’s habitation. A pit, methought, had been dug in the path I
+had taken, of which I was not aware. As I carelessly pursued my
+walk, I thought I saw my brother standing at some distance before
+me, beckoning and calling me to make haste. He stood on the
+opposite edge of the gulf. I mended my pace, and one step more
+would have plunged me into this abyss, had not some one from behind
+caught suddenly my arm, and exclaimed, in a voice of eagerness and
+terror, “Hold! hold!”
+
+The sound broke my sleep, and I found myself, at the next moment,
+standing on my feet, and surrounded by the deepest darkness.
+Images so terrific and forcible disabled me for a time from
+distinguishing between sleep and wakefulness, and withheld from me
+the knowledge of my actual condition. My first panic was succeeded
+by the perturbations of surprise to find myself alone in the open
+air and immersed in so deep a gloom. I slowly recollected the
+incidents of the afternoon, and how I came hither. I could not
+estimate the time, but saw the propriety of returning with speed to
+the house. My faculties were still too confused, and the darkness
+too intense, to allow me immediately to find my way up the steep.
+I sat down, therefore, to recover myself, and to reflect upon my
+situation.
+
+This was no sooner done, than a low voice was heard from behind the
+lattice, on the side where I sat. Between the rock and the lattice
+was a chasm not wide enough to admit a human body; yet in this
+chasm he that spoke appeared to be stationed. “Attend! attend! but
+be not terrified.”
+
+I started, and exclaimed, “Good heavens! what is that? Who are
+you?”
+
+“A friend; one come not to injure but to save you: fear nothing.”
+
+This voice was immediately recognized to be the same with one of
+those which I had heard in the closet; it was the voice of him who
+had proposed to shoot rather than to strangle his victim. My
+terror made me at once mute and motionless. He continued, “I
+leagued to murder you. I repent. Mark my bidding, and be safe.
+Avoid this spot. The snares of death encompass it. Elsewhere
+danger will be distant; but this spot, shun it as you value your
+life. Mark me further: profit by this warning, but divulge it not.
+If a syllable of what has passed escape you, your doom is sealed.
+Remember your father, and be faithful.”
+
+Here the accents ceased, and left me overwhelmed with dismay. I
+was fraught with the persuasion that during every moment I remained
+here my life was endangered; but I could not take a step without
+hazard of falling to the bottom of the precipice. The path leading
+to the summit was short, but rugged and intricate. Even starlight
+was excluded by the umbrage, and not the faintest gleam was
+afforded to guide my steps. What should I do? To depart or remain
+was equally and eminently perilous.
+
+In this state of uncertainty, I perceived a ray flit across the
+gloom and disappear. Another succeeded, which was stronger, and
+remained for a passing moment. It glittered on the shrubs that
+were scattered at the entrance, and gleam continued to succeed
+gleam for a few seconds, till they finally gave place to
+unintermitted darkness.
+
+The first visitings of this light called up a train of horrors in
+my mind; destruction impended over this spot; the voice which I had
+lately heard had warned me to retire, and had menaced me with the
+fate of my father if I refused. I was desirous, but unable to
+obey; these gleams were such as preluded the stroke by which he
+fell; the hour, perhaps, was the same. I shuddered as if I had
+beheld suspended over me the exterminating sword.
+
+Presently a new and stronger illumination burst through the lattice
+on the right hand, and a voice from the edge of the precipice above
+called out my name. It was Pleyel. Joyfully did I recognize his
+accents; but such was the tumult of my thoughts that I had not
+power to answer him till he had frequently repeated his summons. I
+hurried at length from the fatal spot, and, directed by the lantern
+which he bore, ascended the hill.
+
+Pale and breathless, it was with difficulty I could support myself.
+He anxiously inquired into the cause of my affright and the motive
+of my unusual absence. He had returned from my brother’s at a late
+hour, and was informed by Judith that I had walked out before
+sunset and had not yet returned. This intelligence was somewhat
+alarming. He waited some time; but, my absence continuing, he had
+set out in search of me. He had explored the neighborhood with the
+utmost care, but, receiving no tidings of me, he was preparing to
+acquaint my brother with this circumstance, when he recollected the
+summer-house on the bank, and conceived it possible that some
+accident had detained me there. He again inquired into the cause
+of this detention, and of that confusion and dismay which my looks
+testified.
+
+I told him that I had strolled hither in the afternoon, that sleep
+had overtaken me as I sat, and that I had awakened a few minutes
+before his arrival. I could tell him no more. In the present
+impetuosity of my thoughts, I was almost dubious whether the pit
+into which my brother had endeavored to entice me, and the voice
+that talked through the lattice, were not parts of the same dream.
+I remembered, likewise, the charge of secrecy, and the penalty
+denounced if I should rashly divulge what I had heard. For these
+reasons I was silent on that subject, and, shutting myself in my
+chamber, delivered myself up to contemplation.
+
+What I have related will, no doubt, appear to you a fable. You
+will believe that calamity has subverted my reason, and that I am
+amusing you with the chimeras of my brain instead of facts that
+have really happened. I shall not be surprised or offended if
+these be your suspicions. I know not, indeed, how you can deny
+them admission. For, if to me, the immediate witness, they were
+fertile of perplexity and doubt, how must they affect another to
+whom they are recommended only by my testimony? It was only by
+subsequent events that I was fully and incontestably assured of the
+veracity of my senses.
+
+Meanwhile, what was I to think? I had been assured that a design
+had been formed against my life. The ruffians had leagued to
+murder me. Whom had I offended? Who was there, with whom I had
+ever maintained intercourse, who was capable of harboring such
+atrocious purposes?
+
+My temper was the reverse of cruel and imperious. My heart was
+touched with sympathy for the children of misfortune. But this
+sympathy was not a barren sentiment. My purse, scanty as it was,
+was ever open, and my hands ever active, to relieve distress. Many
+were the wretches whom my personal exertions had extricated from
+want and disease, and who rewarded me with their gratitude. There
+was no face which lowered at my approach, and no lips which uttered
+imprecations in my hearing. On the contrary, there was none, over
+whose fate I had exerted any influence or to whom I was known by
+reputation, who did not greet me with smiles and dismiss me with
+proofs of veneration: yet did not my senses assure me that a plot
+was laid against my life?
+
+I am not destitute of courage. I have shown myself deliberative
+and calm in the midst of peril. I have hazarded my own life for
+the preservation of another; but now was I confused and panic-
+struck. I have not lived so as to fear death; yet to perish by an
+unseen and secret stroke, to be mangled by the knife of an
+assassin, was a thought at which I shuddered: what had I done to
+deserve to be made the victim of malignant passions?
+
+But soft! was I not assured that my life was safe in all places but
+one? And why was the treason limited to take effect in this spot?
+I was everywhere equally defenseless. My house and chamber were at
+all times accessible. Danger still impended over me; the bloody
+purpose was still entertained, but the hand that was to execute it
+was powerless in all places but one!
+
+Here I had remained for the last four or five hours, without the
+means of resistance or defense; yet I had not been attacked. A
+human being was at hand, who was conscious of my presence, and
+warned me hereafter to avoid this retreat. His voice was not
+absolutely new, but had I never heard it but once before? But why
+did he prohibit me from relating this incident to others, and what
+species of death will be awarded if I disobey?
+
+Such were the reflections that haunted me during the night, and
+which effectually deprived me of sleep. Next morning, at
+breakfast, Pleyel related an event which my disappearance had
+hindered him from mentioning the night before. Early the preceding
+morning, his occasions called him to the city: he had stepped into
+a coffee-house to while away an hour; here he had met a person
+whose appearance instantly bespoke him to be the same whose hasty
+visit I have mentioned, and whose extraordinary visage and tones
+had so powerfully affected me. On an attentive survey, however, he
+proved, likewise, to be one with whom my friend had had some
+intercourse in Europe. This authorized the liberty of accosting
+him, and after some conversation, mindful, as Pleyel said, of the
+footing which this stranger had gained in my heart, he had ventured
+to invite him to Mettingen. The invitation had been cheerfully
+accepted, and a visit promised on the afternoon of the next day.
+
+This information excited no sober emotions in my breast. I was, of
+course, eager to be informed as to the circumstances of their
+ancient intercourse. When and where had they met? What knew he of
+the life and character of this man?
+
+In answer to my inquiries, he informed me that, three years before,
+he was a traveler in Spain. He had made an excursion from Valencia
+to Murviedro, with a view to inspect the remains of Roman
+magnificence scattered in the environs of that town. While
+traversing the site of the theater of old Saguntum, he alighted
+upon this man, seated on a stone, and deeply engaged in perusing
+the work of the deacon Marti. A short conversation ensued, which
+proved the stranger to be English. They returned to Valencia
+together.
+
+His garb, aspect, and deportment were wholly Spanish. A residence
+of three years in the country, indefatigable attention to the
+language, and a studious conformity with the customs of the people,
+had made him indistinguishable from a native when he chose to
+assume that character. Pleyel found him to be connected, on the
+footing of friendship and respect, with many eminent merchants in
+that city. He had embraced the Catholic religion, and adopted a
+Spanish name instead of his own, which was CARWIN, and devoted
+himself to the literature and religion of his new country. He
+pursued no profession, but subsisted on remittances from England.
+
+While Pleyel remained in Valencia, Carwin betrayed no aversion to
+intercourse, and the former found no small attractions in the
+society of this new acquaintance, On general topics he was highly
+intelligent and communicative. He had visited every corner of
+Spain, and could furnish the most accurate details respecting its
+ancient and present state. On topics of religion and of his own
+history, previous to his TRANSFORMATION into a Spaniard, he was
+invariably silent. You could merely gather from his discourse that
+he was English, and that he was well acquainted with the
+neighboring countries.
+
+His character excited considerable curiosity in the observer. It
+was not easy to reconcile his conversion to the Romish faith with
+those proofs of knowledge and capacity that were exhibited by him
+on different occasions. A suspicion was sometimes admitted that
+his belief was counterfeited for some political purpose. The most
+careful observation, however, produced no discovery. His manners
+were at all times harmless and inartificial, and his habits those
+of a lover of contemplation and seclusion. He appeared to have
+contracted an affection for Pleyel, who was not slow to return it.
+
+My friend, after a month’s residence in this city, returned into
+France, and, since that period, had heard nothing concerning Carwin
+till his appearance at Mettingen.
+
+On this occasion Carwin had received Pleyel’s greeting with a
+certain distance and solemnity to which the latter had not been
+accustomed. He had waived noticing the inquiries of Pleyel
+respecting his desertion of Spain, in which he had formerly
+declared that it was his purpose to spend his life. He had
+assiduously diverted the attention of the latter to indifferent
+topics, but was still, on every theme, as eloquent and judicious as
+formerly. Why he had assumed the garb of a rustic Pleyel was
+unable to conjecture. Perhaps it might be poverty; perhaps he was
+swayed by motives which it was his interest to conceal, but which
+were connected with consequences of the utmost moment.
+
+Such was the sum of my friend’s information. I was not sorry to be
+left alone during the greater part of this day. Every employment
+was irksome which did not leave me at liberty to meditate. I had
+now a new subject on which to exercise my thoughts. Before evening
+I should be ushered into his presence, and listen to those tones
+whose magical and thrilling power I had already experienced. But
+with what new images would he then be accompanied?
+
+Carwin was an adherent to the Romish faith, yet was an Englishman
+by birth, and, perhaps, a Protestant by education. He had adopted
+Spain for his country, and had intimated a design to spend his days
+there, yet now was an inhabitant of this district, and disguised by
+the habiliments of a clown! What could have obliterated the
+impressions of his youth and made him abjure his religion and his
+country? What subsequent events had introduced so total a change
+in his plans? In withdrawing from Spain, had he reverted to the
+religion of his ancestors? or was it true that his former
+conversion was deceitful, and that his conduct had been swayed by
+motives which it was prudent to conceal?
+
+Hours were consumed in revolving these ideas. My meditations were
+intense; and, when the series was broken, I began to reflect with
+astonishment on my situation. From the death of my parents till
+the commencement of this year my life had been serene and blissful
+beyond the ordinary portion of humanity; but now my bosom was
+corroded by anxiety. I was visited by dread of unknown dangers,
+and the future was a scene over which clouds rolled and thunders
+muttered. I compared the cause with the effect, and they seemed
+disproportioned to each other. All unaware, and in a manner which
+I had no power to explain, I was pushed from my immovable and lofty
+station and cast upon a sea of troubles.
+
+I determined to be my brother’s visitant on this evening; yet my
+resolves were not unattended with wavering and reluctance.
+Pleyel’s insinuations that I was in love affected in no degree my
+belief; yet the consciousness that this was the opinion of one who
+would probably be present at our introduction to each other would
+excite all that confusion which the passion itself is apt to
+produce. This would confirm him in his error and call forth new
+railleries. His mirth, when exerted upon this topic, was the
+source of the bitterest vexation. Had he been aware of its
+influence upon my happiness, his temper would not have allowed him
+to persist; but this influence it was my chief endeavor to conceal.
+That the belief of my having bestowed my heart upon another
+produced in my friend none but ludicrous sensations was the true
+cause of my distress; but if this had been discovered by him my
+distress would have been unspeakably aggravated.
+
+
+III
+
+
+As soon as evening arrived, I performed my visit. Carwin made one
+of the company into which I was ushered. Appearances were the same
+as when I before beheld him. His garb was equally negligent and
+rustic. I gazed upon his countenance with new curiosity. My
+situation was such as to enable me to bestow upon it a deliberate
+examination. Viewed at more leisure, it lost none of its wonderful
+properties. I could not deny my homage to the intelligence
+expressed in it, but was wholly uncertain whether he were an object
+to be dreaded or adored, and whether his powers had been exerted to
+evil or to good.
+
+He was sparing in discourse; but whatever he said was pregnant with
+meaning, and uttered with rectitude of articulation and force of
+emphasis of which I had entertained no conception previously to my
+knowledge of him. Notwithstanding the uncouthness of his garb, his
+manners were not unpolished. All topics were handled by him with
+skill, and without pedantry or affectation. He uttered no
+sentiment calculated to produce a disadvantageous impression; on
+the contrary, his observations denoted a mind alive to every
+generous and heroic feeling. They were introduced without parade,
+and accompanied with that degree of earnestness which indicates
+sincerity.
+
+He parted from us not till late, refusing an invitation to spend
+the night here, but readily consented to repeat his visit. His
+visits were frequently repeated. Each day introduced us to a more
+intimate acquaintance with his sentiments, but left us wholly in
+the dark concerning that about which we were most inquisitive. He
+studiously avoided all mention of his past or present situation.
+Even the place of his abode in the city he concealed from us.
+
+Our sphere in this respect being somewhat limited, and the
+intellectual endowments of this man being indisputably great, his
+deportment was more diligently marked and copiously commented on by
+us than you, perhaps, will think the circumstances warranted. Not
+a gesture, or glance, or accent, that was not, in our private
+assemblies, discussed, and inferences deduced from it. It may well
+be thought that he modeled his behavior by an uncommon standard,
+when, with all our opportunities and accuracy of observation, we
+were able for a long time to gather no satisfactory information.
+He afforded us no ground on which to build even a plausible
+conjecture.
+
+There is a degree of familiarity which takes place between constant
+associates, that justifies the negligence of many rules of which,
+in an earlier period of their intercourse, politeness requires the
+exact observance. Inquiries into our condition are allowable when
+they are prompted by a disinterested concern for our welfare; and
+this solicitude is not only pardonable, but may justly be demanded
+from those who choose us for their companions. This state of
+things was more slow to arrive at on this occasion than on most
+others, on account of the gravity and loftiness of this man’s
+behavior.
+
+Pleyel, however, began at length to employ regular means for this
+end. He occasionally alluded to the circumstances in which they
+had formerly met, and remarked the incongruousness between the
+religion and habits of a Spaniard with those of a native of
+Britain. He expressed his astonishment at meeting our guest in
+this corner of the globe, especially as, when they parted in Spain,
+he was taught to believe that Carwin should never leave that
+country. He insinuated that a change so great must have been
+prompted by motives of a singular and momentous kind.
+
+No answer, or an answer wide of the purpose, was generally made to
+these insinuations. Britons and Spaniards, he said, are votaries
+of the same Deity, and square their faith by the same precepts;
+their ideas are drawn from the same fountains of literature, and
+they speak dialects of the same tongue; their government and laws
+have more resemblances than differences; they were formerly
+provinces of the same civil, and, till lately, of the same
+religious, empire.
+
+As to the motives which induce men to change the place of their
+abode, these must unavoidably be fleeting and mutable. If not
+bound to one spot by conjugal or parental ties, or by the nature of
+that employment to which we are indebted for subsistence, the
+inducements to change are far more numerous and powerful than
+opposite inducements.
+
+He spoke as if desirous of showing that he was not aware of the
+tendency of Pleyel’s remarks; yet certain tokens were apparent that
+proved him by no means wanting in penetration. These tokens were
+to be read in his countenance, and not in his words. When anything
+was said indicating curiosity in us, the gloom of his countenance
+was deepened, his eyes sunk to the ground, and his wonted air was
+not resumed without visible struggle. Hence, it was obvious to
+infer that some incidents of his life were reflected on by him with
+regret; and that, since these incidents were carefully concealed,
+and even that regret which flowed from them laboriously stifled,
+they had not been merely disastrous. The secrecy that was observed
+appeared not designed to provoke or baffle the inquisitive, but was
+prompted by the shame or by the prudence of guilt.
+
+These ideas, which were adopted by Pleyel and my brother as well as
+myself, hindered us from employing more direct means for
+accomplishing our wishes. Questions might have been put in such
+terms that no room should be left for the pretense of misapprehension;
+and, if modesty merely had been the obstacle, such questions would
+not have been wanting; but we considered that, if the disclosure
+were productive of pain or disgrace, it was inhuman to extort it.
+
+Amidst the various topics that were discussed in his presence,
+allusions were, of course, made to the inexplicable events that had
+lately happened. At those times the words and looks of this man
+were objects of my particular attention. The subject was
+extraordinary; and anyone whose experience or reflections could
+throw any light upon it was entitled to my gratitude. As this man
+was enlightened by reading and travel, I listened with eagerness to
+the remarks which he should make.
+
+At first I entertained a kind of apprehension that the tale would
+be heard by him with incredulity and secret ridicule. I had
+formerly heard stories that resembled this in some of their
+mysterious circumstances; but they were commonly heard by me with
+contempt. I was doubtful whether the same impression would not now
+be made on the mind of our guest; but I was mistaken in my fears.
+
+He heard them with seriousness, and without any marks either of
+surprise or incredulity. He pursued with visible pleasure that
+kind of disquisition which was naturally suggested by them. His
+fancy was eminently vigorous and prolific; and, if he did not
+persuade us that human beings are sometimes admitted to a sensible
+intercourse with the Author of nature, he at least won over our
+inclination to the cause. He merely deduced, from his own
+reasonings, that such intercourse was probable, but confessed that,
+though he was acquainted with many instances somewhat similar to
+those which had been related by us, none of them were perfectly
+exempted from the suspicion of human agency.
+
+On being requested to relate these instances, he amused us with
+many curious details. His narratives were constructed with so much
+skill, and rehearsed with so much energy, that all the effects of a
+dramatic exhibition were frequently produced by them. Those that
+were most coherent and most minute, and, of consequence, least
+entitled to credit, were yet rendered probable by the exquisite art
+of this rhetorician. For every difficulty that was suggested a
+ready and plausible solution was furnished. Mysterious voices had
+always a share in producing the catastrophe; but they were always
+to be explained on some known principles, either as reflected into
+a focus or communicated through a tube. I could not but remark
+that his narratives, however complex or marvelous, contained no
+instance sufficiently parallel to those that had befallen
+ourselves, and in which the solution was applicable to our own
+case.
+
+My brother was a much more sanguine reasoner than our guest. Even
+in some of the facts which were related by Carwin, he maintained
+the probability of celestial interference, when the latter was
+disposed to deny it, and had found, as he imagined, footsteps of a
+human agent. Pleyel was by no means equally credulous. He
+scrupled not to deny faith to any testimony but that of his senses,
+and allowed the facts which had lately been supported by this
+testimony not to mold his belief, but merely to give birth to
+doubts.
+
+It was soon observed that Carwin adopted, in some degree, a similar
+distinction. A tale of this kind, related by others, he would
+believe, provided it was explicable upon known principles; but that
+such notices were actually communicated by beings of a higher order
+he would believe only when his own ears were assailed in a manner
+which could not be otherwise accounted for. Civility forbade him
+to contradict my brother or myself, but his understanding refused
+to acquiesce in our testimony. Besides, he was disposed to
+question whether the voices were not really uttered by human
+organs. On this supposition he was desired to explain how the
+effect was produced.
+
+He answered that the cry for help, heard in the hall on the night
+of my adventure, was to be ascribed to a human creature, who
+actually stood in the hall when he uttered it. It was of no
+moment, he said, that we could not explain by what motives he that
+made the signal was led hither. How imperfectly acquainted were we
+with the condition and designs of the beings that surrounded us!
+The city was near at hand, and thousands might there exist whose
+powers and purposes might easily explain whatever was mysterious in
+this transaction. As to the closet dialogue, he was obliged to
+adopt one of two suppositions, and affirm either that it was
+fashioned in my own fancy, or that it actually took place between
+two persons in the closet.
+
+Such was Carwin’s mode of explaining these appearances. It is
+such, perhaps, as would commend itself as most plausible to the
+most sagacious minds; but it was insufficient to impart conviction
+to us. As to the treason that was meditated against me, it was
+doubtless just to conclude that it was either real or imaginary;
+but that it was real was attested by the mysterious warning in the
+summer-house, the secret of which I had hitherto locked up in my
+own breast.
+
+A month passed away in this kind of intercourse. As to Carwin, our
+ignorance was in no degree enlightened respecting his genuine
+character and views. Appearances were uniform. No man possessed a
+larger store of knowledge, or a greater degree of skill in the
+communication of it to others; hence he was regarded as an
+inestimable addition to our society. Considering the distance of
+my brother’s house from the city, he was frequently prevailed upon
+to pass the night where he spent the evening. Two days seldom
+elapsed without a visit from him; hence he was regarded as a kind
+of inmate of the house. He entered and departed without ceremony.
+When he arrived he received an unaffected welcome, and when he
+chose to retire no importunities were used to induce him to remain.
+
+Carwin never parted with his gravity. The inscrutableness of his
+character, and the uncertainty whether his fellowship tended to
+good or to evil, were seldom absent from our minds. This
+circumstance powerfully contributed to sadden us.
+
+My heart was the seat of growing disquietudes. This change in one
+who had formerly been characterized by all the exuberances of soul
+could not fail to be remarked by my friends. My brother was always
+a pattern of solemnity. My sister was clay, molded by the
+circumstances in which she happened to be placed. There was but
+one whose deportment remains to be described as being of importance
+to our happiness. Had Pleyel likewise dismissed his vivacity?
+
+He was as whimsical and jestful as ever, but he was not happy. The
+truth in this respect was of too much importance to me not to make
+me a vigilant observer. His mirth was easily perceived to be the
+fruit of exertion. When his thoughts wandered from the company, an
+air of dissatisfaction and impatience stole across his features.
+Even the punctuality and frequency of his visits were somewhat
+lessened. It may be supposed that my own uneasiness was heightened
+by these tokens; but, strange as it may seem, I found, in the
+present state of my mind, no relief but in the persuasion that
+Pleyel was unhappy.
+
+That unhappiness, indeed, depended for its value in my eyes on the
+cause that produced it. There was but one source whence it could
+flow. A nameless ecstasy thrilled through my frame when any new
+proof occurred that the ambiguousness of my behavior was the cause.
+
+
+IV
+
+
+My brother had received a new book from Germany. It was a tragedy,
+and the first attempt of a Saxon poet of whom my brother had been
+taught to entertain the highest expectations. The exploits of
+Zisca, the Bohemian hero, were woven into a dramatic series and
+connection. According to German custom, it was minute and diffuse,
+and dictated by an adventurous and lawless fancy. It was a chain
+of audacious acts and unheard-of disasters. The moated fortress
+and the thicket, the ambush and the battle, and the conflict of
+headlong passions, were portrayed in wild numbers and with terrific
+energy. An afternoon was set apart to rehearse this performance.
+The language was familiar to all of us but Carwin, whose company,
+therefore, was tacitly dispensed with.
+
+The morning previous to this intended rehearsal I spent at home.
+My mind was occupied with reflections relative to my own situation.
+The sentiment which lived with chief energy in my heart was
+connected with the image of Pleyel. In the midst of my anguish, I
+had not been destitute of consolation. His late deportment had
+given spring to my hopes. Was not the hour at hand which should
+render me the happiest of human creatures? He suspected that I
+looked with favorable eyes upon Carwin. Hence arose disquietudes
+which he struggled in vain to conceal. He loved me, but was
+hopeless that his love would be compensated. Is it not time, said
+I, to rectify this error? But by what means is this to be
+effected? It can only be done by a change of deportment in me; but
+how must I demean myself for this purpose?
+
+I must not speak. Neither eyes nor lips must impart the
+information. He must not be assured that my heart is his, previous
+to the tender of his own; but he must be convinced that it has not
+been given to another; he must be supplied with space whereon to
+build a doubt as to the true state of my affections; he must be
+prompted to avow himself. The line of delicate propriety,—how
+hard it is not to fall short, and not to overleap it!
+
+This afternoon we shall meet.... We shall not separate till
+late. It will be his province to accompany me home. The airy
+expanse is without a speck. This breeze is usually steadfast, and
+its promise of a bland and cloudless evening may be trusted. The
+moon will rise at eleven, and at that hour we shall wind along this
+bank. Possibly that hour may decide my fate. If suitable
+encouragement be given, Pleyel will reveal his soul to me; and I,
+ere I reach this threshold, will be made the happiest of beings.
+
+And is this good to be mine? Add wings to thy speed, sweet
+evening; and thou, moon, I charge thee, shroud thy beams at the
+moment when my Pleyel whispers love. I would not for the world
+that the burning blushes and the mounting raptures of that moment
+should be visible.
+
+But what encouragement is wanting? I must be regardful of
+insurmountable limits. Yet, when minds are imbued with a genuine
+sympathy, are not words and looks superfluous? Are not motion and
+touch sufficient to impart feelings such as mine? Has he not eyed
+me at moments when the pressure of his hand has thrown me into
+tumults, and was it impossible that he mistook the impetuosities of
+love for the eloquence of indignation?
+
+But the hastening evening will decide. Would it were come! And
+yet I shudder at its near approach. An interview that must thus
+terminate is surely to be wished for by me; and yet it is not
+without its terrors. Would to heaven it were come and gone!
+
+I feel no reluctance, my friends, to be thus explicit. Time was,
+when these emotions would be hidden with immeasurable solicitude
+from every human eye. Alas! these airy and fleeting impulses of
+shame are gone. My scruples were preposterous and criminal. They
+are bred in all hearts by a perverse and vicious education, and
+they would still have maintained their place in my heart, had not
+my portion been set in misery. My errors have taught me thus much
+wisdom:—that those sentiments which we ought not to disclose it is
+criminal to harbor.
+
+It was proposed to begin the rehearsal at four o’clock. I counted
+the minutes as they passed; their flight was at once too rapid and
+too slow: my sensations were of an excruciating kind; I could taste
+no food, nor apply to any task, nor enjoy a moment’s repose; when
+the hour arrived I hastened to my brother’s.
+
+Pleyel was not there. He had not yet come. On ordinary occasions
+he was eminent for punctuality. He had testified great eagerness
+to share in the pleasures of this rehearsal. He was to divide the
+task with my brother, and in tasks like these he always engaged
+with peculiar zeal. His elocution was less sweet than sonorous,
+and, therefore, better adapted than the mellifluences of his friend
+to the outrageous vehemence of this drama.
+
+What could detain him? Perhaps he lingered through forgetfulness.
+Yet this was incredible. Never had his memory been known to fail
+upon even more trivial occasions. Not less impossible was it that
+the scheme had lost its attractions, and that he stayed because his
+coming would afford him no gratification. But why should we expect
+him to adhere to the minute?
+
+A half-hour elapsed, but Pleyel was still at a distance. Perhaps
+he had misunderstood the hour which had been proposed. Perhaps he
+had conceived that to-morrow, and not to-day, had been selected for
+this purpose; but no. A review of preceding circumstances
+demonstrated that such misapprehension was impossible; for he had
+himself proposed this day, and this hour. This day his attention
+would not otherwise be occupied; but to-morrow an indispensable
+engagement was foreseen, by which all his time would be engrossed;
+his detention, therefore, must be owing to some unforeseen and
+extraordinary event. Our conjectures were vague, tumultuous, and
+sometimes fearful. His sickness and his death might possibly have
+detained him.
+
+Tortured with suspense, we sat gazing at each other, and at the
+path which led from the road. Every horseman that passed was, for
+a moment, imagined to be him. Hour succeeded hour, and the sun,
+gradually declining, at length disappeared. Every signal of his
+coming proved fallacious, and our hopes were at length dismissed.
+His absence affected my friends in no insupportable degree. They
+should be obliged, they said, to defer this undertaking till the
+morrow; and perhaps their impatient curiosity would compel them to
+dispense entirely with his presence. No doubt some harmless
+occurrence had diverted him from his purpose; and they trusted that
+they should receive a satisfactory account of him in the morning.
+
+It may be supposed that this disappointment affected me in a very
+different manner. I turned aside my head to conceal my tears. I
+fled into solitude, to give vent to my reproaches without
+interruption or restraint. My heart was ready to burst with
+indignation and grief. Pleyel was not the only object of my keen
+but unjust upbraiding. Deeply did I execrate my own folly. Thus
+fallen into ruins was the gay fabric which I had reared! Thus had
+my golden vision melted into air!
+
+How fondly did I dream that Pleyel was a lover! If he were, would
+he have suffered any obstacle to hinder his coming? “Blind and
+infatuated man!” I exclaimed. “Thou sportest with happiness. The
+good that is offered thee thou hast the insolence and folly to
+refuse. Well, I will henceforth intrust my felicity to no one’s
+keeping but my own.”
+
+The first agonies of this disappointment would not allow me to be
+reasonable or just. Every ground on which I had built the
+persuasion that Pleyel was not unimpressed in my favor appeared to
+vanish. It seemed as if I had been misled into this opinion by the
+most palpable illusions.
+
+I made some trifling excuse, and returned, much earlier than I
+expected, to my own house. I retired early to my chamber, without
+designing to sleep. I placed myself at a window, and gave the
+reins to reflection.
+
+The hateful and degrading impulses which had lately controlled me
+were, in some degree, removed. New dejection succeeded, but was
+now produced by contemplating my late behavior. Surely that
+passion is worthy to be abhorred which obscures our understanding
+and urges us to the commission of injustice. What right had I to
+expect his attendance? Had I not demeaned myself like one
+indifferent to his happiness, and as having bestowed my regards
+upon another? His absence might be prompted by the love which I
+considered his absence as a proof that he wanted. He came not
+because the sight of me, the spectacle of my coldness or aversion,
+contributed to his despair. Why should I prolong, by hypocrisy or
+silence, his misery as well as my own? Why not deal with him
+explicitly, and assure him of the truth?
+
+You will hardly believe that, in obedience to this suggestion, I
+rose for the purpose of ordering a light, that I might instantly
+make this confession in a letter. A second thought showed me the
+rashness of this scheme, and I wondered by what infirmity of mind I
+could be betrayed into a momentary approbation of it. I saw with
+the utmost clearness that a confession like that would be the most
+remediless and unpardonable outrage upon the dignity of my sex, and
+utterly unworthy of that passion which controlled me.
+
+I resumed my seat and my musing. To account for the absence of
+Pleyel became once more the scope of my conjectures. How many
+incidents might occur to raise an insuperable impediment in his
+way! When I was a child, a scheme of pleasure, in which he and his
+sister were parties, had been in like manner frustrated by his
+absence; but his absence, in that instance, had been occasioned by
+his falling from a boat into the river, in consequence of which he
+had run the most imminent hazard of being drowned. Here was a
+second disappointment endured by the same persons, and produced by
+his failure. Might it not originate in the same cause? Had he not
+designed to cross the river that morning to make some necessary
+purchases in New Jersey? He had preconcerted to return to his own
+house to dinner but perhaps some disaster had befallen him.
+Experience had taught me the insecurity of a canoe, and that was
+the only kind of boat which Pleyel used; I was, likewise, actuated
+by an hereditary dread of water. These circumstances combined to
+bestow considerable plausibility on this conjecture; but the
+consternation with which I began to be seized was allayed by
+reflecting that, if this disaster had happened, my brother would
+have received the speediest information of it. The consolation
+which this idea imparted was ravished from me by a new thought.
+This disaster might have happened, and his family not be apprised
+of it. The first intelligence of his fate may be communicated by
+the livid corpse which the tide may cast, many days hence, upon the
+shore.
+
+Thus was I distressed by opposite conjectures; thus was I tormented
+by phantoms of my own creation. It was not always thus. I can
+ascertain the date when my mind became the victim of this
+imbecility; perhaps it was coeval with the inroad of a fatal
+passion,—a passion that will never rank me in the number of its
+eulogists; it was alone sufficient to the extermination of my
+peace; it was itself a plenteous source of calamity, and needed not
+the concurrence of other evils to take away the attractions of
+existence and dig for me an untimely grave.
+
+The state of my mind naturally introduced a train of reflections
+upon the dangers and cares which inevitably beset a human being.
+By no violent transition was I led to ponder on the turbulent life
+and mysterious end of my father. I cherished with the utmost
+veneration the memory of this man, and every relic connected with
+his fate was preserved with the most scrupulous care. Among these
+was to be numbered a manuscript containing memoirs of his own life.
+The narrative was by no means recommended by its eloquence; but
+neither did all its value flow from my relationship to the author.
+Its style had an unaffected and picturesque simplicity. The great
+variety and circumstantial display of the incidents, together with
+their intrinsic importance as descriptive of human manners and
+passions, made it the most useful book in my collection. It was
+late: but, being sensible of no inclination to sleep, I resolved to
+betake myself to the perusal of it.
+
+To do this, it was requisite to procure a light. The girl had long
+since retired to her chamber: it was therefore proper to wait upon
+myself. A lamp, and the means of lighting it, were only to be
+found in the kitchen. Thither I resolved forthwith to repair; but
+the light was of use merely to enable me to read the book. I knew
+the shelf and the spot where it stood. Whether I took down the
+book, or prepared the lamp in the first place, appeared to be a
+matter of no moment. The latter was preferred, and, leaving my
+seat, I approached the closet in which, as I mentioned formerly, my
+books and papers were deposited.
+
+Suddenly the remembrance of what had lately passed in this closet
+occurred. Whether midnight was approaching, or had passed, I knew
+not. I was, as then, alone and defenseless. The wind was in that
+direction in which, aided by the deathlike repose of nature, it
+brought to me the murmur of the waterfall. This was mingled with
+that solemn and enchanting sound which a breeze produces among the
+leaves of pines. The words of that mysterious dialogue, their
+fearful import, and the wild excess to which I was transported by
+my terrors, filled my imagination anew. My steps faltered, and I
+stood a moment to recover myself.
+
+I prevailed on myself at length to move toward the closet. I
+touched the lock, but my fingers were powerless; I was visited
+afresh by unconquerable apprehensions. A sort of belief darted
+into my mind that some being was concealed within whose purposes
+were evil. I began to contend with those fears, when it occurred
+to me that I might, without impropriety, go for a lamp previously
+to opening the closet. I receded a few steps; but before I reached
+the chamber door my thoughts took a new direction. Motion seemed
+to produce a mechanical influence upon me. I was ashamed of my
+weakness. Besides, what aid could be afforded me by a lamp?
+
+My fears had pictured to themselves no precise object. It would be
+difficult to depict in words the ingredients and hues of that
+phantom which haunted me. A hand invisible and of preternatural
+strength, lifted by human passions, and selecting my life for its
+aim, were parts of this terrific image. All places were alike
+accessible to this foe; or, if his empire were restricted by local
+bounds, those bounds were utterly inscrutable by me. But had I not
+been told, by some one in league with this enemy, that every place
+but the recess in the bank was exempt from danger?
+
+I returned to the closet, and once more put my hand upon the lock.
+Oh, may my ears lose their sensibility ere they be again assailed
+by a shriek so terrible! Not merely my understanding was subdued
+by the sound; it acted on my nerves like an edge of steel. It
+appeared to cut asunder the fibers of my brain and rack every joint
+with agony.
+
+The cry, loud and piercing as it was, was nevertheless human. No
+articulation was ever more distinct. The breath which accompanied
+it did not fan my hair, yet did every circumstance combine to
+persuade me that the lips which uttered it touched my very
+shoulder.
+
+“Hold! hold!” were the words of this tremendous prohibition, in
+whose tone the whole soul seemed to be wrapped up, and every energy
+converted into eagerness and terror.
+
+Shuddering, I dashed myself against the wall, and, by the same
+involuntary impulse, turned my face backward to examine the
+mysterious monitor. The moonlight streamed into each window, and
+every corner of the room was conspicuous, and yet I beheld nothing!
+
+The interval was too brief to be artificially measured, between the
+utterance of these words and my scrutiny directed to the quarter
+whence they came. Yet, if a human being had been there, could he
+fail to have been visible? Which of my senses was the prey of a
+fatal illusion? The shock which the sound produced was still felt
+in every part of my frame. The sound, therefore, could not but be
+a genuine commotion. But that I had heard it was not more true
+than that the being who uttered it was stationed at my right ear;
+yet my attendant was invisible.
+
+I cannot describe the state of my thoughts at that moment.
+Surprise had mastered my faculties. My frame shook, and the vital
+current was congealed. I was conscious only of the vehemence of my
+sensations. This condition could not be lasting. Like a tide,
+which suddenly mounts to an overwhelming height and then gradually
+subsides, my confusion slowly gave place to order, and my tumults
+to a calm. I was able to deliberate and move. I resumed my feet,
+and advanced into the midst of the room. Upward, and behind, and
+on each side, I threw penetrating glances. I was not satisfied
+with one examination. He that hitherto refused to be seen might
+change his purpose, and on the next survey be clearly
+distinguishable.
+
+Solitude imposes least restraint upon the fancy. Dark is less
+fertile of images than the feeble luster of the moon. I was alone,
+and the walls were checkered by shadowy forms. As the moon passed
+behind a cloud and emerged, these shadows seemed to be endowed with
+life, and to move. The apartment was open to the breeze, and the
+curtain was occasionally blown from its ordinary position. This
+motion was not unaccompanied with sound. I failed not to snatch a
+look and to listen when this motion and this sound occurred. My
+belief that my monitor was posted near was strong, and instantly
+converted these appearances to tokens of his presence; and yet I
+could discern nothing.
+
+When my thoughts were at length permitted to revert to the past,
+the first idea that occurred was the resemblance between the words
+of the voice which I had just heard and those which had terminated
+my dream in the summer-house. There are means by which we are able
+to distinguish a substance from a shadow, a reality from the
+phantom of a dream. The pit, my brother beckoning me forward, the
+seizure of my arm, and the voice behind, were surely imaginary.
+That these incidents were fashioned in my sleep is supported by the
+same indubitable evidence that compels me to believe myself awake
+at present; yet the words and the voice were the same. Then, by
+some inexplicable contrivance, I was aware of the danger, while my
+actions and sensations were those of one wholly unacquainted with
+it. Now, was it not equally true that my actions and persuasions
+were at war? Had not the belief that evil lurked in the closet
+gained admittance, and had not my actions betokened an
+unwarrantable security? To obviate the effects of my infatuation,
+the same means had been used.
+
+In my dream, he that tempted me to my destruction was my brother.
+Death was ambushed in my path. From what evil was I now rescued?
+What minister or implement of ill was shut up in this recess? Who
+was it whose suffocating grasp I was to feel should I dare to enter
+it? What monstrous conception is this? My brother?
+
+No; protection, and not injury, is his province. Strange and
+terrible chimera! Yet it would not be suddenly dismissed. It was
+surely no vulgar agency that gave this form to my fears. He to
+whom all parts of time are equally present, whom no contingency
+approaches, was the author of that spell which now seized upon me.
+Life was dear to me. No consideration was present that enjoined me
+to relinquish it. Sacred duty combined with every spontaneous
+sentiment to endear to me my being. Should I not shudder when my
+being was endangered? But what emotion should possess me when the
+arm lifted against me was Wieland’s?
+
+Ideas exist in our minds that can be accounted for by no
+established laws. Why did I dream that my brother was my foe? Why
+but because an omen of my fate was ordained to be communicated?
+Yet what salutary end did it serve? Did it arm me with caution to
+elude or fortitude to bear the evils to which I was reserved? My
+present thoughts were, no doubt, indebted for their hue to the
+similitude existing between these incidents and those of my dream.
+Surely it was frenzy that dictated my deed. That a ruffian was
+hidden in the closet was an idea the genuine tendency of which was
+to urge me to flight. Such had been the effect formerly produced.
+Had my mind been simply occupied with this thought at present, no
+doubt the same impulse would have been experienced; but now it was
+my brother whom I was irresistibly persuaded to regard as the
+contriver of that ill of which I had been forewarned. This
+persuasion did not extenuate my fears or my danger. Why then did I
+again approach the closet and withdraw the bolt? My resolution was
+instantly conceived, and executed without faltering.
+
+The door was formed of light materials. The lock, of simple
+structure, easily forewent its hold. It opened into the room, and
+commonly moved upon its hinges, after being unfastened, without any
+effort of mine. This effort, however, was bestowed upon the
+present occasion. It was my purpose to open it with quickness; but
+the exertion which I made was ineffectual. It refused to open.
+
+At another time, this circumstance would not have looked with a
+face of mystery. I should have supposed some casual obstruction
+and repeated my efforts to surmount it. But now my mind was
+accessible to no conjecture but one. The door was hindered from
+opening by human force. Surely, here was a new cause for affright.
+This was confirmation proper to decide my conduct. Now was all
+ground of hesitation taken away. What could be supposed but that I
+deserted the chamber and the house? that I at least endeavored no
+longer to withdraw the door?
+
+Have I not said that my actions were dictated by frenzy? My reason
+had forborne, for a time, to suggest or to sway my resolves. I
+reiterated my endeavors. I exerted all my force to overcome the
+obstacle, but in vain. The strength that was exerted to keep it
+shut was superior to mine.
+
+A casual observer might, perhaps, applaud the audaciousness of this
+conduct. Whence, but from a habitual defiance of danger, could my
+perseverance arise? I have already assigned, as distinctly as I am
+able, the cause of it. The frantic conception that my brother was
+within, that the resistance made to my design was exerted by him,
+had rooted itself in my mind. You will comprehend the height of
+this infatuation, when I tell you that, finding all my exertions
+vain, I betook myself to exclamations. Surely I was utterly bereft
+of understanding.
+
+Now I had arrived at the crisis of my fate. “Oh, hinder not the
+door to open,” I exclaimed, in a tone that had less of fear than of
+grief in it. “I know you well. Come forth, but harm me not. I
+beseech you, come forth.”
+
+I had taken my hand from the lock and removed to a small distance
+from the door. I had scarcely uttered these words, when the door
+swung upon its hinges and displayed to my view the interior of the
+closet. Whoever was within was shrouded in darkness. A few
+seconds passed without interruption of the silence. I knew not
+what to expect or to fear. My eyes would not stray from the
+recess. Presently, a deep sigh was heard. The quarter from which
+it came heightened the eagerness of my gaze. Some one approached
+from the farther end. I quickly perceived the outlines of a human
+figure. Its steps were irresolute and slow. I recoiled as it
+advanced.
+
+By coming at length within the verge of the room, his form was
+clearly distinguishable. I had prefigured to myself a very
+different personage. The face that presented itself was the last
+that I should desire to meet at an hour and in a place like this.
+My wonder was stifled by my fears. Assassins had lurked in this
+recess. Some divine voice warned me of danger that at this moment
+awaited me. I had spurned the intimation, and challenged my
+adversary.
+
+I recalled the mysterious countenance and dubious character of
+Carwin. What motive but atrocious ones could guide his steps
+hither? I was alone. My habit suited the hour, and the place, and
+the warmth of the season. All succor was remote. He had placed
+himself between me and the door. My frame shook with the vehemence
+of my apprehensions.
+
+Yet I was not wholly lost to myself; I vigilantly marked his
+demeanor. His looks were grave, but not without perturbation.
+What species of inquietude it betrayed the light was not strong
+enough to enable me to discover. He stood still; but his eyes
+wandered from one object to another. When these powerful organs
+were fixed upon me, I shrunk into myself. At length he broke
+silence. Earnestness, and not embarrassment, was in his tone. He
+advanced close to me while he spoke:—
+
+“What voice was that which lately addressed you?”
+
+He paused for an answer; but, observing my trepidation, he resumed,
+with undiminished solemnity, “Be not terrified. Whoever he was, he
+has done you an important service. I need not ask you if it were
+the voice of a companion. That sound was beyond the compass of
+human organs. The knowledge that enabled him to tell you who was
+in the closet was obtained by incomprehensible means.
+
+“You knew that Carwin was there. Were you not apprised of his
+intents? The same power could impart the one as well as the other.
+Yet, knowing these, you persisted. Audacious girl! But perhaps
+you confided in his guardianship. Your confidence was just. With
+succor like this at hand you may safely defy me.
+
+“He is my eternal foe; the baffler of my best-concerted schemes.
+Twice have you been saved by his accursed interposition. But for
+him I should long ere now have borne away the spoils of your
+honor.”
+
+He looked at me with greater steadfastness than before. I became
+every moment more anxious for my safety. It was with difficulty I
+stammered out an entreaty that he would instantly depart, or suffer
+me to do so. He paid no regard to my request, but proceeded in a
+more impassioned manner:—
+
+“What is it you fear? Have I not told you you are safe? Has not
+one in whom you more reasonably place trust assured you of it?
+Even if I execute my purpose, what injury is done? Your prejudices
+will call it by that name, but it merits it not.
+
+“I was impelled by a sentiment that does you honor; a sentiment
+that would sanctify my deed; but, whatever it be, you are safe. Be
+this chimera still worshiped; I will do nothing to pollute it.”
+There he stopped.
+
+The accents and gestures of this man left me drained of all
+courage. Surely, on no other occasion should I have been thus
+pusillanimous. My state I regarded as a hopeless one. I was
+wholly at the mercy of this being. Whichever way I turned my eyes,
+I saw no avenue by which I might escape. The resources of my
+personal strength, my ingenuity, and my eloquence, I estimated at
+nothing. The dignity of virtue and the force of truth I had been
+accustomed to celebrate, and had frequently vaunted of the
+conquests which I should make with their assistance.
+
+I used to suppose that certain evils could never befall a being in
+possession of a sound mind; that true virtue supplies us with
+energy which vice can never resist; that it was always in our power
+to obstruct, by his own death, the designs of an enemy who aimed at
+less than our life. How was it that a sentiment like despair had
+now invaded me, and that I trusted to the protection of chance, or
+to the pity of my persecutor?
+
+His words imparted some notion of the injury which he had
+meditated. He talked of obstacles that had risen in his way. He
+had relinquished his design. These sources supplied me with
+slender consolation. There was no security but in his absence.
+When I looked at myself, when I reflected on the hour and the
+place, I was overpowered by horror and dejection.
+
+He was silent, museful, and inattentive to my situation, yet made
+no motion to depart. I was silent in my turn. What could I say?
+I was confident that reason in this contest would be impotent. I
+must owe my safety to his own suggestions. Whatever purpose
+brought him hither, he had changed it. Why then did he remain?
+His resolutions might fluctuate, and the pause of a few minutes
+restore to him his first resolutions.
+
+Yet was not this the man whom we had treated with unwearied
+kindness? whose society was endeared to us by his intellectual
+elevation and accomplishments? who had a thousand times expatiated
+on the usefulness and beauty of virtue? Why should such a one be
+dreaded? If I could have forgotten the circumstances in which our
+interview had taken place, I might have treated his words as jests.
+Presently, he resumed:—
+
+“Fear me not: the space that severs us is small, and all visible
+succor is distant. You believe yourself completely in my power;
+that you stand upon the brink of ruin. Such are your groundless
+fears. I cannot lift a finger to hurt you. Easier would it be to
+stop the moon in her course than to injure you. The power that
+protects you would crumble my sinews and reduce me to a heap of
+ashes in a moment, if I were to harbor a thought hostile to your
+safety.
+
+“Thus are appearances at length solved. Little did I expect that
+they originated hence. What a portion is assigned to you! Scanned
+by the eyes of this intelligence, your path will be without pits to
+swallow or snares to entangle you. Environed by the arms of this
+protection, all artifices will be frustrated and all malice
+repelled.”
+
+Here succeeded a new pause. I was still observant of every gesture
+and look. The tranquil solemnity that had lately possessed his
+countenance gave way to a new expression. All now was trepidation
+and anxiety.
+
+“I must be gone,” said he, in a faltering accent. “Why do I linger
+here? I will not ask your forgiveness. I see that your terrors
+are invincible. Your pardon will be extorted by fear, and not
+dictated by compassion. I must fly from you forever. He that
+could plot against your honor must expect from you and your friends
+persecution and death. I must doom myself to endless exile.”
+
+Saying this, he hastily left the room. I listened while he
+descended the stairs, and, unbolting the outer door, went forth. I
+did not follow him with my eyes, as the moonlight would have
+enabled me to do. Relieved by his absence, and exhausted by the
+conflict of my fears, I threw myself on a chair, and resigned
+myself to those bewildering ideas which incidents like these could
+not fail to produce.
+
+
+V
+
+
+Order could not readily be introduced into my thoughts. The voice
+still rung in my ears. Every accent that was uttered by Carwin was
+fresh in my remembrance. His unwelcome approach, the recognition
+of his person, his hasty departure, produced a complex impression
+on my mind which no words can delineate. I strove to give a slower
+motion to my thoughts, and to regulate a confusion which became
+painful; but my efforts were nugatory. I covered my eyes with my
+hand, and sat, I know not how long, without power to arrange or
+utter my conceptions.
+
+I had remained for hours, as I believed, in absolute solitude. No
+thought of personal danger had molested my tranquillity. I had
+made no preparation for defense. What was it that suggested the
+design of perusing my father’s manuscript? If, instead of this, I
+had retired to bed and to sleep, to what fate might I not have been
+reserved. The ruffian, who must almost have suppressed his
+breathings to screen himself from discovery, would have noticed
+this signal, and I should have awakened only to perish with
+affright, and to abhor myself. Could I have remained unconscious
+of my danger? Could I have tranquilly slept in the midst of so
+deadly a snare?
+
+And who was he that threatened to destroy me? By what means could
+he hide himself in this closet? Surely he is gifted with
+supernatural power. Such is the enemy of whose attempts I was
+forewarned. Daily I had seen him and conversed with him. Nothing
+could be discerned through the impenetrable veil of his duplicity.
+When busied in conjectures as to the author of the evil that was
+threatened, my mind did not light for a moment upon his image. Yet
+has he not avowed himself my enemy? Why should he be here if he
+had not meditated evil?
+
+He confesses that this has been his second attempt. What was the
+scene of his former conspiracy? Was it not he whose whispers
+betrayed him? Am I deceived? or was there not a faint resemblance
+between the voice of this man and that which talked of grasping my
+throat and extinguishing my life in a moment? Then he had a
+colleague in his crime; now he is alone. Then death was the scope
+of his thoughts; now an injury unspeakably more dreadful. How
+thankful should I be to the power that has interposed to save me!
+
+That power is invisible. It is subject to the cognizance of one of
+my senses. What are the means that will inform me of what nature
+it is? He has set himself to counter-work the machinations of this
+man, who had menaced destruction to all that is dear to me, and
+whose coming had surmounted every human impediment. There was none
+to rescue me from his grasp. My rashness even hastened the
+completion of his scheme, and precluded him from the benefits of
+deliberation. I had robbed him of the power to repent and forbear.
+Had I been apprised of the danger, I should have regarded my
+conduct as the means of rendering my escape from it impossible.
+Such, likewise, seem to have been the fears of my invisible
+protector. Else why that startling entreaty to refrain from
+opening the closet? By what inexplicable infatuation was I
+compelled to proceed?
+
+“Surely,” said I, “there is omnipotence in the cause that changed
+the views of a man like Carwin. The divinity that shielded me from
+his attempts will take suitable care of my future safety. Thus to
+yield to my fears is to deserve that they should be real.”
+
+Scarcely had I uttered these words, when my attention was startled
+by the sound of footsteps. They denoted some one stepping into the
+piazza in front of my house. My new-born confidence was
+extinguished in a moment. Carwin, I thought, had repented his
+departure, and was hastily returning. The possibility that his
+return was prompted by intentions consistent with my safety found
+no place in my mind. Images of violation and murder assailed me
+anew, and the terrors which succeeded almost incapacitated me from
+taking any measures for my defense. It was an impulse of which I
+was scarcely conscious that made me fasten the lock and draw the
+bolts of my chamber door. Having done this, I threw myself on a
+seat; for I trembled to a degree which disabled me from standing,
+and my soul was so perfectly absorbed in the act of listening, that
+almost the vital motions were stopped.
+
+The door below creaked on its hinges. It was not again thrust to,
+but appeared to remain open. Footsteps entered, traversed the
+entry, and began to mount the stairs. How I detested the folly of
+not pursuing the man when he withdrew, and bolting after him the
+outer door! Might he not conceive this omission to be a proof that
+my angel had deserted me, and be thereby fortified in guilt?
+
+Every step on the stairs which brought him nearer to my chamber
+added vigor to my desperation. The evil with which I was menaced
+was to be at any rate eluded. How little did I preconceive the
+conduct which, in an exigence like this, I should be prone to
+adopt! You will suppose that deliberation and despair would have
+suggested the same course of action, and that I should have
+unhesitatingly resorted to the best means of personal defense
+within my power. A penknife lay open upon my table. I remembered
+that it was there, and seized it. For what purpose you will
+scarcely inquire. It will be immediately supposed that I meant it
+for my last refuge, and that, if all other means should fail, I
+should plunge it into the heart of my ravisher.
+
+I have lost all faith in the steadfastness of human resolves. It
+was thus that in periods of calm I had determined to act. No
+cowardice had been held by me in greater abhorrence than that which
+prompted an injured female to destroy, not her injurer ere the
+injury was perpetrated, but herself when it was without remedy.
+Yet now this penknife appeared to me of no other use than to baffle
+my assailant and prevent the crime by destroying myself. To
+deliberate at such a time was impossible; but, among the tumultuous
+suggestions of the moment, I do not recollect that it once occurred
+to me to use it as an instrument of direct defense.
+
+The steps had now reached the second floor. Every footfall
+accelerated the completion without augmenting the certainty of
+evil. The consciousness that the door was fast, now that nothing
+but that was interposed between me and danger, was a source of some
+consolation. I cast my eye toward the window. This, likewise, was
+a new suggestion. If the door should give way, it was my sudden
+resolution to throw myself from the window. Its height from the
+ground, which was covered beneath by a brick pavement, would insure
+my destruction; but I thought not of that.
+
+When opposite to my door the footsteps ceased. Was he listening
+whether my fears were allayed and my caution were asleep? Did he
+hope to take me by surprise? Yet, if so, why did he allow so many
+noisy signals to betray his approach? Presently the steps were
+again heard to approach the door. A hand was laid upon the lock,
+and the latch pulled back. Did he imagine it possible that I
+should fail to secure the door? A slight effort was made to push
+it open, as if, all bolts being withdrawn, a slight effort only was
+required.
+
+I no sooner perceived this than I moved swiftly toward the window.
+Carwin’s frame might be said to be all muscle. His strength and
+activity had appeared, in various instances, to be prodigious. A
+slight exertion of his force would demolish the door. Would not
+that exertion be made? Too surely it would; but, at the same
+moment that this obstacle should yield and he should enter the
+apartment, my determination was formed to leap from the window. My
+senses were still bound to this object. I gazed at the door in
+momentary expectation that the assault would be made. The pause
+continued. The person without was irresolute and motionless.
+
+Suddenly it occurred to me that Carwin might conceive me to have
+fled. That I had not betaken myself to flight was, indeed, the
+least probable of all conclusions. In this persuasion he must have
+been confirmed on finding the lower door unfastened and the chamber
+door locked. Was it not wise to foster this persuasion? Should I
+maintain deep silence, this, in addition to other circumstances,
+might encourage the belief, and he would once more depart. Every
+new reflection added plausibility to this reasoning. It was
+presently more strongly enforced when I noticed footsteps
+withdrawing from the door. The blood once more flowed back to my
+heart, and a dawn of exultation began to rise; but my joy was
+short-lived. Instead of descending the stairs, he passed to the
+door of the opposite chamber, opened it, and, having entered, shut
+it after him with a violence that shook the house.
+
+How was I to interpret this circumstance? For what end could he
+have entered this chamber? Did the violence with which he closed
+the door testify the depth of his vexation? This room was usually
+occupied by Pleyel. Was Carwin aware of his absence on this night?
+Could he be suspected of a design so sordid as pillage? If this
+were his view, there were no means in my power to frustrate it. It
+behooved me to seize the first opportunity to escape; but, if my
+escape were supposed by my enemy to have been already effected, no
+asylum was more secure than the present. How could my passage from
+the house be accomplished without noises that might incite him to
+pursue me?
+
+Utterly at a loss to account for his going into Pleyel’s chamber, I
+waited in instant expectation of hearing him come forth. All,
+however, was profoundly still. I listened in vain for a
+considerable period to catch the sound of the door when it should
+again be opened. There was no other avenue by which he could
+escape, but a door which led into the girl’s chamber. Would any
+evil from this quarter befall the girl?
+
+Hence arose a new train of apprehensions. They merely added to the
+turbulence and agony of my reflections. Whatever evil impended
+over her, I had no power to avert it. Seclusion and silence were
+the only means of saving myself from the perils of this fatal
+night. What solemn vows did I put up, that, if I should once more
+behold the light of day, I would never trust myself again within
+the threshold of this dwelling!
+
+Minute lingered after minute, but no token was given that Carwin
+had returned to the passage. What, I again asked, could detain him
+in this room? Was it possible that he had returned, and glided
+unperceived away? I was speedily aware of the difficulty that
+attended an enterprise like this; and yet, as if by that means I
+were capable of gaining any information on that head, I cast
+anxious looks from the window.
+
+The object that first attracted my attention was a human figure
+standing on the edge of the bank. Perhaps my penetration was
+assisted by my hopes. Be that as it will, the figure of Carwin was
+clearly distinguishable. From the obscurity of my station, it was
+impossible that I should be discerned by him; and yet he scarcely
+suffered me to catch a glimpse of him. He turned and went down the
+steep, which in this part was not difficult to be scaled.
+
+My conjecture, then, had been right. Carwin has softly opened the
+door, descended the stairs, and issued forth. That I should not
+have overheard his steps was only less incredible than that my eyes
+had deceived me. But what was now to be done? The house was at
+length delivered from this detested inmate. By one avenue might he
+again reenter. Was it not wise to bar the lower door? Perhaps he
+had gone out by the kitchen door. For this end, he must have
+passed through Judith’s chamber. These entrances being closed and
+bolted, as great security was gained as was compatible with my
+lonely condition.
+
+The propriety of these measures was too manifest not to make me
+struggle successfully with my fears. Yet I opened my own door with
+the utmost caution, and descended as if I were afraid that Carwin
+had been still immured in Pleyel’s chamber. The outer door was
+ajar. I shut it with trembling eagerness, and drew every bolt that
+appended to it. I then passed with light and less cautious steps
+through the parlor, but was surprised to discover that the kitchen
+door was secure. I was compelled to acquiesce in the first
+conjecture that Carwin had escaped through the entry.
+
+My heart was now somewhat eased of the load of apprehension. I
+returned once more to my chamber, the door of which I was careful
+to lock. It was no time to think of repose. The moonlight began
+already to fade before the light of the day. The approach of
+morning was betokened by the usual signals. I mused upon the
+events of this night, and determined to take up my abode henceforth
+at my brother’s. Whether I should inform him of what had happened
+was a question which seemed to demand some consideration. My
+safety unquestionably required that I should abandon my present
+habitation.
+
+As my thoughts began to flow with fewer impediments, the image of
+Pleyel, and the dubiousness of his condition, again recurred to me.
+I again ran over the possible causes of his absence on the
+preceding day. My mind was attuned to melancholy. I dwelt, with
+an obstinacy for which I could not account, on the idea of his
+death. I painted to myself his struggles with the billows, and his
+last appearance. I imagined myself a midnight wanderer on the
+shore, and to have stumbled on his corpse, which the tide had cast
+up. These dreary images affected me even to tears. I endeavored
+not to restrain them. They imparted a relief which I had not
+anticipated. The more copiously they flowed, the more did my
+general sensations appear to subside into calm, and a certain
+restlessness give way to repose.
+
+Perhaps, relieved by this effusion, the slumber so much wanted
+might have stolen on my senses, had there been no new cause of
+alarm.
+
+
+VI
+
+
+I was aroused from this stupor by sounds that evidently arose in
+the next chamber. Was it possible that I had been mistaken in the
+figure which I had seen on the bank? or had Carwin, by some
+inscrutable means, penetrated once more into this chamber? The
+opposite door opened; footsteps came forth, and the person,
+advancing to mine, knocked.
+
+So unexpected an incident robbed me of all presence of mind, and,
+starting up, I involuntarily exclaimed, “Who is there?” An answer
+was immediately given. The voice, to my inexpressible
+astonishment, was Pleyel’s.
+
+“It is I. Have you risen? If you have not, make haste; I want
+three minutes’ conversation with you in the parlor. I will wait
+for you there.” Saying this, he retired from the door.
+
+Should I confide in the testimony of my ears? If that were true,
+it was Pleyel that had been hitherto immured in the opposite
+chamber; he whom my rueful fancy had depicted in so many ruinous
+and ghastly shapes; he whose footsteps had been listened to with
+such inquietude! What is man, that knowledge is so sparingly
+conferred upon him! that his heart should be wrung with distress,
+and his frame be exanimated with fear, though his safety be
+encompassed with impregnable walls! What are the bounds of human
+imbecility! He that warned me of the presence of my foe refused
+the intimation by which so many racking fears would have been
+precluded.
+
+Yet who would have imagined the arrival of Pleyel at such an hour?
+His tone was desponding and anxious. Why this unseasonable
+summons? and why this hasty departure? Some tidings he, perhaps,
+bears of mysterious and unwelcome import.
+
+My impatience would not allow me to consume much time in
+deliberation; I hastened down. Pleyel I found standing at a
+window, with eyes cast down as in meditation, and arms folded on
+his breast. Every line in his countenance was pregnant with
+sorrow. To this was added a certain wanness and air of fatigue.
+The last time I had seen him appearances had been the reverse of
+these. I was startled at the change. The first impulse was to
+question him as to the cause. This impulse was supplanted by some
+degree of confusion, flowing from a consciousness that love had too
+large, and, as it might prove, a perceptible, share in creating
+this impulse. I was silent.
+
+Presently he raised his eyes and fixed them upon me. I read in
+them an anguish altogether ineffable. Never had I witnessed a like
+demeanor in Pleyel. Never, indeed, had I observed a human
+countenance in which grief was more legibly inscribed. He seemed
+struggling for utterance; but, his struggles being fruitless, he
+shook his head and turned away from me.
+
+My impatience would not allow me to be longer silent. “What,” said
+I, “for heaven’s sake, my friend,—what is the matter?”
+
+He started at the sound of my voice. His looks, for a moment,
+became convulsed with an emotion very different from grief. His
+accents were broken with rage:—
+
+“The matter! O wretch!—thus exquisitely fashioned,—on whom
+nature seemed to have exhausted all her graces; with charms so
+awful and so pure! how art thou fallen! From what height fallen!
+A ruin so complete,—so unheard of!”
+
+His words were again choked by emotion. Grief and pity were again
+mingled in his features. He resumed, in a tone half suffocated by
+sobs:—
+
+“But why should I upbraid thee? Could I restore to thee what thou
+hast lost, efface this cursed stain, snatch thee from the jaws of
+this fiend, I would do it. Yet what will avail my efforts? I have
+not arms with which to contend with so consummate, so frightful a
+depravity.
+
+“Evidence less than this would only have excited resentment and
+scorn. The wretch who should have breathed a suspicion injurious
+to thy honor would have been regarded without anger: not hatred or
+envy could have prompted him; it would merely be an argument of
+madness. That my eyes, that my ears, should bear witness to thy
+fall! By no other way could detestable conviction be imparted.
+
+“Why do I summon thee to this conference? Why expose myself to thy
+derision? Here admonition and entreaty are vain. Thou knowest him
+already for a murderer and thief. I thought to have been the first
+to disclose to thee his infamy; to have warned thee of the pit to
+which thou art hastening; but thy eyes are open in vain. Oh, foul
+and insupportable disgrace!
+
+“There is but one path. I know you will disappear together. In
+thy ruin, how will the felicity and honor of multitudes be
+involved! But it must come. This scene shall not be blotted by
+his presence. No doubt thou wilt shortly see thy detested
+paramour. This scene will be again polluted by a midnight
+assignation. Inform him of his dangers; tell him that his crimes
+are known; let him fly far and instantly from this spot, if he
+desires to avoid the fate which menaced him in Ireland.
+
+“And wilt thou not stay behind? But shame upon my weakness! I
+know not what I would say. I have done what I purposed. To stay
+longer, to expostulate, to beseech, to enumerate the consequences
+of thy act,—what end can it serve but to blazon thy infamy and
+embitter our woes? And yet, oh, think—think ere it be too late—
+on the distresses which thy flight will entail upon us; on the
+base, groveling, and atrocious character of the wretch to whom thou
+hast sold thy honor. But what is this? Is not thy effrontery
+impenetrable and thy heart thoroughly cankered? Oh, most specious
+and most profligate of women!”
+
+Saying this, he rushed out of the house. I saw him in a few
+moments hurrying along the path which led to my brother’s. I had
+no power to prevent his going, or to recall or to follow him. The
+accents I had heard were calculated to confound and bewilder. I
+looked around me, to assure myself that the scene was real. I
+moved, that I might banish the doubt that I was awake. Such
+enormous imputations from the mouth of Pleyel! To be stigmatized
+with the names of wanton and profligate! To be charged with the
+sacrifice of honor! with midnight meetings with a wretch known to
+be a murderer and thief! with an intention to fly in his company!
+
+What I had heard was surely the dictate of frenzy, or it was built
+upon some fatal, some incomprehensible mistake. After the horrors
+of the night, after undergoing perils so imminent from this man, to
+be summoned to an interview like this!—to find Pleyel fraught with
+a belief that, instead of having chosen death as a refuge from the
+violence of this man, I had hugged his baseness to my heart, had
+sacrificed for him my purity, my spotless name, my friendships, and
+my fortune! That even madness could engender accusations like
+these was not to be believed.
+
+What evidence could possibly suggest conceptions so wild? After
+the unlooked-for interview with Carwin in my chamber, he retired.
+Could Pleyel have observed his exit? It was not long after that
+Pleyel himself entered. Did he build on this incident his odious
+conclusions? Could the long series of my actions and sentiments
+grant me no exemption from suspicions so foul? Was it not more
+rational to infer that Carwin’s designs had been illicit? that my
+life had been endangered by the fury of one whom, by some means, he
+had discovered to be an assassin and robber? that my honor had been
+assailed, not by blandishments, but by violence?
+
+He has judged me without hearing. He has drawn from dubious
+appearances conclusions the most improbable and unjust. He has
+loaded me with all outrageous epithets. He has ranked me with
+prostitutes and thieves. I cannot pardon thee, Pleyel, for this
+injustice. Thy understanding must be hurt. If it be not,—if thy
+conduct was sober and deliberate,—I can never forgive an outrage
+so unmanly and so gross.
+
+These thoughts gradually gave place to others. Pleyel was
+possessed by some momentary frenzy; appearances had led him into
+palpable errors. Whence could his sagacity have contracted this
+blindness? Was it not love? Previously assured of my affection
+for Carwin, distracted with grief and jealousy, and impelled hither
+at that late hour by some unknown instigation, his imagination
+transformed shadows into monsters, and plunged him into these
+deplorable errors.
+
+This idea was not unattended with consolation. My soul was divided
+between indignation at his injustice and delight on account of the
+source from which I conceived it to spring. For a long time they
+would allow admission to no other thoughts. Surprise is an emotion
+that enfeebles, not invigorates. All my meditations were
+accompanied with wonder. I rambled with vagueness, or clung to one
+image with an obstinacy which sufficiently testified the maddening
+influence of late transactions.
+
+Gradually I proceeded to reflect upon the consequences of Pleyel’s
+mistake, and on the measures I should take to guard myself against
+future injury from Carwin. Should I suffer this mistake to be
+detected by time? When his passion should subside, would he not
+perceive the flagrancy of his injustice and hasten to atone for it?
+Did it not become my character to testify resentment for language
+and treatment so opprobrious? Wrapped up in the consciousness of
+innocence, and confiding in the influence of time and reflection to
+confute so groundless a charge, it was my province to be passive
+and silent.
+
+As to the violences meditated by Carwin, and the means of eluding
+them, the path to be taken by me was obvious. I resolved to tell
+the tale to my brother and regulate myself by his advice. For this
+end, when the morning was somewhat advanced, I took the way to his
+house. My sister was engaged in her customary occupations. As
+soon as I appeared, she remarked a change in my looks. I was not
+willing to alarm her by the information which I had to communicate.
+Her health was in that condition which rendered a disastrous tale
+particularly unsuitable. I forbore a direct answer to her
+inquiries, and inquired, in my turn, for Wieland.
+
+“Why,” said she, “I suspect something mysterious and unpleasant has
+happened this morning. Scarcely had we risen when Pleyel dropped
+among us. What could have prompted him to make us so early and so
+unseasonable a visit I cannot tell. To judge from the disorder of
+his dress, and his countenance, something of an extraordinary
+nature has occurred. He permitted me merely to know that he had
+slept none, nor even undressed, during the past night. He took
+your brother to walk with him. Some topic must have deeply engaged
+them, for Wieland did not return till the breakfast hour was
+passed, and returned alone. His disturbance was excessive; but he
+would not listen to my importunities, or tell me what had happened.
+I gathered, from hints which he let fall, that your situation was
+in some way the cause; yet he assured me that you were at your own
+house, alive, in good health, and in perfect safety. He scarcely
+ate a morsel, and immediately after breakfast went out again. He
+would not inform me whither he was going, but mentioned that he
+probably might not return before night.”
+
+I was equally astonished and alarmed by this information. Pleyel
+had told his tale to my brother, and had, by a plausible and
+exaggerated picture, instilled into him unfavorable thoughts of me.
+Yet would not the more correct judgment of Wieland perceive and
+expose the fallacy of his conclusions? Perhaps his uneasiness
+might arise from some insight into the character of Carwin, and
+from apprehensions for my safety. The appearances by which Pleyel
+had been misled might induce him likewise to believe that I
+entertained an indiscreet though not dishonorable affection for
+Carwin. Such were the conjectures rapidly formed. I was
+inexpressibly anxious to change them into certainty. For this end
+an interview with my brother was desirable. He was gone no one
+knew whither, and was not expected speedily to return. I had no
+clew by which to trace his footsteps.
+
+My anxieties could not be concealed from my sister. They
+heightened her solicitude to be acquainted with the cause. There
+were many reasons persuading me to silence; at least, till I had
+seen my brother, it would be an act of inexcusable temerity to
+unfold what had lately passed. No other expedient for eluding her
+importunities occurred to me but that of returning to my own house.
+I recollected my determination to become a tenant of this roof. I
+mentioned it to her. She joyfully acceded to this proposal, and
+suffered me with less reluctance to depart when I told her that it
+was with a view to collect and send to my new dwelling what
+articles would be immediately useful to me.
+
+Once more I returned to the house which had been the scene of so
+much turbulence and danger. I was at no great distance from it
+when I observed my brother coming out. On seeing me he stopped,
+and, after ascertaining, as it seemed, which way I was going, he
+returned into the house before me. I sincerely rejoiced at this
+event, and I hastened to set things, if possible, on their right
+footing.
+
+His brow was by no means expressive of those vehement emotions with
+which Pleyel had been agitated. I drew a favorable omen from this
+circumstance. Without delay I began the conversation.
+
+“I have been to look for you,” said I, “but was told by Catharine
+that Pleyel had engaged you on some important and disagreeable
+affair. Before his interview with you he spent a few minutes with
+me. These minutes he employed in upbraiding me for crimes and
+intentions with which I am by no means chargeable. I believe him
+to have taken up his opinions on very insufficient grounds. His
+behavior was in the highest degree precipitate and unjust, and,
+until I receive some atonement, I shall treat him, in my turn, with
+that contempt which he justly merits; meanwhile, I am fearful that
+he has prejudiced my brother against me. That is an evil which I
+most anxiously deprecate, and which I shall indeed exert myself to
+remove. Has he made me the subject of this morning’s conversation?”
+
+My brother’s countenance testified no surprise at my address. The
+benignity of his looks was nowise diminished.
+
+“It is true,” said he, “your conduct was the subject of our
+discourse. I am your friend as well as your brother. There is no
+human being whom I love with more tenderness and whose welfare is
+nearer my heart. Judge, then, with what emotions I listened to
+Pleyel’s story. I expect and desire you to vindicate yourself from
+aspersions so foul, if vindication be possible.”
+
+The tone with which he uttered the last words affected me deeply.
+“If vindication be possible!” repeated I. “From what you know, do
+you deem a formal vindication necessary? Can you harbor for a
+moment the belief of my guilt?”
+
+He shook his head with an air of acute anguish. “I have
+struggled,” said he, “to dismiss that belief. You speak before a
+judge who will profit by any pretense to acquit you who is ready to
+question his own senses when they plead against you.”
+
+These words incited a new set of thoughts in my mind. I began to
+suspect that Pleyel had built his accusations on some foundation
+unknown to me. “I may be a stranger to the grounds of your belief.
+Pleyel loaded me with indecent and virulent invectives, but he
+withheld from me the facts that generated his suspicions. Events
+took place last night of which some of the circumstances were of an
+ambiguous nature. I conceived that these might possibly have
+fallen under his cognizance, and that, viewed through the mists of
+prejudice and passion, they supplied a pretense for his conduct,
+but believed that your more unbiased judgment would estimate them
+at their just value. Perhaps his tale has been different from what
+I suspect it to be. Listen, then, to my narrative. If there be
+anything in his story inconsistent with mine, his story is false.”
+
+I then proceeded to a circumstantial relation of the incidents of
+the last night. Wieland listened with deep attention. Having
+finished, “This,” continued I, “is the truth. You see in what
+circumstances an interview took place between Carwin and me. He
+remained for hours in my closet, and for some minutes in my
+chamber. He departed without haste or interruption. If Pleyel
+marked him as he left the house, (and it is not impossible that he
+did,) inferences injurious to my character might suggest themselves
+to him. In admitting them, he gave proofs of less discernment and
+less candor than I once ascribed to him.”
+
+“His proofs,” said Wieland, after a considerable pause, “are
+different. That he should be deceived is not possible. That he
+himself is not the deceiver could not be believed, if his testimony
+were not inconsistent with yours; but the doubts which I
+entertained are now removed. Your tale, some parts of it, is
+marvelous; the voice which exclaimed against your rashness in
+approaching the closet, your persisting, notwithstanding that
+prohibition, your belief that I was the ruffian, and your
+subsequent conduct, are believed by me, because I have known you
+from childhood, because a thousand instances have attested your
+veracity, and because nothing less than my own hearing and vision
+would convince me, in opposition to her own assertions, that my
+sister had fallen into wickedness like this.”
+
+I threw my arms around him and bathed his cheek with my tears.
+“That,” said I, “is spoken like my brother. But what are the
+proofs?”
+
+He replied, “Pleyel informed me that, in going to your house, his
+attention was attracted by two voices. The persons speaking sat
+beneath the bank, out of sight. These persons, judging by their
+voices, were Carwin and you. I will not repeat the dialogue. If
+my sister was the female, Pleyel was justified in concluding you to
+be indeed one of the most profligate of women. Hence his
+accusations of you, and his efforts to obtain my concurrence to a
+plan by which an eternal separation should be brought about between
+my sister and this man.”
+
+I made Wieland repeat this recital. Here indeed was a tale to fill
+me with terrible foreboding. I had vainly thought that my safety
+could be sufficiently secured by doors and bars, but this is a foe
+from whose grasp no power of divinity can save me! His artifices
+will ever lay my fame and happiness at his mercy. How shall I
+counterwork his plots or detect his coadjutor? He has taught some
+vile and abandoned female to mimic my voice. Pleyel’s ears were
+the witnesses of my dishonor. This is the midnight assignation to
+which he alluded. Thus is the silence he maintained when
+attempting to open the door of my chamber, accounted for. He
+supposed me absent, and meant, perhaps, had my apartment been
+accessible, to leave in it some accusing memorial.
+
+
+
+SECOND PART
+
+
+I
+
+
+[As this part opens, the unhappy Clara is describing her hurried
+return to the same ill-fated abode at Mettingen. Hence kind
+friends had borne her after the catastrophe of her brother
+Wieland’s “transformation.” This was the crowning horror of all:
+the morbid fanatic, prepared by gloomy anticipations of some
+terrible sacrifice to be demanded in the name of religion, had
+found himself goaded to blind fury, by a mysterious compelling
+voice, to yield up to God the lives of his beloved wife and family;
+and had done the awful deed!
+
+Though chained in his madhouse, he persists in his delusion;
+insists that it still remains for him to sacrifice his sister
+Clara; and twice breaks away in wild efforts to find and destroy
+her.]
+
+
+I took an irregular path which led me to my own house. All was
+vacant and forlorn. A small enclosure near which the path led was
+the burying ground belonging to the family. This I was obliged to
+pass. Once I had intended to enter it, and ponder on the emblems
+and inscriptions which my uncle had caused to be made on the tombs
+of Catharine and her children; but now my heart faltered as I
+approached, and I hastened forward that distance might conceal it
+from my view.
+
+When I approached the recess, my heart again sunk. I averted my
+eyes, and left it behind me as quickly as possible. Silence
+reigned through my habitation, and a darkness which closed doors
+and shutters produced. Every object was connected with mine or my
+brother’s history. I passed the entry, mounted the stair, and
+unlocked the door of my chamber. It was with difficulty that I
+curbed my fancy and smothered my fears. Slight movements and
+casual sounds were transformed into beckoning shadows and calling
+shapes.
+
+I proceeded to the closet. I opened and looked round it with
+fearfulness. All things were in their accustomed order. I sought
+and found the manuscript where I was used to deposit it. This
+being secured, there was nothing to detain me; yet I stood and
+contemplated awhile the furniture and walls of my chamber. I
+remembered how long this apartment had been a sweet and tranquil
+asylum; I compared its former state with its present dreariness,
+and reflected that I now beheld it for the last time.
+
+Here it was that the incomprehensible behavior of Carwin was
+witnessed; this the stage on which that enemy of man showed himself
+for a moment unmasked. Here the menaces of murder were wafted to
+my ear; and here these menaces were executed.
+
+These thoughts had a tendency to take from me my self-command. My
+feeble limbs refused to support me, and I sunk upon a chair.
+Incoherent and half-articulate exclamations escaped my lips. The
+name of Carwin was uttered and eternal woes—woes like that which
+his malice had entailed upon us—were heaped upon him. I invoked
+all-seeing heaven to drag to light and punish this betrayer, and
+accused its providence for having thus long delayed the retribution
+that was due to so enormous a guilt.
+
+I have said that the window shutters were closed. A feeble light,
+however, found entrance through the crevices. A small window
+illuminated the closet, and, the door being closed, a dim ray
+streamed through the keyhole. A kind of twilight was thus created,
+sufficient for the purposes of vision, but, at the same time,
+involving all minuter objects in obscurity.
+
+This darkness suited the color of my thoughts. I sickened at the
+remembrance of the past. The prospect of the future excited my
+loathing. I muttered, in a low voice, “Why should I live longer?
+Why should I drag a miserable being? All for whom I ought to live
+have perished. Am I not myself hunted to death?”
+
+At that moment my despair suddenly became vigorous. My nerves were
+no longer unstrung. My powers, that had long been deadened, were
+revived. My bosom swelled with a sudden energy, and the conviction
+darted through my mind, that to end my torments was, at once,
+practicable and wise.
+
+I knew how to find way to the recesses of life. I could use a
+lancet with some skill, and could distinguish between vein and
+artery. By piercing deep into the latter, I should shun the evils
+which the future had in store for me, and take refuge from my woes
+in quiet death.
+
+I started on my feet, for my feebleness was gone, and hasted to the
+closet. A lancet and other small instruments were preserved in a
+case which I had deposited here. Inattentive as I was to foreign
+considerations, my ears were still open to any sound of mysterious
+import that should occur. I thought I heard a step in the entry.
+My purpose was suspended, and I cast an eager glance at my chamber
+door, which was open. No one appeared, unless the shadow which I
+discerned upon the floor was the outline of a man. If it were, I
+was authorized to suspect that some one was posted close to the
+entrance, who possibly had overheard my exclamations.
+
+My teeth chattered, and a wild confusion took the place of my
+momentary calm. Thus it was when a terrific visage had disclosed
+itself on a former night. Thus it was when the evil destiny of
+Wieland assumed the lineaments of something human. What horrid
+apparition was preparing to blast my sight?
+
+Still I listened and gazed. Not long, for the shadow moved; a
+foot, unshapely and huge, was thrust forward; a form advanced from
+its concealment, and stalked into the room. It was Carwin!
+
+While I had breath, I shrieked. While I had power over my muscles,
+I motioned with my hand that he should vanish. My exertions could
+not last long: I sunk into a fit.
+
+Oh that this grateful oblivion had lasted forever! Too quickly I
+recovered my senses. The power of distinct vision was no sooner
+restored to me, than this hateful form again presented itself, and
+I once more relapsed.
+
+A second time, untoward nature recalled me from the sleep of death.
+I found myself stretched upon the bed. When I had power to look
+up, I remembered only that I had cause to fear. My distempered
+fancy fashioned to itself no distinguishable image. I threw a
+languid glance round me: once more my eyes lighted upon Carwin.
+
+He was seated on the floor, his back rested against the wall; his
+knees were drawn up, and his face was buried in his hands. That
+his station was at some distance, that his attitude was not
+menacing, that his ominous visage was concealed, may account for my
+now escaping a shock violent as those which were past. I withdrew
+my eyes, but was not again deserted by my senses.
+
+On perceiving that I had recovered my sensibility, he lifted his
+head. This motion attracted my attention. His countenance was
+mild, but sorrow and astonishment sat upon his features. I averted
+my eyes and feebly exclaimed, “Oh, fly!—fly far and forever!—I
+cannot behold you and live!”
+
+He did not rise upon his feet, but clasped his hands, and said, in
+a tone of deprecation, “I will fly. I am become a fiend, the sight
+of whom destroys. Yet tell me my offense! You have linked curses
+with my name; you ascribe to me a malice monstrous and infernal. I
+look around: all is loneliness and desert! This house and your
+brother’s are solitary and dismantled! You die away at the sight
+of me! My fear whispers that some deed of horror has been
+perpetrated; that I am the undesigning cause.”
+
+What language was this? Had he not avowed himself a ravisher? Had
+not this chamber witnessed his atrocious purposes? I besought him
+with new vehemence to go.
+
+He lifted his eyes:—“Great heaven! what have I done? I think I
+know the extent of my offenses. I have acted, but my actions have
+possibly effected more than I designed. This fear has brought me
+back from my retreat. I come to repair the evil of which my
+rashness was the cause, and to prevent more evil. I come to
+confess my errors.”
+
+“Wretch!” I cried, when my suffocating emotions would permit me to
+speak, “the ghosts of my sister and her children,—do they not rise
+to accuse thee? Who was it that blasted the intellect of Wieland?
+Who was it that urged him to fury and guided him to murder? Who,
+but thou and the devil, with whom thou art confederated?”
+
+At these words a new spirit pervaded his countenance. His eyes
+once more appealed to heaven. “If I have memory—if I have being—
+I am innocent. I intended no ill; but my folly, indirectly and
+remotely, may have caused it. But what words are these? Your
+brother lunatic! His children dead!”
+
+What should I infer from this deportment? Was the ignorance which
+these words implied real or pretended? Yet how could I imagine a
+mere human agency in these events? But, if the influence was
+preternatural or maniacal in my brother’s case, they must be
+equally so in my own. Then I remembered that the voice exerted was
+to save me from Carwin’s attempts. These ideas tended to abate my
+abhorrence of this man, and to detect the absurdity of my
+accusations.
+
+“Alas!” said I, “I have no one to accuse. Leave me to my fate.
+Fly from a scene stained with cruelty, devoted to despair.”
+
+Carwin stood for a time musing and mournful. At length he said,
+“What has happened? I came to expiate my crimes: let me know them
+in their full extent. I have horrible forebodings! What has
+happened?”
+
+I was silent; but, recollecting the intimation given by this man
+when he was detected in my closet, which implied some knowledge of
+that power which interfered in my favor, I eagerly inquired, “What
+was that voice which called upon me to hold when I attempted to
+open the closet? What face was that which I saw at the bottom of
+the stairs? Answer me truly.”
+
+“I came to confess the truth. Your allusions are horrible and
+strange. Perhaps I have but faint conceptions of the evils which
+my infatuation has produced; but what remains I will perform. It
+was MY VOICE that you heard! It was MY FACE that you saw!”
+
+For a moment I doubted whether my remembrance of events were not
+confused. How could he be at once stationed at my shoulder and
+shut up in my closet? How could he stand near me and yet be
+invisible? But if Carwin’s were the thrilling voice and the fiery
+image which I had heard and seen, then was he the prompter of my
+brother, and the author of these dismal outrages.
+
+Once more I averted my eyes and struggled for speech:—“Begone!
+thou man of mischief! Remorseless and implacable miscreant,
+begone!”
+
+“I will obey,” said he, in a disconsolate voice; “yet, wretch as I
+am, am I unworthy to repair the evils that I have committed? I
+came as a repentant criminal. It is you whom I have injured, and
+at your bar am I willing to appear and confess and expiate my
+crimes. I have deceived you; I have sported with your terrors; I
+have plotted to destroy your reputation. I come now to remove your
+terrors; to set you beyond the reach of similar fears; to rebuild
+your fame as far as I am able.
+
+“This is the amount of my guilt, and this the fruit of my remorse.
+Will you not hear me? Listen to my confession, and then denounce
+punishment. All I ask is a patient audience.”
+
+“What!” I replied; “was not thine the voice that commanded my
+brother to imbrue his hands in the blood of his children?—to
+strangle that angel of sweetness, his wife? Has he not vowed my
+death, and the death of Pleyel, at thy bidding? Hast thou not made
+him the butcher of his family?—changed him who was the glory of
+his species into worse than brute?—robbed him of reason and
+consigned the rest of his days to fetters and stripes?”
+
+Carwin’s eyes glared and his limbs were petrified at this
+intelligence. No words were requisite to prove him guiltless of
+these enormities: at the time, however, I was nearly insensible to
+these exculpatory tokens. He walked to the farther end of the
+room, and, having recovered some degree of composure, he spoke:—
+
+“I am not this villain. I have slain no one; I have prompted none
+to slay; I have handled a tool of wonderful efficacy without
+malignant intentions, but without caution. Ample will be the
+punishment of my temerity, if my conduct has contributed to this
+evil.” He paused.
+
+I likewise was silent. I struggled to command myself so far as to
+listen to the tale which he should tell. Observing this, he
+continued:—
+
+“You are not apprised of the existence of a power which I possess.
+I know not by what name to call it.[1] It enables me to mimic
+exactly the voice of another, and to modify the sound so that it
+shall appear to come from what quarter and be uttered at what
+distance I please.
+
+“I know not that everyone possesses this power. Perhaps, though a
+casual position of my organs in my youth showed me that I possessed
+it, it is an art which may be taught to all. Would to God I had
+died unknowing of the secret! It has produced nothing but
+degradation and calamity.”
+
+
+[1] Biloquium, or ventrilocution. Sound is varied according to the
+variations of direction and distance. The art of the ventriloquist
+consists in modifying his voice according to all these variations,
+without changing his place. See the work of the Abbe de la
+Chappelle, in which are accurately recorded the performances of one
+of these artists, and some ingenious though unsatisfactory
+speculations are given on the means by which the effects are
+produced. This power is, perhaps, given by nature, but is
+doubtless improvable, if not acquirable, by art. It may, possibly,
+consist in an unusual flexibility or extension of the bottom of the
+tongue and the uvula. That speech is producible by these alone
+must be granted, since anatomists mention two instances of persons
+speaking without a tongue. In one case the organ was originally
+wanting, but its place was supplied by a small tubercle, and the
+uvula was perfect. In the other the tongue was destroyed by
+disease, but probably a small part of it remained.
+
+This power is difficult to explain, but the fact is undeniable.
+Experience shows that the human voice can imitate the voice of all
+men and of all inferior animals. The sound of musical instruments,
+and even noises from the contact of inanimate substances, have been
+accurately imitated. The mimicry of animals is notorious; and Dr.
+Burney (“Musical Travels”) mentions one who imitated a flute and
+violin, so as to deceive even his ears.
+
+
+
+THIRD PART
+
+
+I
+
+
+[After Carwin’s confession of his powers of ventriloquism all the
+mysteries are cleared up—save one. The owner of the voice heard
+in Clara’s chamber, on the first night after the wanderer appeared
+at Mettingen; the threatener on the edge of the precipice; the spy
+in Clara’s closet, and would-be intruder; the manipulator of the
+vile plot that destroyed her lover’s confidence—all these hidden
+identities have materialized in the person of this one unhappy man.
+But while confessing the prying disposition which led to these
+sins, in efforts to protect himself from discovery, Carwin still
+denies that Wieland’s mad acts were perpetrated at his
+instigation.]
+
+
+“I have uttered the truth. This is the extent of my offenses. You
+tell me a horrid tale of Wieland being led to the destruction of
+his wife and children by some mysterious agent. You charge me with
+the guilt of this agency, but I repeat that the amount of my guilt
+has been truly stated. The perpetrator of Catharine’s death was
+unknown to me till now; nay, it is still unknown to me.”
+
+At that moment, the closing of a door in the kitchen was distinctly
+heard by us. Carwin started and paused. “There is some one
+coming. I must not be found here by my enemies, and need not,
+since my purpose is answered.”
+
+I had drunk in, with the most vehement attention, every word that
+he had uttered. I had no breath to interrupt his tale by
+interrogations or comments. The power that he spoke of was
+hitherto unknown to me; its existence was incredible; it was
+susceptible of no direct proof.
+
+He owns that his were the voice and face which I heard and saw. He
+attempts to give a human explanation of these phantasms but it is
+enough that he owns himself to be the agent: his tale is a lie, and
+his nature devilish. As he deceived me, he likewise deceived my
+brother, and now do I behold the author of all our calamities!
+
+Such were my thoughts when his pause allowed me to think. I should
+have bade him begone if the silence had not been interrupted; but
+now I feared no more for myself; and the milkiness of my nature was
+curdled into hatred and rancor. Some one was near, and this enemy
+of God and man might possibly be brought to justice. I reflected
+not that the preternatural power which he had hitherto exerted
+would avail to rescue him from any toils in which his feet might be
+entangled. Meanwhile, looks, and not words, of menace and
+abhorrence, were all that I could bestow.
+
+He did not depart. He seemed dubious whether by passing out of the
+house, or by remaining somewhat longer where he was, he should most
+endanger his safety. His confusion increased when steps of one
+barefoot were heard upon the stairs. He threw anxious glances
+sometimes at the closet, sometimes at the window, and sometimes at
+the chamber door; yet he was detained by some inexplicable
+fascination. He stood as if rooted to the spot.
+
+As to me, my soul was bursting with detestation and revenge. I had
+no room for surmises and fears respecting him that approached. It
+was doubtless a human being, and would befriend me so far as to aid
+me in arresting this offender.
+
+The stranger quickly entered the room. My eyes and the eyes of
+Carwin were at the same moment darted upon him. A second glance
+was not needed to inform us who he was. His locks were tangled,
+and fell confusedly over his forehead and ears. His shirt was of
+coarse stuff, and open at the neck and breast. His coat was once
+of bright and fine texture, but now torn and tarnished with dust.
+His feet, his legs, and his arms, were bare. His features were the
+seat of a wild and tranquil solemnity, but his eyes bespoke
+inquietude and curiosity.
+
+He advanced with a firm step, and looking as in search of some one.
+He saw me and stopped. He bent his sight on the floor, and,
+clenching his hands, appeared suddenly absorbed in meditation.
+Such were the figure and deportment of Wieland! Such, in his
+fallen state, were the aspect and guise of my brother!
+
+Carwin did not fail to recognize the visitant. Care for his own
+safety was apparently swallowed up in the amazement which this
+spectacle produced. His station was conspicuous, and he could not
+have escaped the roving glances of Wieland; yet the latter seemed
+totally unconscious of his presence.
+
+Grief at this scene of ruin and blast was at first the only
+sentiment of which I was conscious. A fearful stillness ensued.
+At length Wieland, lifting his hands, which were locked in each
+other, to his breast, exclaimed, “Father! I thank thee. This is
+thy guidance. Hither thou hast led me, that I might perform thy
+will. Yet let me not err; let me hear again thy messenger!”
+
+He stood for a minute as if listening; but, recovering from his
+attitude, he continued, “It is not needed. Dastardly wretch! thus
+eternally questioning the behests of thy Maker! weak in resolution,
+wayward in faith!”
+
+He advanced to me, and, after another pause, resumed:—“Poor girl!
+a dismal fate has set its mark upon thee. Thy life is demanded as
+a sacrifice. Prepare thee to die. Make not my office difficult by
+fruitless opposition. Thy prayers might subdue stones; but none
+but he who enjoined my purpose can shake it.”
+
+These words were a sufficient explication of the scene. The nature
+of his frenzy, as described by my uncle, was remembered. I, who
+had sought death, was now thrilled with horror because it was near.
+Death in this form, death from the hand of a brother, was thought
+upon with indescribable repugnance.
+
+In a state thus verging upon madness, my eye glanced upon Carwin.
+His astonishment appeared to have struck him motionless and dumb.
+My life was in danger, and my brother’s hand was about to be
+imbrued in my blood. I firmly believed that Carwin’s was the
+instigation. I could rescue myself from this abhorred fate; I
+could dissipate this tremendous illusion; I could save my brother
+from the perpetration of new horrors, by pointing out the devil who
+seduced him. To hesitate a moment was to perish. These thoughts
+gave strength to my limbs and energy to my accents; I started on my
+feet:—
+
+“Oh, brother! spare me! spare thyself! There is thy betrayer. He
+counterfeited the voice and face of an angel, for the purpose of
+destroying thee and me. He has this moment confessed it. He is
+able to speak where he is not. He is leagued with hell, but will
+not avow it; yet he confesses that the agency was his.”
+
+My brother turned slowly his eyes, and fixed them upon Carwin.
+Every joint in the frame of the latter trembled. His complexion
+was paler than a ghost’s. His eye dared not meet that of Wieland,
+but wandered with an air of distraction from one space to another.
+
+“Man,” said my brother, in a voice totally unlike that which he had
+used to me, “what art thou? The charge has been made. Answer it.
+The visage—the voice—at the bottom of these stairs—at the hour
+of eleven—to whom did they belong? To thee?”
+
+Twice did Carwin attempt to speak, but his words died away upon his
+lips. My brother resumed, in a tone of greater vehemence:—
+
+“Thou falterest. Faltering is ominous. Say yes or no; one word
+will suffice; but beware of falsehood. Was it a stratagem of hell
+to overthrow my family? Wast thou the agent?”
+
+I now saw that the wrath which had been prepared for me was to be
+heaped upon another. The tale that I heard from him, and his
+present trepidations, were abundant testimonies of his guilt. But
+what if Wieland should be undeceived! What if he shall find his
+act to have proceeded not from a heavenly prompter, but from human
+treachery! Will not his rage mount into whirlwind? Will not he
+tear limb from limb this devoted wretch?
+
+Instinctively I recoiled from this image; but it gave place to
+another. Carwin may be innocent, but the impetuosity of his judge
+may misconstrue his answers into a confession of guilt. Wieland
+knows not that mysterious voices and appearances were likewise
+witnessed by me. Carwin may be ignorant of those which misled my
+brother. Thus may his answers unwarily betray himself to ruin.
+
+Such might be the consequences of my frantic precipitation, and
+these it was necessary, if possible, to prevent. I attempted to
+speak; but Wieland, turning suddenly upon me, commanded silence, in
+a tone furious and terrible. My lips closed, and my tongue refused
+its office.
+
+“What art thou?” he resumed, addressing himself to Carwin. “Answer
+me: whose form—whose voice,—was it thy contrivance? Answer me.”
+
+The answer was now given, but confusedly and scarcely articulated.
+“I meant nothing—I intended no ill—if I understand—if I do not
+mistake you—it is too true—I did appear—in the entry—did speak.
+The contrivance was mine, but—”
+
+These words were no sooner uttered, than my brother ceased to wear
+the same aspect. His eyes were downcast; he was motionless; his
+respiration became hoarse, like that of a man in the agonies of
+death. Carwin seemed unable to say more. He might have easily
+escaped; but the thought which occupied him related to what was
+horrid and unintelligible in this scene, and not to his own danger.
+
+Presently the faculties of Wieland, which, for a time, were chained
+up, were seized with restlessness and trembling. He broke silence.
+The stoutest heart would have been appalled by the tone in which he
+spoke. He addressed himself to Carwin:—
+
+“Why art thou here? Who detains thee? Go and learn better. I
+will meet thee, but it must be at the bar of thy Maker. There
+shall I bear witness against thee.”
+
+Perceiving that Carwin did not obey, he continued, “Dost thou wish
+me to complete the catalogue by thy death? Thy life is a worthless
+thing. Tempt me no more. I am but a man, and thy presence may
+awaken a fury which may spurn my control. Begone!”
+
+Carwin, irresolute, striving in vain for utterance, his complexion
+pallid as death, his knees beating one against another, slowly
+obeyed the mandate and withdrew.
+
+
+II
+
+
+A few words more and I lay aside the pen forever. Yet why should I
+not relinquish it now? All that I have said is preparatory to this
+scene, and my fingers, tremulous and cold as my heart, refuse any
+further exertion. This must not be. Let my last energies support
+me in the finishing of this task. Then will I lay down my head in
+the lap of death. Hushed will be all my murmurs in the sleep of
+the grave.
+
+Every sentiment has perished in my bosom. Even friendship is
+extinct. Your love for me has prompted me to this task; but I
+would not have complied if it had not been a luxury thus to feast
+upon my woes. I have justly calculated upon my remnant of
+strength. When I lay down the pen the taper of life will expire;
+my existence will terminate with my tale.
+
+Now that I was left alone with Wieland, the perils of my situation
+presented themselves to my mind. That this paroxysm should
+terminate in havoc and rage it was reasonable to predict. The
+first suggestion of my fears had been disproved by my experience.
+Carwin had acknowledged his offenses, and yet had escaped. The
+vengeance which I had harbored had not been admitted by Wieland;
+and yet the evils which I had endured, compared with those
+inflicted on my brother, were as nothing. I thirsted for his
+blood, and was tormented with an insatiable appetite for his
+destruction; but my brother was unmoved, and had dismissed him in
+safety. Surely thou wast more than man, while I am sunk below the
+beasts.
+
+Did I place a right construction on the conduct of Wieland? Was
+the error that misled him so easily rectified? Were views so vivid
+and faith so strenuous thus liable to fading and to change? Was
+there not reason to doubt the accuracy of my perceptions? With
+images like these was my mind thronged, till the deportment of my
+brother called away my attention.
+
+I saw his lips move and his eyes cast up to heaven. Then would he
+listen and look back, as if in expectation of some one’s
+appearance. Thrice he repeated these gesticulations and this
+inaudible prayer. Each time the mist of confusion and doubt seemed
+to grow darker and to settle on his understanding. I guessed at
+the meaning of these tokens. The words of Carwin had shaken his
+belief, and he was employed in summoning the messenger who had
+formerly communed with him, to attest the value of those new
+doubts. In vain the summons was repeated, for his eye met nothing
+but vacancy, and not a sound saluted his ear.
+
+He walked to the bed, gazed with eagerness at the pillow which had
+sustained the head of the breathless Catharine, and then returned
+to the place where I sat. I had no power to lift my eyes to his
+face: I was dubious of his purpose; this purpose might aim at my
+life.
+
+Alas! nothing but subjection to danger and exposure to temptation
+can show us what we are. By this test was I now tried, and found
+to be cowardly and rash. Men can deliberately untie the thread of
+life, and of this I had deemed myself capable. It was now that I
+stood upon the brink of fate, that the knife of the sacrificer was
+aimed at my heart, I shuddered, and betook myself to any means of
+escape, however monstrous.
+
+Can I bear to think—can I endure to relate the outrage which my
+heart meditated? Where were my means of safety? Resistance was
+vain. Not even the energy of despair could set me on a level with
+that strength which his terrific prompter had bestowed upon
+Wieland. Terror enables us to perform incredible feats; but terror
+was not then the state of my mind: where then were my hopes of
+rescue?
+
+Methinks it is too much. I stand aside, as it were, from myself; I
+estimate my own deservings; a hatred, immortal and inexorable, is
+my due. I listen to my own pleas, and find them empty and false:
+yes, I acknowledge that my guilt surpasses that of mankind; I
+confess that the curses of a world and the frowns of a Deity are
+inadequate to my demerits. Is there a thing in the world worthy of
+infinite abhorrence? It is I.
+
+What shall I say? I was menaced, as I thought, with death, and, to
+elude this evil, my hand was ready to inflict death upon the
+menacer. In visiting my house, I had made provision against the
+machinations of Carwin. In a fold of my dress an open penknife was
+concealed. This I now seized and drew forth. It lurked out of
+view; but I now see that my state of mind would have rendered the
+deed inevitable if my brother had lifted his hand. This instrument
+of my preservation would have been plunged into his heart.
+
+O insupportable remembrance! hide thee from my view for a time;
+hide it from me that my heart was black enough to meditate the
+stabbing of a brother! a brother thus supreme in misery; thus
+towering in virtue!
+
+He was probably unconscious of my design, but presently drew back.
+This interval was sufficient to restore me to myself. The madness,
+the iniquity, of that act which I had purposed rushed upon my
+apprehension. For a moment I was breathless with agony. At the
+next moment I recovered my strength, and threw the knife with
+violence on the floor.
+
+The sound awoke my brother from his reverie. He gazed alternately
+at me and at the weapon. With a movement equally solemn he stooped
+and took it up. He placed the blade in different positions,
+scrutinizing it accurately, and maintaining, at the same time, a
+profound silence.
+
+Again he looked at me; but all that vehemence and loftiness of
+spirit which had so lately characterized his features were flown.
+Fallen muscles, a forehead contracted into folds, eyes dim with
+unbidden drops, and a ruefulness of aspect which no words can
+describe, were now visible.
+
+His looks touched into energy the same sympathies in me, and I
+poured forth a flood of tears. This passion was quickly checked by
+fear, which had now no longer my own but his safety for their
+object. I watched his deportment in silence. At length he spoke:—
+
+“Sister,” said he, in an accent mournful and mild, “I have acted
+poorly my part in this world. What thinkest thou? Shall I not do
+better in the next?”
+
+I could make no answer. The mildness of his tone astonished and
+encouraged me. I continued to regard him with wistful and anxious
+looks.
+
+“I think,” resumed he, “I will try. My wife and my babes have gone
+before. Happy wretches! I have sent you to repose, and ought not
+to linger behind.”
+
+These words had a meaning sufficiently intelligible. I looked at
+the open knife in his hand and shuddered, but knew not how to
+prevent the deed which I dreaded. He quickly noticed my fears, and
+comprehended them. Stretching toward me his hand, with an air of
+increasing mildness, “Take it,” said he; “fear not for thy own
+sake, nor for mine. The cup is gone by, and its transient
+inebriation is succeeded by the soberness of truth.
+
+“Thou angel whom I was wont to worship! fearest thou, my sister,
+for thy life? Once it was the scope of my labors to destroy thee,
+but I was prompted to the deed by heaven; such, at least, was my
+belief. Thinkest thou that thy death was sought to gratify
+malevolence? No. I am pure from all stain. I believed that my
+God was my mover!
+
+“Neither thee nor myself have I cause to injure. I have done my
+duty; and surely there is merit in having sacrificed to that all
+that is dear to the heart of man. If a devil has deceived me, he
+came in the habit of an angel. If I erred, it was not my judgment
+that deceived me, but my senses. In thy sight, Being of beings! I
+am still pure. Still will I look for my reward in thy justice!”
+
+Did my ears truly report these sounds? If I did not err, my
+brother was restored to just perceptions. He knew himself to have
+been betrayed to the murder of his wife and children, to have been
+the victim of infernal artifice; yet he found consolation in the
+rectitude of his motives. He was not devoid of sorrow, for this
+was written on his countenance; but his soul was tranquil and
+sublime.
+
+Perhaps this was merely a transition of his former madness into a
+new shape. Perhaps he had not yet awakened to the memory of the
+horrors which he had perpetrated. Infatuated wretch that I was!
+To set myself up as a model by which to judge of my heroic brother!
+My reason taught me that his conclusions were right; but, conscious
+of the impotence of reason over my own conduct, conscious of my
+cowardly rashness and my criminal despair, I doubted whether anyone
+could be steadfast and wise.
+
+Such was my weakness, that even in the midst of these thoughts my
+mind glided into abhorrence of Carwin, and I uttered, in a low
+voice, “O Carwin! Carwin! what hast thou to answer for?”
+
+My brother immediately noticed the involuntary exclamation.
+“Clara!” said he, “be thyself. Equity used to be a theme for thy
+eloquence. Reduce its lessons to practice, and be just to that
+unfortunate man. The instrument has done its work, and I am
+satisfied.
+
+“I thank thee, my God, for this last illumination! My enemy is
+thine also. I deemed him to be a man,—the man with whom I have
+often communed; but now thy goodness has unveiled to me his true
+nature. As the performer of thy behests, he is my friend.”
+
+My heart began now to misgive me. His mournful aspect had
+gradually yielded place to a serene brow. A new soul appeared to
+actuate his frame, and his eyes to beam with preternatural luster.
+These symptoms did not abate, and he continued:—
+
+“Clara, I must not leave thee in doubt. I know not what brought
+about thy interview with the being whom thou callest Carwin. For a
+time I was guilty of thy error, and deduced from his incoherent
+confessions that I had been made the victim of human malice. He
+left us at my bidding, and I put up a prayer that my doubts should
+be removed. Thy eyes were shut and thy ears sealed to the vision
+that answered my prayer.
+
+“I was indeed deceived. The form thou hast seen was the
+incarnation of a demon. The visage and voice which urged me to the
+sacrifice of my family were his. Now he personates a human form;
+then he was environed with the luster of heaven.
+
+“Clara,” he continued, advancing closer to me, “thy death must
+come. This minister is evil, but he from whom his commission was
+received is God. Submit then with all thy wonted resignation to a
+decree that cannot be reversed or resisted. Mark the clock. Three
+minutes are allowed to thee, in which to call up thy fortitude and
+prepare thee for thy doom.” There he stopped.
+
+Even now, when this scene exists only in memory, when life and all
+its functions have sunk into torpor, my pulse throbs, and my hairs
+uprise; my brows are knit, as then, and I gaze around me in
+distraction. I was unconquerably averse to death; but death,
+imminent and full of agony as that which was threatened, was
+nothing. This was not the only or chief inspirer of my fears.
+
+For him, not for myself, was my soul tormented. I might die, and
+no crime, surpassing the reach of mercy, would pursue me to the
+presence of my Judge; but my assassin would survive to contemplate
+his deed, and that assassin was Wieland!
+
+Wings to bear me beyond his reach I had not. I could not vanish
+with a thought. The door was open, but my murderer was interposed
+between that and me. Of self-defense I was incapable. The frenzy
+that lately prompted me to blood was gone: my state was desperate;
+my rescue was impossible.
+
+The weight of these accumulated thoughts could not be borne. My
+sight became confused; my limbs were seized with convulsion; I
+spoke, but my words were half formed:—
+
+“Spare me, my brother! Look down, righteous Judge! snatch me from
+this fate! take away this fury from him, or turn it elsewhere!”
+
+Such was the agony of my thoughts that I noticed not steps entering
+my apartment. Supplicating eyes were cast upward; but when my
+prayer was breathed I once more wildly gazed at the door. A form
+met my sight; I shuddered as if the God whom I invoked were
+present. It was Carwin that again intruded, and who stood before
+me, erect in attitude and steadfast in look!
+
+The sight of him awakened new and rapid thoughts. His recent tale
+was remembered; his magical transitions and mysterious energy of
+voice. Whether he were infernal or miraculous or human, there was
+no power and no need to decide. Whether the contriver or not of
+this spell, he was able to unbind it, and to check the fury of my
+brother. He had ascribed to himself intentions not malignant.
+Here now was afforded a test of his truth. Let him interpose, as
+from above; revoke the savage decree which the madness of Wieland
+has assigned to heaven, and extinguish forever this passion for
+blood!
+
+My mind detected at a glance this avenue to safety. The
+recommendations it possessed thronged as it were together, and made
+but one impression on my intellect. Remoter effects and collateral
+dangers I saw not. Perhaps the pause of an instant had sufficed to
+call them up. The improbability that the influence which governed
+Wieland was external or human; the tendency of this stratagem to
+sanction so fatal an error or substitute a more destructive rage in
+place of this; the insufficiency of Carwin’s mere muscular forces
+to counteract the efforts and restrain the fury of Wieland, might,
+at a second glance, have been discovered; but no second glance was
+allowed. My first thought hurried me to action, and, fixing my
+eyes upon Carwin, I exclaimed,—
+
+“O wretch! once more hast thou come? Let it be to abjure thy
+malice; to counterwork this hellish stratagem; to turn from me and
+from my brother this desolating rage!
+
+“Testify thy innocence or thy remorse; exert the powers which
+pertain to thee, whatever they be, to turn aside this ruin. Thou
+art the author of these horrors! What have I done to deserve thus
+to die? How have I merited this unrelenting persecution? I adjure
+thee, by that God whose voice thou hast dared to counterfeit, to
+save my life!
+
+“Wilt thou then go?—leave me! Succorless!”
+
+Carwin listened to my entreaties unmoved, and turned from me. He
+seemed to hesitate a moment,—then glided through the door. Rage
+and despair stifled my utterance. The interval of respite was
+past; the pangs reserved for me by Wieland were not to be endured;
+my thoughts rushed again into anarchy. Having received the knife
+from his hand, I held it loosely and without regard; but now it
+seized again my attention, and I grasped it with force.
+
+He seemed to notice not the entrance or exit of Carwin. My gesture
+and the murderous weapon appeared to have escaped his notice. His
+silence was unbroken; his eye, fixed upon the clock for a time, was
+now withdrawn; fury kindled in every feature; all that was human in
+his face gave way to an expression supernatural and tremendous. I
+felt my left arm within his grasp.
+
+Even now I hesitated to strike. I shrunk from his assault, but in
+vain.
+
+Here let me desist. Why should I rescue this event from oblivion?
+Why should I paint this detestable conflict? Why not terminate at
+once this series of horrors?—Hurry to the verge of the precipice,
+and cast myself forever beyond remembrance and beyond hope?
+
+Still I live; with this load upon my breast; with this phantom to
+pursue my steps; with adders lodged in my bosom, and stinging me to
+madness; still I consent to live!
+
+Yes! I will rise above the sphere of mortal passions; I will spurn
+at the cowardly remorse that bids me seek impunity in silence, or
+comfort in forgetfulness. My nerves shall be new-strung to the
+task. Have I not resolved? I will die. The gulf before me is
+inevitable and near. I will die, but then only when my tale is at
+an end.
+
+
+III
+
+
+My right hand, grasping the unseen knife, was still disengaged. It
+was lifted to strike. All my strength was exhausted but what was
+sufficient to the performance of this deed. Already was the energy
+awakened and the impulse given that should bear the fatal steel to
+his heart, when—Wieland shrunk back; his hand was withdrawn.
+Breathless with affright and desperation, I stood, freed from his
+grasp; unassailed; untouched.
+
+Thus long had the power which controlled the scene forborne to
+interfere: but now his might was irresistible; and Wieland in a
+moment was disarmed of all his purposes. A voice, louder than
+human organs could produce, shriller than language can depict,
+burst from the ceiling and commanded him—TO HOLD!
+
+Trouble and dismay succeeded to the steadfastness that had lately
+been displayed in the looks of Wieland. His eyes roved from one
+quarter to another, with an expression of doubt. He seemed to wait
+for a further intimation.
+
+Carwin’s agency was here easily recognized. I had besought him to
+interpose in my defense. He had flown. I had imagined him deaf to
+my prayer, and resolute to see me perish; yet he disappeared merely
+to devise and execute the means of my relief.
+
+Why did he not forbear when this end was accomplished? Why did his
+misjudging zeal and accursed precipitation overpass that limit? Or
+meant he thus to crown the scene, and conduct his inscrutable plots
+to this consummation?
+
+Such ideas were the fruit of subsequent contemplation. This moment
+was pregnant with fate. I had no power to reason. In the career
+of my tempestuous thoughts, rent into pieces as my mind was by
+accumulating horrors, Carwin was unseen and unsuspected. I partook
+of Wieland’s credulity, shook with his amazement, and panted with
+his awe.
+
+Silence took place for a moment: so much as allowed the attention
+to recover its post. Then new sounds were uttered from above:—
+
+“Man of errors! cease to cherish thy delusion; not heaven or hell,
+but thy senses, have misled thee to commit these acts. Shake off
+thy frenzy, and ascend into rational and human. Be lunatic no
+longer.”
+
+My brother opened his lips to speak. His tone was terrific and
+faint. He muttered an appeal to heaven. It was difficult to
+comprehend the theme of his inquiries. They implied doubt as to
+the nature of the impulse that hitherto had guided him, and
+questioned whether he had acted in consequence of insane
+perceptions.
+
+To these interrogatories the voice, which now seemed to hover at
+his shoulder, loudly answered in the affirmative. Then
+uninterrupted silence ensued.
+
+Fallen from his lofty and heroic station; now finally restored to
+the perception of truth; weighed to earth by the recollection of
+his own deeds; consoled no longer by a consciousness of rectitude
+for the loss of offspring and wife,—a loss for which he was
+indebted to his own misguided hand,—Wieland was transformed at
+once into the MAN OF SORROWS!
+
+He reflected not that credit should be as reasonably denied to the
+last as to any former intimation; that one might as justly be
+ascribed to erring or diseased senses as the other. He saw not
+that this discovery in no degree affected the integrity of his
+conduct; that his motives had lost none of their claims to the
+homage of mankind; that the preference of supreme good, and the
+boundless energy of duty, were undiminished in his bosom.
+
+It is not for me to pursue him through the ghastly changes of his
+countenance. Words he had none. Now he sat upon the floor,
+motionless in all his limbs, with his eyes glazed and fixed, a
+monument of woe.
+
+Anon a spirit of tempestuous but undesigning activity seized him.
+He rose from his place and strode across the floor, tottering and
+at random. His eyes were without moisture, and gleamed with the
+fire that consumed his vitals. The muscles of his face were
+agitated by convulsions. His lips moved, but no sound escaped him.
+
+That nature should long sustain this conflict was not to be
+believed. My state was little different from that of my brother.
+I entered, as it were, into his thoughts. My heart was visited and
+rent by his pangs. “Oh that thy frenzy had never been cured! that
+thy madness, with its blissful visions, would return! or, if that
+must not be, that thy scene would hasten to a close!—that death
+would cover thee with his oblivion!
+
+“What can I wish for thee? Thou who hast vied with the great
+Preacher of thy faith in sanctity of motives, and in elevation
+above sensual and selfish! Thou whom thy fate has changed into
+parricide and savage! Can I wish for the continuance of thy being?
+No.”
+
+For a time his movements seemed destitute of purpose. If he
+walked; if he turned; if his fingers were entwined with each other;
+if his hands were pressed against opposite sides of his head with a
+force sufficient to crush it into pieces; it was to tear his mind
+from self-contemplation; to waste his thoughts on external objects.
+
+Speedily this train was broken. A beam appeared to be darted into
+his mind which gave a purpose to his efforts. An avenue to escape
+presented itself; and now he eagerly gazed about him. When my
+thoughts became engaged by his demeanor, my fingers were stretched
+as by a mechanical force, and the knife, no longer heeded or of
+use, escaped from my grasp and fell unperceived on the floor. His
+eye now lighted upon it; he seized it with the quickness of
+thought.
+
+I shrieked aloud, but it was too late. He plunged it to the hilt
+in his neck; and his life instantly escaped with the stream that
+gushed from the wound. He was stretched at my feet; and my hands
+were sprinkled with his blood as he fell.
+
+Such was thy last deed, my brother! For a spectacle like this was
+it my fate to be reserved! Thy eyes were closed—thy face ghastly
+with death—thy arms, and the spot where thou lyedst, floated in
+thy life’s blood! These images have not for a moment forsaken me.
+Till I am breathless and cold, they must continue to hover in my
+sight.
+
+Carwin, as I said, had left the room; but he still lingered in the
+house. My voice summoned him to my aid; but I scarcely noticed his
+reentrance, and now faintly recollect his terrified looks, his
+broken exclamations, his vehement avowals of innocence, the
+effusions of his pity for me, and his offers of assistance.
+
+I did not listen—I answered him not—I ceased to upbraid or
+accuse. His guilt was a point to which I was indifferent. Ruffian
+or devil, black as hell or bright as angels, thenceforth he was
+nothing to me. I was incapable of sparing a look or a thought from
+the ruin that was spread at my feet.
+
+When he left me, I was scarcely conscious of any variation in the
+scene. He informed the inhabitants of the hut of what had passed,
+and they flew to the spot. Careless of his own safety, he hasted
+to the city to inform my friends of my condition.
+
+My uncle speedily arrived at the house. The body of Wieland was
+removed from my presence, and they supposed that I would follow it;
+but no, my home is ascertained; here I have taken up my rest, and
+never will I go hence, till, like Wieland, I am borne to my grave.
+
+Importunity was tried in vain. They threatened to remove me by
+violence,—nay, violence was used; but my soul prizes too dearly
+this little roof to endure to be bereaved of it. Force should not
+prevail when the hoary locks and supplicating tears of my uncle
+were ineffectual. My repugnance to move gave birth to
+ferociousness and frenzy when force was employed, and they were
+obliged to consent to my return.
+
+They besought me—they remonstrated—they appealed to every duty
+that connected me with Him that made me and with my fellow-men—in
+vain. While I live I will not go hence. Have I not fulfilled my
+destiny?
+
+Why will ye torment me with your reasonings and reproofs? Can ye
+restore to me the hope of my better days? Can ye give me back
+Catharine and her babes? Can ye recall to life him who died at my
+feet?
+
+I will eat—I will drink—I will lie down and rise up—at your
+bidding; all I ask is the choice of my abode. What is there
+unreasonable in this demand? Shortly will I be at peace. This is
+the spot which I have chosen in which to breathe my last sigh.
+Deny me not, I beseech you, so slight a boon.
+
+Talk not to me, O my reverend friend! of Carwin. He has told thee
+his tale, and thou exculpatest him from all direct concern in the
+fate of Wieland. This scene of havoc was produced by an illusion
+of the senses. Be it so; I care not from what source these
+disasters have flowed; it suffices that they have swallowed up our
+hopes and our existence.
+
+What his agency began, his agency conducted to a close. He
+intended, by the final effort of his power, to rescue me and to
+banish his illusions from my brother. Such is his tale, concerning
+the truth of which I care not. Henceforth I foster but one wish: I
+ask only quick deliverance from life and all the ills that attend
+it.
+
+Go, wretch! torment me not with thy presence and thy prayers.—
+Forgive thee? Will that avail thee when thy fateful hour shall
+arrive? Be thou acquitted at thy own tribunal, and thou needest
+not fear the verdict of others. If thy guilt be capable of blacker
+hues, if hitherto thy conscience be without stain, thy crime will
+be made more flagrant by thus violating my retreat. Take thyself
+away from my sight if thou wouldst not behold my death!
+
+Thou art gone! murmuring and reluctant! And now my repose is
+coming—my work is done!
+
+
+
+
+Fitzjames O’Brien
+
+
+
+
+The Golden Ingot
+
+
+I had just retired to rest, with my eyes almost blind with the
+study of a new work on physiology by M. Brown-Sequard, when the
+night bell was pulled violently.
+
+It was winter, and I confess I grumbled as I rose and went
+downstairs to open the door. Twice that week I had been aroused
+long after midnight for the most trivial causes. Once, to attend
+upon the son and heir of a wealthy family, who had cut his thumb
+with a penknife, which, it seems, he insisted on taking to bed with
+him; and once, to restore a young gentleman to consciousness, who
+had been found by his horrified parent stretched insensible on the
+staircase. Diachylon in the one case and ammonia in the other were
+all that my patients required; and I had a faint suspicion that the
+present summons was perhaps occasioned by no case more necessitous
+than those I have quoted. I was too young in my profession,
+however, to neglect opportunities. It is only when a physician
+rises to a very large practice that he can afford to be
+inconsiderate. I was on the first step of the ladder, so I humbly
+opened my door.
+
+A woman was standing ankle deep in the snow that lay upon the
+stoop. I caught but a dim glimpse of her form, for the night was
+cloudy; but I could hear her teeth rattling like castanets, and, as
+the sharp wind blew her clothes close to her form, I could discern
+from the sharpness of the outlines that she was very scantily
+supplied with raiment.
+
+“Come in, come in, my good woman,” I said hastily, for the wind
+seemed to catch eagerly at the opportunity of making itself at home
+in my hall, and was rapidly forcing an entrance through the half-
+open door. “Come in, you can tell me all you have to communicate
+inside.”
+
+She slipped in like a ghost, and I closed the door. While I was
+striking a light in my office, I could hear her teeth still
+clicking out in the dark hall, till it seemed as if some skeleton
+was chattering. As soon as I obtained a light I begged her to
+enter the room, and, without occupying myself particularly about
+her appearance, asked her abruptly what her business was.
+
+“My father has met with a severe accident,” she said, “and requires
+instant surgical aid. I entreat you to come to him immediately.”
+
+The freshness and the melody of her voice startled me. Such voices
+rarely, if ever, issue from any but beautiful forms. I looked at
+her attentively, but, owing to a nondescript species of shawl in
+which her head was wrapped, I could discern nothing beyond what
+seemed to be a pale, thin face and large eyes. Her dress was
+lamentable. An old silk, of a color now unrecognizable, clung to
+her figure in those limp folds which are so eloquent of misery.
+The creases where it had been folded were worn nearly through, and
+the edges of the skirt had decayed into a species of irregular
+fringe, which was clotted and discolored with mud. Her shoes—
+which were but half concealed by this scanty garment—were
+shapeless and soft with moisture. Her hands were hidden under the
+ends of the shawl which covered her head and hung down over a bust,
+the outlines of which, although angular, seemed to possess grace.
+Poverty, when partially shrouded, seldom fails to interest: witness
+the statue of the Veiled Beggar, by Monti.
+
+“In what manner was your father hurt?” I asked, in a tone
+considerably softened from the one in which I put my first
+question.
+
+“He blew himself up, sir, and is terribly wounded.”
+
+“Ah! He is in some factory, then?”
+
+“No, sir, he is a chemist.”
+
+“A chemist? Why, he is a brother professional. Wait an instant,
+and I will slip on my coat and go with you. Do you live far from
+here?”
+
+“In the Seventh Avenue, not more than two blocks from the end of
+this street.”
+
+“So much the better. We will be with him in a few minutes. Did
+you leave anyone in attendance on him?”
+
+“No, sir. He will allow no one but myself to enter his laboratory.
+And, injured as he is, I could not induce him to quit it.”
+
+“Indeed! He is engaged in some great research, perhaps? I have
+known such cases.”
+
+We were passing under a lamp-post, and the woman suddenly turned
+and glared at me with a look of such wild terror that for an
+instant I involuntarily glanced round me under the impression that
+some terrible peril, unseen by me, was menacing us both.
+
+“Don’t—don’t ask me any questions,” she said breathlessly. “He
+will tell you all. But do, oh, do hasten! Good God! he may be
+dead by this time!”
+
+I made no reply, but allowed her to grasp my hand, which she did
+with a bony, nervous clutch, and endeavored with some difficulty to
+keep pace with the long strides—I might well call them bounds, for
+they seemed the springs of a wild animal rather than the paces of a
+young girl—with which she covered the ground. Not a word more was
+uttered until we stopped before a shabby, old-fashioned tenement
+house in the Seventh Avenue, not far above Twenty-third Street.
+She pushed the door open with a convulsive pressure, and, still
+retaining hold of my hand, literally dragged me upstairs to what
+seemed to be a back offshoot from the main building, as high,
+perhaps, as the fourth story. In a moment more I found myself in a
+moderate-sized chamber, lit by a single lamp. In one corner,
+stretched motionless on a wretched pallet bed, I beheld what I
+supposed to be the figure of my patient.
+
+“He is there,” said the girl; “go to him. See if he is dead—I
+dare not look.”
+
+I made my way as well as I could through the numberless dilapidated
+chemical instruments with which the room was littered. A French
+chafing dish supported on an iron tripod had been overturned, and
+was lying across the floor, while the charcoal, still warm, was
+scattered around in various directions. Crucibles, alembics, and
+retorts were confusedly piled in various corners, and on a small
+table I saw distributed in separate bottles a number of mineral and
+metallic substances, which I recognized as antimony, mercury,
+plumbago, arsenic, borax, etc. It was veritably the apartment of a
+poor chemist. All the apparatus had the air of being second-hand.
+There was no luster of exquisitely annealed glass and highly
+polished metals, such as dazzles one in the laboratory of the
+prosperous analyst. The makeshifts of poverty were everywhere
+visible. The crucibles were broken, or gallipots were used instead
+of crucibles. The colored tests were not in the usual transparent
+vials, but were placed in ordinary black bottles. There is nothing
+more melancholy than to behold science or art in distress. A
+threadbare scholar, a tattered book, or a battered violin is a mute
+appeal to our sympathy.
+
+I approached the wretched pallet bed on which the victim of
+chemistry was lying. He breathed heavily, and had his head turned
+toward the wall. I lifted his arm gently to arouse his attention.
+“How goes it, my poor friend?” I asked him. “Where are you hurt?”
+
+In a moment, as if startled by the sound of my voice, he sprang up
+in his bed, and cowered against the wall like a wild animal driven
+to bay. “Who are you? I don’t know you. Who brought you here?
+You are a stranger. How dare you come into my private rooms to spy
+upon me?”
+
+And as he uttered this rapidly with a frightful nervous energy, I
+beheld a pale distorted face, draped with long gray hair, glaring
+at me with a mingled expression of fury and terror.
+
+“I am no spy,” I answered mildly. “I heard that you had met with
+an accident, and have come to cure you. I am Dr. Luxor, and here
+is my card.”
+
+The old man took the card, and scanned it eagerly. “You are a
+physician?” he inquired distrustfully.
+
+“And surgeon also.”
+
+“You are bound by oath not to reveal the secrets of your patients.”
+
+“Undoubtedly.”
+
+“I am afraid that I am hurt,” he continued faintly, half sinking
+back in the bed.
+
+I seized the opportunity to make a brief examination of his body.
+I found that the arms, a part of the chest, and a part of the face
+were terribly scorched; but it seemed to me that there was nothing
+to be apprehended but pain.
+
+“You will not reveal anything that you may learn here?” said the
+old man, feebly fixing his eyes on my face while I was applying a
+soothing ointment to the burns. “You will promise me.”
+
+I nodded assent.
+
+“Then I will trust you. Cure me—I will pay you well.”
+
+I could scarce help smiling. If Lorenzo de’ Medici, conscious of
+millions of ducats in his coffers, had been addressing some leech
+of the period, he could not have spoken with a loftier air than
+this inhabitant of the fourth story of a tenement house in the
+Seventh Avenue.
+
+“You must keep quiet,” I answered. “Let nothing irritate you. I
+will leave a composing draught with your daughter, which she will
+give you immediately. I will see you in the morning. You will be
+well in a week.”
+
+“Thank God!” came in a murmur from a dusk corner near the door. I
+turned, and beheld the dim outline of the girl, standing with
+clasped hands in the gloom of the dim chamber.
+
+“My daughter!” screamed the old man, once more leaping up in the
+bed with renewed vitality. “You have seen her, then? When?
+Where? Oh, may a thousand cur—”
+
+“Father! father! Anything—anything but that. Don’t, don’t curse
+me!” And the poor girl, rushing in, flung herself sobbing on her
+knees beside his pallet.
+
+“Ah, brigand! You are there, are you? Sir,” said he, turning to
+me, “I am the most unhappy man in the world. Talk of Sisyphus
+rolling the ever-recoiling stone—of Prometheus gnawed by the
+vulture since the birth of time. The fables yet live. There is my
+rock, forever crushing me back! there is my eternal vulture,
+feeding upon my heart! There! there! there!” And, with an awful
+gesture of malediction and hatred, he pointed with his wounded
+hand, swathed and shapeless with bandages, at the cowering,
+sobbing, wordless woman by his side.
+
+I was too much horror-stricken to attempt even to soothe him. The
+anger of blood against blood has an electric power which paralyzes
+bystanders.
+
+“Listen to me, sir,” he continued, “while I skin this painted
+viper. I have your oath; you will not reveal. I am an alchemist,
+sir. Since I was twenty-two years old, I have pursued the
+wonderful and subtle secret. Yes, to unfold the mysterious Rose
+guarded with such terrible thorns; to decipher the wondrous Table
+of Emerald; to accomplish the mystic nuptials of the Red King and
+the White Queen; to marry them soul to soul and body to body,
+forever and ever, in the exact proportions of land and water—such
+has been my sublime aim, such has been the splendid feat that I
+have accomplished.”
+
+I recognized at a glance, in this incomprehensible farrago, the
+argot of the true alchemist. Ripley, Flamel, and others have
+supplied the world, in their works, with the melancholy spectacle
+of a scientific bedlam.
+
+“Two years since,” continued the poor man, growing more and more
+excited with every word that he uttered—“two years since, I
+succeeded in solving the great problem—in transmuting the baser
+metals into gold. None but myself, that girl, and God knows the
+privations I had suffered up to that time. Food, clothing, air,
+exercise, everything but shelter, was sacrificed toward the one
+great end. Success at last crowned my labors. That which Nicholas
+Flamel did in 1382, that which George Ripley did at Rhodes in 1460,
+that which Alexander Sethon and Michael Scudivogius did in the
+seventeenth century, I did in 1856. I made gold! I said to
+myself, ‘I will astonish New York more than Flamel did Paris.’ He
+was a poor copyist, and suddenly launched into magnificence. I had
+scarce a rag to my back: I would rival the Medicis. I made gold
+every day. I toiled night and morning; for I must tell you that I
+never was able to make more than a certain quantity at a time, and
+that by a process almost entirely dissimilar to those hinted at in
+those books of alchemy I had hitherto consulted. But I had no
+doubt that facility would come with experience, and that ere long I
+should be able to eclipse in wealth the richest sovereigns of the
+earth.
+
+“So I toiled on. Day after day I gave to this girl here what gold
+I succeeded in fabricating, telling her to store it away after
+supplying our necessities. I was astonished to perceive that we
+lived as poorly as ever. I reflected, however, that it was perhaps
+a commendable piece of prudence on the part of my daughter.
+Doubtless, I said, she argues that the less we spend the sooner we
+shall accumulate a capital wherewith to live at ease; so, thinking
+her course a wise one, I did not reproach her with her
+niggardliness, but toiled on, amid want, with closed lips.
+
+“The gold which I fabricated was, as I said before, of an
+invariable size, namely, a little ingot worth perhaps thirty or
+forty-five dollars. In two years I calculated that I had made five
+hundred of these ingots, which, rated at an average of thirty
+dollars apiece, would amount to the gross sum of fifteen thousand
+dollars. After deducting our slight expenses for two years, we
+ought to have had nearly fourteen thousand dollars left. It was
+time, I thought, to indemnify myself for my years of suffering, and
+surround my child and myself with such moderate comforts as our
+means allowed. I went to my daughter and explained to her that I
+desired to make an encroachment upon our little hoard. To my utter
+amazement, she burst into tears, and told me that she had not got a
+dollar—that all of our wealth had been stolen from her. Almost
+overwhelmed by this new misfortune, I in vain endeavored to
+discover from her in what manner our savings had been plundered.
+She could afford me no explanation beyond what I might gather from
+an abundance of sobs and a copious flow of tears.
+
+“It was a bitter blow, doctor, but nil desperandum was my motto, so
+I went to work at my crucible again, with redoubled energy, and
+made an ingot nearly every second day. I determined this time to
+put them in some secure place myself; but the very first day I set
+my apparatus in order for the projection, the girl Marion—that is
+my daughter’s name—came weeping to me and implored me to allow her
+to take care of our treasure. I refused decisively, saying that,
+having found her already incapable of filling the trust, I could
+place no faith in her again. But she persisted, clung to my neck,
+threatened to abandon me; in short, used so many of the bad but
+irresistible arguments known to women that I had not the heart to
+refuse her. She has since that time continued to take the ingots.
+
+“Yet you behold,” continued the old alchemist, casting an
+inexpressibly mournful glance around the wretched apartment, “the
+way we live. Our food is insufficient and of bad quality; we never
+buy clothes; the rent of this hole is a mere nothing. What am I to
+think of the wretched girl who plunges me into this misery? Is she
+a miser, think you?—or a female gamester?—or—or—does she
+squander it riotously in places I know not of? O Doctor, Doctor!
+do not blame me if I heap imprecations on her head, for I have
+suffered bitterly!” The poor man here closed his eyes and sank
+back groaning on his bed.
+
+This singular narrative excited in me the strangest emotions. I
+glanced at the girl Marion, who had been a patient listener to
+these horrible accusations of cupidity, and never did I behold a
+more angelic air of resignation than beamed over her countenance.
+It was impossible that anyone with those pure, limpid eyes; that
+calm, broad forehead; that childlike mouth, could be such a monster
+of avarice or deceit as the old man represented. The truth was
+plain enough: the alchemist was mad—what alchemist was there ever
+who was not?—and his insanity had taken this terrible shape. I
+felt an inexpressible pity move my heart for this poor girl, whose
+youth was burdened with such an awful sorrow.
+
+“What is your name?” I asked the old man, taking his tremulous,
+fevered hand in mine.
+
+“William Blakelock,” he answered. “I come of an old Saxon stock,
+sir, that bred true men and women in former days. God! how did it
+ever come to pass that such a one as that girl ever sprung from our
+line?” The glance of loathing and contempt that he cast at her
+made me shudder.
+
+“May you not be mistaken in your daughter?” I said, very mildly.
+“Delusions with regard to alchemy are, or have been, very common—”
+
+“What, sir?” cried the old man, bounding in his bed. “What? Do
+you doubt that gold can be made? Do you know, sir, that M. C.
+Theodore Tiffereau made gold at Paris in the year 1854 in the
+presence of M. Levol, the assayer of the Imperial Mint, and the
+result of the experiments was read before the Academy of Sciences
+on the sixteenth of October of the same year? But stay; you shall
+have better proof yet. I will pay you with one of my ingots, and
+you shall attend me until I am well. Get me an ingot!”
+
+This last command was addressed to Marion, who was still kneeling
+close to her father’s bedside. I observed her with some curiosity
+as this mandate was issued. She became very pale, clasped her
+hands convulsively, but neither moved nor made any reply.
+
+“Get me an ingot, I say!” reiterated the alchemist passionately.
+
+She fixed her large eyes imploringly upon him. Her lips quivered,
+and two huge tears rolled slowly down her white cheeks.
+
+“Obey me, wretched girl,” cried the old man in an agitated voice,
+“or I swear, by all that I reverence in heaven and earth, that I
+will lay my curse upon you forever!”
+
+I felt for an instant that I ought perhaps to interfere, and spare
+the girl the anguish that she was so evidently suffering; but a
+powerful curiosity to see how this strange scene would terminate
+withheld me.
+
+The last threat of her father, uttered as it was with a terrible
+vehemence, seemed to appall Marion. She rose with a sudden leap,
+as if a serpent had stung her, and, rushing into an inner
+apartment, returned with a small object which she placed in my
+hand, and then flung herself in a chair in a distant corner of the
+room, weeping bitterly.
+
+“You see—you see,” said the old man sarcastically, “how
+reluctantly she parts with it. Take it, sir; it is yours.”
+
+It was a small bar of metal. I examined it carefully, poised it in
+my hand—the color, weight, everything, announced that it really
+was gold.
+
+“You doubt its genuineness, perhaps,” continued the alchemist.
+“There are acids on yonder table—test it.”
+
+I confess that I DID doubt its genuineness; but after I had acted
+upon the old man’s suggestion, all further suspicion was rendered
+impossible. It was gold of the highest purity. I was astounded.
+Was then, after all, this man’s tale a truth? Was his daughter,
+that fair, angelic-looking creature, a demon of avarice, or a slave
+to worse passions? I felt bewildered. I had never met with
+anything so incomprehensible. I looked from father to daughter in
+the blankest amazement. I suppose that my countenance betrayed my
+astonishment, for the old man said: “I perceive that you are
+surprised. Well, that is natural. You had a right to think me mad
+until I proved myself sane.”
+
+“But, Mr. Blakelock,” I said, “I really cannot take this gold. I
+have no right to it. I cannot in justice charge so large a fee.”
+
+“Take it—take it,” he answered impatiently; “your fee will amount
+to that before I am well. Besides,” he added mysteriously, “I wish
+to secure your friendship. I wish that you should protect me from
+her,” and he pointed his poor, bandaged hand at Marion.
+
+My eyes followed his gesture, and I caught the glance that replied—
+a glance of horror, distrust, despair. The beautiful face was
+distorted into positive ugliness.
+
+“It’s all true,” I thought; “she is the demon that her father
+represents her.”
+
+I now rose to go. This domestic tragedy sickened me. This
+treachery of blood against blood was too horrible to witness. I
+wrote a prescription for the old man, left directions as to the
+renewal of the dressings upon his burns, and, bidding him good
+night, hastened toward the door.
+
+While I was fumbling on the dark, crazy landing for the staircase,
+I felt a hand laid on my arm.
+
+“Doctor,” whispered a voice that I recognized as Marion
+Blakelock’s, “Doctor, have you any compassion in your heart?”
+
+“I hope so,” I answered shortly, shaking off her hand; her touch
+filled me with loathing.
+
+“Hush! don’t talk so loud. If you have any pity in your nature,
+give me back, I entreat of you, that gold ingot which my father
+gave you this evening.”
+
+“Great heaven!” said I, “can it be possible that so fair a woman
+can be such a mercenary, shameless wretch?”
+
+“Ah! you know not—I cannot tell you! Do not judge me harshly. I
+call God to witness that I am not what you deem me. Some day or
+other you will know. But,” she added, interrupting herself, “the
+ingot—where is it? I must have it. My life depends on your
+giving it to me.”
+
+“Take it, impostor!” I cried, placing it in her hand, that closed
+on it with a horrible eagerness. “I never intended to keep it.
+Gold made under the same roof that covers such as you must be
+accursed.”
+
+So saying, heedless of the nervous effort she made to detain me, I
+stumbled down the stairs and walked hastily home.
+
+The next morning, while I was in my office, smoking my matutinal
+cigar, and speculating over the singular character of my
+acquaintances of last night, the door opened, and Marion Blakelock
+entered. She had the same look of terror that I had observed the
+evening before, and she panted as if she had been running fast.
+
+“Father has got out of bed,” she gasped out, “and insists on going
+on with his alchemy. Will it kill him?”
+
+“Not exactly,” I answered coldly. “It were better that he kept
+quiet, so as to avoid the chance of inflammation. However, you
+need not be alarmed; his burns are not at all dangerous, although
+painful.”
+
+“Thank God! thank God!” she cried, in the most impassioned accents;
+and, before I was aware of what she was doing, she seized my hand
+and kissed it.
+
+“There, that will do,” I said, withdrawing my hand; “you are under
+no obligations to me. You had better go back to your father.”
+
+“I can’t go,” she answered. “You despise me—is it not so?”
+
+I made no reply.
+
+“You think me a monster—a criminal. When you went home last
+night, you were wonderstruck that so vile a creature as I should
+have so fair a face.”
+
+“You embarrass me, madam,” I said, in a most chilling tone. “Pray
+relieve me from this unpleasant position.”
+
+“Wait. I cannot bear that you should think ill of me. You are
+good and kind, and I desire to possess your esteem. You little
+know how I love my father.”
+
+I could not restrain a bitter smile.
+
+“You do not believe that? Well, I will convince you. I have had a
+hard struggle all last night with myself, but am now resolved.
+This life of deceit must continue no longer. Will you hear my
+vindication?”
+
+I assented. The wonderful melody of her voice and the purity of
+her features were charming me once more. I half believed in her
+innocence already.
+
+“My father has told you a portion of his history. But he did not
+tell you that his continued failures in his search after the secret
+of metallic transmutation nearly killed him. Two years ago he was
+on the verge of the grave, working every day at his mad pursuit,
+and every day growing weaker and more emaciated. I saw that if his
+mind was not relieved in some way he would die. The thought was
+madness to me, for I loved him—I love him still, as a daughter
+never loved a father before. During all these years of poverty I
+had supported the house with my needle; it was hard work, but I did
+it—I do it still!”
+
+“What?” I cried, startled, “does not—”
+
+“Patience. Hear me out. My father was dying of disappointment. I
+must save him. By incredible exertions, working night and day, I
+saved about thirty-five dollars in notes. These I exchanged for
+gold, and one day, when my father was not looking, I cast them into
+the crucible in which he was making one of his vain attempts at
+transmutation. God, I am sure, will pardon the deception. I never
+anticipated the misery it would lead to.
+
+“I never beheld anything like the joy of my poor father, when,
+after emptying his crucible, he found a deposit of pure gold at the
+bottom. He wept, and danced, and sang, and built such castles in
+the air, that my brain was dizzy to hear him. He gave me the ingot
+to keep, and went to work at his alchemy with renewed vigor. The
+same thing occurred. He always found the same quantity of gold in
+his crucible. I alone knew the secret. He was happy, poor man,
+for nearly two years, in the belief that he was amassing a fortune.
+I all the while plied my needle for our daily bread. When he asked
+me for the savings, the first stroke fell upon me. Then it was
+that I recognized the folly of my conduct. I could give him no
+money. I never had any—while he believed that I had fourteen
+thousand dollars. My heart was nearly broken when I found that he
+had conceived the most injurious suspicions against me. Yet I
+could not blame him. I could give no account of the treasure I had
+permitted him to believe was in my possession. I must suffer the
+penalty of my fault, for to undeceive him would be, I felt, to kill
+him. I remained silent then, and suffered.
+
+“You know the rest. You now know why it was that I was reluctant
+to give you that ingot—why it was that I degraded myself so far as
+to ask it back. It was the only means I had of continuing a
+deception on which I believed my father’s life depended. But that
+delusion has been dispelled. I can live this life of hypocrisy no
+longer. I cannot exist and hear my father, whom I love so, wither
+me daily with his curses. I will undeceive him this very day.
+Will you come with me, for I fear the effect on his enfeebled
+frame?”
+
+“Willingly,” I answered, taking her by the hand; “and I think that
+no absolute danger need be apprehended. Now, Marion,” I added,
+“let me ask forgiveness for having even for a moment wounded so
+noble a heart. You are truly as great a martyr as any of those
+whose sufferings the Church perpetuates in altar-pieces.”
+
+“I knew you would do me justice when you knew all,” she sobbed,
+pressing my hand; “but come. I am on fire. Let us hasten to my
+father, and break this terror to him.”
+
+When we reached the old alchemist’s room, we found him busily
+engaged over a crucible which was placed on a small furnace, and in
+which some indescribable mixture was boiling. He looked up as we
+entered.
+
+“No fear of me, doctor,” he said, with a ghastly smile, “no fear; I
+must not allow a little physical pain to interrupt my great work,
+you know. By the way, you are just in time. In a few moments the
+marriage of the Red King and White Queen will be accomplished, as
+George Ripley calls the great act, in his book entitled ‘The Twelve
+Gates.’ Yes, doctor, in less than ten minutes you will see me make
+pure, red, shining gold!” And the poor old man smiled
+triumphantly, and stirred his foolish mixture with a long rod,
+which he held with difficulty in his bandaged hands. It was a
+grievous sight for a man of any feeling to witness.
+
+“Father,” said Marion, in a low, broken voice, advancing a little
+toward the poor old dupe, “I want your forgiveness.”
+
+“Ah, hypocrite! for what? Are you going to give me back my gold?”
+
+“No, father, but for the deception that I have been practicing on
+you for two years—”
+
+“I knew it! I knew it!” shouted the old man, with a radiant
+countenance. “She has concealed my fourteen thousand dollars all
+this time, and now comes to restore them. I will forgive her.
+Where are they, Marion?”
+
+“Father—it must come out. You never made any gold. It was I who
+saved up thirty-five dollars, and I used to slip them into your
+crucible when your back was turned—and I did it only because I saw
+that you were dying of disappointment. It was wrong, I know—but,
+father, I meant well. You’ll forgive me, won’t you?” And the poor
+girl advanced a step toward the alchemist.
+
+He grew deathly pale, and staggered as if about to fall. The next
+instant, though, he recovered himself, and burst into a horrible
+sardonic laugh. Then he said, in tones full of the bitterest
+irony: “A conspiracy, is it? Well done, doctor! You think to
+reconcile me with this wretched girl by trumping up this story that
+I have been for two years a dupe of her filial piety. It’s clumsy,
+doctor, and is a total failure. Try again.”
+
+“But I assure you, Mr. Blakelock,” I said as earnestly as I could,
+“I believe your daughter’s statement to be perfectly true. You
+will find it to be so, as she has got the ingot in her possession
+which so often deceived you into the belief that you made gold, and
+you will certainly find that no transmutation has taken place in
+your crucible.”
+
+“Doctor,” said the old man, in tones of the most settled
+conviction, “you are a fool. The girl has wheedled you. In less
+than a minute I will turn you out a piece of gold purer than any
+the earth produces. Will that convince you?”
+
+“That will convince me,” I answered. By a gesture I imposed
+silence on Marion, who was about to speak. I thought it better to
+allow the old man to be his own undeceiver—and we awaited the
+coming crisis.
+
+The old man, still smiling with anticipated triumph, kept bending
+eagerly over his crucible, stirring the mixture with his rod, and
+muttering to himself all the time. “Now,” I heard him say, “it
+changes. There—there’s the scum. And now the green and bronze
+shades flit across it. Oh, the beautiful green! the precursor of
+the golden-red hue that tells of the end attained! Ah! now the
+golden-red is coming—slowly—slowly! It deepens, it shines, it is
+dazzling! Ah, I have it!” So saying, he caught up his crucible in
+a chemist’s tongs, and bore it slowly toward the table on which
+stood a brass vessel.
+
+“Now, incredulous doctor!” he cried, “come and be convinced,” and
+immediately began carefully pouring the contents of the crucible
+into the brass vessel. When the crucible was quite empty he turned
+it up and called me again. “Come, doctor, come and be convinced.
+See for yourself.”
+
+“See first if there is any gold in your crucible,” I answered,
+without moving.
+
+He laughed, shook his head derisively, and looked into the
+crucible. In a moment he grew pale as death.
+
+“Nothing!” he cried. “Oh, a jest, a jest! There must be gold
+somewhere. Marion!”
+
+“The gold is here, father,” said Marion, drawing the ingot from her
+pocket; “it is all we ever had.”
+
+“Ah!” shrieked the poor old man, as he let the empty crucible fall,
+and staggered toward the ingot which Marion held out to him. He
+made three steps, and then fell on his face. Marion rushed toward
+him, and tried to lift him, but could not. I put her aside gently,
+and placed my hand on his heart.
+
+“Marion,” said I, “it is perhaps better as it is. He is dead!”
+
+
+
+
+Fitzjames O’Brien
+
+
+
+
+My Wife’s Tempter
+
+
+I
+
+A PREDESTINED MARRIAGE
+
+Elsie and I were to be married in less than a week. It was rather
+a strange match, and I knew that some of our neighbors shook their
+heads over it and said that no good would come. The way it came to
+pass was thus.
+
+I loved Elsie Burns for two years, during which time she refused me
+three times. I could no more help asking her to have me, when the
+chance offered, than I could help breathing or living. To love her
+seemed natural to me as existence. I felt no shame, only sorrow,
+when she rejected me; I felt no shame either when I renewed my
+suit. The neighbors called me mean-spirited to take up with any
+girl that had refused me as often as Elsie Burns had done; but what
+cared I about the neighbors? If it is black weather, and the sun
+is under a cloud every day for a month, is that any reason why the
+poor farmer should not hope for the blue sky and the plentiful
+burst of warm light when the dark month is over? I never entirely
+lost heart. Do not, however, mistake me. I did not mope, and
+moan, and grow pale, after the manner of poetical lovers. No such
+thing. I went bravely about my business, ate and drank as usual,
+laughed when the laugh went round, and slept soundly, and woke
+refreshed. Yet all this time I loved—desperately loved—Elsie
+Burns. I went wherever I hoped to meet her, but did not haunt her
+with my attentions. I behaved to her as any friendly young man
+would have behaved: I met her and parted from her cheerfully. She
+was a good girl, too, and behaved well. She had me in her power—
+how a woman in Elsie’s situation could have mortified a man in
+mine!—but she never took the slightest advantage of it. She
+danced with me when I asked her, and had no foolish fears of
+allowing me to see her home of nights, after a ball was over, or of
+wandering with me through the pleasant New England fields when the
+wild flowers made the paths like roads in fairyland.
+
+On the several disastrous occasions when I presented my suit I did
+it simply and manfully, telling her that I loved her very much, and
+would do everything to make her happy if she would be my wife. I
+made no fulsome protestations, and did not once allude to suicide.
+She, on the other hand, calmly and gravely thanked me for my good
+opinion, but with the same calm gravity rejected me. I used to
+tell her that I was grieved; that I would not press her; that I
+would wait and hope for some change in her feelings. She had an
+esteem for me, she would say, but could not marry me. I never
+asked her for any reasons. I hold it to be an insult to a woman of
+sense to demand her reasons on such an occasion. Enough for me
+that she did not then wish to be my wife; so that the old
+intercourse went on—she cordial and polite as ever, I never for
+one moment doubting that the day would come when my roof tree would
+shelter her, and we should smile together over our fireside at my
+long and indefatigable wooing.
+
+I will confess that at times I felt a little jealous—jealous of a
+man named Hammond Brake, who lived in our village. He was a weird,
+saturnine fellow, who made no friends among the young men of the
+neighborhood, but who loved to go alone, with his books and his own
+thoughts for company. He was a studious and, I believe, a learned
+young man, and there was no avoiding the fact that he possessed
+considerable influence over Elsie. She liked to talk with him in
+corners, or in secluded nooks of the forest, when we all went out
+blackberry gathering or picnicking. She read books that he gave
+her, and whenever a discussion arose relative to any topic higher
+than those ordinary ones we usually canvassed, Elsie appealed to
+Brake for his opinion, as a disciple consulting a beloved master.
+I confess that for a time I feared this man as a rival. A little
+closer observation, however, convinced me that my suspicions were
+unfounded. The relations between Elsie and Hammond Brake were
+purely intellectual. She reverenced his talents and acquirements,
+but she did not love him. His influence over her, nevertheless,
+was none the less decided.
+
+In time—as I thought all along—Elsie yielded. I was what was
+considered a most eligible match, being tolerably rich, and Elsie’s
+parents were most anxious to have me for a son-in-law. I was good-
+looking and well educated enough, and the old people, I believe,
+pertinaciously dinned all my advantages into my little girl’s ears.
+She battled against the marriage for a long time with a strange
+persistence—all the more strange because she never alleged the
+slightest personal dislike to me; but after a vigorous cannonading
+from her own garrison (in which, I am proud to say, I did not in
+any way join), she hoisted the white flag and surrendered.
+
+I was very happy. I had no fear about being able to gain Elsie’s
+heart. I think—indeed I know—that she had liked me all along,
+and that her refusals were dictated by other feelings than those of
+a personal nature. I only guessed as much then. It was some time
+before I knew all.
+
+As the day approached for our wedding Elsie did not appear at all
+stricken with woe. The village gossips had not the smallest
+opportunity for establishing a romance, with a compulsory bride for
+the heroine. Yet to me it seemed as if there was something strange
+about her. A vague terror appeared to beset her. Even in her most
+loving moments, when resting in my arms, she would shrink away from
+me, and shudder as if some cold wind had suddenly struck upon her.
+That it was caused by no aversion to me was evident, for she would
+the moment after, as if to make amends, give me one of those
+voluntary kisses that are sweeter than all others.
+
+Once only did she show any emotion. When the solemn question was
+put to her, the answer to which was to decide her destiny, I felt
+her hand—which was in mine—tremble. As she gasped out a
+convulsive “Yes,” she gave one brief, imploring glance at the
+gallery on the right. I placed the ring upon her finger, and
+looked in the direction in which she gazed. Hammond Brake’s dark
+countenance was visible looking over the railings, and his eyes
+were bent sternly on Elsie. I turned quickly round to my bride,
+but her brief emotion, of whatever nature, had vanished. She was
+looking at me anxiously, and smiling—somewhat sadly—through her
+maiden’s tears.
+
+The months went by quickly, and we were very happy. I learned that
+Elsie really loved me, and of my love for her she had proof long
+ago. I will not say that there was no cloud upon our little
+horizon. There was one, but it was so small, and appeared so
+seldom, that I scarcely feared it. The old vague terror seemed
+still to attack my wife. If I did not know her to be pure as
+heaven’s snow, I would have said it was a REMORSE. At times she
+scarcely appeared to hear what I said, so deep would be her
+reverie. Nor did those moods seem pleasant ones. When rapt in
+such, her sweet features would contract, as if in a hopeless effort
+to solve some mysterious problem. A sad pain, as it were, quivered
+in her white, drooped eyelids. One thing I particularly remarked:
+SHE SPENT HOURS AT A TIME GAZING AT THE WEST. There was a small
+room in our house whose windows, every evening, flamed with the red
+light of the setting sun. Here Elsie would sit and gaze westward,
+so motionless and entranced that it seemed as if her soul was going
+down with the day. Her conduct to me was curiously varied. She
+apparently loved me very much, yet there were times when she
+absolutely avoided me. I have seen her strolling through the
+fields, and left the house with the intention of joining her, but
+the moment she caught sight of me approaching she has fled into the
+neighboring copse, with so evident a wish to avoid me that it would
+have been absolutely cruel to follow.
+
+Once or twice the old jealousy of Hammond Brake crossed my mind,
+but I was obliged to dismiss it as a frivolous suspicion. Nothing
+in my wife’s conduct justified any such theory. Brake visited us
+once or twice a week—in fact, when I returned from my business in
+the village, I used to find him seated in the parlor with Elsie,
+reading some favorite author, or conversing on some novel literary
+topic; but there was no disposition to avoid my scrutiny. Brake
+seemed to come as a matter of right; and the perfect
+unconsciousness of furnishing any grounds for suspicion with which
+he acted was a sufficient answer to my mind for any wild doubts
+that my heart may have suggested.
+
+Still I could not but remark that Brake’s visits were in some
+manner connected with Elsie’s melancholy. On the days when he had
+appeared and departed, the gloom seemed to hang more thickly than
+ever over her head. She sat, on such occasions, all the evening at
+the western window, silently gazing at the cleft in the hills
+through which the sun passed to his repose.
+
+At last I made up my mind to speak to her. It seemed to me to be
+my duty, if she had a sorrow, to partake of it. I approached her
+on the matter with the most perfect confidence that I had nothing
+to learn beyond the existence of some girlish grief, which a
+confession and a few loving kisses would exorcise forever.
+
+“Elsie,” I said to her one night, as she sat, according to her
+custom, gazing westward, like those maidens of the old ballads of
+chivalry watching for the knights that never came—“Elsie, what is
+the matter with you, darling? I have noticed a strange melancholy
+in you for some time past. Tell me all about it.”
+
+She turned quickly round and gazed at me with eyes wide open and
+face filled with a sudden fear. “Why do you ask me that, Mark?”
+she answered. “I have nothing to tell.”
+
+From the strange, startled manner in which this reply was given, I
+felt convinced that she had something to tell, and instantly formed
+a determination to discover what it was. A pang shot through my
+heart as I thought that the woman whom I held dearer than anything
+on earth hesitated to trust me with a petty secret.
+
+I believed I understood. I was tolerably rich. I knew it could
+not be any secret over milliners’ bills or women’s usual money
+troubles. God help me! I felt sad enough at the moment, though I
+kissed her back and ceased to question her. I felt sad, because my
+instinct told me that she deceived me; and it is very hard to be
+deceived, even in trifles, by those we love. I left her sitting at
+her favorite window, and walked out into the fields. I wanted to
+think.
+
+I remained out until I saw lights in the parlor shining through the
+dusky evening; then I returned slowly. As I passed the windows—
+which were near the ground, our house being cottage-built—I looked
+in. Hammond Brake was sitting with my wife. She was sitting in a
+rocking chair opposite to him, holding a small volume open on her
+lap. Brake was talking to her very earnestly, and she was
+listening to him with an expression I had never before seen on her
+countenance. Awe, fear, and admiration were all blent together in
+those dilating eyes. She seemed absorbed, body and soul, in what
+this man said. I shuddered at the sight. A vague terror seized
+upon me; I hastened into the house. As I entered the room rather
+suddenly, my wife started and hastily concealed the little volume
+that lay on her lap in one of her wide pockets. As she did so, a
+loose leaf escaped from the volume and slowly fluttered to the
+floor unobserved by either her or her companion. But I had my eye
+upon it. I felt that it was a clew.
+
+“What new novel or philosophical wonder have you both been poring
+over?” I asked quite gayly, stealthily watching at the same time
+the telltale embarrassment under which Elsie was laboring.
+
+Brake, who was not in the least discomposed, replied. “That,” said
+he, “is a secret which must be kept from you. It is an advance
+copy, and is not to be shown to anyone except your wife.”
+
+“Ha!” cried I, “I know what it is. It is your volume of poems that
+Ticknor is publishing. Well, I can wait until it is regularly for
+sale.”
+
+I knew that Brake had a volume in the hands of the publishing house
+I mentioned, with a vague promise of publication some time in the
+present century. Hammond smiled significantly, but did not reply.
+He evidently wished to cultivate this supposed impression of mine.
+Elsie looked relieved, and heaved a deep sigh. I felt more than
+ever convinced that a secret was beneath all this. So I drew my
+chair over the fallen leaf that lay unnoticed on the carpet, and
+talked and laughed with Hammond Brake gayly, as if nothing was on
+my mind, while all the time a great load of suspicion lay heavily
+at my heart.
+
+At length Hammond Brake rose to go. I wished him good night, but
+did not offer to accompany him to the door. My wife supplied this
+omitted courtesy, as I had expected. The moment I was alone I
+picked up the book leaf from the floor. It was NOT the leaf of a
+volume of poems. Beyond that, however, I learned nothing. It
+contained a string of paragraphs printed in the biblical fashion,
+and the language was biblical in style. It seemed to be a portion
+of some religious book. Was it possible that my wife was being
+converted to the Romish faith? Yes, that was it. Brake was a
+Jesuit in disguise—I had heard of such things—and had stolen into
+the bosom of my family to plant there his destructive errors.
+There could be no longer any doubt of it. This was some portion of
+a Romish book—some infamous Popish publication. Fool that I was
+not to see it all before! But there was yet time. I would forbid
+him the house.
+
+I had just formed this resolution when my wife entered. I put the
+strange leaf in my pocket and took my hat.
+
+“Why, you are not going out, surely?” cried Elsie, surprised.
+
+“I have a headache,” I answered. “I will take a short walk.”
+
+Elsie looked at me with a peculiar air of distrust. Her woman’s
+instinct told her that there was something wrong. Before she could
+question me, however, I had left the room and was walking rapidly
+on Hammond Brake’s track.
+
+He heard the footsteps, and I saw his figure, black against the
+sky, stop and peer back through the dusk to see who was following
+him.
+
+“It is I, Brake,” I called out. “Stop; I wish to speak with you.”
+
+He stopped, and in a minute or so we were walking side by side
+along the road. My fingers itched at that moment to be on his
+throat. I commenced the conversation.
+
+“Brake,” I said, “I’m a very plain sort of man, and I never say
+anything without good reason. What I came after you to tell you
+is, that I don’t wish you to come to my house any more, or to speak
+with Elsie any farther than the ordinary salutations go. It’s no
+joke. I’m quite in earnest.”
+
+Brake started, and, stopping short, faced me suddenly in the road.
+“What have I done?” he asked. “You surely are too sensible a man
+to be jealous, Dayton.”
+
+“Oh,” I answered scornfully, “not jealous in the ordinary sense of
+the word, a bit. But I don’t think your company good company for
+my wife, Brake. If you WILL have it out of me, I suspect you of
+being a Roman Catholic, and of trying to convert my wife.”
+
+A smile shot across his face, and I saw his sharp white teeth gleam
+for an instant in the dusk.
+
+“Well, what if I am a Papist?” he said, with a strange tone of
+triumph in his voice. “The faith is not criminal. Besides, what
+proof have you that I was attempting to proselyte your wife?”
+
+“This,” said I, pulling the leaf from my pocket—“this leaf from
+one of those devilish Papist books you and she were reading this
+evening. I picked it up from the floor. Proof enough, I think!”
+
+In an instant Brake had snatched the leaf from my hand and torn it
+into atoms.
+
+“You shall be obeyed,” he said. “I will not speak with Elsie as
+long as she is your wife. Good night. You think I’m a Papist,
+then, Dayton? You’re a clever fellow!”
+
+And with rather a sneering chuckle he marched on along the road and
+vanished into the darkness.
+
+
+II
+
+THE SECRET DISCOVERED
+
+
+Brake came no more. I said nothing to Elsie about his prohibition,
+and his name was never mentioned. It seemed strange to me that she
+should not speak of his absence, and I was very much puzzled by her
+silence. Her moodiness seemed to have increased, and, what was
+most remarkable, in proportion as she grew more and more reserved,
+the intenser were the bursts of affection which she exhibited for
+me. She would strain me to her bosom and kiss me, as if she and I
+were about to be parted forever. Then for hours she would remain
+sitting at her window, silently gazing, with that terrible, wistful
+gaze of hers, at the west.
+
+I will confess to having watched my wife at this time. I could not
+help it. That some mystery hung about her I felt convinced. I
+must fathom it or die. Her honor I never for a moment doubted; yet
+there seemed to weigh continually upon me the prophecy of some
+awful domestic calamity. This time the prophecy was not in vain.
+
+About three weeks after I had forbidden Brake my house, I was
+strolling over my farm in the evening apparently inspecting my
+agriculture, but in reality speculating on that topic which
+latterly was ever present to me.
+
+There was a little knoll covered with evergreen oaks at the end of
+the lawn. It was a picturesque spot, for on one side the bank went
+off into a sheer precipice of about eighty feet in depth, at the
+bottom of which a pretty pool lay, that in the summer time was
+fringed with white water-lilies. I had thought of building a
+summer-house in this spot, and now my steps mechanically directed
+themselves toward the place. As I approached I heard voices. I
+stopped and listened eagerly. A few seconds enabled me to
+ascertain that Hammond Brake and my wife were in the copse talking
+together. She still followed him, then; and he, scoundrel that he
+was, had broken his promise. A fury seemed to fill my veins as I
+made this discovery. I felt the impulse strong upon me to rush
+into the grove, and then and there strangle the villain who was
+poisoning my peace. But with a powerful effort I restrained
+myself. It was necessary that I should overhear what was said. I
+threw myself flat on the grass, and so glided silently into the
+copse until I was completely within earshot. This was what I
+heard.
+
+My wife was sobbing. “So soon—so soon? I—Hammond, give me a
+little time!”
+
+“I cannot, Elsie. My chief orders me to join him. You must
+prepare to accompany me.”
+
+“No, no!” murmured Elsie. “He loves me so! And I love him. Our
+child, too—how can I rob him of our unborn babe?”
+
+“Another sheep for our flock,” answered Brake solemnly. “Elsie, do
+you forget your oath? Are you one of us, or are you a common
+hypocrite, who will be of us until the hour of self-sacrifice, and
+then fly like a coward? Elsie, you must leave to-night.”
+
+“Ah! my husband, my husband!” sobbed the unhappy woman.
+
+“You have no husband, woman,” cried Brake harshly. “I promised
+Dayton not to speak to you as long as you were his wife, but the
+vow was annulled before it was made. Your husband in God yet
+awaits you. You will yet be blessed with the true spouse.”
+
+“I feel as if I were going to die,” cried Elsie. “How can I ever
+forsake him—he who was so good to me?”
+
+“Nonsense! no weakness. He is not worthy of you. Go home and
+prepare for your journey. You know where to meet me. I will have
+everything ready, and by daybreak there shall be no trace of us
+left. Beware of permitting your husband to suspect anything. He
+is not very shrewd at such things—he thought I was a Jesuit in
+disguise—but we had better be careful. Now go. You have been too
+long here already. Bless you, sister.”
+
+A few faint sobs, a rustling of leaves, and I knew that Brake was
+alone. I rose, and stepped silently into the open space in which
+he stood. His back was toward me. His arms were lifted high over
+his head with an exultant gesture, and I could see his profile, as
+it slightly turned toward me, illuminated with a smile of scornful
+triumph. I put my hand suddenly on his throat from behind, and
+flung him on the ground before he could utter a cry.
+
+“Not a word,” I said, unclasping a short-bladed knife which I
+carried; “answer my questions, or, by heaven, I will cut your
+throat from ear to ear!”
+
+He looked up into my face with an unflinching eye, and set his lips
+as if resolved to suffer all.
+
+“What are you? Who are you? What object have you in the seduction
+of my wife?”
+
+He smiled, but was silent.
+
+“Ah! you won’t answer. We’ll see.”
+
+I pressed the knife slowly against his throat. His face contracted
+spasmodically, but although a thin red thread of blood sprang out
+along the edge of the blade, Brake remained mute. An idea suddenly
+seized me. This sort of death had no terrors for him. I would try
+another. There was the precipice. I was twice as powerful as he
+was, so I seized him in my arms, and in a moment transported him to
+the margin of the steep, smooth cliff, the edge of which was
+garnished with the tough stems of the wild vine. He seemed to feel
+it was useless to struggle with me, so allowed me passively to roll
+him over the edge. When he was suspended in the air, I gave him a
+vine stem to cling to and let him go. He swung at a height of
+eighty feet, with face upturned and pale. He dared not look down.
+I seated myself on the edge of the cliff, and with my knife began
+to cut into the thick vine a foot or two above the place of his
+grasp. I was correct in my calculation. This terror was too much
+for him. As he saw the notch in the vine getting deeper and
+deeper, his determination gave way.
+
+“I’ll answer you,” he gasped out, gazing at me with starting
+eyeballs; “what do you ask?”
+
+“What are you?” was my question, as I ceased cutting at the stem.
+
+“A Mormon,” was the answer, uttered with a groan. “Take me up. My
+hands are slipping. Quick!”
+
+“And you wanted my wife to follow you to that infernal Salt Lake,
+City, I suppose?”
+
+“For God’s sake, release me! I’ll quit the place, never to come
+back. Do help me up, Dayton—I’m falling!”
+
+I felt mightily inclined to let the villain drop; but it did not
+suit my purpose to be hung for murder, so I swung him back again on
+the sward, where he fell panting and exhausted.
+
+“Will you quit the place to-night?” I said. “You’d better. By
+heaven, if you don’t, I’ll tell all the men in the village, and
+we’ll lynch you, as sure as your name is Brake.”
+
+“I’ll go—I’ll go,” he groaned. “I swear never to trouble you
+again.”
+
+“You ought to be hanged, you villain. Be off!”
+
+He slunk away through the trees like a beaten dog; and I went home
+in a state bordering on despair. I found Elsie crying. She was
+sitting by the window as of old. I knew now why she gazed so
+constantly at the west. It was her Mecca. Something in my face, I
+suppose, told her that I was laboring under great excitement. She
+rose startled as soon as I entered the room.
+
+“Elsie,” said I, “I am come to take you home.”
+
+“Home? Why, I AM at home, am I not? What do you mean?”
+
+“No. This is no longer your home. You have deceived me. You are
+a Mormon. I know all. You have become a convert to that apostle
+of hell, Brigham Young, and you cannot live with me. I love you
+still, Elsie, dearly; but—you must go and live with your father.”
+
+
+
+
+Nathaniel Hawthorne
+
+
+
+
+The Minister’s Black Veil
+
+
+A PARABLE[1]
+
+
+[1] Another clergyman in New England, Mr. Joseph Moody, of York,
+Maine, made himself remarkable by the same eccentricity that is
+here related of the Reverend Mr. Hooper. In his case, however,
+the symbol had a different import. In early life he had
+accidentally killed a beloved friend, and from that day till
+the hour of his own death, he hid his face from men.
+
+
+The sexton stood in the porch of Milford meeting-house, pulling
+busily at the bell-rope. The old people of the village came
+stooping along the street. Children, with bright faces, tripped
+merrily beside their parents, or mimicked a graver gait, in the
+conscious dignity of their Sunday clothes. Spruce bachelors
+looked sidelong at the pretty maidens, and fancied that the
+Sabbath sunshine made them prettier than on week days. When the
+throng had mostly streamed into the porch, the sexton began to
+toll the bell, keeping his eye on the Reverend Mr. Hooper’s door.
+The first glimpse of the clergyman’s figure was the signal for
+the bell to cease its summons.
+
+“But what has good Parson Hooper got upon his face?” cried the
+sexton in astonishment.
+
+All within hearing immediately turned about, and beheld the
+semblance of Mr. Hooper, pacing slowly his meditative way towards
+the meetinghouse. With one accord they started, expressing more
+wonder than if some strange minister were coming to dust the
+cushions of Mr. Hooper’s pulpit.
+
+“Are you sure it is our parson?” inquired Goodman Gray of the
+sexton.
+
+“Of a certainty it is good Mr. Hooper,” replied the sexton. “He
+was to have exchanged pulpits with Parson Shute, of Westbury; but
+Parson Shute sent to excuse himself yesterday, being to preach a
+funeral sermon.”
+
+The cause of so much amazement may appear sufficiently slight.
+Mr. Hooper, a gentlemanly person, of about thirty, though still a
+bachelor, was dressed with due clerical neatness, as if a careful
+wife had starched his band, and brushed the weekly dust from his
+Sunday’s garb. There was but one thing remarkable in his
+appearance. Swathed about his forehead, and hanging down over his
+face, so low as to be shaken by his breath, Mr. Hooper had on a
+black veil. On a nearer view it seemed to consist of two folds of
+crape, which entirely concealed his features, except the mouth
+and chin, but probably did not intercept his sight, further than
+to give a darkened aspect to all living and inanimate things.
+With this gloomy shade before him, good Mr. Hooper walked onward,
+at a slow and quiet pace, stooping somewhat, and looking on the
+ground, as is customary with abstracted men, yet nodding kindly to
+those of his parishioners who still waited on the meeting-house
+steps. But so wonder-struck were they that his greeting hardly
+met with a return.
+
+“I can’t really feel as if good Mr. Hooper’s face was behind that
+piece of crape,” said the sexton.
+
+“I don’t like it,” muttered an old woman, as she hobbled into the
+meeting-house. “He has changed himself into something awful, only
+by hiding his face.”
+
+“Our parson has gone mad!” cried Goodman Gray, following him
+across the threshold.
+
+A rumor of some unaccountable phenomenon had preceded Mr. Hooper
+into the meeting-house, and set all the congregation astir. Few
+could refrain from twisting their heads towards the door; many
+stood upright, and turned directly about; while several little
+boys clambered upon the seats, and came down again with a
+terrible racket. There was a general bustle, a rustling of the
+women’s gowns and shuffling of the men’s feet, greatly at
+variance with that hushed repose which should attend the entrance
+of the minister. But Mr. Hooper appeared not to notice the
+perturbation of his people. He entered with an almost noiseless
+step, bent his head mildly to the pews on each side, and bowed as
+he passed his oldest parishioner, a white-haired great grandsire,
+who occupied an arm-chair in the centre of the aisle. It was
+strange to observe how slowly this venerable man became conscious
+of something singular in the appearance of his pastor. He seemed
+not fully to partake of the prevailing wonder, till Mr. Hooper
+had ascended the stairs, and showed himself in the pulpit, face
+to face with his congregation, except for the black veil. That
+mysterious emblem was never once withdrawn. It shook with his
+measured breath, as he gave out the psalm; it threw its obscurity
+between him and the holy page, as he read the Scriptures; and
+while he prayed, the veil lay heavily on his uplifted
+countenance. Did he seek to hide it from the dread Being whom he
+was addressing?
+
+Such was the effect of this simple piece of crape, that more
+than one woman of delicate nerves was forced to leave the
+meeting-house. Yet perhaps the pale-faced congregation was almost
+as fearful a sight to the minister, as his black veil to them.
+
+Mr. Hooper had the reputation of a good preacher, but not an
+energetic one: he strove to win his people heavenward by mild,
+persuasive influences, rather than to drive them thither by the
+thunders of the Word. The sermon which he now delivered was
+marked by the same characteristics of style and manner as the
+general series of his pulpit oratory. But there was something,
+either in the sentiment of the discourse itself, or in the
+imagination of the auditors, which made it greatly the most
+powerful effort that they had ever heard from their pastor’s
+lips. It was tinged, rather more darkly than usual, with the
+gentle gloom of Mr. Hooper’s temperament. The subject had
+reference to secret sin, and those sad mysteries which we hide
+from our nearest and dearest, and would fain conceal from our own
+consciousness, even forgetting that the Omniscient can detect
+them. A subtle power was breathed into his words. Each member of
+the congregation, the most innocent girl, and the man of hardened
+breast, felt as if the preacher had crept upon them, behind his
+awful veil, and discovered their hoarded iniquity of deed or
+thought. Many spread their clasped hands on their bosoms. There
+was nothing terrible in what Mr. Hooper said, at least, no
+violence; and yet, with every tremor of his melancholy voice, the
+hearers quaked. An unsought pathos came hand in hand with awe. So
+sensible were the audience of some unwonted attribute in their
+minister, that they longed for a breath of wind to blow aside the
+veil, almost believing that a stranger’s visage would be
+discovered, though the form, gesture, and voice were those of Mr.
+Hooper.
+
+At the close of the services, the people hurried out with
+indecorous confusion, eager to communicate their pent-up
+amazement, and conscious of lighter spirits the moment they lost
+sight of the black veil. Some gathered in little circles, huddled
+closely together, with their mouths all whispering in the centre;
+some went homeward alone, wrapt in silent meditation; some talked
+loudly, and profaned the Sabbath day with ostentatious laughter.
+A few shook their sagacious heads, intimating that they could
+penetrate the mystery; while one or two affirmed that there was
+no mystery at all, but only that Mr. Hooper’s eyes were so
+weakened by the midnight lamp, as to require a shade. After a
+brief interval, forth came good Mr. Hooper also, in the rear of
+his flock. Turning his veiled face from one group to another, he
+paid due reverence to the hoary heads, saluted the middle aged
+with kind dignity as their friend and spiritual guide, greeted
+the young with mingled authority and love, and laid his hands on
+the little children’s heads to bless them. Such was always his
+custom on the Sabbath day. Strange and bewildered looks repaid
+him for his courtesy. None, as on former occasions, aspired to
+the honor of walking by their pastor’s side. Old Squire Saunders,
+doubtless by an accidental lapse of memory, neglected to invite
+Mr. Hooper to his table, where the good clergyman had been wont
+to bless the food, almost every Sunday since his settlement. He
+returned, therefore, to the parsonage, and, at the moment of
+closing the door, was observed to look back upon the people, all
+of whom had their eyes fixed upon the minister. A sad smile
+gleamed faintly from beneath the black veil, and flickered about
+his mouth, glimmering as he disappeared.
+
+“How strange,” said a lady, “that a simple black veil, such as
+any woman might wear on her bonnet, should become such a terrible
+thing on Mr. Hooper’s face!”
+
+“Something must surely be amiss with Mr. Hooper’s intellects,”
+observed her husband, the physician of the village. “But the
+strangest part of the affair is the effect of this vagary, even
+on a sober-minded man like myself. The black veil, though it
+covers only our pastor’s face, throws its influence over his
+whole person, and makes him ghostlike from head to foot. Do you
+not feel it so?”
+
+“Truly do I,” replied the lady; “and I would not be alone with
+him for the world. I wonder he is not afraid to be alone with
+himself!”
+
+“Men sometimes are so,” said her husband.
+
+The afternoon service was attended with similar circumstances. At
+its conclusion, the bell tolled for the funeral of a young lady.
+The relatives and friends were assembled in the house, and the
+more distant acquaintances stood about the door, speaking of the
+good qualities of the deceased, when their talk was interrupted
+by the appearance of Mr. Hooper, still covered with his black
+veil. It was now an appropriate emblem. The clergyman stepped
+into the room where the corpse was laid, and bent over the
+coffin, to take a last farewell of his deceased parishioner. As
+he stooped, the veil hung straight down from his forehead, so
+that, if her eyelids had not been closed forever, the dead maiden
+might have seen his face. Could Mr. Hooper be fearful of her
+glance, that he so hastily caught back the black veil? A person
+who watched the interview between the dead and living, scrupled
+not to affirm, that, at the instant when the clergyman’s features
+were disclosed, the corpse had slightly shuddered, rustling the
+shroud and muslin cap, though the countenance retained the
+composure of death. A superstitious old woman was the only
+witness of this prodigy. From the coffin Mr. Hooper passed into
+the chamber of the mourners, and thence to the head of the
+staircase, to make the funeral prayer. It was a tender and
+heart-dissolving prayer, full of sorrow, yet so imbued with
+celestial hopes, that the music of a heavenly harp, swept by the
+fingers of the dead, seemed faintly to be heard among the saddest
+accents of the minister. The people trembled, though they but
+darkly understood him when he prayed that they, and himself, and
+all of mortal race, might be ready, as he trusted this young
+maiden had been, for the dreadful hour that should snatch the
+veil from their faces. The bearers went heavily forth, and the
+mourners followed, saddening all the street, with the dead before
+them, and Mr. Hooper in his black veil behind.
+
+“Why do you look back?” said one in the procession to his
+partner.
+
+“I had a fancy,” replied she, “that the minister and the maiden’s
+spirit were walking hand in hand.”
+
+“And so had I, at the same moment,” said the other.
+
+That night, the handsomest couple in Milford village were to be
+joined in wedlock. Though reckoned a melancholy man, Mr. Hooper
+had a placid cheerfulness for such occasions, which often excited
+a sympathetic smile where livelier merriment would have been
+thrown away. There was no quality of his disposition which made
+him more beloved than this. The company at the wedding awaited
+his arrival with impatience, trusting that the strange awe, which
+had gathered over him throughout the day, would now be dispelled.
+But such was not the result. When Mr. Hooper came, the first
+thing that their eyes rested on was the same horrible black veil,
+which had added deeper gloom to the funeral, and could portend
+nothing but evil to the wedding. Such was its immediate effect on
+the guests that a cloud seemed to have rolled duskily from
+beneath the black crape, and dimmed the light of the candles. The
+bridal pair stood up before the minister. But the bride’s cold
+fingers quivered in the tremulous hand of the bridegroom, and her
+deathlike paleness caused a whisper that the maiden who had been
+buried a few hours before was come from her grave to be married.
+If ever another wedding were so dismal, it was that famous one
+where they tolled the wedding knell. After performing the
+ceremony, Mr. Hooper raised a glass of wine to his lips, wishing
+happiness to the new-married couple in a strain of mild pleasantry
+that ought to have brightened the features of the guests, like a
+cheerful gleam from the hearth. At that instant, catching a
+glimpse of his figure in the looking-glass, the black veil
+involved his own spirit in the horror with which it overwhelmed
+all others. His frame shuddered, his lips grew white, he spilt
+the untasted wine upon the carpet, and rushed forth into the
+darkness. For the Earth, too, had on her Black Veil.
+
+The next day, the whole village of Milford talked of little else
+than Parson Hooper’s black veil. That, and the mystery concealed
+behind it, supplied a topic for discussion between acquaintances
+meeting in the street, and good women gossiping at their open
+windows. It was the first item of news that the tavern-keeper
+told to his guests. The children babbled of it on their way to
+school. One imitative little imp covered his face with an old
+black handkerchief, thereby so affrighting his playmates that the
+panic seized himself, and he well-nigh lost his wits by his own
+waggery.
+
+It was remarkable that all of the busybodies and impertinent
+people in the parish, not one ventured to put the plain question
+to Mr. Hooper, wherefore he did this thing. Hitherto, whenever
+there appeared the slightest call for such interference, he had
+never lacked advisers, nor shown himself averse to be guided by
+their judgment. If he erred at all, it was by so painful a degree
+of self-distrust, that even the mildest censure would lead him to
+consider an indifferent action as a crime. Yet, though so well
+acquainted with this amiable weakness, no individual among his
+parishioners chose to make the black veil a subject of friendly
+remonstrance. There was a feeling of dread, neither plainly
+confessed nor carefully concealed, which caused each to shift the
+responsibility upon another, till at length it was found
+expedient to send a deputation of the church, in order to deal
+with Mr. Hooper about the mystery, before it should grow into a
+scandal. Never did an embassy so ill discharge its duties. The
+minister received then with friendly courtesy, but became silent,
+after they were seated, leaving to his visitors the whole burden
+of introducing their important business. The topic, it might be
+supposed, was obvious enough. There was the black veil swathed
+round Mr. Hooper’s forehead, and concealing every feature above
+his placid mouth, on which, at times, they could perceive the
+glimmering of a melancholy smile. But that piece of crape, to
+their imagination, seemed to hang down before his heart, the
+symbol of a fearful secret between him and them. Were the veil
+but cast aside, they might speak freely of it, but not till then.
+Thus they sat a considerable time, speechless, confused, and
+shrinking uneasily from Mr. Hooper’s eye, which they felt to be
+fixed upon them with an invisible glance. Finally, the deputies
+returned abashed to their constituents, pronouncing the matter
+too weighty to be handled, except by a council of the churches,
+if, indeed, it might not require a general synod.
+
+But there was one person in the village unappalled by the awe
+with which the black veil had impressed all beside herself. When
+the deputies returned without an explanation, or even venturing
+to demand one, she, with the calm energy of her character,
+determined to chase away the strange cloud that appeared to be
+settling round Mr. Hooper, every moment more darkly than before.
+As his plighted wife, it should be her privilege to know what the
+black veil concealed. At the minister’s first visit, therefore,
+she entered upon the subject with a direct simplicity, which made
+the task easier both for him and her. After he had seated
+himself, she fixed her eyes steadfastly upon the veil, but could
+discern nothing of the dreadful gloom that had so overawed the
+multitude: it was but a double fold of crape, hanging down from
+his forehead to his mouth, and slightly stirring with his breath.
+
+“No,” said she aloud, and smiling, “there is nothing terrible in
+this piece of crape, except that it hides a face which I am
+always glad to look upon. Come, good sir, let the sun shine from
+behind the cloud. First lay aside your black veil: then tell me
+why you put it on.”
+
+Mr. Hooper’s smile glimmered faintly.
+
+“There is an hour to come,” said he, “when all of us shall cast
+aside our veils. Take it not amiss, beloved friend, if I wear
+this piece of crape till then.”
+
+“Your words are a mystery, too,” returned the young lady. “Take
+away the veil from them, at least.”
+
+“Elizabeth, I will,” said he, “so far as my vow may suffer me.
+Know, then, this veil is a type and a symbol, and I am bound to
+wear it ever, both in light and darkness, in solitude and before
+the gaze of multitudes, and as with strangers, so with my
+familiar friends. No mortal eye will see it withdrawn. This
+dismal shade must separate me from the world: even you,
+Elizabeth, can never come behind it!”
+
+“What grievous affliction hath befallen you,” she earnestly
+inquired, “that you should thus darken your eyes forever?”
+
+“If it be a sign of mourning,” replied Mr. Hooper, “I, perhaps,
+like most other mortals, have sorrows dark enough to be typified
+by a black veil.”
+
+“But what if the world will not believe that it is the type of an
+innocent sorrow?” urged Elizabeth. “Beloved and respected as you
+are, there may be whispers that you hide your face under the
+consciousness of secret sin. For the sake of your holy office, do
+away this scandal!”
+
+The color rose into her cheeks as she intimated the nature of the
+rumors that were already abroad in the village. But Mr. Hooper’s
+mildness did not forsake him. He even smiled again—that same sad
+smile, which always appeared like a faint glimmering of light,
+proceeding from the obscurity beneath the veil.
+
+“If I hide my face for sorrow, there is cause enough,” he merely
+replied; “and if I cover it for secret sin, what mortal might not
+do the same?”
+
+And with this gentle, but unconquerable obstinacy did he resist
+all her entreaties. At length Elizabeth sat silent. For a few
+moments she appeared lost in thought, considering, probably, what
+new methods might be tried to withdraw her lover from so dark a
+fantasy, which, if it had no other meaning, was perhaps a symptom
+of mental disease. Though of a firmer character than his own, the
+tears rolled down her cheeks. But, in an instant, as it were, a
+new feeling took the place of sorrow: her eyes were fixed
+insensibly on the black veil, when, like a sudden twilight in the
+air, its terrors fell around her. She arose, and stood trembling
+before him.
+
+“And do you feel it then, at last?” said he mournfully.
+
+She made no reply, but covered her eyes with her hand, and turned
+to leave the room. He rushed forward and caught her arm.
+
+“Have patience with me, Elizabeth!” cried he, passionately. “Do
+not desert me, though this veil must be between us here on earth.
+Be mine, and hereafter there shall be no veil over my face, no
+darkness between our souls! It is but a mortal veil—it is not
+for eternity! O! you know not how lonely I am, and how
+frightened, to be alone behind my black veil. Do not leave me in
+this miserable obscurity forever!”
+
+“Lift the veil but once, and look me in the face,” said she.
+
+“Never! It cannot be!” replied Mr. Hooper.
+
+“Then farewell!” said Elizabeth.
+
+She withdrew her arm from his grasp, and slowly departed, pausing
+at the door, to give one long shuddering gaze, that seemed almost
+to penetrate the mystery of the black veil. But, even amid his
+grief, Mr. Hooper smiled to think that only a material emblem had
+separated him from happiness, though the horrors, which it
+shadowed forth, must be drawn darkly between the fondest of
+lovers.
+
+From that time no attempts were made to remove Mr. Hooper’s black
+veil, or, by a direct appeal, to discover the secret which it was
+supposed to hide. By persons who claimed a superiority to popular
+prejudice, it was reckoned merely an eccentric whim, such as
+often mingles with the sober actions of men otherwise rational,
+and tinges them all with its own semblance of insanity. But with
+the multitude, good Mr. Hooper was irreparably a bugbear. He could
+not walk the street with any peace of mind, so conscious was he
+that the gentle and timid would turn aside to avoid him, and that
+others would make it a point of hardihood to throw themselves in
+his way. The impertinence of the latter class compelled him to
+give up his customary walk at sunset to the burial ground; for
+when he leaned pensively over the gate, there would always be
+faces behind the gravestones, peeping at his black veil. A fable
+went the rounds that the stare of the dead people drove him
+thence. It grieved him, to the very depth of his kind heart, to
+observe how the children fled from his approach, breaking up
+their merriest sports, while his melancholy figure was yet afar
+off. Their instinctive dread caused him to feel more strongly
+than aught else, that a preternatural horror was interwoven with
+the threads of the black crape. In truth, his own antipathy to
+the veil was known to be so great, that he never willingly passed
+before a mirror, nor stooped to drink at a still fountain, lest,
+in its peaceful bosom, he should be affrighted by himself. This
+was what gave plausibility to the whispers, that Mr. Hooper’s
+conscience tortured him for some great crime too horrible to be
+entirely concealed, or otherwise than so obscurely intimated.
+Thus, from beneath the black veil, there rolled a cloud into the
+sunshine, an ambiguity of sin or sorrow, which enveloped the poor
+minister, so that love or sympathy could never reach him. It was
+said that ghost and fiend consorted with him there. With
+self-shudderings and outward terrors, he walked continually in
+its shadow, groping darkly within his own soul, or gazing through
+a medium that saddened the whole world. Even the lawless wind, it
+was believed, respected his dreadful secret, and never blew aside
+the veil. But still good Mr. Hooper sadly smiled at the pale
+visages of the worldly throng as he passed by.
+
+Among all its bad influences, the black veil had the one
+desirable effect, of making its wearer a very efficient
+clergyman. By the aid of his mysterious emblem—for there was no
+other apparent cause—he became a man of awful power over souls
+that were in agony for sin. His converts always regarded him with
+a dread peculiar to themselves, affirming, though but
+figuratively, that, before he brought them to celestial light,
+they had been with him behind the black veil. Its gloom, indeed,
+enabled him to sympathize with all dark affections. Dying sinners
+cried aloud for Mr. Hooper, and would not yield their breath till
+he appeared; though ever, as he stooped to whisper consolation,
+they shuddered at the veiled face so near their own. Such were
+the terrors of the black veil, even when Death had bared his
+visage! Strangers came long distances to attend service at his
+church, with the mere idle purpose of gazing at his figure,
+because it was forbidden them to behold his face. But many were
+made to quake ere they departed! Once, during Governor Belcher’s
+administration, Mr. Hooper was appointed to preach the election
+sermon. Covered with his black veil, he stood before the chief
+magistrate, the council, and the representatives, and wrought so
+deep an impression, that the legislative measures of that year
+were characterized by all the gloom and piety of our earliest
+ancestral sway.
+
+In this manner Mr. Hooper spent a long life, irreproachable in
+outward act, yet shrouded in dismal suspicions; kind and loving,
+though unloved, and dimly feared; a man apart from men, shunned
+in their health and joy, but ever summoned to their aid in mortal
+anguish. As years wore on, shedding their snows above his sable
+veil, he acquired a name throughout the New England churches, and
+they called him Father Hooper. Nearly all his parishioners, who
+were of mature age when he was settled, had been borne away by
+many a funeral: he had one congregation in the church, and a more
+crowded one in the churchyard; and having wrought so late into
+the evening, and done his work so well, it was now good Father
+Hooper’s turn to rest.
+
+Several persons were visible by the shaded candlelight, in the
+death chamber of the old clergyman. Natural connections he had
+none. But there was the decorously grave, though unmoved
+physician, seeking only to mitigate the last pangs of the patient
+whom he could not save. There were the deacons, and other
+eminently pious members of his church. There, also, was the
+Reverend Mr. Clark, of Westbury, a young and zealous divine, who
+had ridden in haste to pray by the bedside of the expiring
+minister. There was the nurse, no hired handmaiden of death, but
+one whose calm affection had endured thus long in secrecy, in
+solitude, amid the chill of age, and would not perish, even at
+the dying hour. Who, but Elizabeth! And there lay the hoary head
+of good Father Hooper upon the death pillow, with the black veil
+still swathed about his brow, and reaching down over his face, so
+that each more difficult gasp of his faint breath caused it to
+stir. All through life that piece of crape had hung between him
+and the world: it had separated him from cheerful brotherhood and
+woman’s love, and kept him in that saddest of all prisons, his
+own heart; and still it lay upon his face, as if to deepen the
+gloom of his darksome chamber, and shade him from the sunshine of
+eternity.
+
+For some time previous, his mind had been confused, wavering
+doubtfully between the past and the present, and hovering
+forward, as it were, at intervals, into the indistinctness of the
+world to come. There had been feverish turns, which tossed him
+from side to side, and wore away what little strength he had. But
+in his most convulsive struggles, and in the wildest vagaries of
+his intellect, when no other thought retained its sober
+influence, he still showed an awful solicitude lest the black
+veil should slip aside. Even if his bewildered soul could have
+forgotten, there was a faithful woman at this pillow, who, with
+averted eyes, would have covered that aged face, which she had
+last beheld in the comeliness of manhood. At length the
+death-stricken old man lay quietly in the torpor of mental and
+bodily exhaustion, with an imperceptible pulse, and breath that
+grew fainter and fainter, except when a long, deep, and irregular
+inspiration seemed to prelude the flight of his spirit.
+
+The minister of Westbury approached the bedside.
+
+“Venerable Father Hooper,” said he, “the moment of your release
+is at hand. Are you ready for the lifting of the veil that shuts
+in time from eternity?”
+
+Father Hooper at first replied merely by a feeble motion of his
+head; then, apprehensive, perhaps, that his meaning might be
+doubted, he exerted himself to speak.
+
+“Yea,” said he, in faint accents, “my soul hath a patient
+weariness until that veil be lifted.”
+
+“And is it fitting,” resumed the Reverend Mr. Clark, “that a man
+so given to prayer, of such a blameless example, holy in deed and
+thought, so far as mortal judgment may pronounce; is it fitting
+that a father in the church should leave a shadow on his memory,
+that may seem to blacken a life so pure? I pray you, my venerable
+brother, let not this thing be! Suffer us to be gladdened by your
+triumphant aspect as you go to your reward. Before the veil of
+eternity be lifted, let me cast aside this black veil from your
+face!”
+
+And thus speaking, the Reverend Mr. Clark bent forward to reveal
+the mystery of so many years. But, exerting a sudden energy, that
+made all the beholders stand aghast, Father Hooper snatched both
+his hands from beneath the bedclothes, and pressed them strongly
+on the black veil, resolute to struggle, if the minister of
+Westbury would contend with a dying man.
+
+“Never!” cried the veiled clergyman. “On earth, never!”
+
+“Dark old man!” exclaimed the affrighted minister, “with what
+horrible crime upon your soul are you now passing to the
+judgment?”
+
+Father Hooper’s breath heaved; it rattled in his throat; but,
+with a mighty effort, grasping forward with his hands, he caught
+hold of life, and held it back till he should speak. He even
+raised himself in bed; and there he sat, shivering with the arms
+of death around him, while the black veil hung down, awful, at
+that last moment, in the gathered terrors of a lifetime. And yet
+the faint, sad smile, so often there, now seemed to glimmer from
+its obscurity, and linger on Father Hooper’s lips.
+
+“Why do you tremble at me alone?” cried he, turning his veiled
+face round the circle of pale spectators. “Tremble also at each
+other! Have men avoided me, and women shown no pity, and children
+screamed and fled, only for my black veil? What, but the mystery
+which it obscurely typifies, has made this piece of crape so
+awful? When the friend shows his inmost heart to his friend; the
+lover to his best beloved; when man does not vainly shrink from
+the eye of his Creator, loathsomely treasuring up the secret of
+his sin; then deem me a monster, for the symbol beneath which I
+have lived, and die! I look around me, and, lo! on every visage a
+Black Veil!”
+
+While his auditors shrank from one another, in mutual affright,
+Father Hooper fell back upon his pillow, a veiled corpse, with a
+faint smile lingering on the lips. Still veiled, they laid him in
+his coffin, and a veiled corpse they bore him to the grave. The
+grass of many years has sprung up and withered on that grave, the
+burial stone is moss-grown, and good Mr. Hooper’s face is dust;
+but awful is still the thought that it mouldered beneath the
+Black Veil!
+
+
+
+
+Anonymous
+
+
+Horror: A True Tale
+
+
+I was but nineteen years of age when the incident occurred which
+has thrown a shadow over my life; and, ah me! how many and many a
+weary year has dragged by since then! Young, happy, and beloved I
+was in those long-departed days. They said that I was beautiful.
+The mirror now reflects a haggard old woman, with ashen lips and
+face of deadly pallor. But do not fancy that you are listening to
+a mere puling lament. It is not the flight of years that has
+brought me to be this wreck of my former self: had it been so I
+could have borne the loss cheerfully, patiently, as the common lot
+of all; but it was no natural progress of decay which has robbed me
+of bloom, of youth, of the hopes and joys that belong to youth,
+snapped the link that bound my heart to another’s, and doomed me to
+a lone old age. I try to be patient, but my cross has been heavy,
+and my heart is empty and weary, and I long for the death that
+comes so slowly to those who pray to die.
+
+I will try and relate, exactly as it happened, the event which
+blighted my life. Though it occurred many years ago, there is no
+fear that I should have forgotten any of the minutest
+circumstances: they were stamped on my brain too clearly and
+burningly, like the brand of a red-hot iron. I see them written in
+the wrinkles of my brow, in the dead whiteness of my hair, which
+was a glossy brown once, and has known no gradual change from dark
+to gray, from gray to white, as with those happy ones who were the
+companions of my girlhood, and whose honored age is soothed by the
+love of children and grandchildren. But I must not envy them. I
+only meant to say that the difficulty of my task has no connection
+with want of memory—I remember but too well. But as I take my pen
+my hand trembles, my head swims, the old rushing faintness and
+Horror comes over me again, and the well-remembered fear is upon
+me. Yet I will go on.
+
+This, briefly, is my story: I was a great heiress, I believe,
+though I cared little for the fact; but so it was. My father had
+great possessions, and no son to inherit after him. His three
+daughters, of whom I was the youngest, were to share the broad
+acres among them. I have said, and truly, that I cared little for
+the circumstance; and, indeed, I was so rich then in health and
+youth and love that I felt myself quite indifferent to all else.
+The possession of all the treasures of earth could never have made
+up for what I then had—and lost, as I am about to relate. Of
+course, we girls knew that we were heiresses, but I do not think
+Lucy and Minnie were any the prouder or the happier on that
+account. I know I was not. Reginald did not court me for my
+money. Of THAT I felt assured. He proved it, Heaven be praised!
+when he shrank from my side after the change. Yes, in all my
+lonely age, I can still be thankful that he did not keep his word,
+as some would have done—did not clasp at the altar a hand he had
+learned to loathe and shudder at, because it was full of gold—much
+gold! At least he spared me that. And I know that I was loved,
+and the knowledge has kept me from going mad through many a weary
+day and restless night, when my hot eyeballs had not a tear to
+shed, and even to weep was a luxury denied me.
+
+Our house was an old Tudor mansion. My father was very particular
+in keeping the smallest peculiarities of his home unaltered. Thus
+the many peaks and gables, the numerous turrets, and the mullioned
+windows with their quaint lozenge panes set in lead, remained very
+nearly as they had been three centuries back. Over and above the
+quaint melancholy of our dwelling, with the deep woods of its park
+and the sullen waters of the mere, our neighborhood was thinly
+peopled and primitive, and the people round us were ignorant, and
+tenacious of ancient ideas and traditions. Thus it was a
+superstitious atmosphere that we children were reared in, and we
+heard, from our infancy, countless tales of horror, some mere
+fables doubtless, others legends of dark deeds of the olden time,
+exaggerated by credulity and the love of the marvelous. Our mother
+had died when we were young, and our other parent being, though a
+kind father, much absorbed in affairs of various kinds, as an
+active magistrate and landlord, there was no one to check the
+unwholesome stream of tradition with which our plastic minds were
+inundated in the company of nurses and servants. As years went on,
+however, the old ghostly tales partially lost their effects, and
+our undisciplined minds were turned more towards balls, dress, and
+partners, and other matters airy and trivial, more welcome to our
+riper age. It was at a county assembly that Reginald and I first
+met—met and loved. Yes, I am sure that he loved me with all his
+heart. It was not as deep a heart as some, I have thought in my
+grief and anger; but I never doubted its truth and honesty.
+Reginald’s father and mine approved of our growing attachment; and
+as for myself, I know I was so happy then, that I look back upon
+those fleeting moments as on some delicious dream. I now come to
+the change. I have lingered on my childish reminiscences, my
+bright and happy youth, and now I must tell the rest—the blight
+and the sorrow.
+
+It was Christmas, always a joyful and a hospitable time in the
+country, especially in such an old hall as our home, where quaint
+customs and frolics were much clung to, as part and parcel of the
+very dwelling itself. The hall was full of guests—so full,
+indeed, that there was great difficulty in providing sleeping
+accommodation for all. Several narrow and dark chambers in the
+turrets—mere pigeon-holes, as we irreverently called what had been
+thought good enough for the stately gentlemen of Elizabeth’s reign—
+were now allotted to bachelor visitors, after having been empty
+for a century. All the spare rooms in the body and wings of the
+hall were occupied, of course; and the servants who had been
+brought down were lodged at the farm and at the keeper’s, so great
+was the demand for space. At last the unexpected arrival of an
+elderly relative, who had been asked months before, but scarcely
+expected, caused great commotion. My aunts went about wringing
+their hands distractedly. Lady Speldhurst was a personage of some
+consequence; she was a distant cousin, and had been for years on
+cool terms with us all, on account of some fancied affront or
+slight when she had paid her LAST visit, about the time of my
+christening. She was seventy years old; she was infirm, rich, and
+testy; moreover, she was my godmother, though I had forgotten the
+fact; but it seems that though I had formed no expectations of a
+legacy in my favor, my aunts had done so for me. Aunt Margaret was
+especially eloquent on the subject. “There isn’t a room left,” she
+said; “was ever anything so unfortunate! We cannot put Lady
+Speldhurst into the turrets, and yet where IS she to sleep? And
+Rosa’s godmother, too! Poor, dear child, how dreadful! After all
+these years of estrangement, and with a hundred thousand in the
+funds, and no comfortable, warm room at her own unlimited disposal—
+and Christmas, of all times in the year!” What WAS to be done?
+My aunts could not resign their own chambers to Lady Speldhurst,
+because they had already given them up to some of the married
+guests. My father was the most hospitable of men, but he was
+rheumatic, gouty, and methodical. His sisters-in-law dared not
+propose to shift his quarters; and, indeed, he would have far
+sooner dined on prison fare than have been translated to a strange
+bed. The matter ended in my giving up my room. I had a strange
+reluctance to making the offer, which surprised myself. Was it a
+boding of evil to come? I cannot say. We are strangely and
+wonderfully made. It MAY have been. At any rate, I do not think
+it was any selfish unwillingness to make an old and infirm lady
+comfortable by a trifling sacrifice. I was perfectly healthy and
+strong. The weather was not cold for the time of the year. It was
+a dark, moist Yule—not a snowy one, though snow brooded overhead
+in the darkling clouds. I DID make the offer, which became me, I
+said with a laugh, as the youngest. My sisters laughed too, and
+made a jest of my evident wish to propitiate my godmother. “She is
+a fairy godmother, Rosa,” said Minnie; “and you know she was
+affronted at your christening, and went away muttering vengeance.
+Here she is coming back to see you; I hope she brings golden gifts
+with her.”
+
+I thought little of Lady Speldhurst and her possible golden gifts.
+I cared nothing for the wonderful fortune in the funds that my
+aunts whispered and nodded about so mysteriously. But since then I
+have wondered whether, had I then showed myself peevish or
+obstinate—had I refused to give up my room for the expected
+kinswoman—it would not have altered the whole of my life? But
+then Lucy or Minnie would have offered in my stead, and been
+sacrificed—what do I say?—better that the blow should have fallen
+as it did than on those dear ones.
+
+The chamber to which I removed was a dim little triangular room in
+the western wing, and was only to be reached by traversing the
+picture-gallery, or by mounting a little flight of stone stairs
+which led directly upward from the low-browed arch of a door that
+opened into the garden. There was one more room on the same
+landing-place, and this was a mere receptacle for broken furniture,
+shattered toys, and all the lumber that WILL accumulate in a
+country-house. The room I was to inhabit for a few nights was a
+tapestry-hung apartment, with faded green curtains of some costly
+stuff, contrasting oddly with a new carpet and the bright, fresh
+hangings of the bed, which had been hurriedly erected. The
+furniture was half old, half new; and on the dressing-table stood a
+very quaint oval mirror, in a frame of black wood—unpolished
+ebony, I think. I can remember the very pattern of the carpet, the
+number of chairs, the situation of the bed, the figures on the
+tapestry. Nay, I can recollect not only the color of the dress I
+wore on that fated evening, but the arrangement of every scrap of
+lace and ribbon, of every flower, every jewel, with a memory but
+too perfect.
+
+Scarcely had my maid finished spreading out my various articles of
+attire for the evening (when there was to be a great dinner-party)
+when the rumble of a carriage announced that Lady Speldhurst had
+arrived. The short winter’s day drew to a close, and a large
+number of guests were gathered together in the ample drawing-room,
+around the blaze of the wood-fire, after dinner. My father, I
+recollect, was not with us at first. There were some squires of
+the old, hard-riding, hard-drinking stamp still lingering over
+their port in the dining-room, and the host, of course, could not
+leave them. But the ladies and all the younger gentlemen—both
+those who slept under our roof, and those who would have a dozen
+miles of fog and mire to encounter on their road home—were all
+together. Need I say that Reginald was there? He sat near me—my
+accepted lover, my plighted future husband. We were to be married
+in the spring. My sisters were not far off; they, too, had found
+eyes that sparkled and softened in meeting theirs, had found hearts
+that beat responsive to their own. And, in their cases, no rude
+frost nipped the blossom ere it became the fruit; there was no
+canker in their flowerets of young hope, no cloud in their sky.
+Innocent and loving, they were beloved by men worthy of their
+esteem.
+
+The room—a large and lofty one, with an arched roof—had somewhat
+of a somber character, from being wainscoted and ceiled with
+polished black oak of a great age. There were mirrors, and there
+were pictures on the walls, and handsome furniture, and marble
+chimney-pieces, and a gay Tournay carpet; but these merely appeared
+as bright spots on the dark background of the Elizabethan woodwork.
+Many lights were burning, but the blackness of the walls and roof
+seemed absolutely to swallow up their rays, like the mouth of a
+cavern. A hundred candles could not have given that apartment the
+cheerful lightness of a modern drawing room. But the gloomy
+richness of the panels matched well with the ruddy gleam from the
+enormous wood-fire, in which, crackling and glowing, now lay the
+mighty Yule log. Quite a blood-red luster poured forth from the
+fire, and quivered on the walls and the groined roof. We had
+gathered round the vast antique hearth in a wide circle. The
+quivering light of the fire and candles fell upon us all, but not
+equally, for some were in shadow. I remember still how tall and
+manly and handsome Reginald looked that night, taller by the head
+than any there, and full of high spirits and gayety. I, too, was
+in the highest spirits; never had my bosom felt lighter, and I
+believe it was my mirth that gradually gained the rest, for I
+recollect what a blithe, joyous company we seemed. All save one.
+Lady Speldhurst, dressed in gray silk and wearing a quaint head-
+dress, sat in her armchair, facing the fire, very silent, with her
+hands and her sharp chin propped on a sort of ivory-handled crutch
+that she walked with (for she was lame), peering at me with half-
+shut eyes. She was a little, spare old woman, with very keen,
+delicate features of the French type. Her gray silk dress, her
+spotless lace, old-fashioned jewels, and prim neatness of array,
+were well suited to the intelligence of her face, with its thin
+lips, and eyes of a piercing black, undimmed by age. Those eyes
+made me uncomfortable, in spite of my gayety, as they followed my
+every movement with curious scrutiny. Still I was very merry and
+gay; my sisters even wondered at my ever-ready mirth, which was
+almost wild in its excess. I have heard since then of the Scottish
+belief that those doomed to some great calamity become fey, and are
+never so disposed for merriment and laughter as just before the
+blow falls. If ever mortal was fey, then I was so on that evening.
+Still, though I strove to shake it off, the pertinacious
+observation of old Lady Speldhurst’s eyes DID make an impression on
+me of a vaguely disagreeable nature. Others, too, noticed her
+scrutiny of me, but set it down as a mere eccentricity of a person
+always reputed whimsical, to say the least of it.
+
+However, this disagreeable sensation lasted but a few moments.
+After a short pause my aunt took her part in the conversation, and
+we found ourselves listening to a weird legend, which the old lady
+told exceedingly well. One tale led to another. Everyone was
+called on in turn to contribute to the public entertainment, and
+story after story, always relating to demonology and witchcraft,
+succeeded. It was Christmas, the season for such tales; and the
+old room, with its dusky walls and pictures, and vaulted roof,
+drinking up the light so greedily, seemed just fitted to give
+effect to such legendary lore. The huge logs crackled and burned
+with glowing warmth; the blood-red glare of the Yule log flashed on
+the faces of the listeners and narrator, on the portraits, and the
+holly wreathed about their frames, and the upright old dame, in her
+antiquated dress and trinkets, like one of the originals of the
+pictures, stepped from the canvas to join our circle. It threw a
+shimmering luster of an ominously ruddy hue upon the oaken panels.
+No wonder that the ghost and goblin stories had a new zest. No
+wonder that the blood of the more timid grew chill and curdled,
+that their flesh crept, that their hearts beat irregularly, and the
+girls peeped fearfully over their shoulders, and huddled close
+together like frightened sheep, and half fancied they beheld some
+impish and malignant face gibbering at them from the darkling
+corners of the old room. By degrees my high spirits died out, and
+I felt the childish tremors, long latent, long forgotten, coming
+over me. I followed each story with painful interest; I did not
+ask myself if I believed the dismal tales. I listened, and fear
+grew upon me—the blind, irrational fear of our nursery days. I am
+sure most of the other ladies present, young or middle-aged, were
+affected by the circumstances under which these traditions were
+heard, no less than by the wild and fantastic character of them.
+But with them the impression would die out next morning, when the
+bright sun should shine on the frosted boughs, and the rime on the
+grass, and the scarlet berries and green spikelets of the holly;
+and with me—but, ah! what was to happen ere another day dawn?
+Before we had made an end of this talk my father and the other
+squires came in, and we ceased our ghost stories, ashamed to speak
+of such matters before these new-comers—hard-headed, unimaginative
+men, who had no sympathy with idle legends. There was now a stir
+and bustle.
+
+Servants were handing round tea and coffee, and other refreshments.
+Then there was a little music and singing. I sang a duet with
+Reginald, who had a fine voice and good musical skill. I remember
+that my singing was much praised, and indeed I was surprised at the
+power and pathos of my own voice, doubtless due to my excited
+nerves and mind. Then I heard someone say to another that I was by
+far the cleverest of the Squire’s daughters, as well as the
+prettiest. It did not make me vain. I had no rivalry with Lucy
+and Minnie. But Reginald whispered some soft, fond words in my ear
+a little before he mounted his horse to set off homeward, which DID
+make me happy and proud. And to think that the next time we met—
+but I forgave him long ago. Poor Reginald! And now shawls and
+cloaks were in request, and carriages rolled up to the porch, and
+the guests gradually departed. At last no one was left but those
+visitors staying in the house. Then my father, who had been called
+out to speak with the bailiff of the estate, came back with a look
+of annoyance on his face.
+
+“A strange story I have just been told,” said he; “here has been my
+bailiff to inform me of the loss of four of the choicest ewes out
+of that little flock of Southdowns I set such store by, and which
+arrived in the north but two months since. And the poor creatures
+have been destroyed in so strange a manner, for their carcasses are
+horribly mangled.”
+
+Most of us uttered some expression of pity or surprise, and some
+suggested that a vicious dog was probably the culprit.
+
+“It would seem so,” said my father; “it certainly seems the work of
+a dog; and yet all the men agree that no dog of such habits exists
+near us, where, indeed, dogs are scarce, excepting the shepherds’
+collies and the sporting dogs secured in yards. Yet the sheep are
+gnawed and bitten, for they show the marks of teeth. Something has
+done this, and has torn their bodies wolfishly; but apparently it
+has been only to suck the blood, for little or no flesh is gone.”
+
+“How strange!” cried several voices. Then some of the gentlemen
+remembered to have heard of cases when dogs addicted to sheep-
+killing had destroyed whole flocks, as if in sheer wantonness,
+scarcely deigning to taste a morsel of each slain wether.
+
+My father shook his head. “I have heard of such cases, too,” he
+said; “but in this instance I am tempted to think the malice of
+some unknown enemy has been at work. The teeth of a dog have been
+busy, no doubt, but the poor sheep have been mutilated in a
+fantastic manner, as strange as horrible; their hearts, in
+especial, have been torn out, and left at some paces off, half-
+gnawed. Also, the men persist that they found the print of a naked
+human foot in the soft mud of the ditch, and near it—this.” And
+he held up what seemed a broken link of a rusted iron chain.
+
+Many were the ejaculations of wonder and alarm, and many and shrewd
+the conjectures, but none seemed exactly to suit the bearings of
+the case. And when my father went on to say that two lambs of the
+same valuable breed had perished in the same singular manner three
+days previously, and that they also were found mangled and gore-
+stained, the amazement reached a higher pitch. Old Lady Speldhurst
+listened with calm, intelligent attention, but joined in none of
+our exclamations. At length she said to my father, “Try and
+recollect—have you no enemy among your neighbors?” My father
+started, and knit his brows. “Not one that I know of,” he replied;
+and indeed he was a popular man and a kind landlord. “The more
+lucky you,” said the old dame, with one of her grim smiles. It was
+now late, and we retired to rest before long. One by one the
+guests dropped off. I was the member of the family selected to
+escort old Lady Speldhurst to her room—the room I had vacated in
+her favor. I did not much like the office. I felt a remarkable
+repugnance to my godmother, but my worthy aunts insisted so much
+that I should ingratiate myself with one who had so much to leave
+that I could not but comply. The visitor hobbled up the broad
+oaken stairs actively enough, propped on my arm and her ivory
+crutch. The room never had looked more genial and pretty, with its
+brisk fire, modern furniture, and the gay French paper on the
+walls. “A nice room, my dear, and I ought to be much obliged to
+you for it, since my maid tells me it is yours,” said her ladyship;
+“but I am pretty sure you repent your generosity to me, after all
+those ghost stories, and tremble to think of a strange bed and
+chamber, eh?” I made some commonplace reply. The old lady arched
+her eyebrows. “Where have they put you, child?” she asked; “in
+some cock-loft of the turrets, eh? or in a lumber-room—a regular
+ghost-trap? I can hear your heart beating with fear this moment.
+You are not fit to be alone.” I tried to call up my pride, and
+laugh off the accusation against my courage, all the more, perhaps,
+because I felt its truth. “Do you want anything more that I can
+get you, Lady Speldhurst?” I asked, trying to feign a yawn of
+sleepiness. The old dame’s keen eyes were upon me. “I rather like
+you, my dear,” she said, “and I liked your mamma well enough before
+she treated me so shamefully about the christening dinner. Now, I
+know you are frightened and fearful, and if an owl should but flap
+your window to-night, it might drive you into fits. There is a
+nice little sofa-bed in this dressing closet—call your maid to
+arrange it for you, and you can sleep there snugly, under the old
+witch’s protection, and then no goblin dare harm you, and nobody
+will be a bit the wiser, or quiz you for being afraid.” How little
+I knew what hung in the balance of my refusal or acceptance of that
+trivial proffer! Had the veil of the future been lifted for one
+instant! but that veil is impenetrable to our gaze.
+
+I left her door. As I crossed the landing a bright gleam came from
+another room, whose door was left ajar; it (the light) fell like a
+bar of golden sheen across my path. As I approached the door
+opened and my sister Lucy, who had been watching for me, came out.
+She was already in a white cashmere wrapper, over which her
+loosened hair hung darkly and heavily, like tangles of silk.
+“Rosa, love,” she whispered, “Minnie and I can’t bear the idea of
+your sleeping out there, all alone, in that solitary room—the very
+room too Nurse Sherrard used to talk about! So, as you know Minnie
+has given up her room, and come to sleep in mine, still we should
+so wish you to stop with us to-night at any rate, and I could make
+up a bed on the sofa for myself or you—and—” I stopped Lucy’s
+mouth with a kiss. I declined her offer. I would not listen to
+it. In fact, my pride was up in arms, and I felt I would rather
+pass the night in the churchyard itself than accept a proposal
+dictated, I felt sure, by the notion that my nerves were shaken by
+the ghostly lore we had been raking up, that I was a weak,
+superstitious creature, unable to pass a night in a strange
+chamber. So I would not listen to Lucy, but kissed her, bade her
+good-night, and went on my way laughing, to show my light heart.
+Yet, as I looked back in the dark corridor, and saw the friendly
+door still ajar, the yellow bar of light still crossing from wall
+to wall, the sweet, kind face still peering after me from amidst
+its clustering curls, I felt a thrill of sympathy, a wish to
+return, a yearning after human love and companionship. False shame
+was strongest, and conquered. I waved a gay adieu. I turned the
+corner, and peeping over my shoulder, I saw the door close; the bar
+of yellow light was there no longer in the darkness of the passage.
+I thought at that instant that I heard a heavy sigh. I looked
+sharply round. No one was there. No door was open, yet I fancied,
+and fancied with a wonderful vividness, that I did hear an actual
+sigh breathed not far off, and plainly distinguishable from the
+groan of the sycamore branches as the wind tossed them to and fro
+in the outer blackness. If ever a mortal’s good angel had cause to
+sigh for sorrow, not sin, mine had cause to mourn that night. But
+imagination plays us strange tricks and my nervous system was not
+over-composed or very fitted for judicial analysis. I had to go
+through the picture-gallery. I had never entered this apartment by
+candle-light before and I was struck by the gloomy array of the
+tall portraits, gazing moodily from the canvas on the lozenge-paned
+or painted windows, which rattled to the blast as it swept howling
+by. Many of the faces looked stern, and very different from their
+daylight expression. In others a furtive, flickering smile seemed
+to mock me as my candle illumined them; and in all, the eyes, as
+usual with artistic portraits, seemed to follow my motions with a
+scrutiny and an interest the more marked for the apathetic
+immovability of the other features. I felt ill at ease under this
+stony gaze, though conscious how absurd were my apprehensions; and
+I called up a smile and an air of mirth, more as if acting a part
+under the eyes of human beings than of their mere shadows on the
+wall. I even laughed as I confronted them. No echo had my short-
+lived laughter but from the hollow armor and arching roof, and I
+continued on my way in silence.
+
+By a sudden and not uncommon revulsion of feeling I shook off my
+aimless terrors, blushed at my weakness, and sought my chamber only
+too glad that I had been the only witness of my late tremors. As I
+entered my chamber I thought I heard something stir in the
+neglected lumber-room, which was the only neighboring apartment.
+But I was determined to have no more panics, and resolutely shut my
+eyes to this slight and transient noise, which had nothing
+unnatural in it; for surely, between rats and wind, an old manor-
+house on a stormy night needs no sprites to disturb it. So I
+entered my room, and rang for my maid. As I did so I looked around
+me, and a most unaccountable repugnance to my temporary abode came
+over me, in spite of my efforts. It was no more to be shaken off
+than a chill is to be shaken off when we enter some damp cave.
+And, rely upon it, the feeling of dislike and apprehension with
+which we regard, at first sight, certain places and people, was not
+implanted in us without some wholesome purpose. I grant it is
+irrational—mere animal instinct—but is not instinct God’s gift,
+and is it for us to despise it? It is by instinct that children
+know their friends from their enemies—that they distinguish with
+such unerring accuracy between those who like them and those who
+only flatter and hate them. Dogs do the same; they will fawn on
+one person, they slink snarling from another. Show me a man whom
+children and dogs shrink from, and I will show you a false, bad
+man—lies on his lips, and murder at his heart. No; let none
+despise the heaven-sent gift of innate antipathy, which makes the
+horse quail when the lion crouches in the thicket—which makes the
+cattle scent the shambles from afar, and low in terror and disgust
+as their nostrils snuff the blood-polluted air. I felt this
+antipathy strongly as I looked around me in my new sleeping-room,
+and yet I could find no reasonable pretext for my dislike. A very
+good room it was, after all, now that the green damask curtains
+were drawn, the fire burning bright and clear, candles burning on
+the mantel-piece, and the various familiar articles of toilet
+arranged as usual. The bed, too, looked peaceful and inviting—a
+pretty little white bed, not at all the gaunt funereal sort of
+couch which haunted apartments generally contain.
+
+My maid entered, and assisted me to lay aside the dress and
+ornaments I had worn, and arranged my hair, as usual, prattling the
+while, in Abigail fashion. I seldom cared to converse with
+servants; but on that night a sort of dread of being left alone—a
+longing to keep some human being near me possessed me—and I
+encouraged the girl to gossip, so that her duties took her half an
+hour longer to get through than usual. At last, however, she had
+done all that could be done, and all my questions were answered,
+and my orders for the morrow reiterated and vowed obedience to, and
+the clock on the turret struck one. Then Mary, yawning a little,
+asked if I wanted anything more, and I was obliged to answer no,
+for very shame’s sake; and she went. The shutting of the door,
+gently as it was closed, affected me unpleasantly. I took a
+dislike to the curtains, the tapestry, the dingy pictures—
+everything. I hated the room. I felt a temptation to put on a
+cloak, run, half-dressed, to my sisters’ chamber, and say I had
+changed my mind and come for shelter. But they must be asleep, I
+thought, and I could not be so unkind as to wake them. I said my
+prayers with unusual earnestness and a heavy heart. I extinguished
+the candles, and was just about to lay my head on my pillow, when
+the idea seized me that I would fasten the door. The candles were
+extinguished, but the firelight was amply sufficient to guide me.
+I gained the door. There was a lock, but it was rusty or hampered;
+my utmost strength could not turn the key. The bolt was broken and
+worthless. Balked of my intention, I consoled myself by
+remembering that I had never had need of fastenings yet, and
+returned to my bed. I lay awake for a good while, watching the red
+glow of the burning coals in the grate. I was quiet now, and more
+composed. Even the light gossip of the maid, full of petty human
+cares and joys, had done me good—diverted my thoughts from
+brooding. I was on the point of dropping asleep, when I was twice
+disturbed. Once, by an owl, hooting in the ivy outside—no
+unaccustomed sound, but harsh and melancholy; once, by a long and
+mournful howling set up by the mastiff, chained in the yard beyond
+the wing I occupied. A long-drawn, lugubrious howling was this
+latter, and much such a note as the vulgar declare to herald a
+death in the family. This was a fancy I had never shared; but yet
+I could not help feeling that the dog’s mournful moans were sad,
+and expressive of terror, not at all like his fierce, honest bark
+of anger, but rather as if something evil and unwonted were abroad.
+But soon I fell asleep.
+
+How long I slept I never knew. I awoke at once with that abrupt
+start which we all know well, and which carries us in a second from
+utter unconsciousness to the full use of our faculties. The fire
+was still burning, but was very low, and half the room or more was
+in deep shadow. I knew, I felt, that some person or thing was in
+the room, although nothing unusual was to be seen by the feeble
+light. Yet it was a sense of danger that had aroused me from
+slumber. I experienced, while yet asleep, the chill and shock of
+sudden alarm, and I knew, even in the act of throwing off sleep
+like a mantle, WHY I awoke, and that some intruder was present.
+Yet, though I listened intently, no sound was audible, except the
+faint murmur of the fire—the dropping of a cinder from the bars—
+the loud, irregular beatings of my own heart. Notwithstanding this
+silence, by some intuition I knew that I had not been deceived by a
+dream, and felt certain that I was not alone. I waited. My heart
+beat on; quicker, more sudden grew its pulsations, as a bird in a
+cage might flutter in presence of the hawk. And then I heard a
+sound, faint, but quite distinct, the clank of iron, the rattling
+of a chain! I ventured to lift my head from the pillow. Dim and
+uncertain as the light was, I saw the curtains of my bed shake, and
+caught a glimpse of something beyond, a darker spot in the
+darkness. This confirmation of my fears did not surprise me so
+much as it shocked me. I strove to cry aloud, but could not utter
+a word. The chain rattled again, and this time the noise was
+louder and clearer. But though I strained my eyes, they could not
+penetrate the obscurity that shrouded the other end of the chamber
+whence came the sullen clanking. In a moment several distinct
+trains of thought, like many-colored strands of thread twining into
+one, became palpable to my mental vision. Was it a robber? Could
+it be a supernatural visitant? Or was I the victim of a cruel
+trick, such as I had heard of, and which some thoughtless persons
+love to practice on the timid, reckless of its dangerous results?
+And then a new idea, with some ray of comfort in it, suggested
+itself. There was a fine young dog of the Newfoundland breed, a
+favorite of my father’s, which was usually chained by night in an
+outhouse. Neptune might have broken loose, found his way to my
+room, and, finding the door imperfectly closed, have pushed it open
+and entered. I breathed more freely as this harmless
+interpretation of the noise forced itself upon me. It was—it must
+be—the dog, and I was distressing myself uselessly. I resolved to
+call to him; I strove to utter his name—“Neptune, Neptune,” but a
+secret apprehension restrained me, and I was mute.
+
+Then the chain clanked nearer and nearer to the bed, and presently
+I saw a dusky, shapeless mass appear between the curtains on the
+opposite side to where I was lying. How I longed to hear the whine
+of the poor animal that I hoped might be the cause of my alarm.
+But no; I heard no sound save the rustle of the curtains and the
+clash of the iron chains. Just then the dying flame of the fire
+leaped up, and with one sweeping, hurried glance I saw that the
+door was shut, and, horror! it is not the dog! it is the semblance
+of a human form that now throws itself heavily on the bed, outside
+the clothes, and lies there, huge and swart, in the red gleam that
+treacherously died away after showing so much to affright, and
+sinks into dull darkness. There was now no light left, though the
+red cinders yet glowed with a ruddy gleam like the eyes of wild
+beasts. The chain rattled no more. I tried to speak, to scream
+wildly for help; my mouth was parched, my tongue refused to obey.
+I could not utter a cry, and, indeed, who could have heard me,
+alone as I was in that solitary chamber, with no living neighbor,
+and the picture-gallery between me and any aid that even the
+loudest, most piercing shriek could summon. And the storm that
+howled without would have drowned my voice, even if help had been
+at hand. To call aloud—to demand who was there—alas! how
+useless, how perilous! If the intruder were a robber, my outcries
+would but goad him to fury; but what robber would act thus? As for
+a trick, that seemed impossible. And yet, WHAT lay by my side, now
+wholly unseen? I strove to pray aloud as there rushed on my memory
+a flood of weird legends—the dreaded yet fascinating lore of my
+childhood. I had heard and read of the spirits of the wicked men
+forced to revisit the scenes of their earthly crimes—of demons
+that lurked in certain accursed spots—of the ghoul and vampire of
+the east, stealing amidst the graves they rifled for their ghostly
+banquets; and then I shuddered as I gazed on the blank darkness
+where I knew it lay. It stirred—it moaned hoarsely; and again I
+heard the chain clank close beside me—so close that it must almost
+have touched me. I drew myself from it, shrinking away in loathing
+and terror of the evil thing—what, I knew not, but felt that
+something malignant was near.
+
+And yet, in the extremity of my fear, I dared not speak; I was
+strangely cautious to be silent, even in moving farther off; for I
+had a wild hope that it—the phantom, the creature, whichever it
+was—had not discovered my presence in the room. And then I
+remembered all the events of the night—Lady Speldhurst’s ill-
+omened vaticinations, her half-warnings, her singular look as we
+parted, my sister’s persuasions, my terror in the gallery, the
+remark that “this was the room nurse Sherrard used to talk of.”
+And then memory, stimulated by fear, recalled the long-forgotten
+past, the ill-repute of this disused chamber, the sins it had
+witnessed, the blood spilled, the poison administered by unnatural
+hate within its walls, and the tradition which called it haunted.
+The green room—I remembered now how fearfully the servants avoided
+it—how it was mentioned rarely, and in whispers, when we were
+children, and how we had regarded it as a mysterious region, unfit
+for mortal habitation. Was It—the dark form with the chain—a
+creature of this world, or a specter? And again—more dreadful
+still—could it be that the corpses of wicked men were forced to
+rise and haunt in the body the places where they had wrought their
+evil deeds? And was such as these my grisly neighbor? The chain
+faintly rattled. My hair bristled; my eyeballs seemed starting
+from their sockets; the damps of a great anguish were on my brow.
+My heart labored as if I were crushed beneath some vast weight.
+Sometimes it appeared to stop its frenzied beatings, sometimes its
+pulsations were fierce and hurried; my breath came short and with
+extreme difficulty, and I shivered as if with cold; yet I feared to
+stir. IT moved, it moaned, its fetters clanked dismally, the couch
+creaked and shook. This was no phantom, then—no air-drawn
+specter. But its very solidity, its palpable presence, were a
+thousand times more terrible. I felt that I was in the very grasp
+of what could not only affright but harm; of something whose
+contact sickened the soul with deathly fear. I made a desperate
+resolve: I glided from the bed, I seized a warm wrapper, threw it
+around me, and tried to grope, with extended hands, my way to the
+door. My heart beat high at the hope of escape. But I had
+scarcely taken one step before the moaning was renewed—it changed
+into a threatening growl that would have suited a wolf’s throat,
+and a hand clutched at my sleeve. I stood motionless. The
+muttering growl sank to a moan again, the chain sounded no more,
+but still the hand held its grip of my garment, and I feared to
+move. It knew of my presence, then. My brain reeled, the blood
+boiled in my ears, and my knees lost all strength, while my heart
+panted like that of a deer in the wolf’s jaws. I sank back, and
+the benumbing influence of excessive terror reduced me to a state
+of stupor.
+
+When my full consciousness returned I was sitting on the edge of
+the bed, shivering with cold, and barefooted. All was silent, but
+I felt that my sleeve was still clutched by my unearthly visitant.
+The silence lasted a long time. Then followed a chuckling laugh
+that froze my very marrow, and the gnashing of teeth as in demoniac
+frenzy; and then a wailing moan, and this was succeeded by silence.
+Hours may have passed—nay, though the tumult of my own heart
+prevented my hearing the clock strike, must have passed—but they
+seemed ages to me. And how were they passed? Hideous visions
+passed before the aching eyes that I dared not close, but which
+gazed ever into the dumb darkness where It lay—my dread companion
+through the watches of the night. I pictured It in every abhorrent
+form which an excited fancy could summon up: now as a skeleton;
+with hollow eye-holes and grinning, fleshless jaws; now as a
+vampire, with livid face and bloated form, and dripping mouth wet
+with blood. Would it never be light! And yet, when day should
+dawn I should be forced to see It face to face. I had heard that
+specter and fiend were compelled to fade as morning brightened, but
+this creature was too real, too foul a thing of earth, to vanish at
+cock-crow. No! I should see it—the Horror—face to face! And
+then the cold prevailed, and my teeth chattered, and shiverings ran
+through me, and yet there was the damp of agony on my bursting
+brow. Some instinct made me snatch at a shawl or cloak that lay on
+a chair within reach, and wrap it round me. The moan was renewed,
+and the chain just stirred. Then I sank into apathy, like an
+Indian at the stake, in the intervals of torture. Hours fled by,
+and I remained like a statue of ice, rigid and mute. I even slept,
+for I remember that I started to find the cold gray light of an
+early winter’s day was on my face, and stealing around the room
+from between the heavy curtains of the window.
+
+Shuddering, but urged by the impulse that rivets the gaze of the
+bird upon the snake, I turned to see the Horror of the night. Yes,
+it was no fevered dream, no hallucination of sickness, no airy
+phantom unable to face the dawn. In the sickly light I saw it
+lying on the bed, with its grim head on the pillow. A man? Or a
+corpse arisen from its unhallowed grave, and awaiting the demon
+that animated it? There it lay—a gaunt, gigantic form, wasted to
+a skeleton, half-clad, foul with dust and clotted gore, its huge
+limbs flung upon the couch as if at random, its shaggy hair
+streaming over the pillows like a lion’s mane. His face was toward
+me. Oh, the wild hideousness of that face, even in sleep! In
+features it was human, even through its horrid mask of mud and
+half-dried bloody gouts, but the expression was brutish and
+savagely fierce; the white teeth were visible between the parted
+lips, in a malignant grin; the tangled hair and beard were mixed in
+leonine confusion, and there were scars disfiguring the brow.
+Round the creature’s waist was a ring of iron, to which was
+attached a heavy but broken chain—the chain I had heard clanking.
+With a second glance I noted that part of the chain was wrapped in
+straw to prevent its galling the wearer. The creature—I cannot
+call it a man—had the marks of fetters on its wrists, the bony arm
+that protruded through one tattered sleeve was scarred and bruised;
+the feet were bare, and lacerated by pebbles and briers, and one of
+them was wounded, and wrapped in a morsel of rag. And the lean
+hands, one of which held my sleeve, were armed with talons like an
+eagle’s. In an instant the horrid truth flashed upon me—I was in
+the grasp of a madman. Better the phantom that scares the sight
+than the wild beast that rends and tears the quivering flesh—the
+pitiless human brute that has no heart to be softened, no reason at
+whose bar to plead, no compassion, naught of man save the form and
+the cunning. I gasped in terror. Ah! the mystery of those
+ensanguined fingers, those gory, wolfish jaws! that face, all
+besmeared with blackening blood, is revealed!
+
+The slain sheep, so mangled and rent—the fantastic butchery—the
+print of the naked foot—all, all were explained; and the chain,
+the broken link of which was found near the slaughtered animals—it
+came from his broken chain—the chain he had snapped, doubtless, in
+his escape from the asylum where his raging frenzy had been
+fettered and bound, in vain! in vain! Ah me! how had this grisly
+Samson broken manacles and prison bars—how had he eluded guardian
+and keeper and a hostile world, and come hither on his wild way,
+hunted like a beast of prey, and snatching his hideous banquet like
+a beast of prey, too! Yes, through the tatters of his mean and
+ragged garb I could see the marks of the seventies, cruel and
+foolish, with which men in that time tried to tame the might of
+madness. The scourge—its marks were there; and the scars of the
+hard iron fetters, and many a cicatrice and welt, that told a
+dismal tale of hard usage. But now he was loose, free to play the
+brute—the baited, tortured brute that they had made him—now
+without the cage, and ready to gloat over the victims his strength
+should overpower. Horror! horror! I was the prey—the victim—
+already in the tiger’s clutch; and a deadly sickness came over me,
+and the iron entered into my soul, and I longed to scream, and was
+dumb! I died a thousand deaths as that morning wore on. I DARED
+NOT faint. But words cannot paint what I suffered as I waited—
+waited till the moment when he should open his eyes and be aware of
+my presence; for I was assured he knew it not. He had entered the
+chamber as a lair, when weary and gorged with his horrid orgy; and
+he had flung himself down to sleep without a suspicion that he was
+not alone. Even his grasping my sleeve was doubtless an act done
+betwixt sleeping and waking, like his unconscious moans and
+laughter, in some frightful dream.
+
+Hours went on; then I trembled as I thought that soon the house
+would be astir, that my maid would come to call me as usual, and
+awake that ghastly sleeper. And might he not have time to tear me,
+as he tore the sheep, before any aid could arrive? At last what I
+dreaded came to pass—a light footstep on the landing—there is a
+tap at the door. A pause succeeds, and then the tapping is
+renewed, and this time more loudly. Then the madman stretched his
+limbs, and uttered his moaning cry, and his eyes slowly opened—
+very slowly opened and met mine. The girl waited a while ere she
+knocked for the third time. I trembled lest she should open the
+door unbidden—see that grim thing, and bring about the worst.
+
+I saw the wondering surprise in his haggard, bloodshot eyes; I saw
+him stare at me half vacantly, then with a crafty yet wondering
+look; and then I saw the devil of murder begin to peep forth from
+those hideous eyes, and the lips to part as in a sneer, and the
+wolfish teeth to bare themselves. But I was not what I had been.
+Fear gave me a new and a desperate composure—a courage foreign to
+my nature. I had heard of the best method of managing the insane;
+I could but try; I DID try. Calmly, wondering at my own feigned
+calm, I fronted the glare of those terrible eyes. Steady and
+undaunted was my gaze—motionless my attitude. I marveled at
+myself, but in that agony of sickening terror I was OUTWARDLY firm.
+They sink, they quail, abashed, those dreadful eyes, before the
+gaze of a helpless girl; and the shame that is never absent from
+insanity bears down the pride of strength, the bloody cravings of
+the wild beast. The lunatic moaned and drooped his shaggy head
+between his gaunt, squalid hands.
+
+I lost not an instant. I rose, and with one spring reached the
+door, tore it open, and, with a shriek, rushed through, caught the
+wondering girl by the arm, and crying to her to run for her life,
+rushed like the wind along the gallery, down the corridor, down the
+stairs. Mary’s screams filled the house as she fled beside me. I
+heard a long-drawn, raging cry, the roar of a wild animal mocked of
+its prey, and I knew what was behind me. I never turned my head—I
+flew rather than ran. I was in the hall already; there was a rush
+of many feet, an outcry of many voices, a sound of scuffling feet,
+and brutal yells, and oaths, and heavy blows, and I fell to the
+ground crying, “Save me!” and lay in a swoon. I awoke from a
+delirious trance. Kind faces were around my bed, loving looks were
+bent on me by all, by my dear father and dear sisters; but I
+scarcely saw them before I swooned again.
+
+When I recovered from that long illness, through which I had been
+nursed so tenderly, the pitying looks I met made me tremble. I
+asked for a looking-glass. It was long denied me, but my
+importunity prevailed at last—a mirror was brought. My youth was
+gone at one fell swoop. The glass showed me a livid and haggard
+face, blanched and bloodless as of one who sees a specter; and in
+the ashen lips, and wrinkled brow, and dim eyes, I could trace
+nothing of my old self. The hair, too, jetty and rich before, was
+now as white as snow; and in one night the ravages of half a
+century had passed over my face. Nor have my nerves ever recovered
+their tone after that dire shock. Can you wonder that my life was
+blighted, that my lover shrank from me, so sad a wreck was I?
+
+I am old now—old and alone. My sisters would have had me to live
+with them, but I chose not to sadden their genial homes with my
+phantom face and dead eyes. Reginald married another. He has been
+dead many years. I never ceased to pray for him, though he left me
+when I was bereft of all. The sad weird is nearly over now. I am
+old, and near the end, and wishful for it. I have not been bitter
+or hard, but I cannot bear to see many people, and am best alone.
+I try to do what good I can with the worthless wealth Lady
+Speldhurst left me, for, at my wish, my portion was shared between
+my sisters. What need had I of inheritance?—I, the shattered
+wreck made by that one night of horror!
+
+
+
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES BY MODERN AMERICAN AUTHORS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 2043-0.txt or 2043-0.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/2/0/4/2043/
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
+be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
+law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
+so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
+United States without permission and without paying copyright
+royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
+of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
+Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
+concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
+and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
+the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
+of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
+copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
+easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
+of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
+Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
+do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
+by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
+license, especially commercial redistribution.
+
+START: FULL LICENSE
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
+Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
+Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
+www.gutenberg.org/license.
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
+Gutenberg™ electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
+destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
+possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
+Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
+by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
+person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
+1.E.8.
+
+1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
+agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
+electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
+Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
+of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
+works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
+States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
+United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
+claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
+displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
+all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
+that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
+free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
+works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
+Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
+comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
+same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
+you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
+in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
+check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
+agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
+distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
+other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
+representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
+country other than the United States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
+immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
+prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
+on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
+phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
+performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
+
+ This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
+ most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
+ restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
+ under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
+ eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
+ United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
+ you are located before using this eBook.
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
+derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
+contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
+copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
+the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
+redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
+Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
+either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
+obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
+trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
+additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
+will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
+posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
+beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg™ License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
+any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
+to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
+other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
+version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
+(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
+to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
+of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
+Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
+full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
+provided that:
+
+• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
+ to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
+ agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
+ within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
+ legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
+ payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
+ Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
+ Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
+ Literary Archive Foundation.”
+
+• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by email) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
+ License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
+ copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
+ all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
+ works.
+
+• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
+ any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
+ receipt of the work.
+
+• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
+Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
+are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
+from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
+the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
+forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
+Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
+electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
+contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
+or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
+other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
+cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
+of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
+with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
+with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
+lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
+or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
+opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
+the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
+without further opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
+OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
+damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
+violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
+agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
+limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
+unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
+remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
+accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
+production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
+electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
+including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
+the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
+or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
+additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
+Defect you cause.
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
+
+Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
+computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
+exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
+from people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
+generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
+Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
+www.gutenberg.org.
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
+U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
+
+The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
+Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
+to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website
+and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact.
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
+widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
+DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
+state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate.
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
+donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
+Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
+freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
+distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
+volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
+the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
+necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
+edition.
+
+Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
+facility: www.gutenberg.org.
+
+This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/2043-0.zip b/2043-0.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1208bc9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/2043-0.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..49b0c09
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #2043 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/2043)
diff --git a/old/2043_2000-01-01.txt b/old/2043_2000-01-01.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..875c10f
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/2043_2000-01-01.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,14354 @@
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of Stories by Modern American Authors
+#4 in our Lock and Key series edited by Julian Hawthorne
+
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
+the copyright laws for your country before posting these files!!
+
+Please take a look at the important information in this header.
+We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
+electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
+
+Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
+further information is included below. We need your donations.
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of Stories by Modern American Authors
+
+Edited by Julian Hawthorne
+
+January, 2000 [Etext #2043]
+
+
+CONTENTS:
+
+F. MARION CRAWFORD (1854-)
+By the Waters of Paradise
+
+
+MARY E. WILKINS FREEMAN (1862-)
+The Shadows on the Wall
+
+
+MELVILLE D. POST (1871-)
+The Corpus Delicti
+
+
+AMBROSE BIERCE (1842-)
+An Heiress from Redhorse
+The Man and the Snake
+
+
+EDGAR ALLAN POE (1809-49)
+The Oblong Box
+The Gold-Bug
+
+
+WASHINGTON IRVING (1783-1859)
+Wolfert Webber, or Golden Dreams
+Adventure of the Black Fisherman
+
+
+CHARLES BROCKDEN BROWN (1771-1810)
+Wieland's Madness
+
+
+FITZJAMES O'BRIEN (1828-1862)
+The Golden Ingot
+My Wife's Tempter
+
+
+NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE (1804-1864)
+The Minister's Black Veil
+
+
+ANONYMOUS
+Horror: A True Tale
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of Stories by Modern American Authors
+******This file should be named 2043.txt or 2043.zip******
+
+
+We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
+of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
+
+Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
+up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
+in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
+a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
+look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
+new copy has at least one byte more or less.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
+to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-two text
+files per month, or 384 more Etexts in 1997 for a total of 1000+
+If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
+total should reach over 100 billion Etexts given away.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
+Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only 10% of the present number of computer users. 2001
+should have at least twice as many computer users as that, so it
+will require us reaching less than 5% of the users in 2001.
+
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+
+All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/CMU": and are
+tax deductible to the extent allowable by law. (CMU = Carnegie-
+Mellon University).
+
+For these and other matters, please mail to:
+
+Project Gutenberg
+P. O. Box 2782
+Champaign, IL 61825
+
+When all other email fails try our Executive Director:
+Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
+
+We would prefer to send you this information by email
+(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
+
+******
+If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
+FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
+[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
+
+ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
+login: anonymous
+password: your@login
+cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
+or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
+dir [to see files]
+get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
+GET INDEX?00.GUT
+for a list of books
+and
+GET NEW GUT for general information
+and
+MGET GUT* for newsletters.
+
+**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
+(Three Pages)
+
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
+tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
+Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
+Carnegie-Mellon University (the "Project"). Among other
+things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
+under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
+etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
+officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
+and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
+indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
+[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
+or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
+ cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the etext (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
+ net profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Association/Carnegie-Mellon
+ University" within the 60 days following each
+ date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
+ your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
+scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
+free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
+you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
+Association / Carnegie-Mellon University".
+
+*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
+
+
+
+
+
+Note: The Shadows on the Wall is one of a set of short stories which
+can be found at Project Gutenberg in Stories Of The Supernatural,
+by Mary Wilkins [sotsnxxx.xxx]. Wieland's Madness is an abridged
+version of Wieland, The Transformation, by Charles B. Brown also
+available from Project Gutenberg [welndxxx.xxx]. Finally The
+Minister's Black Veil can also be read in From Twice Told Tales,
+by Nathaniel Hawthorne [2talexxx.xxx].
+
+
+
+
+
+THE LOCK AND KEY LIBRARY
+
+THE MOST INTERESTING STORIES OF ALL NATIONS
+
+Edited by Julian Hawthorne
+
+
+AMERICAN
+
+
+
+Table of Contents
+
+
+INTRODUCTION BY JULIAN HAWTHORNE
+
+"Riddle Stories"
+
+
+F. MARION CRAWFORD (1854-)
+By the Waters of Paradise
+
+
+MARY E. WILKINS FREEMAN (1862-)
+The Shadows on the Wall
+
+
+MELVILLE D. POST (1871-)
+The Corpus Delicti
+
+
+AMBROSE BIERCE (1842-)
+An Heiress from Redhorse
+The Man and the Snake
+
+
+EDGAR ALLAN POE (1809-49)
+The Oblong Box
+The Gold-Bug
+
+
+WASHINGTON IRVING (1783-1859)
+Wolfert Webber, or Golden Dreams
+Adventure of the Black Fisherman
+
+
+CHARLES BROCKDEN BROWN (1771-1810)
+Wieland's Madness
+
+
+FITZJAMES O'BRIEN (1828-1862)
+The Golden Ingot
+My Wife's Tempter
+
+
+NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE (1804-1864)
+The Minister's Black Veil
+
+
+ANONYMOUS
+Horror: A True Tale
+
+
+
+"Riddle Stories"
+
+Introduction by Julian Hawthorne
+
+
+When Poe wrote his immortal Dupin tales, the name "Detective"
+stories had not been invented; the detective of fiction not having
+been as yet discovered. And the title is still something of a
+misnomer, for many narratives involving a puzzle of some sort,
+though belonging to the category which I wish to discuss, are
+handled by the writer without expert detective aid. Sometimes the
+puzzle solves itself through operation of circumstance; sometimes
+somebody who professes no special detective skill happens upon the
+secret of its mystery; once in a while some venturesome genius has
+the courage to leave his enigma unexplained. But ever since
+Gaboriau created his Lecoq, the transcendent detective has been in
+favor; and Conan Doyle's famous gentleman analyst has given him a
+fresh lease of life, and reanimated the stage by reverting to the
+method of Poe. Sherlock Holmes is Dupin redivivus, and mutatus
+mutandis; personally he is a more stirring and engaging companion,
+but so far as kinship to probabilities or even possibilities is
+concerned, perhaps the older version of him is the more
+presentable. But in this age of marvels we seem less difficult to
+suit in this respect than our forefathers were.
+
+The fact is, meanwhile, that, in the riddle story, the detective
+was an afterthought, or, more accurately, a deus ex machina to make
+the story go. The riddle had to be unriddled; and who could do it
+so naturally and readily as a detective? The detective, as Poe saw
+him, was a means to this end; and it was only afterwards that
+writers perceived his availability as a character. Lecoq
+accordingly becomes a figure in fiction, and Sherlock, while he was
+as yet a novelty, was nearly as attractive as the complications in
+which he involved himself. Riddle-story writers in general,
+however, encounter the obvious embarrassment that their detective
+is obliged to lavish so much attention on the professional services
+which the exigencies of the tale demand of him, that he has very
+little leisure to expound his own personal equation--the rather
+since the attitude of peering into a millstone is not, of itself,
+conducive to elucidations of oneself; the professional endowment
+obscures all the others. We ordinarily find, therefore, our author
+dismissing the individuality of his detective with a few strong
+black-chalk outlines, and devoting his main labor upon what he
+feels the reader will chiefly occupy his own ingenuity with,--
+namely, the elaboration of the riddle itself. Reader and writer
+sit down to a game, as it were, with the odds, of course,
+altogether on the latter's side,--apart from the fact that a writer
+sometimes permits himself a little cheating. It more often happens
+that the detective appears to be in the writer's pay, and aids the
+deception by leading the reader off on false scents. Be that as it
+may, the professional sleuth is in nine cases out of ten a dummy by
+malice prepense; and it might be plausibly argued that, in the
+interests of pure art, that is what he ought to be. But genius
+always finds a way that is better than the rules, and I think it
+will be found that the very best riddle stories contrive to drive
+character and riddle side by side, and to make each somehow enhance
+the effect of the other.--The intention of the above paragraph will
+be more precisely conveyed if I include under the name of detective
+not only the man from the central office, but also anybody whom the
+writer may, for ends of his own, consider better qualified for that
+function. The latter is a professional detective so far as the
+exigencies of the tale are concerned, and what becomes of him after
+that nobody need care,--there is no longer anything to prevent his
+becoming, in his own right, the most fascinating of mankind.
+
+But in addition to the dummyship of the detective, or to the cases
+in which the mere slip of circumstance takes his place, there is
+another reason against narrowing our conception of the riddle story
+to the degree which the alternative appellation would imply. And
+that is, that it would exclude not a few of the most captivating
+riddle stories in existence; for in De Quincey's "Avenger," for
+example, the interest is not in the unraveling of the web, but in
+the weaving of it. The same remark applies to Bulwer's "Strange
+Story"; it is the strangeness that is the thing. There is, in
+short, an inalienable charm in the mere contemplation of mystery
+and the hazard of fortunes; and it would be a pity to shut them out
+from our consideration only because there is no second-sighted
+conjurer on hand to turn them into plain matter of fact.
+
+Yet we must not be too liberal; and a ghost story can be brought
+into our charmed and charming circle only if we have made up our
+minds to believe in the ghosts; otherwise their introduction would
+not be a square deal. It would not be fair, in other words, to
+propose a conundrum on a basis of ostensible materialism, and then,
+when no other key would fit, to palm off a disembodied spirit on
+us. Tell me beforehand that your scenario is to include both
+worlds, and I have no objection to make; I simply attune my mind to
+the more extensive scope. But I rebel at an unheralded ghostland,
+and declare frankly that your tale is incredible. And I must
+confess that I would as lief have ghosts kept out altogether; their
+stories make a very good library in themselves, and have no need to
+tag themselves on to what is really another department of fiction.
+Nevertheless, when a ghost story is told with the consummate art of
+a Miss Wilkins, and of one or two others on our list, consistency
+in this regard ceases to be a jewel; art proves irresistible. As
+for adventure stories, there is a fringe of them that comes under
+the riddle-story head; but for the most part the riddle story
+begins after the adventures have finished. We are to contemplate a
+condition, not to watch the events that ultimate in it. Our
+detective, or anyone else, may of course meet with haps and mishaps
+on his way to the solution of his puzzle; but an astute writer will
+not color such incidents too vividly, lest he risk forfeiting our
+preoccupation with the problem that we came forth for to study. In
+a word, One thing at a time!
+
+The foregoing disquisition may seem uncalled for by such rigid
+moralists as have made up their minds not to regard detective, or
+riddle stories, as any part of respectable literature at all. With
+that sect, I announce at the outset that I am entirely out of
+sympathy. It is not needed to compare "The Gold Bug" with
+"Paradise Lost"; nobody denies the superior literary stature of the
+latter, although, as the Oxford Senior Wrangler objected, "What
+does it prove?" But I appeal to Emerson, who, in his poem of "The
+Mountain and the Squirrel," states the nub of the argument, with
+incomparable felicity, as follows:--you will recall that the two
+protagonists had a difference, originating in the fact that the
+former called the latter "Little Prig." Bun made a very sprightly
+retort, summing up to this effect:--
+
+
+ "Talents differ; all is well and wisely put;
+ If I cannot carry forests on my back,
+ Neither can you crack a nut."
+
+
+Andes and Paradises Lost are expedient and perhaps necessary in
+their proper atmosphere and function; but Squirrels and Gold Bugs
+are indispensable in our daily walk. There is as fine and as true
+literature in Poe's Tales as in Milton's epics; only the elevation
+and dimensions differ. But I would rather live in a world that
+possessed only literature of the Poe caliber, than shiver in one
+echoing solely the strains of the Miltonian muse. Mere human
+beings are not constructed to stand all day a-tiptoe on the misty
+mountain tops; they like to walk the streets most of the time and
+sit in easy chairs. And writings that picture the human mind and
+nature, in true colors and in artistic proportions, are literature,
+and nobody has any business to pooh-pooh them. In fact, I feel as
+if I were knocking down a man of straw. I look in vain for any
+genuine resistance. Of course "The Gold Bug" is literature; of
+course any other story of mystery and puzzle is also literature,
+provided it is as good as "The Gold Bug,"--or I will say, since
+that standard has never since been quite attained, provided it is a
+half or a tenth as good. It is goldsmith's work; it is Chinese
+carving; it is Daedalian; it is fine. It is the product of the
+ingenuity lobe of the human brain working and expatiating in
+freedom. It is art; not spiritual or transcendental art, but solid
+art, to be felt and experienced. You may examine it at your
+leisure, it will be always ready for you; you need not fast or
+watch your arms overnight in order to understand it. Look at the
+nice setting of the mortises; mark how the cover fits; how smooth
+is the working of that spring drawer. Observe that this bit of
+carving, which seemed mere ornament, is really a vital part of the
+mechanism. Note, moreover, how balanced and symmetrical the whole
+design is, with what economy and foresight every part is fashioned.
+It is not only an ingenious structure, it is a handsome bit of
+furniture, and will materially improve the looks of the empty
+chambers, or disorderly or ungainly chambers that you carry under
+your crown. Or if it happen that these apartments are noble in
+decoration and proportions, then this captivating little object
+will find a suitable place in some spare nook or other, and will
+rest or entertain eyes too long focused on the severely sublime and
+beautiful. I need not, however, rely upon abstract argument to
+support my contention. Many of the best writers of all time have
+used their skill in the inverted form of story telling, as a glance
+at our table of contents will show; and many of their tales depend
+for their effect as much on character and atmosphere as on the play
+and complication of events.
+
+The statement that a good detective or riddle story is good in art
+is supported by the fact that the supply of really good ones is
+relatively small, while the number of writers who would write good
+ones if they could, and who have tried and failed to write them, is
+past computation. And one reason probably is that such stories,
+for their success, must depend primarily upon structure--a sound
+and perfect plot--which is one of the rare things in our
+contemporary fiction. Our writers get hold of an incident, or a
+sentiment, or a character, or a moral principle, or a hit of
+technical knowledge, or a splotch of local color, or even of a new
+version of dialect, and they will do something in two to ten
+thousand words out of that and call it a short story. Magazines
+may be found to print it--for there are all manner of magazines;
+but nothing of that sort will serve for a riddle story. You cannot
+make a riddle story by beginning it and then trusting to luck to
+bring it to an end. You must know all about the end and the middle
+before thinking, even, of the beginning; the beginning of a riddle
+story, unlike those of other stories and of other enterprises, is
+not half the battle; it is next to being quite unimportant, and,
+moreover, it is always easy. The unexplained corpse lies weltering
+in its gore in the first paragraph; the inexplicable cipher
+presents its enigma at the turning of the opening page. The writer
+who is secure in the knowledge that he has got a good thing coming,
+and has arranged the manner and details of its coming, cannot go
+far wrong with his exordium; he wants to get into action at once,
+and that is his best assurance that he will do it in the right way.
+But O! what a labor and sweat it is; what a planning and trimming;
+what a remodeling, curtailing, interlining; what despairs succeeded
+by new lights, what heroic expedients tried at the last moment, and
+dismissed the moment after; what wastepaper baskets full of
+futilities, and what gallant commencements all over again! Did the
+reader know, or remotely suspect, what terrific struggles the
+writer of a really good detective story had sustained, he would
+regard the final product with a new wonder and respect, and read it
+all over once more to find out how the troubles occurred. But he
+will search in vain; there are no signs of them left; no, not so
+much as a scar. The tale moves along as smoothly and inevitably as
+oiled machinery; obviously, it could not have been arranged
+otherwise than it is; and the wise reader is convinced that he
+could have done the thing himself without half trying. At that,
+the weary writer smiles a bitter smile; but it is one of the spurns
+that patient merit of the unworthy takes. Nobody, except him who
+has tried it, will ever know how hard it is to write a really good
+detective story. The man or woman who can do it can also write a
+good play (according to modern ideas of plays), and possesses force
+of character, individuality, and mental ability. He or she must
+combine the intuition of the artist with the talent of the master
+mechanic, but will seldom be a poet, and will generally care more
+for things and events than for fellow creatures. For, although the
+story is often concerned with righting some wrong, or avenging some
+murder, yet it must be confessed that the author commonly succeeds
+better in the measure of his ruthlessness in devising crimes and
+giving his portraits of devils an extra touch of black. Mercy is
+not his strong point, however he may abound in justice; and he will
+not stickle at piling up the agony, if thereby he provides
+opportunity for enhancing the picturesqueness and completeness of
+the evil doer's due.
+
+But this leads me to the admission that one charge, at least, does
+lie against the door of the riddle-story writer; and that is, that
+he is not sincere; he makes his mysteries backward, and knows the
+answer to his riddle before he states its terms. He deliberately
+supplies his reader, also, with all manner of false scents, well
+knowing them to be such; and concocts various seeming artless and
+innocent remarks and allusions, which in reality are diabolically
+artful, and would deceive the very elect. All this, I say, must be
+conceded; but it is not unfair; the very object, ostensibly, of the
+riddle story is to prompt you to sharpen your wits; and as you are
+yourself the real detective in the case, so you must regard your
+author as the real criminal whom you are to detect. Credit no
+statement of his save as supported by the clearest evidence; be
+continually repeating to yourself, "Timeo Danaos et dona
+ferentes,"--nay, never so much as then. But, as I said before,
+when the game is well set, you have no chance whatever against the
+dealer; and for my own part, I never try to be clever when I go up
+against these thimble-riggers; I believe all they tell me, and
+accept the most insolent gold bricks; and in that way I
+occasionally catch some of the very ablest of them napping; for
+they are so subtle that they will sometimes tell you the truth
+because they think you will suppose it to be a lie. I do not wish
+to catch them napping, however; I cling to the wisdom of ignorance,
+and childishly enjoy the way in which things work themselves out--
+the cul-de-sac resolving itself at the very last moment into a
+promising corridor toward the outer air. At every rebuff it is my
+happiness to be hopelessly bewildered; and I gape with admiration
+when the Gordian knot is untied. If the author be old-fashioned
+enough to apostrophize the Gentle Reader, I know he must mean me,
+and docilely give ear, and presently tumble head-foremost into the
+treacherous pit he has digged for me. In brief, I am there to be
+sold, and I get my money's worth. No one can thoroughly enjoy
+riddle stories unless he is old enough, or young enough, or, at any
+rate, wise enough to appreciate the value of the faculty of being
+surprised. Those sardonic and omniscient persons who know
+everything beforehand, and smile compassionately or scornfully at
+the artless outcries of astonishment of those who are uninformed,
+may get an ill-natured satisfaction out of the persuasion that they
+are superior beings; but there is very little meat in that sort of
+happiness, and the uninformed have the better lot after all.
+
+I need hardly point out that there is a distinction and a
+difference between short riddle stories and long ones--novels. The
+former require far more technical art for their proper development;
+the enigma cannot be posed in so many ways, but must be stated once
+for all; there cannot be false scents, or but a few of them; there
+can be small opportunity for character drawing, and all kinds of
+ornament and comment must be reduced to their very lowest terms.
+Here, indeed, as everywhere, genius will have its way; and while a
+merely talented writer would deem it impossible to tell the story
+of "The Gold Bug" in less than a volume, Poe could do it in a few
+thousand words, and yet appear to have said everything worth
+saying. In the case of the Sherlock Holmes tales, they form a
+series, and our previous knowledge of the hero enables the writer
+to dispense with much description and accompaniment that would be
+necessary had that eminent personage been presented in only a
+single complication of events. Each special episode of the great
+analyst's career can therefore be handled with the utmost economy,
+and yet fill all the requirements of intelligent interest and
+comprehension. But, as a rule, the riddle novel approaches its
+theme in a spirit essentially other than that which inspires the
+short tale. We are given, as it were, a wide landscape instead of
+a detailed genre picture. The number of the dramatis personae is
+much larger, and the parts given to many of them may be very small,
+though each should have his or her necessary function in the
+general plan. It is much easier to create perplexity on these
+terms; but on the other hand, the riddle novel demands a power of
+vivid character portrayal and of telling description which are not
+indispensable in the briefer narrative. A famous tale, published
+perhaps forty years ago, but which cannot be included in our
+series, tells the story of a murder the secret of which is
+admirably concealed till the last; and much of the fascination of
+the book is due to the ability with which the leading character,
+and some of the subordinate ones, are drawn. The author was a
+woman, and I have often marveled that women so seldom attempt this
+form of literature; many of them possess a good constructive
+faculty, and their love of detail and of mystery is notorious.
+Perhaps they are too fond of sentiment; and sentiment must be
+handled with caution in riddle stories. The fault of all riddle
+novels is that they inevitably involve two kinds of interest, and
+can seldom balance these so perfectly that one or the other of them
+shall not suffer. The mind of the reader becomes weary in its
+frequent journeys between human characters on one side the
+mysterious events on the other, and would prefer the more single-
+eyed treatment of the short tale. Wonder, too, is a very tender
+and short-lived emotion, and sometimes perishes after a few pages.
+Curiosity is tougher; but that too may be baffled too long, and end
+by tiring of the pursuit while it is yet in its early stages. Many
+excellent plots, admirable from the constructive point of view,
+have been wasted by stringing them out too far; the reader
+recognizes their merit, but loses his enthusiasm on account of a
+sort of monotony of strain; he wickedly turns to the concluding
+chapter, and the game is up. "The Woman in White," by Wilkie
+Collins, was published about 1860, I think, in weekly installments,
+and certainly they were devoured with insatiable appetite by many
+thousands of readers. But I doubt whether a book of similar merit
+could command such a following to-day; and I will even confess that
+I have myself never read the concluding parts, and do not know to
+this day who the woman was or what were the wrongs from which she
+so poignantly suffered.
+
+The tales contained in the volumes herewith offered are the best
+riddle or detective stories in the world, according to the best
+judgment of the editors. They are the product of writers of all
+nations; and translation, in this case, is less apt to be
+misleading than with most other forms of literature, for a mystery
+or a riddle is equally captivating in all languages. Many of the
+good ones--perhaps some of the best ones--have been left out,
+either because we missed them in our search, or because we had to
+choose between them and others seemingly of equal excellence, and
+were obliged to consider space limitations which, however
+generously laid out, must have some end at last. Be that as it
+may, we believe that there are enough good stories here to satisfy
+the most Gargantuan hunger, and we feel sure that our volumes will
+never be crowded off the shelf which has once made room for them.
+If we have, now and then, a little transcended the strict
+definition of the class of fiction which our title would promise,
+we shall nevertheless not anticipate any serious quarrel with our
+readers; if there be room to question the right of any given story
+to appear in this company, there will be all the more reason for
+accepting it on its own merits; for it had to be very good indeed
+in order to overcome its technical disqualification. And if it did
+not rightfully belong here, there would probably be objections as
+strong to admitting it in any other collection. Between two or
+more stools, it would be a pity to let it fall to the ground; so
+let it be forgiven, and please us with whatever gift it has.
+
+In many cases where copyrights were still unexpired, we have to
+express our acknowledgments to writers and publishers who have
+accorded us the courtesy of their leave to reproduce what their
+genius or enterprise has created and put forth. To our readers we
+take pleasure in presenting what we know cannot fail to give them
+pleasure--a collection of the fruits of the finest literary
+ingenuity and nicest art accessible to the human mind. Gaudeat,
+non caveat emptor!
+
+JULIAN HAWTHORNE.
+
+
+
+American Mystery Stories
+
+
+F. Marion Crawford
+
+By the Waters of Paradise
+
+
+I
+
+
+I remember my childhood very distinctly. I do not think that the
+fact argues a good memory, for I have never been clever at learning
+words by heart, in prose or rhyme; so that I believe my remembrance
+of events depends much more upon the events themselves than upon my
+possessing any special facility for recalling them. Perhaps I am
+too imaginative, and the earliest impressions I received were of a
+kind to stimulate the imagination abnormally. A long series of
+little misfortunes, so connected with each other as to suggest a
+sort of weird fatality, so worked upon my melancholy temperament
+when I was a boy that, before I was of age, I sincerely believed
+myself to be under a curse, and not only myself, but my whole
+family and every individual who bore my name.
+
+I was born in the old place where my father, and his father, and
+all his predecessors had been born, beyond the memory of man. It
+is a very old house, and the greater part of it was originally a
+castle, strongly fortified, and surrounded by a deep moat supplied
+with abundant water from the hills by a hidden aqueduct. Many of
+the fortifications have been destroyed, and the moat has been
+filled up. The water from the aqueduct supplies great fountains,
+and runs down into huge oblong basins in the terraced gardens, one
+below the other, each surrounded by a broad pavement of marble
+between the water and the flower-beds. The waste surplus finally
+escapes through an artificial grotto, some thirty yards long, into
+a stream, flowing down through the park to the meadows beyond, and
+thence to the distant river. The buildings were extended a little
+and greatly altered more than two hundred years ago, in the time of
+Charles II., but since then little has been done to improve them,
+though they have been kept in fairly good repair, according to our
+fortunes.
+
+In the gardens there are terraces and huge hedges of box and
+evergreen, some of which used to be clipped into shapes of animals,
+in the Italian style. I can remember when I was a lad how I used
+to try to make out what the trees were cut to represent, and how I
+used to appeal for explanations to Judith, my Welsh nurse. She
+dealt in a strange mythology of her own, and peopled the gardens
+with griffins, dragons, good genii and bad, and filled my mind with
+them at the same time. My nursery window afforded a view of the
+great fountains at the head of the upper basin, and on moonlight
+nights the Welshwoman would hold me up to the glass and bid me look
+at the mist and spray rising into mysterious shapes, moving
+mystically in the white light like living things.
+
+"It's the Woman of the Water," she used to say; and sometimes she
+would threaten that if I did not go to sleep the Woman of the Water
+would steal up to the high window and carry me away in her wet
+arms.
+
+The place was gloomy. The broad basins of water and the tall
+evergreen hedges gave it a funereal look, and the damp-stained
+marble causeways by the pools might have been made of tombstones.
+The gray and weather-beaten walls and towers without, the dark and
+massively furnished rooms within, the deep, mysterious recesses and
+the heavy curtains, all affected my spirits. I was silent and sad
+from my childhood. There was a great clock tower above, from which
+the hours rang dismally during the day, and tolled like a knell in
+the dead of night. There was no light nor life in the house, for
+my mother was a helpless invalid, and my father had grown
+melancholy in his long task of caring for her. He was a thin, dark
+man, with sad eyes; kind, I think, but silent and unhappy. Next to
+my mother, I believe he loved me better than anything on earth, for
+he took immense pains and trouble in teaching me, and what he
+taught me I have never forgotten. Perhaps it was his only
+amusement, and that may be the reason why I had no nursery
+governess or teacher of any kind while he lived.
+
+I used to be taken to see my mother every day, and sometimes twice
+a day, for an hour at a time. Then I sat upon a little stool near
+her feet, and she would ask me what I had been doing, and what I
+wanted to do. I dare say she saw already the seeds of a profound
+melancholy in my nature, for she looked at me always with a sad
+smile, and kissed me with a sigh when I was taken away.
+
+One night, when I was just six years old, I lay awake in the
+nursery. The door was not quite shut, and the Welsh nurse was
+sitting sewing in the next room. Suddenly I heard her groan, and
+say in a strange voice, "One--two--one--two!" I was frightened,
+and I jumped up and ran to the door, barefooted as I was.
+
+"What is it, Judith?" I cried, clinging to her skirts. I can
+remember the look in her strange dark eyes as she answered:
+
+"One--two leaden coffins, fallen from the ceiling!" she crooned,
+working herself in her chair. "One--two--a light coffin and a
+heavy coffin, falling to the floor!"
+
+Then she seemed to notice me, and she took me back to bed and sang
+me to sleep with a queer old Welsh song.
+
+I do not know how it was, but the impression got hold of me that
+she had meant that my father and mother were going to die very
+soon. They died in the very room where she had been sitting that
+night. It was a great room, my day nursery, full of sun when there
+was any; and when the days were dark it was the most cheerful place
+in the house. My mother grew rapidly worse, and I was transferred
+to another part of the building to make place for her. They
+thought my nursery was gayer for her, I suppose; but she could not
+live. She was beautiful when she was dead, and I cried bitterly.
+
+The light one, the light one--the heavy one to come," crooned the
+Welshwoman. And she was right. My father took the room after my
+mother was gone, and day by day he grew thinner and paler and
+sadder.
+
+"The heavy one, the heavy one--all of lead," moaned my nurse, one
+night in December, standing still, just as she was going to take
+away the light after putting me to bed. Then she took me up again
+and wrapped me in a little gown, and led me away to my father's
+room. She knocked, but no one answered. She opened the door, and
+we found him in his easy chair before the fire, very white, quite
+dead.
+
+So I was alone with the Welshwoman till strange people came, and
+relations whom I had never seen; and then I heard them saying that
+I must be taken away to some more cheerful place. They were kind
+people, and I will not believe that they were kind only because I
+was to be very rich when I grew to be a man. The world never
+seemed to be a very bad place to me, nor all the people to be
+miserable sinners, even when I was most melancholy. I do not
+remember that anyone ever did me any great injustice, nor that I
+was ever oppressed or ill treated in any way, even by the boys at
+school. I was sad, I suppose, because my childhood was so gloomy,
+and, later, because I was unlucky in everything I undertook, till I
+finally believed I was pursued by fate, and I used to dream that
+the old Welsh nurse and the Woman of the Water between them had
+vowed to pursue me to my end. But my natural disposition should
+have been cheerful, as I have often thought.
+
+Among the lads of my age I was never last, or even among the last,
+in anything; but I was never first. If I trained for a race, I was
+sure to sprain my ankle on the day when I was to run. If I pulled
+an oar with others, my oar was sure to break. If I competed for a
+prize, some unforeseen accident prevented my winning it at the last
+moment. Nothing to which I put my hand succeeded, and I got the
+reputation of being unlucky, until my companions felt it was always
+safe to bet against me, no matter what the appearances might be. I
+became discouraged and listless in everything. I gave up the idea
+of competing for any distinction at the University, comforting
+myself with the thought that I could not fail in the examination
+for the ordinary degree. The day before the examination began I
+fell ill; and when at last I recovered, after a narrow escape from
+death, I turned my back upon Oxford, and went down alone to visit
+the old place where I had been born, feeble in health and
+profoundly disgusted and discouraged. I was twenty-one years of
+age, master of myself and of my fortune; but so deeply had the long
+chain of small unlucky circumstances affected me that I thought
+seriously of shutting myself up from the world to live the life of
+a hermit and to die as soon as possible. Death seemed the only
+cheerful possibility in my existence, and my thoughts soon dwelt
+upon it altogether.
+
+I had never shown any wish to return to my own home since I had
+been taken away as a little boy, and no one had ever pressed me to
+do so. The place had been kept in order after a fashion, and did
+not seem to have suffered during the fifteen years or more of my
+absence. Nothing earthly could affect those old gray walls that
+had fought the elements for so many centuries. The garden was more
+wild than I remembered it; the marble causeways about the pools
+looked more yellow and damp than of old, and the whole place at
+first looked smaller. It was not until I had wandered about the
+house and grounds for many hours that I realized the huge size of
+the home where I was to live in solitude. Then I began to delight
+in it, and my resolution to live alone grew stronger.
+
+The people had turned out to welcome me, of course, and I tried to
+recognize the changed faces of the old gardener and the old
+housekeeper, and to call them by name. My old nurse I knew at
+once. She had grown very gray since she heard the coffins fall in
+the nursery fifteen years before, but her strange eyes were the
+same, and the look in them woke all my old memories. She went over
+the house with me.
+
+"And how is the Woman of the Water?" I asked, trying to laugh a
+little. "Does she still play in the moonlight?"
+
+"She is hungry," answered the Welshwoman, in a low voice.
+
+"Hungry? Then we will feed her." I laughed. But old Judith
+turned very pale, and looked at me strangely.
+
+"Feed her? Aye--you will feed her well," she muttered, glancing
+behind her at the ancient housekeeper, who tottered after us with
+feeble steps through the halls and passages.
+
+I did not think much of her words. She had always talked oddly, as
+Welshwomen will, and though I was very melancholy I am sure I was
+not superstitious, and I was certainly not timid. Only, as in a
+far-off dream, I seemed to see her standing with the light in her
+hand and muttering, "The heavy one--all of lead," and then leading
+a little boy through the long corridors to see his father lying
+dead in a great easy chair before a smoldering fire. So we went
+over the house, and I chose the rooms where I would live; and the
+servants I had brought with me ordered and arranged everything, and
+I had no more trouble. I did not care what they did provided I was
+left in peace and was not expected to give directions; for I was
+more listless than ever, owing to the effects of my illness at
+college.
+
+I dined in solitary state, and the melancholy grandeur of the vast
+old dining-room pleased me. Then I went to the room I had selected
+for my study, and sat down in a deep chair, under a bright light,
+to think, or to let my thoughts meander through labyrinths of their
+own choosing, utterly indifferent to the course they might take.
+
+The tall windows of the room opened to the level of the ground upon
+the terrace at the head of the garden. It was in the end of July,
+and everything was open, for the weather was warm. As I sat alone
+I heard the unceasing splash of the great fountains, and I fell to
+thinking of the Woman of the Water. I rose and went out into the
+still night, and sat down upon a seat on the terrace, between two
+gigantic Italian flower pots. The air was deliciously soft and
+sweet with the smell of the flowers, and the garden was more
+congenial to me than the house. Sad people always like running
+water and the sound of it at night, though I cannot tell why. I
+sat and listened in the gloom, for it was dark below, and the pale
+moon had not yet climbed over the hills in front of me, though all
+the air above was light with her rising beams. Slowly the white
+halo in the eastern sky ascended in an arch above the wooded
+crests, making the outlines of the mountains more intensely black
+by contrast, as though the head of some great white saint were
+rising from behind a screen in a vast cathedral, throwing misty
+glories from below. I longed to see the moon herself, and I tried
+to reckon the seconds before she must appear. Then she sprang up
+quickly, and in a moment more hung round and perfect in the sky. I
+gazed at her, and then at the floating spray of the tall fountains,
+and down at the pools, where the water lilies were rocking softly
+in their sleep on the velvet surface of the moonlit water. Just
+then a great swan floated out silently into the midst of the basin,
+and wreathed his long neck, catching the water in his broad bill,
+and scattering showers of diamonds around him.
+
+Suddenly, as I gazed, something came between me and the light. I
+looked up instantly. Between me and the round disk of the moon
+rose a luminous face of a woman, with great strange eyes, and a
+woman's mouth, full and soft, but not smiling, hooded in black,
+staring at me as I sat still upon my bench. She was close to me--
+so close that I could have touched her with my hand. But I was
+transfixed and helpless. She stood still for a moment, but her
+expression did not change. Then she passed swiftly away, and my
+hair stood up on my head, while the cold breeze from her white
+dress was wafted to my temples as she moved. The moonlight,
+shining through the tossing spray of the fountain, made traceries
+of shadow on the gleaming folds of her garments. In an instant she
+was gone and I was alone.
+
+I was strangely shaken by the vision, and some time passed before I
+could rise to my feet, for I was still weak from my illness, and
+the sight I had seen would have startled anyone. I did not reason
+with myself, for I was certain that I had looked on the unearthly,
+and no argument could have destroyed that belief. At last I got up
+and stood unsteadily, gazing in the direction in which I thought
+the face had gone; but there was nothing to be seen--nothing but
+the broad paths, the tall, dark evergreen hedges, the tossing water
+of the fountains and the smooth pool below. I fell back upon the
+seat and recalled the face I had seen. Strange to say, now that
+the first impression had passed, there was nothing startling in the
+recollection; on the contrary, I felt that I was fascinated by the
+face, and would give anything to see it again. I could retrace the
+beautiful straight features, the long dark eyes, and the wonderful
+mouth most exactly in my mind, and when I had reconstructed every
+detail from memory I knew that the whole was beautiful, and that I
+should love a woman with such a face.
+
+"I wonder whether she is the Woman of the Water!" I said to myself.
+Then rising once more, I wandered down the garden, descending one
+short flight of steps after another from terrace to terrace by the
+edge of the marble basins, through the shadow and through the
+moonlight; and I crossed the water by the rustic bridge above the
+artificial grotto, and climbed slowly up again to the highest
+terrace by the other side. The air seemed sweeter, and I was very
+calm, so that I think I smiled to myself as I walked, as though a
+new happiness had come to me. The woman's face seemed always
+before me, and the thought of it gave me an unwonted thrill of
+pleasure, unlike anything I had ever felt before.
+
+I turned as I reached the house, and looked back upon the scene.
+It had certainly changed in the short hour since I had come out,
+and my mood had changed with it. Just like my luck, I thought, to
+fall in love with a ghost! But in old times I would have sighed,
+and gone to bed more sad than ever, at such a melancholy
+conclusion. To-night I felt happy, almost for the first time in my
+life. The gloomy old study seemed cheerful when I went in. The
+old pictures on the walls smiled at me, and I sat down in my deep
+chair with a new and delightful sensation that I was not alone.
+The idea of having seen a ghost, and of feeling much the better for
+it, was so absurd that I laughed softly, as I took up one of the
+books I had brought with me and began to read.
+
+That impression did not wear off. I slept peacefully, and in the
+morning I threw open my windows to the summer air and looked down
+at the garden, at the stretches of green and at the colored flower-
+beds, at the circling swallows and at the bright water.
+
+"A man might make a paradise of this place," I exclaimed. "A man
+and a woman together!"
+
+From that day the old Castle no longer seemed gloomy, and I think I
+ceased to be sad; for some time, too, I began to take an interest
+in the place, and to try and make it more alive. I avoided my old
+Welsh nurse, lest she should damp my humor with some dismal
+prophecy, and recall my old self by bringing back memories of my
+dismal childhood. But what I thought of most was the ghostly
+figure I had seen in the garden that first night after my arrival.
+I went out every evening and wandered through the walks and paths;
+but, try as I might, I did not see my vision again. At last, after
+many days, the memory grew more faint, and my old moody nature
+gradually overcame the temporary sense of lightness I had
+experienced. The summer turned to autumn, and I grew restless. It
+began to rain. The dampness pervaded the gardens, and the outer
+halls smelled musty, like tombs; the gray sky oppressed me
+intolerably. I left the place as it was and went abroad,
+determined to try anything which might possibly make a second break
+in the monotonous melancholy from which I suffered.
+
+
+II
+
+
+Most people would be struck by the utter insignificance of the
+small events which, after the death of my parents, influenced my
+life and made me unhappy. The grewsome forebodings of a Welsh
+nurse, which chanced to be realized by an odd coincidence of
+events, should not seem enough to change the nature of a child and
+to direct the bent of his character in after years. The little
+disappointments of schoolboy life, and the somewhat less childish
+ones of an uneventful and undistinguished academic career, should
+not have sufficed to turn me out at one-and-twenty years of age a
+melancholic, listless idler. Some weakness of my own character may
+have contributed to the result, but in a greater degree it was due
+to my having a reputation for bad luck. However, I will not try to
+analyze the causes of my state, for I should satisfy nobody, least
+of all myself. Still less will I attempt to explain why I felt a
+temporary revival of my spirits after my adventure in the garden.
+It is certain that I was in love with the face I had seen, and that
+I longed to see it again; that I gave up all hope of a second
+visitation, grew more sad than ever, packed up my traps, and
+finally went abroad. But in my dreams I went back to my home, and
+it always appeared to me sunny and bright, as it had looked on that
+summer's morning after I had seen the woman by the fountain.
+
+I went to Paris. I went farther, and wandered about Germany. I
+tried to amuse myself, and I failed miserably. With the aimless
+whims of an idle and useless man come all sorts of suggestions for
+good resolutions. One day I made up my mind that I would go and
+bury myself in a German university for a time, and live simply like
+a poor student. I started with the intention of going to Leipzig,
+determined to stay there until some event should direct my life or
+change my humor, or make an end of me altogether. The express
+train stopped at some station of which I did not know the name. It
+was dusk on a winter's afternoon, and I peered through the thick
+glass from my seat. Suddenly another train came gliding in from
+the opposite direction, and stopped alongside of ours. I looked at
+the carriage which chanced to be abreast of mine, and idly read the
+black letters painted on a white board swinging from the brass
+handrail: BERLIN--COLOGNE--PARIS. Then I looked up at the window
+above. I started violently, and the cold perspiration broke out
+upon my forehead. In the dim light, not six feet from where I sat,
+I saw the face of a woman, the face I loved, the straight, fine
+features, the strange eyes, the wonderful mouth, the pale skin.
+Her head-dress was a dark veil which seemed to be tied about her
+head and passed over the shoulders under her chin. As I threw down
+the window and knelt on the cushioned seat, leaning far out to get
+a better view, a long whistle screamed through the station,
+followed by a quick series of dull, clanking sounds; then there was
+a slight jerk, and my train moved on. Luckily the window was
+narrow, being the one over the seat, beside the door, or I believe
+I would have jumped out of it then and there. In an instant the
+speed increased, and I was being carried swiftly away in the
+opposite direction from the thing I loved.
+
+For a quarter of an hour I lay back in my place, stunned by the
+suddenness of the apparition. At last one of the two other
+passengers, a large and gorgeous captain of the White Konigsberg
+Cuirassiers, civilly but firmly suggested that I might shut my
+window, as the evening was cold. I did so, with an apology, and
+relapsed into silence. The train ran swiftly on for a long time,
+and it was already beginning to slacken speed before entering
+another station, when I roused myself and made a sudden resolution.
+As the carriage stopped before the brilliantly lighted platform, I
+seized my belongings, saluted my fellow-passengers, and got out,
+determined to take the first express back to Paris.
+
+This time the circumstances of the vision had been so natural that
+it did not strike me that there was anything unreal about the face,
+or about the woman to whom it belonged. I did not try to explain
+to myself how the face, and the woman, could be traveling by a fast
+train from Berlin to Paris on a winter's afternoon, when both were
+in my mind indelibly associated with the moonlight and the
+fountains in my own English home. I certainly would not have
+admitted that I had been mistaken in the dusk, attributing to what
+I had seen a resemblance to my former vision which did not really
+exist. There was not the slightest doubt in my mind, and I was
+positively sure that I had again seen the face I loved. I did not
+hesitate, and in a few hours I was on my way back to Paris. I
+could not help reflecting on my ill luck. Wandering as I had been
+for many months, it might as easily have chanced that I should be
+traveling in the same train with that woman, instead of going the
+other way. But my luck was destined to turn for a time.
+
+I searched Paris for several days. I dined at the principal
+hotels; I went to the theaters; I rode in the Bois de Boulogne in
+the morning, and picked up an acquaintance, whom I forced to drive
+with me in the afternoon. I went to mass at the Madeleine, and I
+attended the services at the English Church. I hung about the
+Louvre and Notre Dame. I went to Versailles. I spent hours in
+parading the Rue de Rivoli, in the neighborhood of Meurice's
+corner, where foreigners pass and repass from morning till night.
+At last I received an invitation to a reception at the English
+Embassy. I went, and I found what I had sought so long.
+
+There she was, sitting by an old lady in gray satin and diamonds,
+who had a wrinkled but kindly face and keen gray eyes that seemed
+to take in everything they saw, with very little inclination to
+give much in return. But I did not notice the chaperon. I saw
+only the face that had haunted me for months, and in the excitement
+of the moment I walked quickly toward the pair, forgetting such a
+trifle as the necessity for an introduction.
+
+She was far more beautiful than I had thought, but I never doubted
+that it was she herself and no other. Vision or no vision before,
+this was the reality, and I knew it. Twice her hair had been
+covered, now at last I saw it, and the added beauty of its
+magnificence glorified the whole woman. It was rich hair, fine and
+abundant, golden, with deep ruddy tints in it like red bronze spun
+fine. There was no ornament in it, not a rose, not a thread of
+gold, and I felt that it needed nothing to enhance its splendor;
+nothing but her pale face, her dark strange eyes, and her heavy
+eyebrows. I could see that she was slender too, but strong withal,
+as she sat there quietly gazing at the moving scene in the midst of
+the brilliant lights and the hum of perpetual conversation.
+
+I recollected the detail of introduction in time, and turned aside
+to look for my host. I found him at last. I begged him to present
+me to the two ladies, pointing them out to him at the same time.
+
+"Yes--uh--by all means--uh," replied his Excellency with a pleasant
+smile. He evidently had no idea of my name, which was not to be
+wondered at.
+
+"I am Lord Cairngorm," I observed.
+
+"Oh--by all means," answered the Ambassador with the same
+hospitable smile. "Yes--uh--the fact is, I must try and find out
+who they are; such lots of people, you know."
+
+"Oh, if you will present me, I will try and find out for you," said
+I, laughing.
+
+"Ah, yes--so kind of you--come along," said my host. We threaded
+the crowd, and in a few minutes we stood before the two ladies.
+
+"'Lowmintrduce L'd Cairngorm," he said; then, adding quickly to me,
+"Come and dine to-morrow, won't you?" he glided away with his
+pleasant smile and disappeared in the crowd.
+
+I sat down beside the beautiful girl, conscious that the eyes of
+the duenna were upon me.
+
+"I think we have been very near meeting before," I remarked, by way
+of opening the conversation.
+
+My companion turned her eyes full upon me with an air of inquiry.
+She evidently did not recall my face, if she had ever seen me.
+
+"Really--I cannot remember," she observed, in a low and musical
+voice. "When?"
+
+"In the first place, you came down from Berlin by the express ten
+days ago. I was going the other way, and our carriages stopped
+opposite each other. I saw you at the window."
+
+"Yes--we came that way, but I do not remember--" She hesitated.
+
+"Secondly," I continued, "I was sitting alone in my garden last
+summer--near the end of July--do you remember? You must have
+wandered in there through the park; you came up to the house and
+looked at me--"
+
+"Was that you?" she asked, in evident surprise. Then she broke
+into a laugh. "I told everybody I had seen a ghost; there had
+never been any Cairngorms in the place since the memory of man. We
+left the next day, and never heard that you had come there; indeed,
+I did not know the castle belonged to you."
+
+"Where were you staying?" I asked.
+
+"Where? Why, with my aunt, where I always stay. She is your
+neighbor, since it IS you."
+
+"I--beg your pardon--but then--is your aunt Lady Bluebell? I did
+not quite catch--"
+
+"Don't be afraid. She is amazingly deaf. Yes. She is the relict
+of my beloved uncle, the sixteenth or seventeenth Baron Bluebell--I
+forget exactly how many of them there have been. And I--do you
+know who I am?" She laughed, well knowing that I did not.
+
+"No," I answered frankly. "I have not the least idea. I asked to
+be introduced because I recognized you. Perhaps--perhaps you are a
+Miss Bluebell?"
+
+"Considering that you are a neighbor, I will tell you who I am,"
+she answered. "No; I am of the tribe of Bluebells, but my name is
+Lammas, and I have been given to understand that I was christened
+Margaret. Being a floral family, they call me Daisy. A dreadful
+American man once told me that my aunt was a Bluebell and that I
+was a Harebell--with two l's and an e--because my hair is so thick.
+I warn you, so that you may avoid making such a bad pun."
+
+"Do I look like a man who makes puns?" I asked, being very
+conscious of my melancholy face and sad looks.
+
+Miss Lammas eyed me critically.
+
+"No; you have a mournful temperament. I think I can trust you,"
+she answered. "Do you think you could communicate to my aunt the
+fact that you are a Cairngorm and a neighbor? I am sure she would
+like to know."
+
+I leaned toward the old lady, inflating my lungs for a yell. But
+Miss Lammas stopped me.
+
+"That is not of the slightest use," she remarked. "You can write
+it on a bit of paper. She is utterly deaf."
+
+"I have a pencil," I answered; "but I have no paper. Would my cuff
+do, do you think?"
+
+"Oh, yes!" replied Miss Lammas, with alacrity; "men often do that."
+
+I wrote on my cuff: "Miss Lammas wishes me to explain that I am
+your neighbor, Cairngorm." Then I held out my arm before the old
+lady's nose. She seemed perfectly accustomed to the proceeding,
+put up her glasses, read the words, smiled, nodded, and addressed
+me in the unearthly voice peculiar to people who hear nothing.
+
+"I knew your grandfather very well," she said. Then she smiled and
+nodded to me again, and to her niece, and relapsed into silence.
+
+"It is all right," remarked Miss Lammas. "Aunt Bluebell knows she
+is deaf, and does not say much, like the parrot. You see, she knew
+your grandfather. How odd that we should be neighbors! Why have
+we never met before?"
+
+"If you had told me you knew my grandfather when you appeared in
+the garden, I should not have been in the least surprised," I
+answered rather irrelevantly. "I really thought you were the ghost
+of the old fountain. How in the world did you come there at that
+hour?"
+
+"We were a large party and we went out for a walk. Then we thought
+we should like to see what your park was like in the moonlight, and
+so we trespassed. I got separated from the rest, and came upon you
+by accident, just as I was admiring the extremely ghostly look of
+your house, and wondering whether anybody would ever come and live
+there again. It looks like the castle of Macbeth, or a scene from
+the opera. Do you know anybody here?"
+
+"Hardly a soul! Do you?"
+
+"No. Aunt Bluebell said it was our duty to come. It is easy for
+her to go out; she does not bear the burden of the conversation."
+
+"I am sorry you find it a burden," said I. "Shall I go away?"
+
+Miss Lammas looked at me with a sudden gravity in her beautiful
+eyes, and there was a sort of hesitation about the lines of her
+full, soft mouth.
+
+"No," she said at last, quite simply, "don't go away. We may like
+each other, if you stay a little longer--and we ought to, because
+we are neighbors in the country."
+
+I suppose I ought to have thought Miss Lammas a very odd girl.
+There is, indeed, a sort of freemasonry between people who discover
+that they live near each other and that they ought to have known
+each other before. But there was a sort of unexpected frankness
+and simplicity in the girl's amusing manner which would have struck
+anyone else as being singular, to say the least of it. To me,
+however, it all seemed natural enough. I had dreamed of her face
+too long not to be utterly happy when I met her at last and could
+talk to her as much as I pleased. To me, the man of ill luck in
+everything, the whole meeting seemed too good to be true. I felt
+again that strange sensation of lightness which I had experienced
+after I had seen her face in the garden. The great rooms seemed
+brighter, life seemed worth living; my sluggish, melancholy blood
+ran faster, and filled me with a new sense of strength. I said to
+myself that without this woman I was but an imperfect being, but
+that with her I could accomplish everything to which I should set
+my hand. Like the great Doctor, when he thought he had cheated
+Mephistopheles at last, I could have cried aloud to the fleeting
+moment, Verweile doch, du bist so schon!
+
+"Are you always gay?" I asked, suddenly. "How happy you must be!"
+
+"The days would sometimes seem very long if I were gloomy," she
+answered, thoughtfully. "Yes, I think I find life very pleasant,
+and I tell it so."
+
+"How can you 'tell life' anything?" I inquired. "If I could catch
+my life and talk to it, I would abuse it prodigiously, I assure
+you."
+
+"I dare say. You have a melancholy temper. You ought to live out-
+of-doors, dig potatoes, make hay, shoot, hunt, tumble into ditches,
+and come home muddy and hungry for dinner. It would be much better
+for you than moping in your rook tower and hating everything."
+
+"It is rather lonely down there," I murmured, apologetically,
+feeling that Miss Lammas was quite right.
+
+"Then marry, and quarrel with your wife," she laughed. "Anything
+is better than being alone."
+
+"I am a very peaceable person. I never quarrel with anybody. You
+can try it. You will find it quite impossible."
+
+"Will you let me try?" she asked, still smiling.
+
+"By all means--especially if it is to be only a preliminary
+canter," I answered, rashly.
+
+"What do you mean?" she inquired, turning quickly upon me.
+
+"Oh--nothing. You might try my paces with a view to quarreling in
+the future. I cannot imagine how you are going to do it. You will
+have to resort to immediate and direct abuse."
+
+"No. I will only say that if you do not like your life, it is your
+own fault. How can a man of your age talk of being melancholy, or
+of the hollowness of existence? Are you consumptive? Are you
+subject to hereditary insanity? Are you deaf, like Aunt Bluebell?
+Are you poor, like--lots of people? Have you been crossed in love?
+Have you lost the world for a woman, or any particular woman for
+the sake of the world? Are you feeble-minded, a cripple, an
+outcast? Are you--repulsively ugly?" She laughed again. "Is
+there any reason in the world why you should not enjoy all you have
+got in life?"
+
+"No. There is no reason whatever, except that I am dreadfully
+unlucky, especially in small things."
+
+"Then try big things, just for a change," suggested Miss Lammas.
+"Try and get married, for instance, and see how it turns out."
+
+"If it turned out badly it would be rather serious."
+
+"Not half so serious as it is to abuse everything unreasonably. If
+abuse is your particular talent, abuse something that ought to be
+abused. Abuse the Conservatives--or the Liberals--it does not
+matter which, since they are always abusing each other. Make
+yourself felt by other people. You will like it, if they don't.
+It will make a man of you. Fill your mouth with pebbles, and howl
+at the sea, if you cannot do anything else. It did Demosthenes no
+end of good, you know. You will have the satisfaction of imitating
+a great man."
+
+"Really, Miss Lammas, I think the list of innocent exercises you
+propose--"
+
+"Very well--if you don't care for that sort of thing, care for some
+other sort of thing. Care for something, or hate something. Don't
+be idle. Life is short, and though art may be long, plenty of
+noise answers nearly as well."
+
+"I do care for something--I mean, somebody," I said.
+
+"A woman? Then marry her. Don't hesitate."
+
+"I do not know whether she would marry me," I replied. "I have
+never asked her."
+
+"Then ask her at once," answered Miss Lammas. "I shall die happy
+if I feel I have persuaded a melancholy fellow creature to rouse
+himself to action. Ask her, by all means, and see what she says.
+If she does not accept you at once, she may take you the next time.
+Meanwhile, you will have entered for the race. If you lose, there
+are the 'All-aged Trial Stakes,' and the 'Consolation Race.'"
+
+"And plenty of selling races into the bargain. Shall I take you at
+your word, Miss Lammas?"
+
+"I hope you will," she answered.
+
+"Since you yourself advise me, I will. Miss Lammas, will you do me
+the honor to marry me?"
+
+For the first time in my life the blood rushed to my head and my
+sight swam. I cannot tell why I said it. It would be useless to
+try to explain the extraordinary fascination the girl exercised
+over me, or the still more extraordinary feeling of intimacy with
+her which had grown in me during that half hour. Lonely, sad,
+unlucky as I had been all my life, I was certainly not timid, nor
+even shy. But to propose to marry a woman after half an hour's
+acquaintance was a piece of madness of which I never believed
+myself capable, and of which I should never be capable again, could
+I be placed in the same situation. It was as though my whole being
+had been changed in a moment by magic--by the white magic of her
+nature brought into contact with mine. The blood sank back to my
+heart, and a moment later I found myself staring at her with
+anxious eyes. To my amazement she was as calm as ever, but her
+beautiful mouth smiled, and there was a mischievous light in her
+dark-brown eyes.
+
+"Fairly caught," she answered. "For an individual who pretends to
+be listless and sad you are not lacking in humor. I had really not
+the least idea what you were going to say. Wouldn't it be
+singularly awkward for you if I had said 'Yes'? I never saw
+anybody begin to practice so sharply what was preached to him--with
+so very little loss of time!"
+
+"You probably never met a man who had dreamed of you for seven
+months before being introduced."
+
+"No, I never did," she answered gayly. "It smacks of the romantic.
+Perhaps you are a romantic character, after all. I should think
+you were if I believed you. Very well; you have taken my advice,
+entered for a Stranger's Race and lost it. Try the All-aged Trial
+Stakes. You have another cuff, and a pencil. Propose to Aunt
+Bluebell; she would dance with astonishment, and she might recover
+her hearing."
+
+
+III
+
+
+That was how I first asked Margaret Lammas to be my wife, and I
+will agree with anyone who says I behaved very foolishly. But I
+have not repented of it, and I never shall. I have long ago
+understood that I was out of my mind that evening, but I think my
+temporary insanity on that occasion has had the effect of making me
+a saner man ever since. Her manner turned my head, for it was so
+different from what I had expected. To hear this lovely creature,
+who, in my imagination, was a heroine of romance, if not of
+tragedy, talking familiarly and laughing readily was more than my
+equanimity could bear, and I lost my head as well as my heart. But
+when I went back to England in the spring, I went to make certain
+arrangements at the Castle--certain changes and improvements which
+would be absolutely necessary. I had won the race for which I had
+entered myself so rashly, and we were to be married in June.
+
+Whether the change was due to the orders I had left with the
+gardener and the rest of the servants, or to my own state of mind,
+I cannot tell. At all events, the old place did not look the same
+to me when I opened my window on the morning after my arrival.
+There were the gray walls below me and the gray turrets flanking
+the huge building; there were the fountains, the marble causeways,
+the smooth basins, the tall box hedges, the water lilies and the
+swans, just as of old. But there was something else there, too--
+something in the air, in the water, and in the greenness that I did
+not recognize--a light over everything by which everything was
+transfigured. The clock in the tower struck seven, and the strokes
+of the ancient bell sounded like a wedding chime. The air sang
+with the thrilling treble of the song-birds, with the silvery music
+of the plashing water and the softer harmony of the leaves stirred
+by the fresh morning wind. There was a smell of new-mown hay from
+the distant meadows, and of blooming roses from the beds below,
+wafted up together to my window. I stood in the pure sunshine and
+drank the air and all the sounds and the odors that were in it; and
+I looked down at my garden and said: "It is Paradise, after all."
+I think the men of old were right when they called heaven a garden,
+and Eden a garden inhabited by one man and one woman, the Earthly
+Paradise.
+
+I turned away, wondering what had become of the gloomy memories I
+had always associated with my home. I tried to recall the
+impression of my nurse's horrible prophecy before the death of my
+parents--an impression which hitherto had been vivid enough. I
+tried to remember my old self, my dejection, my listlessness, my
+bad luck, my petty disappointments. I endeavored to force myself
+to think as I used to think, if only to satisfy myself that I had
+not lost my individuality. But I succeeded in none of these
+efforts. I was a different man, a changed being, incapable of
+sorrow, of ill luck, or of sadness. My life had been a dream, not
+evil, but infinitely gloomy and hopeless. It was now a reality,
+full of hope, gladness, and all manner of good. My home had been
+like a tomb; to-day it was Paradise. My heart had been as though
+it had not existed; to-day it beat with strength and youth and the
+certainty of realized happiness. I reveled in the beauty of the
+world, and called loveliness out of the future to enjoy it before
+time should bring it to me, as a traveler in the plains looks up to
+the mountains, and already tastes the cool air through the dust of
+the road.
+
+Here, I thought, we will live and live for years. There we will
+sit by the fountain toward evening and in the deep moonlight. Down
+those paths we will wander together. On those benches we will rest
+and talk. Among those eastern hills we will ride through the soft
+twilight, and in the old house we will tell tales on winter nights,
+when the logs burn high, and the holly berries are red, and the old
+clock tolls out the dying year. On these old steps, in these dark
+passages and stately rooms, there will one day be the sound of
+little pattering feet, and laughing child voices will ring up to
+the vaults of the ancient hall. Those tiny footsteps shall not be
+slow and sad as mine were, nor shall the childish words be spoken
+in an awed whisper. No gloomy Welshwoman shall people the dusky
+corners with weird horrors, nor utter horrid prophecies of death
+and ghastly things. All shall be young, and fresh, and joyful, and
+happy, and we will turn the old luck again, and forget that there
+was ever any sadness.
+
+So I thought, as I looked out of my window that morning and for
+many mornings after that, and every day it all seemed more real
+than ever before, and much nearer. But the old nurse looked at me
+askance, and muttered odd sayings about the Woman of the Water. I
+cared little what she said, for I was far too happy.
+
+At last the time came near for the wedding. Lady Bluebell and all
+the tribe of Bluebells, as Margaret called them, were at Bluebell
+Grange, for we had determined to be married in the country, and to
+come straight to the Castle afterwards. We cared little for
+traveling, and not at all for a crowded ceremony at St. George's in
+Hanover Square, with all the tiresome formalities afterwards. I
+used to ride over to the Grange every day, and very often Margaret
+would come with her aunt and some of her cousins to the Castle. I
+was suspicious of my own taste, and was only too glad to let her
+have her way about the alterations and improvements in our home.
+
+We were to be married on the thirtieth of July, and on the evening
+of the twenty-eighth Margaret drove over with some of the Bluebell
+party. In the long summer twilight we all went out into the
+garden. Naturally enough, Margaret and I were left to ourselves,
+and we wandered down by the marble basins.
+
+"It is an odd coincidence," I said; "it was on this very night last
+year that I first saw you."
+
+"Considering that it is the month of July," answered Margaret with
+a laugh, "and that we have been here almost every day, I don't
+think the coincidence is so extraordinary, after all."
+
+"No, dear," said I, "I suppose not. I don't know why it struck me.
+We shall very likely be here a year from today, and a year from
+that. The odd thing, when I think of it, is that you should be
+here at all. But my luck has turned. I ought not to think
+anything odd that happens now that I have you. It is all sure to
+be good."
+
+"A slight change in your ideas since that remarkable performance of
+yours in Paris," said Margaret. "Do you know, I thought you were
+the most extraordinary man I had ever met."
+
+"I thought you were the most charming woman I had ever seen. I
+naturally did not want to lose any time in frivolities. I took you
+at your word, I followed your advice, I asked you to marry me, and
+this is the delightful result--what's the matter?"
+
+Margaret had started suddenly, and her hand tightened on my arm.
+An old woman was coming up the path, and was close to us before we
+saw her, for the moon had risen, and was shining full in our faces.
+The woman turned out to be my old nurse.
+
+"It's only Judith, dear--don't be frightened," I said. Then I
+spoke to the Welshwoman: "What are you about, Judith? Have you
+been feeding the Woman of the Water?"
+
+"Aye--when the clock strikes, Willie--my Lord, I mean," muttered
+the old creature, drawing aside to let us pass, and fixing her
+strange eyes on Margaret's face.
+
+"What does she mean?" asked Margaret, when we had gone by.
+
+"Nothing, darling. The old thing is mildly crazy, but she is a
+good soul."
+
+We went on in silence for a few moments, and came to the rustic
+bridge just above the artificial grotto through which the water ran
+out into the park, dark and swift in its narrow channel. We
+stopped, and leaned on the wooden rail. The moon was now behind
+us, and shone full upon the long vista of basins and on the huge
+walls and towers of the Castle above.
+
+"How proud you ought to be of such a grand old place!" said
+Margaret, softly.
+
+"It is yours now, darling," I answered. "You have as good a right
+to love it as I--but I only love it because you are to live in it,
+dear."
+
+Her hand stole out and lay on mine, and we were both silent. Just
+then the clock began to strike far off in the tower. I counted--
+eight--nine--ten--eleven--I looked at my watch--twelve--thirteen--I
+laughed. The bell went on striking.
+
+"The old clock has gone crazy, like Judith," I exclaimed. Still it
+went on, note after note ringing out monotonously through the still
+air. We leaned over the rail, instinctively looking in the
+direction whence the sound came. On and on it went. I counted
+nearly a hundred, out of sheer curiosity, for I understood that
+something had broken and that the thing was running itself down.
+
+Suddenly there was a crack as of breaking wood, a cry and a heavy
+splash, and I was alone, clinging to the broken end of the rail of
+the rustic bridge.
+
+I do not think I hesitated while my pulse beat twice. I sprang
+clear of the bridge into the black rushing water, dived to the
+bottom, came up again with empty hands, turned and swam downward
+through the grotto in the thick darkness, plunging and diving at
+every stroke, striking my head and hands against jagged stones and
+sharp corners, clutching at last something in my fingers and
+dragging it up with all my might. I spoke, I cried aloud, but
+there was no answer. I was alone in the pitchy darkness with my
+burden, and the house was five hundred yards away. Struggling
+still, I felt the ground beneath my feet, I saw a ray of moonlight-
+-the grotto widened, and the deep water became a broad and shallow
+brook as I stumbled over the stones and at last laid Margaret's
+body on the bank in the park beyond.
+
+"Aye, Willie, as the clock struck!" said the voice of Judith, the
+Welsh nurse, as she bent down and looked at the white face. The
+old woman must have turned back and followed us, seen the accident,
+and slipped out by the lower gate of the garden. "Aye," she
+groaned, "you have fed the Woman of the Water this night, Willie,
+while the clock was striking."
+
+I scarcely heard her as I knelt beside the lifeless body of the
+woman I loved, chafing the wet white temples and gazing wildly into
+the wide-staring eyes. I remember only the first returning look of
+consciousness, the first heaving breath, the first movement of
+those dear hands stretching out toward me.
+
+
+That is not much of a story, you say. It is the story of my life.
+That is all. It does not pretend to be anything else. Old Judith
+says my luck turned on that summer's night when I was struggling in
+the water to save all that was worth living for. A month later
+there was a stone bridge above the grotto, and Margaret and I stood
+on it and looked up at the moonlit Castle, as we had done once
+before, and as we have done many times since. For all those things
+happened ten years ago last summer, and this is the tenth Christmas
+Eve we have spent together by the roaring logs in the old hall,
+talking of old times; and every year there are more old times to
+talk of. There are curly-headed boys, too, with red-gold hair and
+dark-brown eyes like their mother's, and a little Margaret, with
+solemn black eyes like mine. Why could not she look like her
+mother, too, as well as the rest of them?
+
+The world is very bright at this glorious Christmas time, and
+perhaps there is little use in calling up the sadness of long ago,
+unless it be to make the jolly firelight seem more cheerful, the
+good wife's face look gladder, and to give the children's laughter
+a merrier ring, by contrast with all that is gone. Perhaps, too,
+some sad-faced, listless, melancholy youth, who feels that the
+world is very hollow, and that life is like a perpetual funeral
+service, just as I used to feel myself, may take courage from my
+example, and having found the woman of his heart, ask her to marry
+him after half an hour's acquaintance. But, on the whole, I would
+not advise any man to marry, for the simple reason that no man will
+ever find a wife like mine, and being obliged to go farther, he
+will necessarily fare worse. My wife has done miracles, but I will
+not assert that any other woman is able to follow her example.
+
+Margaret always said that the old place was beautiful, and that I
+ought to be proud of it. I dare say she is right. She has even
+more imagination than I. But I have a good answer and a plain one,
+which is this,--that all the beauty of the Castle comes from her.
+She has breathed upon it all, as the children blow upon the cold
+glass window panes in winter; and as their warm breath crystallizes
+into landscapes from fairyland, full of exquisite shapes and
+traceries upon the blank surface, so her spirit has transformed
+every gray stone of the old towers, every ancient tree and hedge in
+the gardens, every thought in my once melancholy self. All that
+was old is young, and all that was sad is glad, and I am the
+gladdest of all. Whatever heaven may be, there is no earthly
+paradise without woman, nor is there anywhere a place so desolate,
+so dreary, so unutterably miserable that a woman cannot make it
+seem heaven to the man she loves and who loves her.
+
+I hear certain cynics laugh, and cry that all that has been said
+before. Do not laugh, my good cynic. You are too small a man to
+laugh at such a great thing as love. Prayers have been said before
+now by many, and perhaps you say yours, too. I do not think they
+lose anything by being repeated, nor you by repeating them. You
+say that the world is bitter, and full of the Waters of Bitterness.
+Love, and so live that you may be loved--the world will turn sweet
+for you, and you shall rest like me by the Waters of Paradise.
+
+
+From "The Play-Actress and the Upper Berth," by F. Marion Crawford.
+Copyright, 1896, by G. P. Putnam's Sons.
+
+
+
+Mary E. Wilkins Freeman
+
+The Shadows on the Wall
+
+
+"Henry had words with Edward in the study the night before Edward
+died," said Caroline Glynn.
+
+She was elderly, tall, and harshly thin, with a hard colourlessness
+of face. She spoke not with acrimony, but with grave severity.
+Rebecca Ann Glynn, younger, stouter and rosy of face between her
+crinkling puffs of gray hair, gasped, by way of assent. She sat in
+a wide flounce of black silk in the corner of the sofa, and rolled
+terrified eyes from her sister Caroline to her sister Mrs. Stephen
+Brigham, who had been Emma Glynn, the one beauty of the family. She
+was beautiful still, with a large, splendid, full-blown beauty; she
+filled a great rocking-chair with her superb bulk of femininity,
+and swayed gently back and forth, her black silks whispering and
+her black frills fluttering. Even the shock of death (for her
+brother Edward lay dead in the house,) could not disturb her
+outward serenity of demeanor. She was grieved over the loss of her
+brother: he had been the youngest, and she had been fond of him,
+but never had Emma Brigham lost sight of her own importance amidst
+the waters of tribulation. She was always awake to the
+consciousness of her own stability in the midst of vicissitudes and
+the splendor of her permanent bearing.
+
+But even her expression of masterly placidity changed before her
+sister Caroline's announcement and her sister Rebecca Ann's gasp of
+terror and distress in response.
+
+"I think Henry might have controlled his temper, when poor Edward
+was so near his end," said she with an asperity which disturbed
+slightly the roseate curves of her beautiful mouth.
+
+"Of course he did not KNOW," murmured Rebecca Ann in a faint tone
+strangely out of keeping with her appearance.
+
+One involuntarily looked again to be sure that such a feeble pipe
+came from that full-swelling chest.
+
+"Of course he did not know it," said Caroline quickly. She turned
+on her sister with a strange sharp look of suspicion. "How could
+he have known it?" said she. Then she shrank as if from the
+other's possible answer. "Of course you and I both know he could
+not," said she conclusively, but her pale face was paler than it
+had been before.
+
+Rebecca gasped again. The married sister, Mrs. Emma Brigham, was
+now sitting up straight in her chair; she had ceased rocking, and
+was eyeing them both intently with a sudden accentuation of family
+likeness in her face. Given one common intensity of emotion and
+similar lines showed forth, and the three sisters of one race were
+evident.
+
+"What do you mean?" said she impartially to them both. Then she,
+too, seemed to shrink before a possible answer. She even laughed
+an evasive sort of laugh. "I guess you don't mean anything," said
+she, but her face wore still the expression of shrinking horror.
+
+"Nobody means anything," said Caroline firmly. She rose and
+crossed the room toward the door with grim decisiveness.
+
+"Where are you going?" asked Mrs. Brigham.
+
+"I have something to see to," replied Caroline, and the others at
+once knew by her tone that she had some solemn and sad duty to
+perform in the chamber of death.
+
+"Oh," said Mrs. Brigham.
+
+After the door had closed behind Caroline, she turned to Rebecca.
+
+"Did Henry have many words with him?" she asked.
+
+"They were talking very loud," replied Rebecca evasively, yet with
+an answering gleam of ready response to the other's curiosity in
+the quick lift of her soft blue eyes.
+
+Mrs. Brigham looked at her. She had not resumed rocking. She
+still sat up straight with a slight knitting of intensity on her
+fair forehead, between the pretty rippling curves of her auburn
+hair.
+
+"Did you--hear anything?" she asked in a low voice with a glance
+toward the door.
+
+"I was just across the hall in the south parlor, and that door was
+open and this door ajar," replied Rebecca with a slight flush.
+
+"Then you must have--"
+
+"I couldn't help it."
+
+"Everything?"
+
+"Most of it."
+
+"What was it?"
+
+"The old story."
+
+"I suppose Henry was mad, as he always was, because Edward was
+living on here for nothing, when he had wasted all the money father
+left him."
+
+Rebecca nodded with a fearful glance at the door.
+
+When Emma spoke again her voice was still more hushed. "I know how
+he felt," said she. "He had always been so prudent himself, and
+worked hard at his profession, and there Edward had never done
+anything but spend, and it must have looked to him as if Edward was
+living at his expense, but he wasn't."
+
+"No, he wasn't."
+
+"It was the way father left the property--that all the children
+should have a home here--and he left money enough to buy the food
+and all if we had all come home."
+
+"Yes."
+
+"And Edward had a right here according to the terms of father's
+will, and Henry ought to have remembered it."
+
+"Yes, he ought."
+
+"Did he say hard things?"
+
+"Pretty hard from what I heard."
+
+"What?"
+
+"I heard him tell Edward that he had no business here at all, and
+he thought he had better go away."
+
+"What did Edward say?"
+
+"That he would stay here as long as he lived and afterward, too, if
+he was a mind to, and he would like to see Henry get him out; and
+then--"
+
+"What?"
+
+"Then he laughed."
+
+"What did Henry say."
+
+"I didn't hear him say anything, but--"
+
+"But what?"
+
+"I saw him when he came out of this room."
+
+"He looked mad?"
+
+"You've seen him when he looked so."
+
+Emma nodded; the expression of horror on her face had deepened.
+
+"Do you remember that time he killed the cat because she had
+scratched him?"
+
+"Yes. Don't!"
+
+Then Caroline reentered the room. She went up to the stove in
+which a wood fire was burning--it was a cold, gloomy day of fall--
+and she warmed her hands, which were reddened from recent washing
+in cold water.
+
+Mrs. Brigham looked at her and hesitated. She glanced at the door,
+which was still ajar, as it did not easily shut, being still
+swollen with the damp weather of the summer. She rose and pushed
+it together with a sharp thud which jarred the house. Rebecca
+started painfully with a half exclamation. Caroline looked at her
+disapprovingly.
+
+"It is time you controlled your nerves, Rebecca," said she.
+
+"I can't help it," replied Rebecca with almost a wail. "I am
+nervous. There's enough to make me so, the Lord knows."
+
+"What do you mean by that?" asked Caroline with her old air of
+sharp suspicion, and something between challenge and dread of its
+being met.
+
+Rebecca shrank.
+
+"Nothing," said she.
+
+"Then I wouldn't keep speaking in such a fashion."
+
+Emma, returning from the closed door, said imperiously that it
+ought to be fixed, it shut so hard.
+
+"It will shrink enough after we have had the fire a few days,"
+replied Caroline. "If anything is done to it it will be too small;
+there will be a crack at the sill."
+
+"I think Henry ought to be ashamed of himself for talking as he did
+to Edward," said Mrs. Brigham abruptly, but in an almost inaudible
+voice.
+
+"Hush!" said Caroline, with a glance of actual fear at the closed
+door.
+
+"Nobody can hear with the door shut."
+
+"He must have heard it shut, and--"
+
+"Well, I can say what I want to before he comes down, and I am not
+afraid of him."
+
+"I don't know who is afraid of him! What reason is there for
+anybody to be afraid of Henry?" demanded Caroline.
+
+Mrs. Brigham trembled before her sister's look. Rebecca gasped
+again. "There isn't any reason, of course. Why should there be?"
+
+"I wouldn't speak so, then. Somebody might overhear you and think
+it was queer. Miranda Joy is in the south parlor sewing, you
+know."
+
+"I thought she went upstairs to stitch on the machine."
+
+"She did, but she has come down again."
+
+"Well, she can't hear."
+
+"I say again I think Henry ought to be ashamed of himself. I
+shouldn't think he'd ever get over it, having words with poor
+Edward the very night before he died. Edward was enough sight
+better disposition than Henry, with all his faults. I always
+thought a great deal of poor Edward, myself."
+
+Mrs. Brigham passed a large fluff of handkerchief across her eyes;
+Rebecca sobbed outright.
+
+"Rebecca," said Caroline admonishingly, keeping her mouth stiff and
+swallowing determinately.
+
+"I never heard him speak a cross word, unless he spoke cross to
+Henry that last night. I don't know, but he did from what Rebecca
+overheard," said Emma.
+
+"Not so much cross as sort of soft, and sweet, and aggravating,"
+sniffled Rebecca.
+
+"He never raised his voice," said Caroline; "but he had his way."
+
+"He had a right to in this case."
+
+"Yes, he did."
+
+"He had as much of a right here as Henry," sobbed Rebecca, "and now
+he's gone, and he will never be in this home that poor father left
+him and the rest of us again."
+
+"What do you really think ailed Edward?" asked Emma in hardly more
+than a whisper. She did not look at her sister.
+
+Caroline sat down in a nearby armchair, and clutched the arms
+convulsively until her thin knuckles whitened.
+
+"I told you," said she.
+
+Rebecca held her handkerchief over her mouth, and looked at them
+above it with terrified, streaming eyes.
+
+"I know you said that he had terrible pains in his stomach, and had
+spasms, but what do you think made him have them?"
+
+"Henry called it gastric trouble. You know Edward has always had
+dyspepsia."
+
+Mrs. Brigham hesitated a moment. "Was there any talk of an--
+examination?" said she.
+
+Then Caroline turned on her fiercely.
+
+"No," said she in a terrible voice. "No."
+
+The three sisters' souls seemed to meet on one common ground of
+terrified understanding through their eyes. The old-fashioned
+latch of the door was heard to rattle, and a push from without made
+the door shake ineffectually. "It's Henry," Rebecca sighed rather
+than whispered. Mrs. Brigham settled herself after a noiseless
+rush across the floor into her rocking-chair again, and was swaying
+back and forth with her head comfortably leaning back, when the
+door at last yielded and Henry Glynn entered. He cast a covertly
+sharp, comprehensive glance at Mrs. Brigham with her elaborate
+calm; at Rebecca quietly huddled in the corner of the sofa with her
+handkerchief to her face and only one small reddened ear as
+attentive as a dog's uncovered and revealing her alertness for his
+presence; at Caroline sitting with a strained composure in her
+armchair by the stove. She met his eyes quite firmly with a look
+of inscrutable fear, and defiance of the fear and of him.
+
+Henry Glynn looked more like this sister than the others. Both had
+the same hard delicacy of form and feature, both were tall and
+almost emaciated, both had a sparse growth of gray blond hair far
+back from high intellectual foreheads, both had an almost noble
+aquilinity of feature. They confronted each other with the
+pitiless immovability of two statues in whose marble lineaments
+emotions were fixed for all eternity.
+
+Then Henry Glynn smiled and the smile transformed his face. He
+looked suddenly years younger, and an almost boyish recklessness
+and irresolution appeared in his face. He flung himself into a
+chair with a gesture which was bewildering from its incongruity
+with his general appearance. He leaned his head back, flung one
+leg over the other, and looked laughingly at Mrs. Brigham.
+
+"I declare, Emma, you grow younger every year," he said.
+
+She flushed a little, and her placid mouth widened at the corners.
+She was susceptible to praise.
+
+"Our thoughts to-day ought to belong to the one of us who will
+NEVER grow older," said Caroline in a hard voice.
+
+Henry looked at her, still smiling. "Of course, we none of us
+forget that," said he, in a deep, gentle voice, "but we have to
+speak to the living, Caroline, and I have not seen Emma for a long
+time, and the living are as dear as the dead."
+
+"Not to me," said Caroline.
+
+She rose, and went abruptly out of the room again. Rebecca also
+rose and hurried after her, sobbing loudly.
+
+Henry looked slowly after them.
+
+"Caroline is completely unstrung," said he. Mrs. Brigham rocked. A
+confidence in him inspired by his manner was stealing over her. Out
+of that confidence she spoke quite easily and naturally.
+
+"His death was very sudden," said she.
+
+Henry's eyelids quivered slightly but his gaze was unswerving.
+
+"Yes," said he; "it was very sudden. He was sick only a few
+hours."
+
+"What did you call it?"
+
+"Gastric."
+
+"You did not think of an examination?"
+
+"There was no need. I am perfectly certain as to the cause of his
+death."
+
+Suddenly Mrs. Brigham felt a creep as of some live horror over her
+very soul. Her flesh prickled with cold, before an inflection of
+his voice. She rose, tottering on weak knees.
+
+"Where are you going?" asked Henry in a strange, breathless voice.
+
+Mrs. Brigham said something incoherent about some sewing which she
+had to do, some black for the funeral, and was out of the room. She
+went up to the front chamber which she occupied. Caroline was
+there. She went close to her and took her hands, and the two
+sisters looked at each other.
+
+"Don't speak, don't, I won't have it!" said Caroline finally in an
+awful whisper.
+
+"I won't," replied Emma.
+
+That afternoon the three sisters were in the study, the large front
+room on the ground floor across the hall from the south parlor,
+when the dusk deepened.
+
+Mrs. Brigham was hemming some black material. She sat close to the
+west window for the waning light. At last she laid her work on her
+lap.
+
+"It's no use, I cannot see to sew another stitch until we have a
+light," said she.
+
+Caroline, who was writing some letters at the table, turned to
+Rebecca, in her usual place on the sofa.
+
+"Rebecca, you had better get a lamp," she said.
+
+Rebecca started up; even in the dusk her face showed her agitation.
+
+"It doesn't seem to me that we need a lamp quite yet," she said in
+a piteous, pleading voice like a child's.
+
+"Yes, we do," returned Mrs. Brigham peremptorily. "We must have a
+light. I must finish this to-night or I can't go to the funeral,
+and I can't see to sew another stitch."
+
+"Caroline can see to write letters, and she is farther from the
+window than you are," said Rebecca.
+
+"Are you trying to save kerosene or are you lazy, Rebecca Glynn?"
+cried Mrs. Brigham. "I can go and get the light myself, but I have
+this work all in my lap."
+
+Caroline's pen stopped scratching.
+
+"Rebecca, we must have the light," said she.
+
+"Had we better have it in here?" asked Rebecca weakly.
+
+"Of course! Why not?" cried Caroline sternly.
+
+"I am sure I don't want to take my sewing into the other room, when
+it is all cleaned up for to-morrow," said Mrs. Brigham.
+
+"Why, I never heard such a to-do about lighting a lamp."
+
+Rebecca rose and left the room. Presently she entered with a lamp--
+a large one with a white porcelain shade. She set it on a table,
+an old-fashioned card-table which was placed against the opposite
+wall from the window. That wall was clear of bookcases and books,
+which were only on three sides of the room. That opposite wall was
+taken up with three doors, the one small space being occupied by
+the table. Above the table on the old-fashioned paper, of a white
+satin gloss, traversed by an indeterminate green scroll, hung quite
+high a small gilt and black-framed ivory miniature taken in her
+girlhood of the mother of the family. When the lamp was set on the
+table beneath it, the tiny pretty face painted on the ivory seemed
+to gleam out with a look of intelligence.
+
+"What have you put that lamp over there for?" asked Mrs. Brigham,
+with more of impatience than her voice usually revealed. "Why
+didn't you set it in the hall and have done with it. Neither
+Caroline nor I can see if it is on that table."
+
+"I thought perhaps you would move," replied Rebecca hoarsely.
+
+"If I do move, we can't both sit at that table. Caroline has her
+paper all spread around. Why don't you set the lamp on the study
+table in the middle of the room, then we can both see?"
+
+Rebecca hesitated. Her face was very pale. She looked with an
+appeal that was fairly agonizing at her sister Caroline.
+
+"Why don't you put the lamp on this table, as she says?" asked
+Caroline, almost fiercely. "Why do you act so, Rebecca?"
+
+"I should think you WOULD ask her that," said Mrs. Brigham. "She
+doesn't act like herself at all."
+
+Rebecca took the lamp and set it on the table in the middle of the
+room without another word. Then she turned her back upon it
+quickly and seated herself on the sofa, and placed a hand over her
+eyes as if to shade them, and remained so.
+
+"Does the light hurt your eyes, and is that the reason why you
+didn't want the lamp?" asked Mrs. Brigham kindly.
+
+"I always like to sit in the dark," replied Rebecca chokingly. Then
+she snatched her handkerchief hastily from her pocket and began to
+weep. Caroline continued to write, Mrs. Brigham to sew.
+
+Suddenly Mrs. Brigham as she sewed glanced at the opposite wall.
+The glance became a steady stare. She looked intently, her work
+suspended in her hands. Then she looked away again and took a few
+more stitches, then she looked again, and again turned to her task.
+At last she laid her work in her lap and stared concentratedly. She
+looked from the wall around the room, taking note of the various
+objects; she looked at the wall long and intently. Then she turned
+to her sisters.
+
+"What IS that?" said she.
+
+"What?" asked Caroline harshly; her pen scratched loudly across the
+paper.
+
+Rebecca gave one of her convulsive gasps.
+
+"That strange shadow on the wall," replied Mrs. Brigham.
+
+Rebecca sat with her face hidden: Caroline dipped her pen in the
+inkstand.
+
+"Why don't you turn around and look?" asked Mrs. Brigham in a
+wondering and somewhat aggrieved way.
+
+"I am in a hurry to finish this letter, if Mrs. Wilson Ebbit is
+going to get word in time to come to the funeral," replied Caroline
+shortly.
+
+Mrs. Brigham rose, her work slipping to the floor, and she began
+walking around the room, moving various articles of furniture, with
+her eyes on the shadow.
+
+Then suddenly she shrieked out:
+
+"Look at this awful shadow! What is it? Caroline, look, look!
+Rebecca, look! WHAT IS IT?"
+
+All Mrs. Brigham's triumphant placidity was gone. Her handsome
+face was livid with horror. She stood stiffly pointing at the
+shadow.
+
+"Look!" said she, pointing her finger at it. "Look! What is it?"
+
+Then Rebecca burst out in a wild wail after a shuddering glance at
+the wall:
+
+"Oh, Caroline, there it is again! There it is again!"
+
+"Caroline Glynn, you look!" said Mrs. Brigham. "Look! What is
+that dreadful shadow?"
+
+Caroline rose, turned, and stood confronting the wall.
+
+"How should I know?" she said.
+
+"It has been there every night since he died," cried Rebecca.
+
+"Every night?"
+
+"Yes. He died Thursday and this is Saturday; that makes three
+nights," said Caroline rigidly. She stood as if holding herself
+calm with a vise of concentrated will.
+
+"It--it looks like--like--" stammered Mrs. Brigham in a tone of
+intense horror.
+
+"I know what it looks like well enough," said Caroline. "I've got
+eyes in my head."
+
+"It looks like Edward," burst out Rebecca in a sort of frenzy of
+fear. "Only--"
+
+"Yes, it does," assented Mrs. Brigham, whose horror-stricken tone
+matched her sister's, "only-- Oh, it is awful! What is it,
+Caroline?"
+
+"I ask you again, how should I know?" replied Caroline. "I see it
+there like you. How should I know any more than you?"
+
+"It MUST be something in the room," said Mrs. Brigham, staring
+wildly around.
+
+"We moved everything in the room the first night it came," said
+Rebecca; "it is not anything in the room."
+
+Caroline turned upon her with a sort of fury. "Of course it is
+something in the room," said she. "How you act! What do you mean
+by talking so? Of course it is something in the room."
+
+"Of course, it is," agreed Mrs. Brigham, looking at Caroline
+suspiciously. "Of course it must be. It is only a coincidence. It
+just happens so. Perhaps it is that fold of the window curtain
+that makes it. It must be something in the room."
+
+"It is not anything in the room," repeated Rebecca with obstinate
+horror.
+
+The door opened suddenly and Henry Glynn entered. He began to
+speak, then his eyes followed the direction of the others'. He
+stood stock still staring at the shadow on the wall. It was life
+size and stretched across the white parallelogram of a door, half
+across the wall space on which the picture hung.
+
+"What is that?" he demanded in a strange voice.
+
+"It must be due to something in the room, Mrs. Brigham said
+faintly.
+
+"It is not due to anything in the room," said Rebecca again with
+the shrill insistency of terror.
+
+"How you act, Rebecca Glynn," said Caroline.
+
+Henry Glynn stood and stared a moment longer. His face showed a
+gamut of emotions--horror, conviction, then furious incredulity.
+Suddenly he began hastening hither and thither about the room. He
+moved the furniture with fierce jerks, turning ever to see the
+effect upon the shadow on the wall. Not a line of its terrible
+outlines wavered.
+
+"It must be something in the room!" he declared in a voice which
+seemed to snap like a lash.
+
+His face changed. The inmost secrecy of his nature seemed evident
+until one almost lost sight of his lineaments. Rebecca stood close
+to her sofa, regarding him with woeful, fascinated eyes. Mrs.
+Brigham clutched Caroline's hand. They both stood in a corner out
+of his way. For a few moments he raged about the room like a caged
+wild animal. He moved every piece of furniture; when the moving of
+a piece did not affect the shadow, he flung it to the floor, his
+sisters watching.
+
+Then suddenly he desisted. He laughed and began straightening the
+furniture which he had flung down.
+
+"What an absurdity," he said easily. "Such a to-do about a
+shadow."
+
+"That's so," assented Mrs. Brigham, in a scared voice which she
+tried to make natural. As she spoke she lifted a chair near her.
+
+"I think you have broken the chair that Edward was so fond of,"
+said Caroline.
+
+Terror and wrath were struggling for expression on her face. Her
+mouth was set, her eyes shrinking. Henry lifted the chair with a
+show of anxiety.
+
+"Just as good as ever," he said pleasantly. He laughed again,
+looking at his sisters. "Did I scare you?" he said. "I should
+think you might be used to me by this time. You know my way of
+wanting to leap to the bottom of a mystery, and that shadow does
+look--queer, like--and I thought if there was any way of accounting
+for it I would like to without any delay."
+
+"You don't seem to have succeeded," remarked Caroline dryly, with a
+slight glance at the wall.
+
+Henry's eyes followed hers and he quivered perceptibly.
+
+"Oh, there is no accounting for shadows," he said, and he laughed
+again. "A man is a fool to try to account for shadows."
+
+Then the supper bell rang, and they all left the room, but Henry
+kept his back to the wall, as did, indeed, the others.
+
+Mrs. Brigham pressed close to Caroline as she crossed the hall. "He
+looked like a demon!" she breathed in her ear.
+
+Henry led the way with an alert motion like a boy; Rebecca brought
+up the rear; she could scarcely walk, her knees trembled so.
+
+"I can't sit in that room again this evening," she whispered to
+Caroline after supper.
+
+"Very well, we will sit in the south room," replied Caroline. "I
+think we will sit in the south parlor," she said aloud; "it isn't
+as damp as the study, and I have a cold."
+
+So they all sat in the south room with their sewing. Henry read
+the newspaper, his chair drawn close to the lamp on the table.
+About nine o'clock he rose abruptly and crossed the hall to the
+study. The three sisters looked at one another. Mrs. Brigham
+rose, folded her rustling skirts compactly around her, and began
+tiptoeing toward the door.
+
+"What are you going to do?" inquired Rebecca agitatedly.
+
+"I am going to see what he is about," replied Mrs. Brigham
+cautiously.
+
+She pointed as she spoke to the study door across the hall; it was
+ajar. Henry had striven to pull it together behind him, but it had
+somehow swollen beyond the limit with curious speed. It was still
+ajar and a streak of light showed from top to bottom. The hall
+lamp was not lit.
+
+"You had better stay where you are," said Caroline with guarded
+sharpness.
+
+"I am going to see," repeated Mrs. Brigham firmly.
+
+Then she folded her skirts so tightly that her bulk with its
+swelling curves was revealed in a black silk sheath, and she went
+with a slow toddle across the hall to the study door. She stood
+there, her eye at the crack.
+
+In the south room Rebecca stopped sewing and sat watching with
+dilated eyes. Caroline sewed steadily. What Mrs. Brigham,
+standing at the crack in the study door, saw was this:
+
+Henry Glynn, evidently reasoning that the source of the strange
+shadow must be between the table on which the lamp stood and the
+wall, was making systematic passes and thrusts all over and through
+the intervening space with an old sword which had belonged to his
+father. Not an inch was left unpierced. He seemed to have divided
+the space into mathematical sections. He brandished the sword with
+a sort of cold fury and calculation; the blade gave out flashes of
+light, the shadow remained unmoved. Mrs. Brigham, watching, felt
+herself cold with horror.
+
+Finally Henry ceased and stood with the sword in hand and raised as
+if to strike, surveying the shadow on the wall threateningly. Mrs.
+Brigham toddled back across the hall and shut the south room door
+behind her before she related what she had seen.
+
+"He looked like a demon!" she said again. "Have you got any of
+that old wine in the house, Caroline? I don't feel as if I could
+stand much more."
+
+Indeed, she looked overcome. Her handsome placid face was worn and
+strained and pale.
+
+"Yes, there's plenty," said Caroline; "you can have some when you
+go to bed."
+
+"I think we had all better take some," said Mrs. Brigham. "Oh, my
+God, Caroline, what--"
+
+"Don't ask and don't speak," said Caroline.
+
+"No, I am not going to," replied Mrs. Brigham; "but--"
+
+Rebecca moaned aloud.
+
+"What are you doing that for?" asked Caroline harshly.
+
+"Poor Edward," returned Rebecca.
+
+"That is all you have to groan for," said Caroline. "There is
+nothing else."
+
+"I am going to bed," said Mrs. Brigham. "I sha'n't be able to be
+at the funeral if I don't."
+
+Soon the three sisters went to their chambers and the south parlor
+was deserted. Caroline called to Henry in the study to put out the
+light before he came upstairs. They had been gone about an hour
+when he came into the room bringing the lamp which had stood in the
+study. He set it on the table and waited a few minutes, pacing up
+and down. His face was terrible, his fair complexion showed livid;
+his blue eyes seemed dark blanks of awful reflections.
+
+Then he took the lamp up and returned to the library. He set the
+lamp on the centre table, and the shadow sprang out on the wall.
+Again he studied the furniture and moved it about, but
+deliberately, with none of his former frenzy. Nothing affected the
+shadow. Then he returned to the south room with the lamp and again
+waited. Again he returned to the study and placed the lamp on the
+table, and the shadow sprang out upon the wall. It was midnight
+before he went upstairs. Mrs. Brigham and the other sisters, who
+could not sleep, heard him.
+
+The next day was the funeral. That evening the family sat in the
+south room. Some relatives were with them. Nobody entered the
+study until Henry carried a lamp in there after the others had
+retired for the night. He saw again the shadow on the wall leap to
+an awful life before the light.
+
+The next morning at breakfast Henry Glynn announced that he had to
+go to the city for three days. The sisters looked at him with
+surprise. He very seldom left home, and just now his practice had
+been neglected on account of Edward's death. He was a physician.
+
+"How can you leave your patients now?" asked Mrs. Brigham
+wonderingly.
+
+"I don't know how to, but there is no other way," replied Henry
+easily. "I have had a telegram from Doctor Mitford."
+
+"Consultation?" inquired Mrs. Brigham.
+
+"I have business," replied Henry.
+
+Doctor Mitford was an old classmate of his who lived in a
+neighboring city and who occasionally called upon him in the case
+of a consultation.
+
+After he had gone Mrs. Brigham said to Caroline that after all
+Henry had not said that he was going to consult with Doctor
+Mitford, and she thought it very strange.
+
+"Everything is very strange," said Rebecca with a shudder.
+
+"What do you mean?" inquired Caroline sharply.
+
+"Nothing," replied Rebecca.
+
+Nobody entered the library that day, nor the next, nor the next.
+The third day Henry was expected home, but he did not arrive and
+the last train from the city had come.
+
+"I call it pretty queer work," said Mrs. Brigham. "The idea of a
+doctor leaving his patients for three days anyhow, at such a time
+as this, and I know he has some very sick ones; he said so. And
+the idea of a consultation lasting three days! There is no sense
+in it, and NOW he has not come. I don't understand it, for my
+part."
+
+"I don't either," said Rebecca.
+
+They were all in the south parlor. There was no light in the study
+opposite, and the door was ajar.
+
+Presently Mrs. Brigham rose--she could not have told why; something
+seemed to impel her, some will outside her own. She went out of
+the room, again wrapping her rustling skirts around that she might
+pass noiselessly, and began pushing at the swollen door of the
+study.
+
+"She has not got any lamp," said Rebecca in a shaking voice.
+
+Caroline, who was writing letters, rose again, took a lamp (there
+were two in the room) and followed her sister. Rebecca had risen,
+but she stood trembling, not venturing to follow.
+
+The doorbell rang, but the others did not hear it; it was on the
+south door on the other side of the house from the study. Rebecca,
+after hesitating until the bell rang the second time, went to the
+door; she remembered that the servant was out.
+
+Caroline and her sister Emma entered the study. Caroline set the
+lamp on the table. They looked at the wall. "Oh, my God," gasped
+Mrs. Brigham, "there are--there are TWO--shadows." The sisters
+stood clutching each other, staring at the awful things on the
+wall. Then Rebecca came in, staggering, with a telegram in her
+hand. "Here is--a telegram," she gasped. "Henry is--dead."
+
+
+From "The Wind in the Rosebush," by Mary E. Wilkins Freeman.
+Copyright, 1903, by Doubleday, Page & Company.
+
+
+
+Melville Davisson Post
+
+
+Introduction to The Corpus Delicti
+
+The high ground of the field of crime has not been explored; it has
+not even been entered. The book stalls have been filled to
+weariness with tales based upon plans whereby the DETECTIVE, or
+FERRETING power of the State might be baffled. But, prodigious
+marvel! no writer has attempted to construct tales based upon plans
+whereby the PUNISHING power of the State might be baffled.
+
+The distinction, if one pauses for a moment to consider it, is
+striking. It is possible, even easy, deliberately to plan crimes
+so that the criminal agent and the criminal agency cannot be
+detected. Is it possible to plan and execute wrongs in such a
+manner that they will have all the effect and all the resulting
+profit of desperate crimes and yet not be crimes before the law?
+
+We are prone to forget that the law is no perfect structure, that
+it is simply the result of human labor and human genius, and that
+whatever laws human ingenuity can create for the protection of men,
+those same laws human ingenuity can evade. The Spirit of Evil is
+no dwarf; he has developed equally with the Spirit of Good.
+
+All wrongs are not crimes. Indeed only those wrongs are crimes in
+which certain technical elements are present. The law provides a
+Procrustean standard for all crimes. Thus a wrong, to become
+criminal, must fit exactly into the measure laid down by the law,
+else it is no crime; if it varies never so little from the legal
+measure, the law must, and will, refuse to regard it as criminal,
+no matter how injurious a wrong it may be. There is no measure of
+morality, or equity, or common right that can be applied to the
+individual case. The gauge of the law is iron-bound. The wrong
+measured by this gauge is either a crime or it is not. There is no
+middle ground.
+
+Hence is it, that if one knows well the technicalities of the law,
+one may commit horrible wrongs that will yield all the gain and all
+the resulting effect of the highest crimes, and yet the wrongs
+perpetrated will constitute no one of the crimes described by the
+law. Thus the highest crimes, even murder, may be committed in
+such manner that although the criminal is known and the law holds
+him in custody, yet it cannot punish him. So it happens that in
+this year of our Lord of the nineteenth century, the skillful
+attorney marvels at the stupidity of the rogue who, committing
+crimes by the ordinary methods, subjects himself to unnecessary
+peril, when the result which he seeks can easily be attained by
+other methods, equally expeditious and without danger of liability
+in any criminal tribunal. This is the field into which the author
+has ventured, and he believes it to be new and full of interest.
+
+It may be objected that the writer has prepared here a text-book
+for the shrewd knave. To this it is answered that, if he instructs
+the enemies, he also warns the friends of law and order; and that
+Evil has never yet been stronger because the sun shone on it.
+
+
+[See Lord Hale's Rule, Russell on Crimes. For the law in New York
+see 18th N. Y. Reports, 179; also N. Y. Reports, 49, page 137. The
+doctrine there laid down obtains in almost every State, with the
+possible exception of a few Western States, where the decisions are
+muddy.]
+
+
+
+The Corpus Delicti
+
+
+I
+
+
+"That man Mason," said Samuel Walcott, "is the mysterious member of
+this club. He is more than that; he is the mysterious man of New
+York."
+
+"I was much surprised to see him," answered his companion, Marshall
+St. Clair, of the great law firm of Seward, St. Clair & De Muth.
+"I had lost track of him since he went to Paris as counsel for the
+American stockholders of the Canal Company. When did he come back
+to the States?"
+
+"He turned up suddenly in his ancient haunts about four months
+ago," said Walcott, "as grand, gloomy, and peculiar as Napoleon
+ever was in his palmiest days. The younger members of the club
+call him 'Zanona Redivivus.' He wanders through the house usually
+late at night, apparently without noticing anything or anybody.
+His mind seems to be deeply and busily at work, leaving his bodily
+self to wander as it may happen. Naturally, strange stories are
+told of him; indeed, his individuality and his habit of doing some
+unexpected thing, and doing it in such a marvelously original
+manner that men who are experts at it look on in wonder, cannot
+fail to make him an object of interest.
+
+"He has never been known to play at any game whatever, and yet one
+night he sat down to the chess table with old Admiral Du Brey. You
+know the Admiral is the great champion since he beat the French and
+English officers in the tournament last winter. Well, you also
+know that the conventional openings at chess are scientifically and
+accurately determined. To the utter disgust of Du Brey, Mason
+opened the game with an unheard-of attack from the extremes of the
+board. The old Admiral stopped and, in a kindly patronizing way,
+pointed out the weak and absurd folly of his move and asked him to
+begin again with some one of the safe openings. Mason smiled and
+answered that if one had a head that he could trust he should use
+it; if not, then it was the part of wisdom to follow blindly the
+dead forms of some man who had a head. Du Brey was naturally angry
+and set himself to demolish Mason as quickly as possible. The game
+was rapid for a few moments. Mason lost piece after piece. His
+opening was broken and destroyed and its utter folly apparent to
+the lookers-on. The Admiral smiled and the game seemed all one-
+sided, when, suddenly, to his utter horror, Du Brey found that his
+king was in a trap. The foolish opening had been only a piece of
+shrewd strategy. The old Admiral fought and cursed and sacrificed
+his pieces, but it was of no use. He was gone. Mason checkmated
+him in two moves and arose wearily.
+
+"'Where in Heaven's name, man,' said the old Admiral,
+thunderstruck, 'did you learn that masterpiece?'
+
+"'Just here,' replied Mason. 'To play chess, one should know his
+opponent. How could the dead masters lay down rules by which you
+could be beaten, sir? They had never seen you'; and thereupon he
+turned and left the room. Of course, St. Clair, such a strange man
+would soon become an object of all kinds of mysterious rumors.
+Some are true and some are not. At any rate, I know that Mason is
+an unusual man with a gigantic intellect. Of late he seems to have
+taken a strange fancy to me. In fact, I seem to be the only member
+of the club that he will talk with, and I confess that he startles
+and fascinates me. He is an original genius, St. Clair, of an
+unusual order."
+
+"I recall vividly," said the younger man, "that before Mason went
+to Paris he was considered one of the greatest lawyers of this city
+and he was feared and hated by the bar at large. He came here, I
+believe, from Virginia and began with the high-grade criminal
+practice. He soon became famous for his powerful and ingenious
+defenses. He found holes in the law through which his clients
+escaped, holes that by the profession at large were not suspected
+to exist, and that frequently astonished the judges. His ability
+caught the attention of the great corporations. They tested him
+and found in him learning and unlimited resources. He pointed out
+methods by which they could evade obnoxious statutes, by which they
+could comply with the apparent letter of the law and yet violate
+its spirit, and advised them well in that most important of all
+things, just how far they could bend the law without breaking it.
+At the time he left for Paris he had a vast clientage and was in
+the midst of a brilliant career. The day he took passage from New
+York, the bar lost sight of him. No matter how great a man may be,
+the wave soon closes over him in a city like this. In a few years
+Mason was forgotten. Now only the older practitioners would recall
+him, and they would do so with hatred and bitterness. He was a
+tireless, savage, uncompromising fighter, always a recluse."
+
+"Well," said Walcott, "he reminds me of a great world-weary cynic,
+transplanted from some ancient mysterious empire. When I come into
+the man's presence I feel instinctively the grip of his intellect.
+I tell you, St. Clair, Randolph Mason is the mysterious man of New
+York."
+
+At this moment a messenger boy came into the room and handed Mr.
+Walcott a telegram. "St. Clair," said that gentleman, rising, "the
+directors of the Elevated are in session, and we must hurry." The
+two men put on their coats and left the house.
+
+Samuel Walcott was not a club man after the manner of the Smart
+Set, and yet he was in fact a club man. He was a bachelor in the
+latter thirties, and resided in a great silent house on the avenue.
+On the street he was a man of substance, shrewd and progressive,
+backed by great wealth. He had various corporate interests in the
+larger syndicates, but the basis and foundation of his fortune was
+real estate. His houses on the avenue were the best possible
+property, and his elevator row in the importers' quarter was indeed
+a literal gold mine. It was known that, many years before, his
+grandfather had died and left him the property, which, at that
+time, was of no great value. Young Walcott had gone out into the
+gold-fields and had been lost sight of and forgotten. Ten years
+afterwards he had turned up suddenly in New York and taken
+possession of his property, then vastly increased in value. His
+speculations were almost phenomenally successful, and, backed by
+the now enormous value of his real property, he was soon on a level
+with the merchant princes. His judgment was considered sound, and
+he had the full confidence of his business associates for safety
+and caution. Fortune heaped up riches around him with a lavish
+hand. He was unmarried and the halo of his wealth caught the keen
+eye of the matron with marriageable daughters. He was invited out,
+caught by the whirl of society, and tossed into its maelstrom. In
+a measure he reciprocated. He kept horses and a yacht. His
+dinners at Delmonico's and the club were above reproach. But with
+all he was a silent man with a shadow deep in his eyes, and seemed
+to court the society of his fellows, not because he loved them, but
+because he either hated or feared solitude. For years the strategy
+of the match-maker had gone gracefully afield, but Fate is
+relentless. If she shields the victim from the traps of men, it is
+not because she wishes him to escape, but because she is pleased to
+reserve him for her own trap. So it happened that, when Virginia
+St. Clair assisted Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant at her midwinter
+reception, this same Samuel Walcott fell deeply and hopelessly and
+utterly in love, and it was so apparent to the beaten generals
+present, that Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant applauded herself, so to
+speak, with encore after encore. It was good to see this
+courteous, silent man literally at the feet of the young debutante.
+He was there of right. Even the mothers of marriageable daughters
+admitted that. The young girl was brown-haired, brown-eyed, and
+tall enough, said the experts, and of the blue blood royal, with
+all the grace, courtesy, and inbred genius of such princely
+heritage.
+
+Perhaps it was objected by the censors of the Smart Set that Miss
+St. Clair's frankness and honesty were a trifle old-fashioned, and
+that she was a shadowy bit of a Puritan; and perhaps it was of
+these same qualities that Samuel Walcott received his hurt. At any
+rate the hurt was there and deep, and the new actor stepped up into
+the old time-worn, semi-tragic drama, and began his role with a
+tireless, utter sincerity that was deadly dangerous if he lost.
+
+
+II
+
+
+Perhaps a week after the conversation between St. Clair and
+Walcott, Randolph Mason stood in the private waiting-room of the
+club with his hands behind his back.
+
+He was a man apparently in the middle forties; tall and reasonably
+broad across the shoulders; muscular without being either stout or
+lean. His hair was thin and of a brown color, with erratic streaks
+of gray. His forehead was broad and high and of a faint reddish
+color. His eyes were restless inky black, and not over-large. The
+nose was big and muscular and bowed. The eyebrows were black and
+heavy, almost bushy. There were heavy furrows, running from the
+nose downward and outward to the corners of the mouth. The mouth
+was straight and the jaw was heavy, and square.
+
+Looking at the face of Randolph Mason from above, the expression in
+repose was crafty and cynical; viewed from below upward, it was
+savage and vindictive, almost brutal; while from the front, if
+looked squarely in the face, the stranger was fascinated by the
+animation of the man and at once concluded that his expression was
+fearless and sneering. He was evidently of Southern extraction and
+a man of unusual power.
+
+A fire smoldered on the hearth. It was a crisp evening in the
+early fall, and with that far-off touch of melancholy which ever
+heralds the coming winter, even in the midst of a city. The man's
+face looked tired and ugly. His long white hands were clasped
+tight together. His entire figure and face wore every mark of
+weakness and physical exhaustion; but his eyes contradicted. They
+were red and restless.
+
+In the private dining-room the dinner party was in the best of
+spirits. Samuel Walcott was happy. Across the table from him was
+Miss Virginia St. Clair, radiant, a tinge of color in her cheeks.
+On either side, Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant and Marshall St. Clair were
+brilliant and lighthearted. Walcott looked at the young girl and
+the measure of his worship was full. He wondered for the
+thousandth time how she could possibly love him and by what earthly
+miracle she had come to accept him, and how it would be always to
+have her across the table from him, his own table in his own house.
+
+They were about to rise from the table when one of the waiters
+entered the room and handed Walcott an envelope. He thrust it
+quickly into his pocket. In the confusion of rising the others did
+not notice him, but his face was ash white and his hands trembled
+violently as he placed the wraps around the bewitching shoulders of
+Miss St. Clair.
+
+"Marshall," he said, and despite the powerful effort his voice was
+hollow, "you will see the ladies safely cared for, I am called to
+attend a grave matter."
+
+"All right, Walcott," answered the young man, with cheery good
+nature, "you are too serious, old man, trot along."
+
+"The poor dear," murmured Mrs. Steuvisant, after Walcott had helped
+them to the carriage and turned to go up the steps of the club,--
+"The poor dear is hard hit, and men are such funny creatures when
+they are hard hit."
+
+Samuel Walcott, as his fate would, went direct to the private
+writing-room and opened the door. The lights were not turned on
+and in the dark he did not see Mason motionless by the mantel-
+shelf. He went quickly across the room to the writing-table,
+turned on one of the lights, and, taking the envelope from his
+pocket, tore it open. Then he bent down by the light to read the
+contents. As his eyes ran over the paper, his jaw fell. The skin
+drew away from his cheekbones and his face seemed literally to sink
+in. His knees gave way under him and he would have gone down in a
+heap had it not been for Mason's long arms that closed around him
+and held him up. The human economy is ever mysterious. The moment
+the new danger threatened, the latent power of the man as an
+animal, hidden away in the centers of intelligence, asserted
+itself. His hand clutched the paper and, with a half slide, he
+turned in Mason's arms. For a moment he stared up at the ugly man
+whose thin arms felt like wire ropes.
+
+"You are under the dead-fall, aye," said Mason. "The cunning of my
+enemy is sublime."
+
+"Your enemy?" gasped Walcott. "When did you come into it? How in
+God's name did you know it? How your enemy?"
+
+Mason looked down at the wide bulging eyes of the man.
+
+"Who should know better than I?" he said. "Haven't I broken
+through all the traps and plots that she could set?"
+
+"She? She trap you?" The man's voice was full of horror.
+
+"The old schemer," muttered Mason. "The cowardly old schemer, to
+strike in the back; but we can beat her. She did not count on my
+helping you--I, who know her so well."
+
+Mason's face was red, and his eyes burned. In the midst of it all
+he dropped his hands and went over to the fire. Samuel Walcott
+arose, panting, and stood looking at Mason, with his hands behind
+him on the table. The naturally strong nature and the rigid school
+in which the man had been trained presently began to tell. His
+composure in part returned and he thought rapidly. What did this
+strange man know? Was he simply making shrewd guesses, or had he
+some mysterious knowledge of this matter? Walcott could not know
+that Mason meant only Fate, that he believed her to be his great
+enemy. Walcott had never before doubted his own ability to meet
+any emergency. This mighty jerk had carried him off his feet. He
+was unstrung and panic-stricken. At any rate this man had promised
+help. He would take it. He put the paper and envelope carefully
+into his pocket, smoothed out his rumpled coat, and going over to
+Mason touched him on the shoulder.
+
+"Come," he said, "if you are to help me we must go."
+
+The man turned and followed him without a word. In the hall Mason
+put on his hat and overcoat, and the two went out into the street.
+Walcott hailed a cab, and the two were driven to his house on the
+avenue. Walcott took out his latchkey, opened the door, and led
+the way into the library. He turned on the light and motioned
+Mason to seat himself at the table. Then he went into another room
+and presently returned with a bundle of papers and a decanter of
+brandy. He poured out a glass of the liquor and offered it to
+Mason. The man shook his head. Walcott poured the contents of the
+glass down his own throat. Then he set the decanter down and drew
+up a chair on the side of the table opposite Mason.
+
+"Sir," said Walcott, in a voice deliberate, indeed, but as hollow
+as a sepulcher, "I am done for. God has finally gathered up the
+ends of the net, and it is knotted tight."
+
+"Am I not here to help you?" said Mason, turning savagely. "I can
+beat Fate. Give me the details of her trap."
+
+He bent forward and rested his arms on the table. His streaked
+gray hair was rumpled and on end, and his face was ugly. For a
+moment Walcott did not answer. He moved a little into the shadow;
+then he spread the bundle of old yellow papers out before him.
+
+"To begin with," he said, "I am a living lie, a gilded crime-made
+sham, every bit of me. There is not an honest piece anywhere. It
+is all lie. I am a liar and a thief before men. The property
+which I possess is not mine, but stolen from a dead man. The very
+name which I bear is not my own, but is the bastard child of a
+crime. I am more than all that--I am a murderer; a murderer before
+the law; a murderer before God; and worse than a murderer before
+the pure woman whom I love more than anything that God could make."
+
+He paused for a moment and wiped the perspiration from his face.
+
+"Sir," said Mason, "this is all drivel, infantile drivel. What you
+are is of no importance. How to get out is the problem, how to get
+out."
+
+Samuel Walcott leaned forward, poured out a glass of brandy and
+swallowed it.
+
+"Well," he said, speaking slowly, "my right name is Richard Warren.
+In the spring of 1879 I came to New York and fell in with the real
+Samuel Walcott, a young man with a little money and some property
+which his grandfather had left him. We became friends, and
+concluded to go to the far west together. Accordingly we scraped
+together what money we could lay our hands on, and landed in the
+gold-mining regions of California. We were young and
+inexperienced, and our money went rapidly. One April morning we
+drifted into a little shack camp, away up in the Sierra Nevadas,
+called Hell's Elbow. Here we struggled and starved for perhaps a
+year. Finally, in utter desperation, Walcott married the daughter
+of a Mexican gambler, who ran an eating house and a poker joint.
+With them we lived from hand to mouth in a wild God-forsaken way
+for several years. After a time the woman began to take a strange
+fancy to me. Walcott finally noticed it, and grew jealous.
+
+"One night, in a drunken brawl, we quarreled, and I killed him. It
+was late at night, and, beside the woman, there were four of us in
+the poker room,--the Mexican gambler, a half-breed devil called
+Cherubim Pete, Walcott, and myself. When Walcott fell, the half-
+breed whipped out his weapon, and fired at me across the table; but
+the woman, Nina San Croix, struck his arm, and, instead of killing
+me, as he intended, the bullet mortally wounded her father, the
+Mexican gambler. I shot the half-breed through the forehead, and
+turned round, expecting the woman to attack me. On the contrary,
+she pointed to the window, and bade me wait for her on the cross
+trail below.
+
+"It was fully three hours later before the woman joined me at the
+place indicated. She had a bag of gold dust, a few jewels that
+belonged to her father, and a package of papers. I asked her why
+she had stayed behind so long, and she replied that the men were
+not killed outright, and that she had brought a priest to them and
+waited until they had died. This was the truth, but not all the
+truth. Moved by superstition or foresight, the woman had induced
+the priest to take down the sworn statements of the two dying men,
+seal it, and give it to her. This paper she brought with her. All
+this I learned afterwards. At the time I knew nothing of this
+damning evidence.
+
+"We struck out together for the Pacific coast. The country was
+lawless. The privations we endured were almost past belief. At
+times the woman exhibited cunning and ability that were almost
+genius; and through it all, often in the very fingers of death, her
+devotion to me never wavered. It was doglike, and seemed to be her
+only object on earth. When we reached San Francisco, the woman put
+these papers into my hands." Walcott took up the yellow package,
+and pushed it across the table to Mason.
+
+"She proposed that I assume Walcott's name, and that we come boldly
+to New York and claim the property. I examined the papers, found a
+copy of the will by which Walcott inherited the property, a bundle
+of correspondence, and sufficient documentary evidence to establish
+his identity beyond the shadow of a doubt. Desperate gambler as I
+now was, I quailed before the daring plan of Nina San Croix. I
+urged that I, Richard Warren, would be known, that the attempted
+fraud would be detected and would result in investigation, and
+perhaps unearth the whole horrible matter.
+
+"The woman pointed out how much I resembled Walcott, what vast
+changes ten years of such life as we had led would naturally be
+expected to make in men, how utterly impossible it would be to
+trace back the fraud to Walcott's murder at Hell's Elbow, in the
+wild passes of the Sierra Nevadas. She bade me remember that we
+were both outcasts, both crime-branded, both enemies of man's law
+and God's; that we had nothing to lose; we were both sunk to the
+bottom. Then she laughed, and said that she had not found me a
+coward until now, but that if I had turned chicken-hearted, that
+was the end of it, of course. The result was, we sold the gold
+dust and jewels in San Francisco, took on such evidences of
+civilization as possible, and purchased passage to New York on the
+best steamer we could find.
+
+"I was growing to depend on the bold gambler spirit of this woman,
+Nina San Croix; I felt the need of her strong, profligate nature.
+She was of a queer breed and a queerer school. Her mother was the
+daughter of a Spanish engineer, and had been stolen by the Mexican,
+her father. She herself had been raised and educated as best might
+be in one of the monasteries along the Rio Grande, and had there
+grown to womanhood before her father, fleeing into the mountains of
+California, carried her with him.
+
+"When we landed in New York I offered to announce her as my wife,
+but she refused, saying that her presence would excite comment and
+perhaps attract the attention of Walcott's relatives. We therefore
+arranged that I should go alone into the city, claim the property,
+and announce myself as Samuel Walcott, and that she should remain
+under cover until such time as we would feel the ground safe under
+us.
+
+"Every detail of the plan was fatally successful. I established my
+identity without difficulty and secured the property. It had
+increased vastly in value, and I, as Samuel Walcott, soon found
+myself a rich man. I went to Nina San Croix in hiding and gave her
+a large sum of money, with which she purchased a residence in a
+retired part of the city, far up in the northern suburb. Here she
+lived secluded and unknown while I remained in the city, living
+here as a wealthy bachelor.
+
+"I did not attempt to abandon the woman, but went to her from time
+to time in disguise and under cover of the greatest secrecy. For a
+time everything ran smooth, the woman was still devoted to me above
+everything else, and thought always of my welfare first and seemed
+content to wait so long as I thought best. My business expanded.
+I was sought after and consulted and drawn into the higher life of
+New York, and more and more felt that the woman was an albatross on
+my neck. I put her off with one excuse after another. Finally she
+began to suspect me and demanded that I should recognize her as my
+wife. I attempted to point out the difficulties. She met them all
+by saying that we should both go to Spain, there I could marry her
+and we could return to America and drop into my place in society
+without causing more than a passing comment.
+
+"I concluded to meet the matter squarely once for all. I said that
+I would convert half of the property into money and give it to her,
+but that I would not marry her. She did not fly into a storming
+rage as I had expected, but went quietly out of the room and
+presently returned with two papers, which she read. One was the
+certificate of her marriage to Walcott duly authenticated; the
+other was the dying statement of her father, the Mexican gambler,
+and of Samuel Walcott, charging me with murder. It was in proper
+form and certified by the Jesuit priest.
+
+"'Now,' she said, sweetly, when she had finished, 'which do you
+prefer, to recognize your wife, or to turn all the property over to
+Samuel Walcott's widow and hang for his murder?'
+
+"I was dumfounded and horrified. I saw the trap that I was in and
+I consented to do anything she should say if she would only destroy
+the papers. This she refused to do. I pleaded with her and
+implored her to destroy them. Finally she gave them to me with a
+great show of returning confidence, and I tore them into bits and
+threw them into the fire.
+
+"That was three months ago. We arranged to go to Spain and do as
+she said. She was to sail this morning and I was to follow. Of
+course I never intended to go. I congratulated myself on the fact
+that all trace of evidence against me was destroyed and that her
+grip was now broken. My plan was to induce her to sail, believing
+that I would follow. When she was gone I would marry Miss St.
+Clair, and if Nina San Croix should return I would defy her and
+lock her up as a lunatic. But I was reckoning like an infernal
+ass, to imagine for a moment that I could thus hoodwink such a
+woman as Nina San Croix.
+
+"To-night I received this." Walcott took the envelope from his
+pocket and gave it to Mason. "You saw the effect of it; read it
+and you will understand why. I felt the death hand when I saw her
+writing on the envelope."
+
+Mason took the paper from the envelope. It was written in Spanish,
+and ran:
+
+
+"Greeting to RICHARD WARREN.
+
+"The great Senor does his little Nina injustice to think she would
+go away to Spain and leave him to the beautiful American. She is
+not so thoughtless. Before she goes, she shall be, Oh so very
+rich! and the dear Senor shall be, Oh so very safe! The Archbishop
+and the kind Church hate murderers.
+
+"NINA SAN CROIX.
+
+"Of course, fool, the papers you destroyed were copies.
+
+"N. SAN C."
+
+
+To this was pinned a line in a delicate aristocratic hand saying
+that the Archbishop would willingly listen to Madam San Croix's
+statement if she would come to him on Friday morning at eleven.
+
+"You see," said Walcott, desperately, "there is no possible way
+out. I know the woman--when she decides to do a thing that is the
+end of it. She has decided to do this."
+
+Mason turned around from the table, stretched out his long legs,
+and thrust his hands deep into his pockets. Walcott sat with his
+head down, watching Mason hopelessly, almost indifferently, his
+face blank and sunken. The ticking of the bronze clock on the
+mantel shelf was loud, painfully loud. Suddenly Mason drew his
+knees in and bent over, put both his bony hands on the table, and
+looked at Walcott.
+
+"Sir," he said, "this matter is in such shape that there is only
+one thing to do. This growth must be cut out at the roots, and cut
+out quickly. This is the first fact to be determined, and a fool
+would know it. The second fact is that you must do it yourself.
+Hired killers are like the grave and the daughters of the horse
+leech,--they cry always, 'Give, Give.' They are only palliatives,
+not cures. By using them you swap perils. You simply take a stay
+of execution at best. The common criminal would know this. These
+are the facts of your problem. The master plotters of crime would
+see here but two difficulties to meet:
+
+"A practical method for accomplishing the body of the crime.
+
+"A cover for the criminal agent.
+
+"They would see no farther, and attempt to guard no farther. After
+they had provided a plan for the killing, and a means by which the
+killer could cover his trail and escape from the theater of the
+homicide, they would believe all the requirements of the problems
+met, and would stop. The greatest, the very giants among them,
+have stopped here and have been in great error.
+
+"In every crime, especially in the great ones, there exists a third
+element, preeminently vital. This third element the master
+plotters have either overlooked or else have not had the genius to
+construct. They plan with rare cunning to baffle the victim. They
+plan with vast wisdom, almost genius, to baffle the trailer. But
+they fail utterly to provide any plan for baffling the punisher.
+Ergo, their plots are fatally defective and often result in ruin.
+Hence the vital necessity for providing the third element--the
+escape ipso jure."
+
+Mason arose, walked around the table, and put his hand firmly on
+Samuel Walcott's shoulder. "This must be done to-morrow night," he
+continued; "you must arrange your business matters to-morrow and
+announce that you are going on a yacht cruise, by order of your
+physician, and may not return for some weeks. You must prepare
+your yacht for a voyage, instruct your men to touch at a certain
+point on Staten Island, and wait until six o'clock day after
+tomorrow morning. If you do not come aboard by that time, they are
+to go to one of the South American ports and remain until further
+orders. By this means your absence for an indefinite period will
+be explained. You will go to Nina San Croix in the disguise which
+you have always used, and from her to the yacht, and by this means
+step out of your real status and back into it without leaving
+traces. I will come here to-morrow evening and furnish you with
+everything that you shall need and give you full and exact
+instructions in every particular. These details you must execute
+with the greatest care, as they will be vitally essential to the
+success of my plan."
+
+Through it all Walcott had been silent and motionless. Now he
+arose, and in his face there must have been some premonition of
+protest, for Mason stepped back and put out his hand. "Sir," he
+said, with brutal emphasis, "not a word. Remember that you are
+only the hand, and the hand does not think." Then he turned around
+abruptly and went out of the house.
+
+
+III
+
+
+The place which Samuel Walcott had selected for the residence of
+Nina San Croix was far up in the northern suburb of New York. The
+place was very old. The lawn was large and ill kept; the house, a
+square old-fashioned brick, was set far back from the street, and
+partly hidden by trees. Around it all was a rusty iron fence. The
+place had the air of genteel ruin, such as one finds in the
+Virginias.
+
+On a Thursday of November, about three o'clock in the afternoon, a
+little man, driving a dray, stopped in the alley at the rear of the
+house. As he opened the back gate an old negro woman came down the
+steps from the kitchen and demanded to know what he wanted. The
+drayman asked if the lady of the house was in. The old negro
+answered that she was asleep at this hour and could not be seen.
+
+"That is good," said the little man, "now there won't be any row.
+I brought up some cases of wine which she ordered from our house
+last week and which the Boss told me to deliver at once, but I
+forgot it until to-day. Just let me put it in the cellar now,
+Auntie, and don't say a word to the lady about it and she won't
+ever know that it was not brought up on time."
+
+The drayman stopped, fished a silver dollar out of his pocket, and
+gave it to the old negro. "There now, Auntie," he said, "my job
+depends upon the lady not knowing about this wine; keep it mum."
+
+"Dat's all right, honey," said the old servant, beaming like a May
+morning. "De cellar door is open, carry it all in and put it in de
+back part and nobody ain't never going to know how long it has been
+in dar."
+
+The old negro went back into the kitchen and the little man began
+to unload the dray. He carried in five wine cases and stowed them
+away in the back part of the cellar as the old woman had directed.
+Then, after having satisfied himself that no one was watching, he
+took from the dray two heavy paper sacks, presumably filled with
+flour, and a little bundle wrapped in an old newspaper; these he
+carefully hid behind the wine cases in the cellar. After awhile he
+closed the door, climbed on his dray, and drove off down the alley.
+
+About eight o'clock in the evening of the same day, a Mexican
+sailor dodged in the front gate and slipped down to the side of the
+house. He stopped by the window and tapped on it with his finger.
+In a moment a woman opened the door. She was tall, lithe, and
+splendidly proportioned, with a dark Spanish face and straight
+hair. The man stepped inside. The woman bolted the door and
+turned round.
+
+"Ah," she said, smiling, "it is you, Senor? How good of you!"
+
+The man started. "Whom else did you expect?" he said quickly.
+
+"Oh!" laughed the woman, "perhaps the Archbishop."
+
+"Nina!" said the man, in a broken voice that expressed love,
+humility, and reproach. His face was white under the black
+sunburn.
+
+For a moment the woman wavered. A shadow flitted over her eyes,
+then she stepped back. "No," she said, "not yet."
+
+The man walked across to the fire, sank down in a chair, and
+covered his face with his hands. The woman stepped up noiselessly
+behind him and leaned over the chair. The man was either in great
+agony or else he was a superb actor, for the muscles of his neck
+twitched violently and his shoulders trembled.
+
+"Oh," he muttered, as though echoing his thoughts, "I can't do it,
+I can't!"
+
+The woman caught the words and leaped up as though some one had
+struck her in the face. She threw back her head. Her nostrils
+dilated and her eyes flashed.
+
+"You can't do it!" she cried. "Then you do love her! You shall do
+it! Do you hear me? You shall do it! You killed him! You got
+rid of him! but you shall not get rid of me. I have the evidence,
+all of it. The Archbishop will have it to-morrow. They shall hang
+you! Do you hear me? They shall hang you!"
+
+The woman's voice rose, it was loud and shrill. The man turned
+slowly round without looking up, and stretched out his arms toward
+the woman. She stopped and looked down at him. The fire glittered
+for a moment and then died out of her eyes, her bosom heaved and
+her lips began to tremble. With a cry she flung herself into his
+arms, caught him around the neck, and pressed his face up close
+against her cheek.
+
+"Oh! Dick, Dick," she sobbed, "I do love you so! I can't live
+without you! Not another hour, Dick! I do want you so much, so
+much, Dick!"
+
+The man shifted his right arm quickly, slipped a great Mexican
+knife out of his sleeve, and passed his fingers slowly up the
+woman's side until he felt the heart beat under his hand, then he
+raised the knife, gripped the handle tight, and drove the keen
+blade into the woman's bosom. The hot blood gushed out over his
+arm, and down on his leg. The body, warm and limp, slipped down in
+his arms. The man got up, pulled out the knife, and thrust it into
+a sheath at his belt, unbuttoned the dress, and slipped it off of
+the body. As he did this a bundle of papers dropped upon the
+floor; these he glanced at hastily and put into his pocket. Then
+he took the dead woman up in his arms, went out into the hall, and
+started to go up the stairway. The body was relaxed and heavy, and
+for that reason difficult to carry. He doubled it up into an awful
+heap, with the knees against the chin, and walked slowly and
+heavily up the stairs and out into the bathroom. There he laid the
+corpse down on the tiled floor. Then he opened the window, closed
+the shutters, and lighted the gas. The bathroom was small and
+contained an ordinary steel tub, porcelain lined, standing near the
+window and raised about six inches above the floor. The sailor
+went over to the tub, pried up the metal rim of the outlet with his
+knife, removed it, and fitted into its place a porcelain disk which
+he took from his pocket; to this disk was attached a long platinum
+wire, the end of which he fastened on the outside of the tub.
+After he had done this he went back to the body, stripped off its
+clothing, put it down in the tub and began to dismember it with the
+great Mexican knife. The blade was strong and sharp as a razor.
+The man worked rapidly and with the greatest care.
+
+When he had finally cut the body into as small pieces as possible,
+he replaced the knife in its sheath, washed his hands, and went out
+of the bathroom and downstairs to the lower hall. The sailor
+seemed perfectly familiar with the house. By a side door he passed
+into the cellar. There he lighted the gas, opened one of the wine
+cases, and, taking up all the bottles that he could conveniently
+carry, returned to the bathroom. There he poured the contents into
+the tub on the dismembered body, and then returned to the cellar
+with the empty bottles, which he replaced in the wine cases. This
+he continued to do until all the cases but one were emptied and the
+bath tub was more than half full of liquid. This liquid was
+sulphuric acid.
+
+When the sailor returned to the cellar with the last empty wine
+bottles, he opened the fifth case, which really contained wine,
+took some of it out, and poured a little into each of the empty
+bottles in order to remove any possible odor of the sulphuric acid.
+Then he turned out the gas and brought up to the bathroom with him
+the two paper flour sacks and the little heavy bundle. These sacks
+were filled with nitrate of soda. He set them down by the door,
+opened the little bundle, and took out two long rubber tubes, each
+attached to a heavy gas burner, not unlike the ordinary burners of
+a small gas stove. He fastened the tubes to two of the gas jets,
+put the burners under the tub, turned the gas on full, and lighted
+it. Then he threw into the tub the woman's clothing and the papers
+which he had found on her body, after which he took up the two
+heavy sacks of nitrate of soda and dropped them carefully into the
+sulphuric acid. When he had done this he went quickly out of the
+bathroom and closed the door.
+
+The deadly acids at once attacked the body and began to destroy it;
+as the heat increased, the acids boiled and the destructive process
+was rapid and awful. From time to time the sailor opened the door
+of the bathroom cautiously, and, holding a wet towel over his mouth
+and nose, looked in at his horrible work. At the end of a few
+hours there was only a swimming mass in the tub. When the man
+looked at four o'clock, it was all a thick murky liquid. He turned
+off the gas quickly and stepped back out of the room. For perhaps
+half an hour he waited in the hall; finally, when the acids had
+cooled so that they no longer gave off fumes, he opened the door
+and went in, took hold of the platinum wire and, pulling the
+porcelain disk from the stopcock, allowed the awful contents of the
+tub to run out. Then he turned on the hot water, rinsed the tub
+clean, and replaced the metal outlet. Removing the rubber tubes,
+he cut them into pieces, broke the porcelain disk, and, rolling up
+the platinum wire, washed it all down the sewer pipe.
+
+The fumes had escaped through the open window; this he now closed
+and set himself to putting the bathroom in order, and effectually
+removing every trace of his night's work. The sailor moved around
+with the very greatest degree of care. Finally, when he had
+arranged everything to his complete satisfaction, he picked up the
+two burners, turned out the gas, and left the bathroom, closing the
+door after him. From the bathroom he went directly to the attic,
+concealed the two rusty burners under a heap of rubbish, and then
+walked carefully and noiselessly down the stairs and through the
+lower hall. As he opened the door and stepped into the room where
+he had killed the woman, two police officers sprang out and seized
+him. The man screamed like a wild beast taken in a trap and sank
+down.
+
+"Oh! oh!" he cried, "it was no use! it was no use to do it!" Then
+he recovered himself in a manner and was silent. The officers
+handcuffed him, summoned the patrol, and took him at once to the
+station house. There he said he was a Mexican sailor and that his
+name was Victor Ancona; but he would say nothing further. The
+following morning he sent for Randolph Mason and the two were long
+together.
+
+
+IV
+
+
+The obscure defendant charged with murder has little reason to
+complain of the law's delays. The morning following the arrest of
+Victor Ancona, the newspapers published long sensational articles,
+denounced him as a fiend, and convicted him. The grand jury, as it
+happened, was in session. The preliminaries were soon arranged and
+the case was railroaded into trial. The indictment contained a
+great many counts, and charged the prisoner with the murder of Nina
+San Croix by striking, stabbing, choking, poisoning, and so forth.
+
+The trial had continued for three days and had appeared so
+overwhelmingly one-sided that the spectators who were crowded in
+the court room had grown to be violent and bitter partisans, to
+such an extent that the police watched them closely. The attorneys
+for the People were dramatic and denunciatory, and forced their
+case with arrogant confidence. Mason, as counsel for the prisoner,
+was indifferent and listless. Throughout the entire trial he had
+sat almost motionless at the table, his gaunt form bent over, his
+long legs drawn up under his chair, and his weary, heavy-muscled
+face, with its restless eyes, fixed and staring out over the heads
+of the jury, was like a tragic mask. The bar, and even the judge,
+believed that the prisoner's counsel had abandoned his case.
+
+The evidence was all in and the People rested. It had been shown
+that Nina San Croix had resided for many years in the house in
+which the prisoner was arrested; that she had lived by herself,
+with no other companion than an old negro servant; that her past
+was unknown, and that she received no visitors, save the Mexican
+sailor, who came to her house at long intervals. Nothing whatever
+was shown tending to explain who the prisoner was or whence he had
+come. It was shown that on Tuesday preceding the killing the
+Archbishop had received a communication from Nina San Croix, in
+which she said she desired to make a statement of the greatest
+import, and asking for an audience. To this the Archbishop replied
+that he would willingly grant her a hearing if she would come to
+him at eleven o'clock on Friday morning. Two policemen testified
+that about eight o'clock on the night of Thursday they had noticed
+the prisoner slip into the gate of Nina San Croix's residence and
+go down to the side of the house, where he was admitted; that his
+appearance and seeming haste had attracted their attention; that
+they had concluded that it was some clandestine amour, and out of
+curiosity had both slipped down to the house and endeavored to find
+a position from which they could see into the room, but were unable
+to do so, and were about to go back to the street when they heard a
+woman's voice cry out in, great anger: "I know that you love her
+and that you want to get rid of me, but you shall not do it! You
+murdered him, but you shall not murder me! I have all the evidence
+to convict you of murdering him! The Archbishop will have it to-
+morrow! They shall hang you! Do you hear me? They shall hang you
+for this murder!" that thereupon one of the policemen proposed that
+they should break into the house and see what was wrong, but the
+other had urged that it was only the usual lovers' quarrel and if
+they should interfere they would find nothing upon which a charge
+could be based and would only be laughed at by the chief; that they
+had waited and listened for a time, but hearing nothing further had
+gone back to the street and contented themselves with keeping a
+strict watch on the house.
+
+The People proved further, that on Thursday evening Nina San Croix
+had given the old negro domestic a sum of money and dismissed her,
+with the instruction that she was not to return until sent for.
+The old woman testified that she had gone directly to the house of
+her son, and later had discovered that she had forgotten some
+articles of clothing which she needed; that thereupon she had
+returned to the house and had gone up the back way to her room,--
+this was about eight o'clock; that while there she had heard Nina
+San Croix's voice in great passion and remembered that she had used
+the words stated by the policemen; that these sudden, violent cries
+had frightened her greatly and she had bolted the door and been
+afraid to leave the room; shortly thereafter, she had heard heavy
+footsteps ascending the stairs, slowly and with great difficulty,
+as though some one were carrying a heavy burden; that therefore her
+fear had increased and that she had put out the light and hidden
+under the bed. She remembered hearing the footsteps moving about
+upstairs for many hours, how long she could not tell. Finally,
+about half-past four in the morning, she crept out, opened the
+door, slipped downstairs, and ran out into the street. There she
+had found the policemen and requested them to search the house.
+
+The two officers had gone to the house with the woman. She had
+opened the door and they had had just time to step back into the
+shadow when the prisoner entered. When arrested, Victor Ancona had
+screamed with terror, and cried out, "It was no use! it was no use
+to do it!"
+
+The Chief of Police had come to the house and instituted a careful
+search. In the room below, from which the cries had come, he found
+a dress which was identified as belonging to Nina San Croix and
+which she was wearing when last seen by the domestic, about six
+o'clock that evening. This dress was covered with blood, and had a
+slit about two inches long in the left side of the bosom, into
+which the Mexican knife, found on the prisoner, fitted perfectly.
+These articles were introduced in evidence, and it was shown that
+the slit would be exactly over the heart of the wearer, and that
+such a wound would certainly result in death. There was much blood
+on one of the chairs and on the floor. There was also blood on the
+prisoner's coat and the leg of his trousers, and the heavy Mexican
+knife was also bloody. The blood was shown by the experts to be
+human blood.
+
+The body of the woman was not found, and the most rigid and
+tireless search failed to develop the slightest trace of the
+corpse, or the manner of its disposal. The body of the woman had
+disappeared as completely as though it had vanished into the air.
+
+When counsel announced that he had closed for the People, the judge
+turned and looked gravely down at Mason. "Sir," he said, "the
+evidence for the defense may now be introduced."
+
+Randolph Mason arose slowly and faced the judge.
+
+"If your Honor please," he said, speaking slowly and distinctly,
+"the defendant has no evidence to offer." He paused while a murmur
+of astonishment ran over the court room. "But, if your Honor
+please," he continued, "I move that the jury be directed to find
+the prisoner not guilty."
+
+The crowd stirred. The counsel for the People smiled. The judge
+looked sharply at the speaker over his glasses. "On what ground?"
+he said curtly.
+
+"On the ground," replied Mason, "that the corpus delicti has not
+been proven."
+
+"Ah!" said the judge, for once losing his judicial gravity. Mason
+sat down abruptly. The senior counsel for the prosecution was on
+his feet in a moment.
+
+"What!" he said, "the gentleman bases his motion on a failure to
+establish the corpus delicti? Does he jest, or has he forgotten
+the evidence? The term 'corpus delicti' is technical, and means
+the body of the crime, or the substantial fact that a crime has
+been committed. Does anyone doubt it in this case? It is true
+that no one actually saw the prisoner kill the decedent, and that
+he has so successfully hidden the body that it has not been found,
+but the powerful chain of circumstances, clear and close-linked,
+proving motive, the criminal agency, and the criminal act, is
+overwhelming.
+
+"The victim in this case is on the eve of making a statement that
+would prove fatal to the prisoner. The night before the statement
+is to be made he goes to her residence. They quarrel. Her voice
+is heard, raised high in the greatest passion, denouncing him, and
+charging that he is a murderer, that she has the evidence and will
+reveal it, that he shall be hanged, and that he shall not be rid of
+her. Here is the motive for the crime, clear as light. Are not
+the bloody knife, the bloody dress, the bloody clothes of the
+prisoner, unimpeachable witnesses to the criminal act? The
+criminal agency of the prisoner has not the shadow of a possibility
+to obscure it. His motive is gigantic. The blood on him, and his
+despair when arrested, cry 'Murder! murder!' with a thousand
+tongues.
+
+"Men may lie, but circumstances cannot. The thousand hopes and
+fears and passions of men may delude, or bias the witness. Yet it
+is beyond the human mind to conceive that a clear, complete chain
+of concatenated circumstances can be in error. Hence it is that
+the greatest jurists have declared that such evidence, being rarely
+liable to delusion or fraud, is safest and most powerful. The
+machinery of human justice cannot guard against the remote and
+improbable doubt. The inference is persistent in the affairs of
+men. It is the only means by which the human mind reaches the
+truth. If you forbid the jury to exercise it, you bid them work
+after first striking off their hands. Rule out the irresistible
+inference, and the end of justice is come in this land; and you may
+as well leave the spider to weave his web through the abandoned
+court room."
+
+The attorney stopped, looked down at Mason with a pompous sneer,
+and retired to his place at the table. The judge sat thoughtful
+and motionless. The jurymen leaned forward in their seats.
+
+"If your Honor please," said Mason, rising, "this is a matter of
+law, plain, clear, and so well settled in the State of New York
+that even counsel for the People should know it. The question
+before your Honor is simple. If the corpus delicti, the body of
+the crime, has been proven, as required by the laws of the
+commonwealth, then this case should go to the jury. If not, then
+it is the duty of this Court to direct the jury to find the
+prisoner not guilty. There is here no room for judicial
+discretion. Your Honor has but to recall and apply the rigid rule
+announced by our courts prescribing distinctly how the corpus
+delicti in murder must be proven.
+
+"The prisoner here stands charged with the highest crime. The law
+demands, first, that the crime, as a fact, be established. The
+fact that the victim is indeed dead must first be made certain
+before anyone can be convicted for her killing, because, so long as
+there remains the remotest doubt as to the death, there can be no
+certainty as to the criminal agent, although the circumstantial
+evidence indicating the guilt of the accused may be positive,
+complete, and utterly irresistible. In murder, the corpus delicti,
+or body of the crime, is composed of two elements:
+
+"Death, as a result.
+
+"The criminal agency of another as the means.
+
+It is the fixed and immutable law of this State, laid down in the
+leading case of Ruloff v. The People, and binding upon this Court,
+that both components of the corpus delicti shall not be established
+by circumstantial evidence. There must be direct proof of one or
+the other of these two component elements of the corpus delicti.
+If one is proven by direct evidence, the other may be presumed; but
+both shall not be presumed from circumstances, no matter how
+powerful, how cogent, or how completely overwhelming the
+circumstances may be. In other words, no man can be convicted of
+murder in the State of New York, unless the body of the victim be
+found and identified, or there be direct proof that the prisoner
+did some act adequate to produce death, and did it in such a manner
+as to account for the disappearance of the body."
+
+The face of the judge cleared and grew hard. The members of the
+bar were attentive and alert; they were beginning to see the legal
+escape open up. The audience were puzzled; they did not yet
+understand. Mason turned to the counsel for the People. His ugly
+face was bitter with contempt.
+
+"For three days," he said," I have been tortured by this useless
+and expensive farce. If counsel for the People had been other than
+play-actors, they would have known in the beginning that Victor
+Ancona could not be convicted for murder, unless he were confronted
+in this court room with a living witness, who had looked into the
+dead face of Nina San Croix; or, if not that, a living witness who
+had seen him drive the dagger into her bosom.
+
+"I care not if the circumstantial evidence in this case were so
+strong and irresistible as to be overpowering; if the judge on the
+bench, if the jury, if every man within sound of my voice, were
+convinced of the guilt of the prisoner to the degree of certainty
+that is absolute; if the circumstantial evidence left in the mind
+no shadow of the remotest improbable doubt; yet, in the absence of
+the eyewitness, this prisoner cannot be punished, and this Court
+must compel the jury to acquit him."
+
+The audience now understood, and they were dumfounded. Surely this
+was not the law. They had been taught that the law was common
+sense, and this,--this was anything else.
+
+Mason saw it all, and grinned. "In its tenderness," he sneered,
+"the law shields the innocent. The good law of New York reaches
+out its hand and lifts the prisoner out of the clutches of the
+fierce jury that would hang him."
+
+Mason sat down. The room was silent. The jurymen looked at each
+other in amazement. The counsel for the People arose. His face
+was white with anger, and incredulous.
+
+"Your Honor," he said, "this doctrine is monstrous. Can it be said
+that, in order to evade punishment, the murderer has only to hide
+or destroy the body of the victim, or sink it into the sea? Then,
+if he is not seen to kill, the law is powerless and the murderer
+can snap his finger in the face of retributive justice. If this is
+the law, then the law for the highest crime is a dead letter. The
+great commonwealth winks at murder and invites every man to kill
+his enemy, provided he kill him in secret and hide him. I repeat,
+your Honor,"--the man's voice was now loud and angry and rang
+through the court room--"that this doctrine is monstrous!"
+
+"So said Best, and Story, and many another," muttered Mason, "and
+the law remained."
+
+"The Court," said the judge, abruptly, "desires no further
+argument."
+
+The counsel for the People resumed his seat. His face lighted up
+with triumph. The Court was going to sustain him.
+
+The judge turned and looked down at the jury. He was grave, and
+spoke with deliberate emphasis.
+
+"Gentlemen of the jury," he said, "the rule of Lord Hale obtains in
+this State and is binding upon me. It is the law as stated by
+counsel for the prisoner: that to warrant conviction of murder
+there must be direct proof either of the death, as of the finding
+and identification of the corpse, or of criminal violence adequate
+to produce death, and exerted in such a manner as to account for
+the disappearance of the body; and it is only when there is direct
+proof of the one that the other can be established by
+circumstantial evidence. This is the law, and cannot now be
+departed from. I do not presume to explain its wisdom. Chief-
+Justice Johnson has observed, in the leading case, that it may have
+its probable foundation in the idea that where direct proof is
+absent as to both the fact of the death and of criminal violence
+capable of producing death, no evidence can rise to the degree of
+moral certainty that the individual is dead by criminal
+intervention, or even lead by direct inference to this result; and
+that, where the fact of death is not certainly ascertained, all
+inculpatory circumstantial evidence wants the key necessary for its
+satisfactory interpretation, and cannot be depended on to furnish
+more than probable results. It may be, also, that such a rule has
+some reference to the dangerous possibility that a general
+preconception of guilt, or a general excitement of popular feeling,
+may creep in to supply the place of evidence, if, upon other than
+direct proof of death or a cause of death, a jury are permitted to
+pronounce a prisoner guilty.
+
+"In this case the body has not been found and there is no direct
+proof of criminal agency on the part of the prisoner, although the
+chain of circumstantial evidence is complete and irresistible in
+the highest degree. Nevertheless, it is all circumstantial
+evidence, and under the laws of New York the prisoner cannot be
+punished. I have no right of discretion. The law does not permit
+a conviction in this case, although every one of us may be morally
+certain of the prisoner's guilt. I am, therefore, gentlemen of the
+jury, compelled to direct you to find the prisoner not guilty."
+
+"Judge," interrupted the foreman, jumping up in the box, "we cannot
+find that verdict under our oath; we know that this man is guilty."
+
+"Sir," said the judge, "this is a matter of law in which the wishes
+of the jury cannot be considered. The clerk will write a verdict
+of not guilty, which you, as foreman, will sign."
+
+The spectators broke out into a threatening murmur that began to
+grow and gather volume. The judge rapped on his desk and ordered
+the bailiffs promptly to suppress any demonstration on the part of
+the audience. Then he directed the foreman to sign the verdict
+prepared by the clerk. When this was done he turned to Victor
+Ancona; his face was hard and there was a cold glitter in his eyes.
+
+"Prisoner at the bar," he said, "you have been put to trial before
+this tribunal on a charge of cold-blooded and atrocious murder.
+The evidence produced against you was of such powerful and
+overwhelming character that it seems to have left no doubt in the
+minds of the jury, nor indeed in the mind of any person present in
+this court room.
+
+"Had the question of your guilt been submitted to these twelve
+arbiters, a conviction would certainly have resulted and the death
+penalty would have been imposed. But the law, rigid, passionless,
+even-eyed, has thrust in between you and the wrath of your fellows
+and saved you from it. I do not cry out against the impotency of
+the law; it is perhaps as wise as imperfect humanity could make it.
+I deplore, rather, the genius of evil men who, by cunning design,
+are enabled to slip through the fingers of this law. I have no
+word of censure or admonition for you, Victor Ancona. The law of
+New York compels me to acquit you. I am only its mouthpiece, with
+my individual wishes throttled. I speak only those things which
+the law directs I shall speak.
+
+"You are now at liberty to leave this court room, not guiltless of
+the crime of murder, perhaps, but at least rid of its punishment.
+The eyes of men may see Cain's mark on your brow, but the eyes of
+the Law are blind to it."
+
+When the audience fully realized what the judge had said they were
+amazed and silent. They knew as well as men could know, that
+Victor Ancona was guilty of murder, and yet he was now going out of
+the court room free. Could it happen that the law protected only
+against the blundering rogue? They had heard always of the boasted
+completeness of the law which magistrates from time immemorial had
+labored to perfect, and now when the skillful villain sought to
+evade it, they saw how weak a thing it was.
+
+
+V
+
+
+The wedding march of Lohengrin floated out from the Episcopal
+Church of St. Mark, clear and sweet, and perhaps heavy with its
+paradox of warning. The theater of this coming contract before
+high heaven was a wilderness of roses worth the taxes of a county.
+The high caste of Manhattan, by the grace of the check book, were
+present, clothed in Parisian purple and fine linen, cunningly and
+marvelously wrought.
+
+Over in her private pew, ablaze with jewels, and decked with
+fabrics from the deft hand of many a weaver, sat Mrs. Miriam
+Steuvisant as imperious and self-complacent as a queen. To her it
+was all a kind of triumphal procession, proclaiming her ability as
+a general. With her were a choice few of the genus homo, which
+obtains at the five-o'clock teas, instituted, say the sages, for
+the purpose of sprinkling the holy water of Lethe.
+
+"Czarina," whispered Reggie Du Puyster, leaning forward, "I salute
+you. The ceremony sub jugum is superb."
+
+"Walcott is an excellent fellow," answered Mrs. Steuvisant; "not a
+vice, you know, Reggie."
+
+"Aye, Empress," put in the others, "a purist taken in the net. The
+clean-skirted one has come to the altar. Vive la vertu!"
+
+Samuel Walcott, still sunburned from his cruise, stood before the
+chancel with the only daughter of the blue blooded St. Clairs. His
+face was clear and honest and his voice firm. This was life and
+not romance. The lid of the sepulcher had closed and he had
+slipped from under it. And now, and ever after, the hand red with
+murder was clean as any.
+
+The minister raised his voice, proclaiming the holy union before
+God, and this twain, half pure, half foul, now by divine ordinance
+one flesh, bowed down before it. No blood cried from the ground.
+The sunlight of high noon streamed down through the window panes
+like a benediction.
+
+Back in the pew of Mrs. Miriam Steuvisant, Reggie Du Puyster turned
+down his thumb. "Habet!" he said.
+
+
+From "The Strange Schemes of Randolph Mason," by Melville Davisson
+Post. Copyright, 1896, by G. P. Putnam's Sons.
+
+
+
+Ambrose Bierce
+
+An Heiress from Redhorse
+
+
+CORONADO, June 20th.
+
+I find myself more and more interested in him. It is not, I am
+sure, his--do you know any noun corresponding to the adjective
+"handsome"? One does not like to say "beauty" when speaking of a
+man. He is handsome enough, heaven knows; I should not even care
+to trust you with him--faithful of all possible wives that you are--
+when he looks his best, as he always does. Nor do I think the
+fascination of his manner has much to do with it. You recollect
+that the charm of art inheres in that which is undefinable, and to
+you and me, my dear Irene, I fancy there is rather less of that in
+the branch of art under consideration than to girls in their first
+season. I fancy I know how my fine gentleman produces many of his
+effects, and could, perhaps, give him a pointer on heightening
+them. Nevertheless, his manner is something truly delightful. I
+suppose what interests me chiefly is the man's brains. His
+conversation is the best I have ever heard, and altogether unlike
+anyone's else. He seems to know everything, as, indeed, he ought,
+for he has been everywhere, read everything, seen all there is to
+see--sometimes I think rather more than is good for him--and had
+acquaintance with the QUEEREST people. And then his voice--Irene,
+when I hear it I actually feel as if I ought to have PAID AT THE
+DOOR, though, of course, it is my own door.
+
+
+July 3d.
+
+I fear my remarks about Dr. Barritz must have been, being
+thoughtless, very silly, or you would not have written of him with
+such levity, not to say disrespect. Believe me, dearest, he has
+more dignity and seriousness (of the kind, I mean, which is not
+inconsistent with a manner sometimes playful and always charming)
+than any of the men that you and I ever met. And young Raynor--you
+knew Raynor at Monterey--tells me that the men all like him, and
+that he is treated with something like deference everywhere. There
+is a mystery, too--something about his connection with the
+Blavatsky people in Northern India. Raynor either would not or
+could not tell me the particulars. I infer that Dr. Barritz is
+thought--don't you dare to laugh at me--a magician! Could anything
+be finer than that? An ordinary mystery is not, of course, as good
+as a scandal, but when it relates to dark and dreadful practices--
+to the exercise of unearthly powers--could anything be more
+piquant? It explains, too, the singular influence the man has upon
+me. It is the undefinable in his art--black art. Seriously, dear,
+I quite tremble when he looks me full in the eyes with those
+unfathomable orbs of his, which I have already vainly attempted to
+describe to you. How dreadful if we have the power to make one
+fall in love! Do you know if the Blavatsky crowd have that power--
+outside of Sepoy?
+
+
+July 1
+
+The strangest thing! Last evening while Auntie was attending one
+of the hotel hops (I hate them) Dr. Barritz called. It was
+scandalously late--I actually believe he had talked with Auntie in
+the ballroom, and learned from her that I was alone. I had been
+all the evening contriving how to worm out of him the truth about
+his connection with the Thugs in Sepoy, and all of that black
+business, but the moment he fixed his eyes on me (for I admitted
+him, I'm ashamed to say) I was helpless, I trembled, I blushed, I--
+O Irene, Irene, I love the man beyond expression, and you know how
+it is yourself!
+
+Fancy! I, an ugly duckling from Redhorse--daughter (they say) of
+old Calamity Jim--certainly his heiress, with no living relation
+but an absurd old aunt, who spoils me a thousand and fifty ways--
+absolutely destitute of everything but a million dollars and a hope
+in Paris--I daring to love a god like him! My dear, if I had you
+here, I could tear your hair out with mortification.
+
+I am convinced that he is aware of my feeling, for he stayed but a
+few moments, said nothing but what another man might have said half
+as well, and pretending that he had an engagement went away. I
+learned to-day (a little bird told me--the bell bird) that he went
+straight to bed. How does that strike you as evidence of exemplary
+habits?
+
+
+July 17th.
+
+That little wretch, Raynor, called yesterday, and his babble set me
+almost wild. He never runs down--that is to say, when he
+exterminates a score of reputations, more or less, he does not
+pause between one reputation and the next. (By the way, he
+inquired about you, and his manifestations of interest in you had,
+I confess, a good deal of vraisemblance.)
+
+Mr. Raynor observes no game laws; like Death (which he would
+inflict if slander were fatal) he has all seasons for his own. But
+I like him, for we knew one another at Redhorse when we were young
+and true-hearted and barefooted. He was known in those far fair
+days as "Giggles," and I--O Irene, can you ever forgive me?--I was
+called "Gunny." God knows why; perhaps in allusion to the material
+of my pinafores; perhaps because the name is in alliteration with
+"Giggles," for Gig and I were inseparable playmates, and the miners
+may have thought it a delicate compliment to recognize some kind of
+relationship between us.
+
+Later, we took in a third--another of Adversity's brood, who, like
+Garrick between Tragedy and Comedy, had a chronic inability to
+adjudicate the rival claims (to himself) of Frost and Famine.
+Between him and the grave there was seldom anything more than a
+single suspender and the hope of a meal which would at the same
+time support life and make it insupportable. He literally picked
+up a precarious living for himself and an aged mother by
+"chloriding the dumps," that is to say, the miners permitted him to
+search the heaps of waste rock for such pieces of "pay ore" as had
+been overlooked; and these he sacked up and sold at the Syndicate
+Mill. He became a member of our firm--"Gunny, Giggles, and Dumps,"
+thenceforth--through my favor; for I could not then, nor can I now,
+be indifferent to his courage and prowess in defending against
+Giggles the immemorial right of his sex to insult a strange and
+unprotected female--myself. After old Jim struck it in the
+Calamity, and I began to wear shoes and go to school, and in
+emulation Giggles took to washing his face, and became Jack Raynor,
+of Wells, Fargo & Co., and old Mrs. Barts was herself chlorided to
+her fathers, Dumps drifted over to San Juan Smith and turned stage
+driver, and was killed by road agents, and so forth.
+
+Why do I tell you all this, dear? Because it is heavy on my heart.
+Because I walk the Valley of Humility. Because I am subduing
+myself to permanent consciousness of my unworthiness to unloose the
+latchet of Dr. Barritz's shoe. Because-oh, dear, oh, dear--there's
+a cousin of Dumps at this hotel! I haven't spoken to him. I never
+had any acquaintance with him, but--do you suppose he has
+recognized me? Do, please, give me in your next your candid, sure-
+enough opinion about it, and say you don't think so. Do you think
+He knows about me already and that is why He left me last evening
+when He saw that I blushed and trembled like a fool under His eyes?
+You know I can't bribe ALL the newspapers, and I can't go back on
+anybody who was good to Gunny at Redhorse--not if I'm pitched out
+of society into the sea. So the skeleton sometimes rattles behind
+the door. I never cared much before, as you know, but now--NOW it
+is not the same. Jack Raynor I am sure of--he will not tell him.
+He seems, indeed, to hold him in such respect as hardly to dare
+speak to him at all, and I'm a good deal that way myself. Dear,
+dear! I wish I had something besides a million dollars! If Jack
+were three inches taller I'd marry him alive and go back to
+Redhorse and wear sackcloth again to the end of my miserable days.
+
+
+July 25th.
+
+We had a perfectly splendid sunset last evening, and I must tell
+you all about it. I ran away from Auntie and everybody, and was
+walking alone on the beach. I expect you to believe, you infidel!
+that I had not looked out of my window on the seaward side of the
+hotel and seen him walking alone on the beach. If you are not lost
+to every feeling of womanly delicacy you will accept my statement
+without question. I soon established myself under my sunshade and
+had for some time been gazing out dreamily over the sea, when he
+approached, walking close to the edge of the water--it was ebb
+tide. I assure you the wet sand actually brightened about his
+feet! As he approached me, he lifted his hat, saying: "Miss
+Dement, may I sit with you?--or will you walk with me?"
+
+The possibility that neither might be agreeable seems not to have
+occurred to him. Did you ever know such assurance? Assurance? My
+dear, it was gall, downright GALL! Well, I didn't find it
+wormwood, and replied, with my untutored Redhorse heart in my
+throat: "I--I shall be pleased to do ANYTHING." Could words have
+been more stupid? There are depths of fatuity in me, friend o' my
+soul, which are simply bottomless!
+
+He extended his hand, smiling, and I delivered mine into it without
+a moment's hesitation, and when his fingers closed about it to
+assist me to my feet, the consciousness that it trembled made me
+blush worse than the red west. I got up, however, and after a
+while, observing that he had not let go my hand, I pulled on it a
+little, but unsuccessfully. He simply held on, saying nothing, but
+looking down into my face with some kind of a smile--I didn't know--
+how could I?--whether it was affectionate, derisive, or what, for
+I did not look at him. How beautiful he was!--with the red fires
+of the sunset burning in the depths of his eyes. Do you know,
+dear, if the Thugs and Experts of the Blavatsky region have any
+special kind of eyes? Ah, you should have seen his superb
+attitude, the godlike inclination of his head as he stood over me
+after I had got upon my feet! It was a noble picture, but I soon
+destroyed it, for I began at once to sink again to the earth.
+There was only one thing for him to do, and he did it; he supported
+me with an arm about my waist.
+
+"Miss Dement, are you ill?" he said.
+
+It was not an exclamation; there was neither alarm nor solicitude
+in it. If he had added: "I suppose that is about what I am
+expected to say," he would hardly have expressed his sense of the
+situation more clearly. His manner filled me with shame and
+indignation, for I was suffering acutely. I wrenched my hand out
+of his, grasped the arm supporting me, and, pushing myself free,
+fell plump into the sand and sat helpless. My hat had fallen off
+in the struggle, and my hair tumbled about my face and shoulders in
+the most mortifying way.
+
+"Go away from me," I cried, half choking. "Oh, PLEASE go away,
+you--you Thug! How dare you think THAT when my leg is asleep?"
+
+I actually said those identical words! And then I broke down and
+sobbed. Irene, I BLUBBERED!
+
+His manner altered in an instant--I could see that much through my
+fingers and hair. He dropped on one knee beside me, parted the
+tangle of hair, and said, in the tenderest way: My poor girl, God
+knows I have not intended to pain you. How should I?--I who love
+you--I who have loved you for--for years and years!"
+
+He had pulled my wet hands away from my face and was covering them
+with kisses. My cheeks were like two coals, my whole face was
+flaming and, I think, steaming. What could I do? I hid it on his
+shoulder--there was no other place. And, oh, my dear friend, how
+my leg tingled and thrilled, and how I wanted to kick!
+
+We sat so for a long time. He had released one of my hands to pass
+his arm about me again, and I possessed myself of my handkerchief
+and was drying my eyes and my nose. I would not look up until that
+was done; he tried in vain to push me a little away and gaze into
+my eyes. Presently, when it was all right, and it had grown a bit
+dark, I lifted my head, looked him straight in the eyes, and smiled
+my best--my level best, dear.
+
+"What do you mean," I said, "by 'years and years'?"
+
+"Dearest," he replied, very gravely, very earnestly, "in the
+absence of the sunken cheeks, the hollow eyes, the lank hair, the
+slouching gait, the rags, dirt, and youth, can you not--will you
+not understand? Gunny, I'm Dumps!"
+
+In a moment I was upon my feet and he upon his. I seized him by
+the lapels of his coat and peered into his handsome face in the
+deepening darkness. I was breathless with excitement.
+
+"And you are not dead?" I asked, hardly knowing what I said.
+
+"Only dead in love, dear. I recovered from the road agent's
+bullet, but this, I fear, is fatal."
+
+"But about Jack--Mr. Raynor? Don't you know--"
+
+"I am ashamed to say, darling, that it was through that unworthy
+person's invitation that I came here from Vienna."
+
+Irene, they have played it upon your affectionate friend,
+
+MARY JANE DEMENT.
+
+
+P.S.--The worst of it is that there is no mystery. That was an
+invention of Jack to arouse my curiosity and interest. James is
+not a Thug. He solemnly assures me that in all his wanderings he
+has never set foot in Sepoy.
+
+
+
+The Man and the Snake
+
+
+I
+
+
+It is of veritabyll report, and attested of so many that there be
+nowe of wyse and learned none to gaynsaye it, that ye serpente hys
+eye hath a magnetick propertie that whosoe falleth into its svasion
+is drawn forwards in despyte of his wille, and perisheth miserabyll
+by ye creature hys byte.
+
+
+Stretched at ease upon a sofa, in gown and slippers, Harker Brayton
+smiled as he read the foregoing sentence in old Morryster's
+"Marvells of Science." "The only marvel in the matter," he said to
+himself, "is that the wise and learned in Morryster's day should
+have believed such nonsense as is rejected by most of even the
+ignorant in ours."
+
+A train of reflections followed--for Brayton was a man of thought--
+and he unconsciously lowered his book without altering the
+direction of his eyes. As soon as the volume had gone below the
+line of sight, something in an obscure corner of the room recalled
+his attention to his surroundings. What he saw, in the shadow
+under his bed, were two small points of light, apparently about an
+inch apart. They might have been reflections of the gas jet above
+him, in metal nail heads; he gave them but little thought and
+resumed his reading. A moment later something--some impulse which
+it did not occur to him to analyze--impelled him to lower the book
+again and seek for what he saw before. The points of light were
+still there. They seemed to have become brighter than before,
+shining with a greenish luster which he had not at first observed.
+He thought, too, that they might have moved a trifle--were somewhat
+nearer. They were still too much in the shadow, however, to reveal
+their nature and origin to an indolent attention, and he resumed
+his reading. Suddenly something in the text suggested a thought
+which made him start and drop the book for the third time to the
+side of the sofa, whence, escaping from his hand, it fell sprawling
+to the floor, back upward. Brayton, half-risen, was staring
+intently into the obscurity beneath the bed, where the points of
+light shone with, it seemed to him, an added fire. His attention
+was now fully aroused, his gaze eager and imperative. It
+disclosed, almost directly beneath the foot rail of the bed, the
+coils of a large serpent--the points of light were its eyes! Its
+horrible head, thrust flatly forth from the innermost coil and
+resting upon the outermost, was directed straight toward him, the
+definition of the wide, brutal jaw and the idiotlike forehead
+serving to show the direction of its malevolent gaze. The eyes
+were no longer merely luminous points; they looked into his own
+with a meaning, a malign significance.
+
+
+II
+
+
+A snake in a bedroom of a modern city dwelling of the better sort
+is, happily, not so common a phenomenon as to make explanation
+altogether needless. Harker Brayton, a bachelor of thirty-five, a
+scholar, idler, and something of an athlete, rich, popular, and of
+sound health, had returned to San Francisco from all manner of
+remote and unfamiliar countries. His tastes, always a trifle
+luxurious, had taken on an added exuberance from long privation;
+and the resources of even the Castle Hotel being inadequate for
+their perfect gratification, he had gladly accepted the hospitality
+of his friend, Dr. Druring, the distinguished scientist. Dr.
+Druring's house, a large, old-fashioned one in what was now an
+obscure quarter of the city, had an outer and visible aspect of
+reserve. It plainly would not associate with the contiguous
+elements of its altered environment, and appeared to have developed
+some of the eccentricities which come of isolation. One of these
+was a "wing," conspicuously irrelevant in point of architecture,
+and no less rebellious in the matter of purpose; for it was a
+combination of laboratory, menagerie, and museum. It was here that
+the doctor indulged the scientific side of his nature in the study
+of such forms of animal life as engaged his interest and comforted
+his taste--which, it must be confessed, ran rather to the lower
+forms. For one of the higher types nimbly and sweetly to recommend
+itself unto his gentle senses, it had at least to retain certain
+rudimentary characteristics allying it to such "dragons of the
+prime" as toads and snakes. His scientific sympathies were
+distinctly reptilian; he loved nature's vulgarians and described
+himself as the Zola of zoology. His wife and daughters, not having
+the advantage to share his enlightened curiosity regarding the
+works and ways of our ill-starred fellow-creatures, were, with
+needless austerity, excluded from what he called the Snakery, and
+doomed to companionship with their own kind; though, to soften the
+rigors of their lot, he had permitted them, out of his great
+wealth, to outdo the reptiles in the gorgeousness of their
+surroundings and to shine with a superior splendor.
+
+Architecturally, and in point of "furnishing," the Snakery had a
+severe simplicity befitting the humble circumstances of its
+occupants, many of whom, indeed, could not safely have been
+intrusted with the liberty which is necessary to the full enjoyment
+of luxury, for they had the troublesome peculiarity of being alive.
+In their own apartments, however, they were under as little
+personal restraint as was compatible with their protection from the
+baneful habit of swallowing one another; and, as Brayton had
+thoughtfully been apprised, it was more than a tradition that some
+of them had at divers times been found in parts of the premises
+where it would have embarrassed them to explain their presence.
+Despite the Snakery and its uncanny associations--to which, indeed,
+he gave little attention--Brayton found life at the Druring mansion
+very much to his mind.
+
+
+III
+
+
+Beyond a smart shock of surprise and a shudder of mere loathing,
+Mr. Brayton was not greatly affected. His first thought was to
+ring the call bell and bring a servant; but, although the bell cord
+dangled within easy reach, he made no movement toward it; it had
+occurred to his mind that the act might subject him to the
+suspicion of fear, which he certainly did not feel. He was more
+keenly conscious of the incongruous nature of the situation than
+affected by its perils; it was revolting, but absurd.
+
+The reptile was of a species with which Brayton was unfamiliar.
+Its length he could only conjecture; the body at the largest
+visible part seemed about as thick as his forearm. In what way was
+it dangerous, if in any way? Was it venomous? Was it a
+constrictor? His knowledge of nature's danger signals did not
+enable him to say; he had never deciphered the code.
+
+If not dangerous, the creature was at least offensive. It was de
+trop--"matter out of place"--an impertinence. The gem was unworthy
+of the setting. Even the barbarous taste of our time and country,
+which had loaded the walls of the room with pictures, the floor
+with furniture, and the furniture with bric-a-brac, had not quite
+fitted the place for this bit of the savage life of the jungle.
+Besides--insupportable thought!--the exhalations of its breath
+mingled with the atmosphere which he himself was breathing!
+
+These thoughts shaped themselves with greater or less definition in
+Brayton's mind, and begot action. The process is what we call
+consideration and decision. It is thus that we are wise and
+unwise. It is thus that the withered leaf in an autumn breeze
+shows greater or less intelligence than its fellows, falling upon
+the land or upon the lake. The secret of human action is an open
+one--something contracts our muscles. Does it matter if we give to
+the preparatory molecular changes the name of will?
+
+Brayton rose to his feet and prepared to back softly away from the
+snake, without disturbing it, if possible, and through the door.
+People retire so from the presence of the great, for greatness is
+power, and power is a menace. He knew that he could walk backward
+without obstruction, and find the door without error. Should the
+monster follow, the taste which had plastered the walls with
+paintings had consistently supplied a rack of murderous Oriental
+weapons from which he could snatch one to suit the occasion. In
+the meantime the snake's eyes burned with a more pitiless
+malevolence than ever.
+
+Brayton lifted his right foot free of the floor to step backward.
+That moment he felt a strong aversion to doing so.
+
+"I am accounted brave," he murmured; "is bravery, then, no more
+than pride? Because there are none to witness the shame shall I
+retreat?"
+
+He was steadying himself with his right hand upon the back of a
+chair, his foot suspended.
+
+"Nonsense!" he said aloud; "I am not so great a coward as to fear
+to seem to myself afraid."
+
+He lifted the foot a little higher by slightly bending the knee,
+and thrust it sharply to the floor--an inch in front of the other!
+He could not think how that occurred. A trial with the left foot
+had the same result; it was again in advance of the right. The
+hand upon the chair back was grasping it; the arm was straight,
+reaching somewhat backward. One might have seen that he was
+reluctant to lose his hold. The snake's malignant head was still
+thrust forth from the inner coil as before, the neck level. It had
+not moved, but its eyes were now electric sparks, radiating an
+infinity of luminous needles.
+
+The man had an ashy pallor. Again he took a step forward, and
+another, partly dragging the chair, which, when finally released,
+fell upon the floor with a crash. The man groaned; the snake made
+neither sound nor motion, but its eyes were two dazzling suns. The
+reptile itself was wholly concealed by them. They gave off
+enlarging rings of rich and vivid colors, which at their greatest
+expansion successively vanished like soap bubbles; they seemed to
+approach his very face, and anon were an immeasurable distance
+away. He heard, somewhere, the continual throbbing of a great
+drum, with desultory bursts of far music, inconceivably sweet, like
+the tones of an aeolian harp. He knew it for the sunrise melody of
+Memnon's statue, and thought he stood in the Nileside reeds,
+hearing, with exalted sense, that immortal anthem through the
+silence of the centuries.
+
+The music ceased; rather, it became by insensible degrees the
+distant roll of a retreating thunderstorm. A landscape, glittering
+with sun and rain, stretched before him, arched with a vivid
+rainbow, framing in its giant curve a hundred visible cities. In
+the middle distance a vast serpent, wearing a crown, reared its
+head out of its voluminous convolutions and looked at him with his
+dead mother's eyes. Suddenly this enchanting landscape seemed to
+rise swiftly upward, like the drop scene at a theater, and vanished
+in a blank. Something struck him a hard blow upon the face and
+breast. He had fallen to the floor; the blood ran from his broken
+nose and his bruised lips. For a moment he was dazed and stunned,
+and lay with closed eyes, his face against the door. In a few
+moments he had recovered, and then realized that his fall, by
+withdrawing his eyes, had broken the spell which held him. He felt
+that now, by keeping his gaze averted, he would be able to retreat.
+But the thought of the serpent within a few feet of his head, yet
+unseen--perhaps in the very act of springing upon him and throwing
+its coils about his throat--was too horrible. He lifted his head,
+stared again into those baleful eyes, and was again in bondage.
+
+The snake had not moved, and appeared somewhat to have lost its
+power upon the imagination; the gorgeous illusions of a few moments
+before were not repeated. Beneath that flat and brainless brow its
+black, beady eyes simply glittered, as at first, with an expression
+unspeakably malignant. It was as if the creature, knowing its
+triumph assured, had determined to practice no more alluring wiles.
+
+Now ensued a fearful scene. The man, prone upon the floor, within
+a yard of his enemy, raised the upper part of his body upon his
+elbows, his head thrown back, his legs extended to their full
+length. His face was white between its gouts of blood; his eyes
+were strained open to their uttermost expansion. There was froth
+upon his lips; it dropped off in flakes. Strong convulsions ran
+through his body, making almost serpentine undulations. He bent
+himself at the waist, shifting his legs from side to side. And
+every movement left him a little nearer to the snake. He thrust
+his hands forward to brace himself back, yet constantly advanced
+upon his elbows.
+
+
+IV
+
+
+Dr. Druring and his wife sat in the library. The scientist was in
+rare good humor.
+
+"I have just obtained, by exchange with another collector," he
+said, "a splendid specimen of the Ophiophagus."
+
+"And what may that be?" the lady inquired with a somewhat languid
+interest.
+
+"Why, bless my soul, what profound ignorance! My dear, a man who
+ascertains after marriage that his wife does not know Greek, is
+entitled to a divorce. The Ophiophagus is a snake which eats other
+snakes."
+
+"I hope it will eat all yours," she said, absently shifting the
+lamp. "But how does it get the other snakes? By charming them, I
+suppose."
+
+"That is just like you, dear," said the doctor, with an affectation
+of petulance. "You know how irritating to me is any allusion to
+that vulgar superstition about the snake's power of fascination."
+
+The conversation was interrupted by a mighty cry which rang through
+the silent house like the voice of a demon shouting in a tomb.
+Again and yet again it sounded, with terrible distinctness. They
+sprang to their feet, the man confused, the lady pale and
+speechless with fright. Almost before the echoes of the last cry
+had died away the doctor was out of the room, springing up the
+staircase two steps at a time. In the corridor, in front of
+Brayton's chamber, he met some servants who had come from the upper
+floor. Together they rushed at the door without knocking. It was
+unfastened, and gave way. Brayton lay upon his stomach on the
+floor, dead. His head and arms were partly concealed under the
+foot rail of the bed. They pulled the body away, turning it upon
+the back. The face was daubed with blood and froth, the eyes were
+wide open, staring--a dreadful sight!
+
+"Died in a fit," said the scientist, bending his knee and placing
+his hand upon the heart. While in that position he happened to
+glance under the bed. "Good God!" he added; "how did this thing
+get in here?"
+
+He reached under the bed, pulled out the snake, and flung it, still
+coiled, to the center of the room, whence, with a harsh, shuffling
+sound, it slid across the polished floor till stopped by the wall,
+where it lay without motion. It was a stuffed snake; its eyes were
+two shoe buttons.
+
+
+From "Tales of Soldiers and Civilians," by Ambrose Bierce.
+Copyright, 1891, by E. L. G. Steele.
+
+
+
+Edgar Allan Poe
+
+The Oblong Box
+
+
+Some years ago, I engaged passage from Charleston, S. C, to the
+city of New York, in the fine packet-ship "Independence," Captain
+Hardy. We were to sail on the fifteenth of the month (June),
+weather permitting; and on the fourteenth, I went on board to
+arrange some matters in my stateroom.
+
+I found that we were to have a great many passengers, including a
+more than usual number of ladies. On the list were several of my
+acquaintances, and among other names, I was rejoiced to see that of
+Mr. Cornelius Wyatt, a young artist, for whom I entertained
+feelings of warm friendship. He had been with me a fellow-student
+at C---- University, where we were very much together. He had the
+ordinary temperament of genius, and was a compound of misanthropy,
+sensibility, and enthusiasm. To these qualities he united the
+warmest and truest heart which ever beat in a human bosom.
+
+I observed that his name was carded upon THREE state-rooms; and,
+upon again referring to the list of passengers, I found that he had
+engaged passage for himself, wife, and two sisters--his own. The
+state-rooms were sufficiently roomy, and each had two berths, one
+above the other. These berths, to be sure, were so exceedingly
+narrow as to be insufficient for more than one person; still, I
+could not comprehend why there were THREE staterooms for these four
+persons. I was, just at that epoch, in one of those moody frames
+of mind which make a man abnormally inquisitive about trifles: and
+I confess, with shame, that I busied myself in a variety of ill-
+bred and preposterous conjectures about this matter of the
+supernumerary stateroom. It was no business of mine, to be sure,
+but with none the less pertinacity did I occupy myself in attempts
+to resolve the enigma. At last I reached a conclusion which
+wrought in me great wonder why I had not arrived at it before. "It
+is a servant of course," I said; "what a fool I am, not sooner to
+have thought of so obvious a solution!" And then I again repaired
+to the list--but here I saw distinctly that NO servant was to come
+with the party, although, in fact, it had been the original design
+to bring one--for the words "and servant" had been first written
+and then over-scored. "Oh, extra baggage, to be sure," I now said
+to myself--"something he wishes not to be put in the hold--
+something to be kept under his own eye--ah, I have it--a painting
+or so--and this is what he has been bargaining about with Nicolino,
+the Italian Jew." This idea satisfied me, and I dismissed my
+curiosity for the nonce.
+
+Wyatt's two sisters I knew very well, and most amiable and clever
+girls they were. His wife he had newly married, and I had never
+yet seen her. He had often talked about her in my presence,
+however, and in his usual style of enthusiasm. He described her as
+of surpassing beauty, wit, and accomplishment. I was, therefore,
+quite anxious to make her acquaintance.
+
+On the day in which I visited the ship (the fourteenth), Wyatt and
+party were also to visit it--so the captain informed me--and I
+waited on board an hour longer than I had designed, in hope of
+being presented to the bride, but then an apology came. "Mrs. W.
+was a little indisposed, and would decline coming on board until
+to-morrow, at the hour of sailing."
+
+The morrow having arrived, I was going from my hotel to the wharf,
+when Captain Hardy met me and said that, "owing to circumstances"
+(a stupid but convenient phrase), "he rather thought the
+'Independence' would not sail for a day or two, and that when all
+was ready, he would send up and let me know." This I thought
+strange, for there was a stiff southerly breeze; but as "the
+circumstances" were not forthcoming, although I pumped for them
+with much perseverance, I had nothing to do but to return home and
+digest my impatience at leisure.
+
+I did not receive the expected message from the captain for nearly
+a week. It came at length, however, and I immediately went on
+board. The ship was crowded with passengers, and every thing was
+in the bustle attendant upon making sail. Wyatt's party arrived in
+about ten minutes after myself. There were the two sisters, the
+bride, and the artist--the latter in one of his customary fits of
+moody misanthropy. I was too well used to these, however, to pay
+them any special attention. He did not even introduce me to his
+wife;--this courtesy devolving, per force, upon his sister Marian--
+a very sweet and intelligent girl, who, in a few hurried words,
+made us acquainted.
+
+Mrs. Wyatt had been closely veiled; and when she raised her veil,
+in acknowledging my bow, I confess that I was very profoundly
+astonished. I should have been much more so, however, had not long
+experience advised me not to trust, with too implicit a reliance,
+the enthusiastic descriptions of my friend, the artist, when
+indulging in comments upon the loveliness of woman. When beauty
+was the theme, I well knew with what facility he soared into the
+regions of the purely ideal.
+
+The truth is, I could not help regarding Mrs. Wyatt as a decidedly
+plain-looking woman. If not positively ugly, she was not, I think,
+very far from it. She was dressed, however, in exquisite taste--
+and then I had no doubt that she had captivated my friend's heart
+by the more enduring graces of the intellect and soul. She said
+very few words, and passed at once into her state-room with Mr. W.
+
+My old inquisitiveness now returned. There was NO servant--THAT
+was a settled point. I looked, therefore, for the extra baggage.
+After some delay, a cart arrived at the wharf, with an oblong pine
+box, which was every thing that seemed to be expected. Immediately
+upon its arrival we made sail, and in a short time were safely over
+the bar and standing out to sea.
+
+The box in question was, as I say, oblong. It was about six feet
+in length by two and a half in breadth; I observed it attentively,
+and like to be precise. Now this shape was PECULIAR; and no sooner
+had I seen it, than I took credit to myself for the accuracy of my
+guessing. I had reached the conclusion, it will be remembered,
+that the extra baggage of my friend, the artist, would prove to be
+pictures, or at least a picture; for I knew he had been for several
+weeks in conference with Nicolino:--and now here was a box, which,
+from its shape, COULD possibly contain nothing in the world but a
+copy of Leonardo's "Last Supper;" and a copy of this very "Last
+Supper," done by Rubini the younger, at Florence, I had known, for
+some time, to be in the possession of Nicolino. This point,
+therefore, I considered as sufficiently settled. I chuckled
+excessively when I thought of my acumen. It was the first time I
+had ever known Wyatt to keep from me any of his artistical secrets;
+but here he evidently intended to steal a march upon me, and
+smuggle a fine picture to New York, under my very nose; expecting
+me to know nothing of the matter. I resolved to quiz him WELL, now
+and hereafter.
+
+One thing, however, annoyed me not a little. The box did NOT go
+into the extra stateroom. It was deposited in Wyatt's own; and
+there, too, it remained, occupying very nearly the whole of the
+floor--no doubt to the exceeding discomfort of the artist and his
+wife;--this the more especially as the tar or paint with which it
+was lettered in sprawling capitals, emitted a strong, disagreeable,
+and, to my fancy, a peculiarly disgusting odor. On the lid were
+painted the words--"Mrs. Adelaide Curtis, Albany, New York. Charge
+of Cornelius Wyatt, Esq. This side up. To be handled with care."
+
+Now, I was aware that Mrs. Adelaide Curtis, of Albany, was the
+artist's wife's mother,--but then I looked upon the whole address
+as a mystification, intended especially for myself. I made up my
+mind, of course, that the box and contents would never get farther
+north than the studio of my misanthropic friend, in Chambers
+Street, New York.
+
+For the first three or four days we had fine weather, although the
+wind was dead ahead; having chopped round to the northward,
+immediately upon our losing sight of the coast. The passengers
+were, consequently, in high spirits and disposed to be social. I
+MUST except, however, Wyatt and his sisters, who behaved stiffly,
+and, I could not help thinking, uncourteously to the rest of the
+party. Wyatt's conduct I did not so much regard. He was gloomy,
+even beyond his usual habit--in fact he was MOROSE--but in him I
+was prepared for eccentricity. For the sisters, however, I could
+make no excuse. They secluded themselves in their staterooms
+during the greater part of the passage, and absolutely refused,
+although I repeatedly urged them, to hold communication with any
+person on board.
+
+Mrs. Wyatt herself was far more agreeable. That is to say, she was
+CHATTY; and to be chatty is no slight recommendation at sea. She
+became EXCESSIVELY intimate with most of the ladies; and, to my
+profound astonishment, evinced no equivocal disposition to coquet
+with the men. She amused us all very much. I say "amused"--and
+scarcely know how to explain myself. The truth is, I soon found
+that Mrs. W. was far oftener laughed AT than WITH. The gentlemen
+said little about her; but the ladies, in a little while,
+pronounced her "a good-hearted thing, rather indifferent looking,
+totally uneducated, and decidedly vulgar." The great wonder was,
+how Wyatt had been entrapped into such a match. Wealth was the
+general solution--but this I knew to be no solution at all; for
+Wyatt had told me that she neither brought him a dollar nor had any
+expectations from any source whatever. "He had married," he said,
+"for love, and for love only; and his bride was far more than
+worthy of his love." When I thought of these expressions, on the
+part of my friend, I confess that I felt indescribably puzzled.
+Could it be possible that he was taking leave of his senses? What
+else could I think? HE, so refined, so intellectual, so
+fastidious, with so exquisite a perception of the faulty, and so
+keen an appreciation of the beautiful! To be sure, the lady seemed
+especially fond of HIM--particularly so in his absence--when she
+made herself ridiculous by frequent quotations of what had been
+said by her "beloved husband, Mr. Wyatt." The word "husband"
+seemed forever--to use one of her own delicate expressions--forever
+"on the tip of her tongue." In the meantime, it was observed by
+all on board, that he avoided HER in the most pointed manner, and,
+for the most part, shut himself up alone in his state-room, where,
+in fact, he might have been said to live altogether, leaving his
+wife at full liberty to amuse herself as she thought best, in the
+public society of the main cabin.
+
+My conclusion, from what I saw and heard, was, that, the artist, by
+some unaccountable freak of fate, or perhaps in some fit of
+enthusiastic and fanciful passion, had been induced to unite
+himself with a person altogether beneath him, and that the natural
+result, entire and speedy disgust, had ensued. I pitied him from
+the bottom of my heart--but could not, for that reason, quite
+forgive his incommunicativeness in the matter of the "Last Supper."
+For this I resolved to have my revenge.
+
+One day he came upon deck, and, taking his arm as had been my wont,
+I sauntered with him backward and forward. His gloom, however
+(which I considered quite natural under the circumstances), seemed
+entirely unabated. He said little, and that moodily, and with
+evident effort. I ventured a jest or two, and he made a sickening
+attempt at a smile. Poor fellow!--as I thought of HIS WIFE, I
+wondered that he could have heart to put on even the semblance of
+mirth. At last I ventured a home thrust. I determined to commence
+a series of covert insinuations, or innuendoes, about the oblong
+box--just to let him perceive, gradually, that I was NOT altogether
+the butt, or victim, of his little bit of pleasant mystification.
+My first observation was by way of opening a masked battery. I
+said something about the "peculiar shape of THAT box--,"and, as I
+spoke the words, I smiled knowingly, winked, and touched him gently
+with my forefinger in the ribs.
+
+The manner in which Wyatt received this harmless pleasantry
+convinced me, at once, that he was mad. At first he stared at me
+as if he found it impossible to comprehend the witticism of my
+remark; but as its point seemed slowly to make its way into his
+brain, his eyes, in the same proportion, seemed protruding from
+their sockets. Then he grew very red--then hideously pale--then,
+as if highly amused with what I had insinuated, he began a loud and
+boisterous laugh, which, to my astonishment, he kept up, with
+gradually increasing vigor, for ten minutes or more. In
+conclusion, he fell flat and heavily upon the deck. When I ran to
+uplift him, to all appearance he was DEAD.
+
+I called assistance, and, with much difficulty, we brought him to
+himself. Upon reviving he spoke incoherently for some time. At
+length we bled him and put him to bed. The next morning he was
+quite recovered, so far as regarded his mere bodily health. Of his
+mind I say nothing, of course. I avoided him during the rest of
+the passage, by advice of the captain, who seemed to coincide with
+me altogether in my views of his insanity, but cautioned me to say
+nothing on this head to any person on board.
+
+Several circumstances occurred immediately after this fit of Wyatt
+which contributed to heighten the curiosity with which I was
+already possessed. Among other things, this: I had been nervous--
+drank too much strong green tea, and slept ill at night--in fact,
+for two nights I could not be properly said to sleep at all. Now,
+my state-room opened into the main cabin, or dining-room, as did
+those of all the single men on board. Wyatt's three rooms were in
+the after-cabin, which was separated from the main one by a slight
+sliding door, never locked even at night. As we were almost
+constantly on a wind, and the breeze was not a little stiff, the
+ship heeled to leeward very considerably; and whenever her
+starboard side was to leeward, the sliding door between the cabins
+slid open, and so remained, nobody taking the trouble to get up and
+shut it. But my berth was in such a position, that when my own
+state-room door was open, as well as the sliding door in question
+(and my own door was ALWAYS open on account of the heat,) I could
+see into the after-cabin quite distinctly, and just at that portion
+of it, too, where were situated the state-rooms of Mr. Wyatt.
+Well, during two nights (NOT consecutive) while I lay awake, I
+clearly saw Mrs. W., about eleven o'clock upon each night, steal
+cautiously from the state-room of Mr. W., and enter the extra room,
+where she remained until daybreak, when she was called by her
+husband and went back. That they were virtually separated was
+clear. They had separate apartments--no doubt in contemplation of
+a more permanent divorce; and here, after all I thought was the
+mystery of the extra stateroom.
+
+There was another circumstance, too, which interested me much.
+During the two wakeful nights in question, and immediately after
+the disappearance of Mrs. Wyatt into the extra stateroom, I was
+attracted by certain singular cautious, subdued noises in that of
+her husband. After listening to them for some time, with
+thoughtful attention, I at length succeeded perfectly in
+translating their import. They were sounds occasioned by the
+artist in prying open the oblong box, by means of a chisel and
+mallet--the latter being apparently muffled, or deadened, by some
+soft woollen or cotton substance in which its head was enveloped.
+
+In this manner I fancied I could distinguish the precise moment
+when he fairly disengaged the lid--also, that I could determine
+when he removed it altogether, and when he deposited it upon the
+lower berth in his room; this latter point I knew, for example, by
+certain slight taps which the lid made in striking against the
+wooden edges of the berth, as he endeavored to lay it down VERY
+gently--there being no room for it on the floor. After this there
+was a dead stillness, and I heard nothing more, upon either
+occasion, until nearly daybreak; unless, perhaps, I may mention a
+low sobbing, or murmuring sound, so very much suppressed as to be
+nearly inaudible--if, indeed, the whole of this latter noise were
+not rather produced by my own imagination. I say it seemed to
+RESEMBLE sobbing or sighing--but, of course, it could not have been
+either. I rather think it was a ringing in my own ears. Mr.
+Wyatt, no doubt, according to custom, was merely giving the rein to
+one of his hobbies--indulging in one of his fits of artistic
+enthusiasm. He had opened his oblong box, in order to feast his
+eyes on the pictorial treasure within. There was nothing in this,
+however, to make him SOB. I repeat, therefore, that it must have
+been simply a freak of my own fancy, distempered by good Captain
+Hardy's green tea. just before dawn, on each of the two nights of
+which I speak, I distinctly heard Mr. Wyatt replace the lid upon
+the oblong box, and force the nails into their old places by means
+of the muffled mallet. Having done this, he issued from his state-
+room, fully dressed, and proceeded to call Mrs. W. from hers.
+
+We had been at sea seven days, and were now off Cape Hatteras, when
+there came a tremendously heavy blow from the southwest. We were,
+in a measure, prepared for it, however, as the weather had been
+holding out threats for some time. Every thing was made snug, alow
+and aloft; and as the wind steadily freshened, we lay to, at
+length, under spanker and foretopsail, both double-reefed.
+
+In this trim we rode safely enough for forty-eight hours--the ship
+proving herself an excellent sea-boat in many respects, and
+shipping no water of any consequence. At the end of this period,
+however, the gale had freshened into a hurricane, and our after--
+sail split into ribbons, bringing us so much in the trough of the
+water that we shipped several prodigious seas, one immediately
+after the other. By this accident we lost three men overboard with
+the caboose, and nearly the whole of the larboard bulwarks.
+Scarcely had we recovered our senses, before the foretopsail went
+into shreds, when we got up a storm staysail and with this did
+pretty well for some hours, the ship heading the sea much more
+steadily than before.
+
+The gale still held on, however, and we saw no signs of its
+abating. The rigging was found to be ill-fitted, and greatly
+strained; and on the third day of the blow, about five in the
+afternoon, our mizzen-mast, in a heavy lurch to windward, went by
+the board. For an hour or more, we tried in vain to get rid of it,
+on account of the prodigious rolling of the ship; and, before we
+had succeeded, the carpenter came aft and announced four feet of
+water in the hold. To add to our dilemma, we found the pumps
+choked and nearly useless.
+
+All was now confusion and despair--but an effort was made to
+lighten the ship by throwing overboard as much of her cargo as
+could be reached, and by cutting away the two masts that remained.
+This we at last accomplished--but we were still unable to do any
+thing at the pumps; and, in the meantime, the leak gained on us
+very fast.
+
+At sundown, the gale had sensibly diminished in violence, and as
+the sea went down with it, we still entertained faint hopes of
+saving ourselves in the boats. At eight P. M., the clouds broke
+away to windward, and we had the advantage of a full moon--a piece
+of good fortune which served wonderfully to cheer our drooping
+spirits.
+
+After incredible labor we succeeded, at length, in getting the
+longboat over the side without material accident, and into this we
+crowded the whole of the crew and most of the passengers. This
+party made off immediately, and, after undergoing much suffering,
+finally arrived, in safety, at Ocracoke Inlet, on the third day
+after the wreck.
+
+Fourteen passengers, with the captain, remained on board, resolving
+to trust their fortunes to the jolly-boat at the stern. We lowered
+it without difficulty, although it was only by a miracle that we
+prevented it from swamping as it touched the water. It contained,
+when afloat, the captain and his wife, Mr. Wyatt and party, a
+Mexican officer, wife, four children, and myself, with a negro
+valet.
+
+We had no room, of course, for any thing except a few positively
+necessary instruments, some provisions, and the clothes upon our
+backs. No one had thought of even attempting to save any thing
+more. What must have been the astonishment of all, then, when
+having proceeded a few fathoms from the ship, Mr. Wyatt stood up in
+the stern-sheets, and coolly demanded of Captain Hardy that the
+boat should be put back for the purpose of taking in his oblong
+box!
+
+"Sit down, Mr. Wyatt," replied the captain, somewhat sternly, "you
+will capsize us if you do not sit quite still. Our gunwhale is
+almost in the water now."
+
+"The box!" vociferated Mr. Wyatt, still standing--"the box, I say!
+Captain Hardy, you cannot, you will not refuse me. Its weight will
+be but a trifle--it is nothing--mere nothing. By the mother who
+bore you--for the love of Heaven--by your hope of salvation, I
+implore you to put back for the box!"
+
+The captain, for a moment, seemed touched by the earnest appeal of
+the artist, but he regained his stern composure, and merely said:
+
+"Mr. Wyatt, you are mad. I cannot listen to you. Sit down, I say,
+or you will swamp the boat. Stay--hold him--seize him!--he is
+about to spring overboard! There--I knew it--he is over!"
+
+As the captain said this, Mr. Wyatt, in fact, sprang from the boat,
+and, as we were yet in the lee of the wreck, succeeded, by almost
+superhuman exertion, in getting hold of a rope which hung from the
+fore-chains. In another moment he was on board, and rushing
+frantically down into the cabin.
+
+In the meantime, we had been swept astern of the ship, and being
+quite out of her lee, were at the mercy of the tremendous sea which
+was still running. We made a determined effort to put back, but
+our little boat was like a feather in the breath of the tempest.
+We saw at a glance that the doom of the unfortunate artist was
+sealed.
+
+As our distance from the wreck rapidly increased, the madman (for
+as such only could we regard him) was seen to emerge from the
+companion--way, up which by dint of strength that appeared
+gigantic, he dragged, bodily, the oblong box. While we gazed in
+the extremity of astonishment, he passed, rapidly, several turns of
+a three-inch rope, first around the box and then around his body.
+In another instant both body and box were in the sea--disappearing
+suddenly, at once and forever.
+
+We lingered awhile sadly upon our oars, with our eyes riveted upon
+the spot. At length we pulled away. The silence remained unbroken
+for an hour. Finally, I hazarded a remark.
+
+"Did you observe, captain, how suddenly they sank? Was not that an
+exceedingly singular thing? I confess that I entertained some
+feeble hope of his final deliverance, when I saw him lash himself
+to the box, and commit himself to the sea."
+
+"They sank as a matter of course," replied the captain, "and that
+like a shot. They will soon rise again, however--BUT NOT TILL THE
+SALT MELTS."
+
+"The salt!" I ejaculated.
+
+"Hush!" said the captain, pointing to the wife and sisters of the
+deceased. "We must talk of these things at some more appropriate
+time."
+
+
+We suffered much, and made a narrow escape, but fortune befriended
+us, as well as our mates in the long-boat. We landed, in fine,
+more dead than alive, after four days of intense distress, upon the
+beach opposite Roanoke Island. We remained here a week, were not
+ill-treated by the wreckers, and at length obtained a passage to
+New York.
+
+About a month after the loss of the "Independence," I happened to
+meet Captain Hardy in Broadway. Our conversation turned,
+naturally, upon the disaster, and especially upon the sad fate of
+poor Wyatt. I thus learned the following particulars.
+
+The artist had engaged passage for himself, wife, two sisters and a
+servant. His wife was, indeed, as she had been represented, a most
+lovely, and most accomplished woman. On the morning of the
+fourteenth of June (the day in which I first visited the ship), the
+lady suddenly sickened and died. The young husband was frantic
+with grief--but circumstances imperatively forbade the deferring
+his voyage to New York. It was necessary to take to her mother the
+corpse of his adored wife, and, on the other hand, the universal
+prejudice which would prevent his doing so openly was well known.
+Nine-tenths of the passengers would have abandoned the ship rather
+than take passage with a dead body.
+
+In this dilemma, Captain Hardy arranged that the corpse, being
+first partially embalmed, and packed, with a large quantity of
+salt, in a box of suitable dimensions, should be conveyed on board
+as merchandise. Nothing was to be said of the lady's decease; and,
+as it was well understood that Mr. Wyatt had engaged passage for
+his wife, it became necessary that some person should personate her
+during the voyage. This the deceased lady's-maid was easily
+prevailed on to do. The extra state-room, originally engaged for
+this girl during her mistress' life, was now merely retained. In
+this state-room the pseudo-wife, slept, of course, every night. In
+the daytime she performed, to the best of her ability, the part of
+her mistress--whose person, it had been carefully ascertained, was
+unknown to any of the passengers on board.
+
+My own mistake arose, naturally enough, through too careless, too
+inquisitive, and too impulsive a temperament. But of late, it is a
+rare thing that I sleep soundly at night. There is a countenance
+which haunts me, turn as I will. There is an hysterical laugh
+which will forever ring within my ears.
+
+
+
+The Gold-Bug
+
+
+What ho! what ho! this fellow is dancing mad!
+He hath been bitten by the Tarantula.
+ --All in the Wrong.
+
+
+Many years ago, I contracted an intimacy with a Mr. William
+Legrand. He was of an ancient Huguenot family, and had once been
+wealthy: but a series of misfortunes had reduced him to want. To
+avoid the mortification consequent upon his disasters, he left New
+Orleans, the city of his forefathers, and took up his residence at
+Sullivan's Island, near Charleston, South Carolina.
+
+This island is a very singular one. It consists of little else
+than the sea sand, and is about three miles long. Its breadth at
+no point exceeds a quarter of a mile. It is separated from the
+mainland by a scarcely perceptible creek, oozing its way through a
+wilderness of reeds and slime, a favorite resort of the marsh hen.
+The vegetation, as might be supposed, is scant, or at least
+dwarfish. No trees of any magnitude are to be seen. Near the
+western extremity, where Fort Moultrie stands, and where are some
+miserable frame buildings, tenanted, during summer, by the
+fugitives from Charleston dust and fever, may be found, indeed, the
+bristly palmetto; but the whole island, with the exception of this
+western point, and a line of hard, white beach on the seacoast, is
+covered with a dense undergrowth of the sweet myrtle so much prized
+by the horticulturists of England. The shrub here often attains
+the height of fifteen or twenty feet, and forms an almost
+impenetrable coppice, burdening the air with its fragrance.
+
+In the inmost recesses of this coppice, not far from the eastern or
+more remote end of the island, Legrand had built himself a small
+hut, which he occupied when I first, by mere accident, made his
+acquaintance. This soon ripened into friendship--for there was
+much in the recluse to excite interest and esteem. I found him
+well educated, with unusual powers of mind, but infected with
+misanthropy, and subject to perverse moods of alternate enthusiasm
+and melancholy. He had with him many books, but rarely employed
+them. His chief amusements were gunning and fishing, or sauntering
+along the beach and through the myrtles, in quest of shells or
+entomological specimens--his collection of the latter might have
+been envied by a Swammerdamm. In these excursions he was usually
+accompanied by an old negro, called Jupiter, who had been
+manumitted before the reverses of the family, but who could be
+induced, neither by threats nor by promises, to abandon what he
+considered his right of attendance upon the footsteps of his young
+"Massa Will." It is not improbable that the relatives of Legrand,
+conceiving him to be somewhat unsettled in intellect, had contrived
+to instill this obstinacy into Jupiter, with a view to the
+supervision and guardianship of the wanderer.
+
+The winters in the latitude of Sullivan's Island are seldom very
+severe, and in the fall of the year it is a rare event indeed when
+a fire is considered necessary. About the middle of October, 18--,
+there occurred, however, a day of remarkable chilliness. Just
+before sunset I scrambled my way through the evergreens to the hut
+of my friend, whom I had not visited for several weeks--my
+residence being, at that time, in Charleston, a distance of nine
+miles from the island, while the facilities of passage and
+repassage were very far behind those of the present day. Upon
+reaching the hut I rapped, as was my custom, and getting no reply,
+sought for the key where I knew it was secreted, unlocked the door,
+and went in. A fine fire was blazing upon the hearth. It was a
+novelty, and by no means an ungrateful one. I threw off an
+overcoat, took an armchair by the crackling logs, and awaited
+patiently the arrival of my hosts.
+
+Soon after dark they arrived, and gave me a most cordial welcome.
+Jupiter, grinning from ear to ear, bustled about to prepare some
+marsh hens for supper. Legrand was in one of his fits--how else
+shall I term them?--of enthusiasm. He had found an unknown
+bivalve, forming a new genus, and, more than this, he had hunted
+down and secured, with Jupiter's assistance, a scarabaeus which he
+believed to be totally new, but in respect to which he wished to
+have my opinion on the morrow.
+
+"And why not to-night?" I asked, rubbing my hands over the blaze,
+and wishing the whole tribe of scarabaei at the devil.
+
+"Ah, if I had only known you were here!" said Legrand, "but it's so
+long since I saw you; and how could I foresee that you would pay me
+a visit this very night of all others? As I was coming home I met
+Lieutenant G----, from the fort, and, very foolishly, I lent him
+the bug; so it will be impossible for you to see it until the
+morning. Stay here to-night, and I will send Jup down for it at
+sunrise. It is the loveliest thing in creation!"
+
+"What?--sunrise?"
+
+"Nonsense! no!--the bug. It is of a brilliant gold color--about
+the size of a large hickory nut--with two jet black spots near one
+extremity of the back, and another, somewhat longer, at the other.
+The antennae are--"
+
+"Dey ain't NO tin in him, Massa Will, I keep a tellin' on you,"
+here interrupted Jupiter; "de bug is a goole-bug, solid, ebery bit
+of him, inside and all, sep him wing--neber feel half so hebby a
+bug in my life."
+
+"Well, suppose it is, Jup," replied Legrand, somewhat more
+earnestly, it seemed to me, than the case demanded; "is that any
+reason for your letting the birds burn? The color"--here he turned
+to me--"is really almost enough to warrant Jupiter's idea. You
+never saw a more brilliant metallic luster than the scales emit--
+but of this you cannot judge till to-morrow. In the meantime I can
+give you some idea of the shape." Saying this, he seated himself
+at a small table, on which were a pen and ink, but no paper. He
+looked for some in a drawer, but found none.
+
+"Never mind," he said at length, "this will answer;" and he drew
+from his waistcoat pocket a scrap of what I took to be very dirty
+foolscap, and made upon it a rough drawing with the pen. While he
+did this, I retained my seat by the fire, for I was still chilly.
+When the design was complete, he handed it to me without rising.
+As I received it, a loud growl was heard, succeeded by a scratching
+at the door. Jupiter opened it, and a large Newfoundland,
+belonging to Legrand, rushed in, leaped upon my shoulders, and
+loaded me with caresses; for I had shown him much attention during
+previous visits. When his gambols were over, I looked at the
+paper, and, to speak the truth, found myself not a little puzzled
+at what my friend had depicted.
+
+"Well!" I said, after contemplating it for some minutes, "this IS a
+strange scarabaeus, I must confess; new to me; never saw anything
+like it before--unless it was a skull, or a death's head, which it
+more nearly resembles than anything else that has come under MY
+observation."
+
+"A death's head!" echoed Legrand. "Oh--yes--well, it has something
+of that appearance upon paper, no doubt. The two upper black spots
+look like eyes, eh? and the longer one at the bottom like a mouth--
+and then the shape of the whole is oval."
+
+"Perhaps so," said I; "but, Legrand, I fear you are no artist. I
+must wait until I see the beetle itself, if I am to form any idea
+of its personal appearance."
+
+"Well, I don't know," said he, a little nettled, "I draw tolerably--
+SHOULD do it at least--have had good masters, and flatter myself
+that I am not quite a blockhead."
+
+"But, my dear fellow, you are joking then," said I, "this is a very
+passable SKULL--indeed, I may say that it is a very EXCELLENT
+skull, according to the vulgar notions about such specimens of
+physiology--and your scarabaeus must be the queerest scarabaeus in
+the world if it resembles it. Why, we may get up a very thrilling
+bit of superstition upon this hint. I presume you will call the
+bug Scarabaeus caput hominis, or something of that kind--there are
+many similar titles in the Natural Histories. But where are the
+antennae you spoke of?"
+
+"The antennae!" said Legrand, who seemed to be getting
+unaccountably warm upon the subject; "I am sure you must see the
+antennae. I made them as distinct as they are in the original
+insect, and I presume that is sufficient."
+
+"Well, well," I said, "perhaps you have--still I don't see them;"
+and I handed him the paper without additional remark, not wishing
+to ruffle his temper; but I was much surprised at the turn affairs
+had taken; his ill humor puzzled me--and, as for the drawing of the
+beetle, there were positively NO antennae visible, and the whole
+DID bear a very close resemblance to the ordinary cuts of a death's
+head.
+
+He received the paper very peevishly, and was about to crumple it,
+apparently to throw it in the fire, when a casual glance at the
+design seemed suddenly to rivet his attention. In an instant his
+face grew violently red--in another excessively pale. For some
+minutes he continued to scrutinize the drawing minutely where he
+sat. At length he arose, took a candle from the table, and
+proceeded to seat himself upon a sea chest in the farthest corner
+of the room. Here again he made an anxious examination of the
+paper, turning it in all directions. He said nothing, however, and
+his conduct greatly astonished me; yet I thought it prudent not to
+exacerbate the growing moodiness of his temper by any comment.
+Presently he took from his coat pocket a wallet, placed the paper
+carefully in it, and deposited both in a writing desk, which he
+locked. He now grew more composed in his demeanor; but his
+original air of enthusiasm had quite disappeared. Yet he seemed
+not so much sulky as abstracted. As the evening wore away he
+became more and more absorbed in reverie, from which no sallies of
+mine could arouse him. It had been my intention to pass the night
+at the hut, as I had frequently done before, but, seeing my host in
+this mood, I deemed it proper to take leave. He did not press me
+to remain, but, as I departed, he shook my hand with even more than
+his usual cordiality.
+
+It was about a month after this (and during the interval I had seen
+nothing of Legrand) when I received a visit, at Charleston, from
+his man, Jupiter. I had never seen the good old negro look so
+dispirited, and I feared that some serious disaster had befallen my
+friend.
+
+"Well, Jup," said I, "what is the matter now?--how is your master?"
+
+"Why, to speak the troof, massa, him not so berry well as mought
+be."
+
+"Not well! I am truly sorry to hear it. What does he complain
+of?"
+
+"Dar! dot's it!--him neber 'plain of notin'--but him berry sick for
+all dat."
+
+"VERY sick, Jupiter!--why didn't you say so at once? Is he
+confined to bed?"
+
+"No, dat he aint!--he aint 'fin'd nowhar--dat's just whar de shoe
+pinch--my mind is got to be berry hebby 'bout poor Massa Will."
+
+"Jupiter, I should like to understand what it is you are talking
+about. You say your master is sick. Hasn't he told you what ails
+him?"
+
+"Why, massa, 'taint worf while for to git mad about de matter--
+Massa Will say noffin at all aint de matter wid him--but den what
+make him go about looking dis here way, wid he head down and he
+soldiers up, and as white as a goose? And den he keep a syphon all
+de time--"
+
+"Keeps a what, Jupiter?"
+
+"Keeps a syphon wid de figgurs on de slate--de queerest figgurs I
+ebber did see. Ise gittin' to be skeered, I tell you. Hab for to
+keep mighty tight eye 'pon him 'noovers. Todder day he gib me slip
+'fore de sun up and was gone de whole ob de blessed day. I had a
+big stick ready cut for to gib him deuced good beating when he did
+come--but Ise sich a fool dat I hadn't de heart arter all--he
+looked so berry poorly."
+
+"Eh?--what?--ah yes!--upon the whole I think you had better not be
+too severe with the poor fellow--don't flog him, Jupiter--he can't
+very well stand it--but can you form no idea of what has occasioned
+this illness, or rather this change of conduct? Has anything
+unpleasant happened since I saw you?"
+
+"No, massa, dey aint bin noffin onpleasant SINCE den--'twas 'FORE
+den I'm feared--'twas de berry day you was dare."
+
+"How? what do you mean."
+
+"Why, massa, I mean de bug--dare now."
+
+"The what?"
+
+"De bug--I'm berry sartin dat Massa Will bin bit somewhere 'bout de
+head by dat goole-bug."
+
+"And what cause have you, Jupiter, for such a supposition?"
+
+"Claws enuff, massa, and mouff, too. I nebber did see sich a
+deuced bug--he kick and he bite eberyting what cum near him. Massa
+Will cotch him fuss, but had for to let him go 'gin mighty quick, I
+tell you--den was de time he must ha' got de bite. I didn't like
+de look ob de bug mouff, myself, nohow, so I wouldn't take hold oh
+him wid my finger, but I cotch him wid a piece oh paper dat I
+found. I rap him up in de paper and stuff a piece of it in he
+mouff--dat was de way."
+
+"And you think, then, that your master was really bitten by the
+beetle, and that the bite made him sick?"
+
+"I don't think noffin about it--I nose it. What make him dream
+'bout de goole so much, if 'taint cause he bit by the goole-bug?
+Ise heered 'bout dem goole-bugs 'fore dis."
+
+"But how do you know he dreams about gold?"
+
+"How I know? why, 'cause he talk about it in he sleep--dat's how I
+nose."
+
+"Well, Jup, perhaps you are right; but to what fortunate
+circumstance am I to attribute the honor of a visit from you to-
+day?"
+
+"What de matter, massa?"
+
+"Did you bring any message from Mr. Legrand?"
+
+"No, massa, I bring dis here pissel;" and here Jupiter handed me a
+note which ran thus:
+
+
+"MY DEAR ----
+
+"Why have I not seen you for so long a time? I hope you have not
+been so foolish as to take offense at any little brusquerie of
+mine; but no, that is improbable.
+
+"Since I saw you I have had great cause for anxiety. I have
+something to tell you, yet scarcely know how to tell it, or whether
+I should tell it at all.
+
+"I have not been quite well for some days past, and poor old Jup
+annoys me, almost beyond endurance, by his well-meant attentions.
+Would you believe it?--he had prepared a huge stick, the other day,
+with which to chastise me for giving him the slip, and spending the
+day, solus, among the hills on the mainland. I verily believe that
+my ill looks alone saved me a flogging.
+
+"I have made no addition to my cabinet since we met. "If you can,
+in any way, make it convenient, come over with Jupiter. DO come.
+I wish to see you TO-NIGHT, upon business of importance. I assure
+you that it is of the HIGHEST importance.
+
+"Ever yours,
+
+"WILLIAM LEGRAND."
+
+
+There was something in the tone of this note which gave me great
+uneasiness. Its whole style differed materially from that of
+Legrand. What could he be dreaming of? What new crotchet
+possessed his excitable brain? What "business of the highest
+importance" could HE possibly have to transact? Jupiter's account
+of him boded no good. I dreaded lest the continued pressure of
+misfortune had, at length, fairly unsettled the reason of my
+friend. Without a moment's hesitation, therefore, I prepared to
+accompany the negro.
+
+Upon reaching the wharf, I noticed a scythe and three spades, all
+apparently new, lying in the bottom of the boat in which we were to
+embark.
+
+"What is the meaning of all this, Jup?" I inquired.
+
+"Him syfe, massa, and spade."
+
+"Very true; but what are they doing here?"
+
+"Him de syfe and de spade what Massa Will sis 'pon my buying for
+him in de town, and de debbil's own lot of money I had to gib for
+em."
+
+"But what, in the name of all that is mysterious, is your 'Massa
+Will' going to do with scythes and spades?"
+
+"Dat's more dan I know, and debbil take me if I don't b'lieve 'tis
+more dan he know too. But it's all cum ob de bug."
+
+Finding that no satisfaction was to be obtained of Jupiter, whose
+whole intellect seemed to be absorbed by "de bug," I now stepped
+into the boat, and made sail. With a fair and strong breeze we
+soon ran into the little cove to the northward of Fort Moultrie,
+and a walk of some two miles brought us to the hut. It was about
+three in the afternoon when we arrived. Legrand had been awaiting
+us in eager expectation. He grasped my hand with a nervous
+empressement which alarmed me and strengthened the suspicions
+already entertained. His countenance was pale even to ghastliness,
+and his deep-set eyes glared with unnatural luster. After some
+inquiries respecting his health, I asked him, not knowing what
+better to say, if he had yet obtained the scarabaeus from
+Lieutenant G----.
+
+"Oh, yes," he replied, coloring violently, "I got it from him the
+next morning. Nothing should tempt me to part with that
+scarabaeus. Do you know that Jupiter is quite right about it?"
+
+"In what way?" I asked, with a sad foreboding at heart.
+
+"In supposing it to be a bug of REAL GOLD." He said this with an
+air of profound seriousness, and I felt inexpressibly shocked.
+
+"This bug is to make my fortune," he continued, with a triumphant
+smile; "to reinstate me in my family possessions. Is it any
+wonder, then, that I prize it? Since Fortune has thought fit to
+bestow it upon me, I have only to use it properly, and I shall
+arrive at the gold of which it is the index. Jupiter, bring me
+that scarabaeus!"
+
+"What! de bug, massa? I'd rudder not go fer trubble dat bug; you
+mus' git him for your own self." Hereupon Legrand arose, with a
+grave and stately air, and brought me the beetle from a glass case
+in which it was enclosed. It was a beautiful scarabaeus, and, at
+that time, unknown to naturalists--of course a great prize in a
+scientific point of view. There were two round black spots near
+one extremity of the back, and a long one near the other. The
+scales were exceedingly hard and glossy, with all the appearance of
+burnished gold. The weight of the insect was very remarkable, and,
+taking all things into consideration, I could hardly blame Jupiter
+for his opinion respecting it; but what to make of Legrand's
+concordance with that opinion, I could not, for the life of me,
+tell.
+
+"I sent for you," said he, in a grandiloquent tone, when I had
+completed my examination of the beetle, "I sent for you that I
+might have your counsel and assistance in furthering the views of
+Fate and of the bug--"
+
+"My dear Legrand," I cried, interrupting him, "you are certainly
+unwell, and had better use some little precautions. You shall go
+to bed, and I will remain with you a few days, until you get over
+this. You are feverish and--"
+
+"Feel my pulse," said he.
+
+I felt it, and, to say the truth, found not the slightest
+indication of fever.
+
+"But you may be ill and yet have no fever. Allow me this once to
+prescribe for you. In the first place go to bed. In the next--"
+
+"You are mistaken," he interposed, "I am as well as I can expect to
+be under the excitement which I suffer. If you really wish me
+well, you will relieve this excitement."
+
+"And how is this to be done?"
+
+"Very easily. Jupiter and myself are going upon an expedition into
+the hills, upon the mainland, and, in this expedition, we shall
+need the aid of some person in whom we can confide. You are the
+only one we can trust. Whether we succeed or fail, the excitement
+which you now perceive in me will be equally allayed."
+
+"I am anxious to oblige you in any way," I replied; "but do you
+mean to say that this infernal beetle has any connection with your
+expedition into the hills?"
+
+"It has."
+
+"Then, Legrand, I can become a party to no such absurd proceeding."
+
+"I am sorry--very sorry--for we shall have to try it by ourselves."
+
+"Try it by yourselves! The man is surely mad!--but stay!--how long
+do you propose to be absent?"
+
+"Probably all night. We shall start immediately, and be back, at
+all events, by sunrise."
+
+"And will you promise me, upon your honor, that when this freak of
+yours is over, and the bug business (good God!) settled to your
+satisfaction, you will then return home and follow my advice
+implicitly, as that of your physician?"
+
+"Yes; I promise; and now let us be off, for we have no time to
+lose."
+
+With a heavy heart I accompanied my friend. We started about four
+o'clock--Legrand, Jupiter, the dog, and myself. Jupiter had with
+him the scythe and spades--the whole of which he insisted upon
+carrying--more through fear, it seemed to me, of trusting either of
+the implements within reach of his master, than from any excess of
+industry or complaisance. His demeanor was dogged in the extreme,
+and "dat deuced bug" were the sole words which escaped his lips
+during the journey. For my own part, I had charge of a couple of
+dark lanterns, while Legrand contented himself with the scarabaeus,
+which he carried attached to the end of a bit of whipcord; twirling
+it to and fro, with the air of a conjurer, as he went. When I
+observed this last, plain evidence of my friend's aberration of
+mind, I could scarcely refrain from tears. I thought it best,
+however, to humor his fancy, at least for the present, or until I
+could adopt some more energetic measures with a chance of success.
+In the meantime I endeavored, but all in vain, to sound him in
+regard to the object of the expedition. Having succeeded in
+inducing me to accompany him, he seemed unwilling to hold
+conversation upon any topic of minor importance, and to all my
+questions vouchsafed no other reply than "we shall see!"
+
+We crossed the creek at the head of the island by means of a skiff,
+and, ascending the high grounds on the shore of the mainland,
+proceeded in a northwesterly direction, through a tract of country
+excessively wild and desolate, where no trace of a human footstep
+was to be seen. Legrand led the way with decision; pausing only
+for an instant, here and there, to consult what appeared to be
+certain landmarks of his own contrivance upon a former occasion.
+
+In this manner we journeyed for about two hours, and the sun was
+just setting when we entered a region infinitely more dreary than
+any yet seen. It was a species of table-land, near the summit of
+an almost inaccessible hill, densely wooded from base to pinnacle,
+and interspersed with huge crags that appeared to lie loosely upon
+the soil, and in many cases were prevented from precipitating
+themselves into the valleys below, merely by the support of the
+trees against which they reclined. Deep ravines, in various
+directions, gave an air of still sterner solemnity to the scene.
+
+The natural platform to which we had clambered was thickly
+overgrown with brambles, through which we soon discovered that it
+would have been impossible to force our way but for the scythe; and
+Jupiter, by direction of his master, proceeded to clear for us a
+path to the foot of an enormously tall tulip tree, which stood,
+with some eight or ten oaks, upon the level, and far surpassed them
+all, and all other trees which I had then ever seen, in the beauty
+of its foliage and form, in the wide spread of its branches, and in
+the general majesty of its appearance. When we reached this tree,
+Legrand turned to Jupiter, and asked him if he thought he could
+climb it. The old man seemed a little staggered by the question,
+and for some moments made no reply. At length he approached the
+huge trunk, walked slowly around it, and examined it with minute
+attention. When he had completed his scrutiny, he merely said:
+
+"Yes, massa, Jup climb any tree he ebber see in he life."
+
+"Then up with you as soon as possible, for it will soon be too dark
+to see what we are about."
+
+"How far mus' go up, massa?" inquired Jupiter.
+
+"Get up the main trunk first, and then I will tell you which way to
+go--and here--stop! take this beetle with you."
+
+"De bug, Massa Will!--de goole-bug!" cried the negro, drawing back
+in dismay--"what for mus' tote de bug way up de tree?--d--n if I
+do!"
+
+"If you are afraid, Jup, a great big negro like you, to take hold
+of a harmless little dead beetle, why you can carry it up by this
+string--but, if you do not take it up with you in some way, I shall
+be under the necessity of breaking your head with this shovel."
+
+"What de matter now, massa?" said Jup, evidently shamed into
+compliance; "always want for to raise fuss wid old nigger. Was
+only funnin anyhow. ME feered de bug! what I keer for de bug?"
+Here he took cautiously hold of the extreme end of the string, and,
+maintaining the insect as far from his person as circumstances
+would permit, prepared to ascend the tree.
+
+In youth, the tulip tree, or Liriodendron tulipiferum, the most
+magnificent of American foresters, has a trunk peculiarly smooth,
+and often rises to a great height without lateral branches; but, in
+its riper age, the bark becomes gnarled and uneven, while many
+short limbs make their appearance on the stem. Thus the difficulty
+of ascension, in the present case, lay more in semblance than in
+reality. Embracing the huge cylinder, as closely as possible, with
+his arms and knees, seizing with his hands some projections, and
+resting his naked toes upon others, Jupiter, after one or two
+narrow escapes from falling, at length wriggled himself into the
+first great fork, and seemed to consider the whole business as
+virtually accomplished. The RISK of the achievement was, in fact,
+now over, although the climber was some sixty or seventy feet from
+the ground.
+
+"Which way mus' go now, Massa Will?" he asked.
+
+"Keep up the largest branch--the one on this side," said Legrand.
+The negro obeyed him promptly, and apparently with but little
+trouble; ascending higher and higher, until no glimpse of his squat
+figure could be obtained through the dense foliage which enveloped
+it. Presently his voice was heard in a sort of halloo.
+
+"How much fudder is got to go?"
+
+"How high up are you?" asked Legrand.
+
+"Ebber so fur," replied the negro; "can see de sky fru de top oh de
+tree."
+
+"Never mind the sky, but attend to what I say. Look down the trunk
+and count the limbs below you on this side. How many limbs have
+you passed?"
+
+"One, two, tree, four, fibe--I done pass fibe big limb, massa, 'pon
+dis side."
+
+"Then go one limb higher."
+
+In a few minutes the voice was heard again, announcing that the
+seventh limb was attained.
+
+"Now, Jup," cried Legrand, evidently much excited, "I want you to
+work your way out upon that limb as far as you can. If you see
+anything strange let me know."
+
+By this time what little doubt I might have entertained of my poor
+friend's insanity was put finally at rest. I had no alternative
+but to conclude him stricken with lunacy, and I became seriously
+anxious about getting him home. While I was pondering upon what
+was best to be done, Jupiter's voice was again heard.
+
+"Mos feered for to ventur pon dis limb berry far--'tis dead limb
+putty much all de way."
+
+"Did you say it was a DEAD limb, Jupiter?" cried Legrand in a
+quavering voice.
+
+"Yes, massa, him dead as de door-nail--done up for sartin--done
+departed dis here life."
+
+"What in the name of heaven shall I do?" asked Legrand, seemingly
+in the greatest distress.
+
+"Do!" said I, glad of an opportunity to interpose a word, "why come
+home and go to bed. Come now!--that's a fine fellow. It's getting
+late, and, besides, you remember your promise."
+
+"Jupiter," cried he, without heeding me in the least, "do you hear
+me?"
+
+"Yes, Massa Will, hear you ebber so plain."
+
+"Try the wood well, then, with your knife, and see if you think it
+VERY rotten."
+
+"Him rotten, massa, sure nuff," replied the negro in a few moments,
+"but not so berry rotten as mought be. Mought venture out leetle
+way pon de limb by myself, dat's true."
+
+"By yourself!--what do you mean?"
+
+"Why, I mean de bug. 'Tis BERRY hebby bug. Spose I drop him down
+fuss, an den de limb won't break wid just de weight of one nigger."
+
+"You infernal scoundrel!" cried Legrand, apparently much relieved,
+"what do you mean by telling me such nonsense as that? As sure as
+you drop that beetle I'll break your neck. Look here, Jupiter, do
+you hear me?"
+
+"Yes, massa, needn't hollo at poor nigger dat style."
+
+"Well! now listen!--if you will venture out on the limb as far as
+you think safe, and not let go the beetle, I'll make you a present
+of a silver dollar as soon as you get down."
+
+"I'm gwine, Massa Will--deed I is," replied the negro very
+promptly--"mos out to the eend now."
+
+"OUT TO THE END!" here fairly screamed Legrand; "do you say you are
+out to the end of that limb?"
+
+"Soon be to de eend, massa--o-o-o-o-oh! Lor-gol-a-marcy! what IS
+dis here pon de tree?"
+
+"Well!" cried Legrand, highly delighted, "what is it?"
+
+"Why 'taint noffin but a skull--somebody bin lef him head up de
+tree, and de crows done gobble ebery bit ob de meat off."
+
+"A skull, you say!--very well,--how is it fastened to the limb?--
+what holds it on?"
+
+"Sure nuff, massa; mus look. Why dis berry curious sarcumstance,
+pon my word--dare's a great big nail in de skull, what fastens ob
+it on to de tree."
+
+"Well now, Jupiter, do exactly as I tell you--do you hear?"
+
+"Yes, massa."
+
+"Pay attention, then--find the left eye of the skull."
+
+"Hum! hoo! dat's good! why dey ain't no eye lef at all."
+
+"Curse your stupidity! do you know your right hand from your left?"
+
+"Yes, I knows dat--knows all about dat--'tis my lef hand what I
+chops de wood wid."
+
+"To be sure! you are left-handed; and your left eye is on the same
+side as your left hand. Now, I suppose, you can find the left eye
+of the skull, or the place where the left eye has been. Have you
+found it?"
+
+Here was a long pause. At length the negro asked:
+
+"Is de lef eye of de skull pon de same side as de lef hand of de
+skull too?--cause de skull aint got not a bit oh a hand at all--
+nebber mind! I got de lef eye now--here de lef eye! what mus do
+wid it?"
+
+Let the beetle drop through it, as far as the string will reach--
+but be careful and not let go your hold of the string."
+
+"All dat done, Massa Will; mighty easy ting for to put de bug fru
+de hole--look out for him dare below!"
+
+During this colloquy no portion of Jupiter's person could be seen;
+but the beetle, which he had suffered to descend, was now visible
+at the end of the string, and glistened, like a globe of burnished
+gold, in the last rays of the setting sun, some of which still
+faintly illumined the eminence upon which we stood. The scarabaeus
+hung quite clear of any branches, and, if allowed to fall, would
+have fallen at our feet. Legrand immediately took the scythe, and
+cleared with it a circular space, three or four yards in diameter,
+just beneath the insect, and, having accomplished this, ordered
+Jupiter to let go the string and come down from the tree.
+
+Driving a peg, with great nicety, into the ground, at the precise
+spot where the beetle fell, my friend now produced from his pocket
+a tape measure. Fastening one end of this at that point of the
+trunk of the tree which was nearest the peg, he unrolled it till it
+reached the peg and thence further unrolled it, in the direction
+already established by the two points of the tree and the peg, for
+the distance of fifty feet--Jupiter clearing away the brambles with
+the scythe. At the spot thus attained a second peg was driven, and
+about this, as a center, a rude circle, about four feet in
+diameter, described. Taking now a spade himself, and giving one to
+Jupiter and one to me, Legrand begged us to set about digging as
+quickly as possible.
+
+To speak the truth, I had no especial relish for such amusement at
+any time, and, at that particular moment, would willingly have
+declined it; for the night was coming on, and I felt much fatigued
+with the exercise already taken; but I saw no mode of escape, and
+was fearful of disturbing my poor friend's equanimity by a refusal.
+Could I have depended, indeed, upon Jupiter's aid, I would have had
+no hesitation in attempting to get the lunatic home by force; but I
+was too well assured of the old negro's disposition, to hope that
+he would assist me, under any circumstances, in a personal contest
+with his master. I made no doubt that the latter had been infected
+with some of the innumerable Southern superstitions about money
+buried, and that his fantasy had received confirmation by the
+finding of the scarabaeus, or, perhaps, by Jupiter's obstinacy in
+maintaining it to be "a bug of real gold." A mind disposed to
+lunacy would readily be led away by such suggestions--especially if
+chiming in with favorite preconceived ideas--and then I called to
+mind the poor fellow's speech about the beetle's being "the index
+of his fortune." Upon the whole, I was sadly vexed and puzzled,
+but, at length, I concluded to make a virtue of necessity--to dig
+with a good will, and thus the sooner to convince the visionary, by
+ocular demonstration, of the fallacy of the opinion he entertained.
+
+The lanterns having been lit, we all fell to work with a zeal
+worthy a more rational cause; and, as the glare fell upon our
+persons and implements, I could not help thinking how picturesque a
+group we composed, and how strange and suspicious our labors must
+have appeared to any interloper who, by chance, might have stumbled
+upon our whereabouts.
+
+We dug very steadily for two hours. Little was said; and our chief
+embarrassment lay in the yelpings of the dog, who took exceeding
+interest in our proceedings. He, at length, became so obstreperous
+that we grew fearful of his giving the alarm to some stragglers in
+the vicinity,--or, rather, this was the apprehension of Legrand;--
+for myself, I should have rejoiced at any interruption which might
+have enabled me to get the wanderer home. The noise was, at
+length, very effectually silenced by Jupiter, who, getting out of
+the hole with a dogged air of deliberation, tied the brute's mouth
+up with one of his suspenders, and then returned, with a grave
+chuckle, to his task.
+
+When the time mentioned had expired, we had reached a depth of five
+feet, and yet no signs of any treasure became manifest. A general
+pause ensued, and I began to hope that the farce was at an end.
+Legrand, however, although evidently much disconcerted, wiped his
+brow thoughtfully and recommenced. We had excavated the entire
+circle of four feet diameter, and now we slightly enlarged the
+limit, and went to the farther depth of two feet. Still nothing
+appeared. The gold-seeker, whom I sincerely pitied, at length
+clambered from the pit, with the bitterest disappointment imprinted
+upon every feature, and proceeded, slowly and reluctantly, to put
+on his coat, which he had thrown off at the beginning of his labor.
+In the meantime I made no remark. Jupiter, at a signal from his
+master, began to gather up his tools. This done, and the dog
+having been unmuzzled, we turned in profound silence toward home.
+
+We had taken, perhaps, a dozen steps in this direction, when, with
+a loud oath, Legrand strode up to Jupiter, and seized him by the
+collar. The astonished negro opened his eyes and mouth to the
+fullest extent, let fall the spades, and fell upon his knees.
+
+"You scoundrel!" said Legrand, hissing out the syllables from
+between his clenched teeth--"you infernal black villain!--speak, I
+tell you!--answer me this instant, without prevarication!--which--
+which is your left eye?"
+
+"Oh, my golly, Massa Will! aint dis here my lef eye for sartain?"
+roared the terrified Jupiter, placing his hand upon his RIGHT organ
+of vision, and holding it there with a desperate pertinacity, as if
+in immediate, dread of his master's attempt at a gouge.
+
+"I thought so!--I knew it! hurrah!" vociferated Legrand, letting
+the negro go and executing a series of curvets and caracols, much
+to the astonishment of his valet, who, arising from his knees,
+looked, mutely, from his master to myself, and then from myself to
+his master.
+
+"Come! we must go back," said the latter, "the game's not up yet;"
+and he again led the way to the tulip tree.
+
+"Jupiter," said he, when we reached its foot, "come here! was the
+skull nailed to the limb with the face outward, or with the face to
+the limb?"
+
+"De face was out, massa, so dat de crows could get at de eyes good,
+widout any trouble."
+
+"Well, then, was it this eye or that through which you dropped the
+beetle?" here Legrand touched each of Jupiter's eyes.
+
+"'Twas dis eye, massa--de lef eye--jis as you tell me," and here it
+was his right eye that the negro indicated.
+
+"That will do--we must try it again."
+
+Here my friend, about whose madness I now saw, or fancied that I
+saw, certain indications of method, removed the peg which marked
+the spot where the beetle fell, to a spot about three inches to the
+westward of its former position. Taking, now, the tape measure
+from the nearest point of the trunk to the peg, as before, and
+continuing the extension in a straight line to the distance of
+fifty feet, a spot was indicated, removed, by several yards, from
+the point at which we had been digging.
+
+Around the new position a circle, somewhat larger than in the
+former instance, was now described, and we again set to work with
+the spade. I was dreadfully weary, but, scarcely understanding
+what had occasioned the change in my thoughts, I felt no longer any
+great aversion from the labor imposed. I had become most
+unaccountably interested--nay, even excited. Perhaps there was
+something, amid all the extravagant demeanor of Legrand--some air
+of forethought, or of deliberation, which impressed me. I dug
+eagerly, and now and then caught myself actually looking, with
+something that very much resembled expectation, for the fancied
+treasure, the vision of which had demented my unfortunate
+companion. At a period when such vagaries of thought most fully
+possessed me, and when we had been at work perhaps an hour and a
+half, we were again interrupted by the violent howlings of the dog.
+His uneasiness, in the first instance, had been, evidently, but the
+result of playfulness or caprice, but he now assumed a bitter and
+serious tone. Upon Jupiter's again attempting to muzzle him, he
+made furious resistance, and, leaping into the hole, tore up the
+mold frantically with his claws. In a few seconds he had uncovered
+a mass of human bones, forming two complete skeletons, intermingled
+with several buttons of metal, and what appeared to be the dust of
+decayed woolen. One or two strokes of a spade upturned the blade
+of a large Spanish knife, and, as we dug farther, three or four
+loose pieces of gold and silver coin came to light.
+
+At sight of these the joy of Jupiter could scarcely be restrained,
+but the countenance of his master wore an air of extreme
+disappointment. He urged us, however, to continue our exertions,
+and the words were hardly uttered when I stumbled and fell forward,
+having caught the toe of my boot in a large ring of iron that lay
+half buried in the loose earth.
+
+We now worked in earnest, and never did I pass ten minutes of more
+intense excitement. During this interval we had fairly unearthed
+an oblong chest of wood, which, from its perfect preservation and
+wonderful hardness, had plainly been subjected to some mineralizing
+process--perhaps that of the bichloride of mercury. This box was
+three feet and a half long, three feet broad, and two and a half
+feet deep. It was firmly secured by bands of wrought iron,
+riveted, and forming a kind of open trelliswork over the whole. On
+each side of the chest, near the top, were three rings of iron--six
+in all--by means of which a firm hold could be obtained by six
+persons. Our utmost united endeavors served only to disturb the
+coffer very slightly in its bed. We at once saw the impossibility
+of removing so great a weight. Luckily, the sole fastenings of the
+lid consisted of two sliding bolts. These we drew back--trembling
+and panting with anxiety. In an instant, a treasure of
+incalculable value lay gleaming before us. As the rays of the
+lanterns fell within the pit, there flashed upward a glow and a
+glare, from a confused heap of gold and of jewels, that absolutely
+dazzled our eyes.
+
+I shall not pretend to describe the feelings with which I gazed.
+Amazement was, of course, predominant. Legrand appeared exhausted
+with excitement, and spoke very few words. Jupiter's countenance
+wore, for some minutes, as deadly a pallor as it is possible, in
+the nature of things, for any negro's visage to assume. He seemed
+stupefied--thunderstricken. Presently he fell upon his knees in
+the pit, and burying his naked arms up to the elbows in gold, let
+them there remain, as if enjoying the luxury of a bath. At length,
+with a deep sigh, he exclaimed, as if in a soliloquy:
+
+"And dis all cum of de goole-bug! de putty goole-bug! de poor
+little goole-bug, what I boosed in that sabage kind oh style!
+Ain't you shamed oh yourself, nigger?--answer me dat!"
+
+It became necessary, at last, that I should arouse both master and
+valet to the expediency of removing the treasure. It was growing
+late, and it behooved us to make exertion, that we might get
+everything housed before daylight. It was difficult to say what
+should he done, and much time was spent in deliberation--so
+confused were the ideas of all. We, finally, lightened the box by
+removing two thirds of its contents, when we were enabled, with
+some trouble, to raise it from the hole. The articles taken out
+were deposited among the brambles, and the dog left to guard them,
+with strict orders from Jupiter neither, upon any pretense, to stir
+from the spot, nor to open his mouth until our return. We then
+hurriedly made for home with the chest; reaching the hut in safety,
+but after excessive toil, at one o'clock in the morning. Worn out
+as we were, it was not in human nature to do more immediately. We
+rested until two, and had supper; starting for the hills
+immediately afterwards, armed with three stout sacks, which, by
+good luck, were upon the premises. A little before four we arrived
+at the pit, divided the remainder of the booty, as equally as might
+be, among us, and, leaving the holes unfilled, again set out for
+the hut, at which, for the second time, we deposited our golden
+burdens, just as the first faint streaks of the dawn gleamed from
+over the treetops in the east.
+
+We were now thoroughly broken down; but the intense excitement of
+the time denied us repose. After an unquiet slumber of some three
+or four hours' duration, we arose, as if by preconcert, to make
+examination of our treasure.
+
+The chest had been full to the brim, and we spent the whole day,
+and the greater part of the next night, in a scrutiny of its
+contents. There had been nothing like order or arrangement.
+Everything had been heaped in promiscuously. Having assorted all
+with care, we found ourselves possessed of even vaster wealth than
+we had at first supposed. In coin there was rather more than four
+hundred and fifty thousand dollars--estimating the value of the
+pieces, as accurately as we could, by the tables of the period.
+There was not a particle of silver. All was gold of antique date
+and of great variety--French, Spanish, and German money, with a few
+English guineas, and some counters, of which we had never seen
+specimens before. There were several very large and heavy coins,
+so worn that we could make nothing of their inscriptions. There
+was no American money. The value of the jewels we found more
+difficulty in estimating. There were diamonds--some of them
+exceedingly large and fine--a hundred and ten in all, and not one
+of them small; eighteen rubies of remarkable brilliancy;--three
+hundred and ten emeralds, all very beautiful; and twenty-one
+sapphires, with an opal. These stones had all been broken from
+their settings and thrown loose in the chest. The settings
+themselves, which we picked out from among the other gold, appeared
+to have been beaten up with hammers, as if to prevent
+identification. Besides all this, there was a vast quantity of
+solid gold ornaments; nearly two hundred massive finger and ears
+rings; rich chains--thirty of these, if I remember; eighty-three
+very large and heavy crucifixes; five gold censers of great value;
+a prodigious golden punch bowl, ornamented with richly chased vine
+leaves and Bacchanalian figures; with two sword handles exquisitely
+embossed, and many other smaller articles which I cannot recollect.
+The weight of these valuables exceeded three hundred and fifty
+pounds avoirdupois; and in this estimate I have not included one
+hundred and ninety-seven superb gold watches; three of the number
+being worth each five hundred dollars, if one. Many of them were
+very old, and as timekeepers valueless; the works having suffered,
+more or less, from corrosion--but all were richly jeweled and in
+cases of great worth. We estimated the entire contents of the
+chest, that night, at a million and a half of dollars; and upon the
+subsequent disposal of the trinkets and jewels (a few being
+retained for our own use), it was found that we had greatly
+undervalued the treasure.
+
+When, at length, we had concluded our examination, and the intense
+excitement of the time had, in some measure, subsided, Legrand, who
+saw that I was dying with impatience for a solution of this most
+extraordinary riddle, entered into a full detail of all the
+circumstances connected with it.
+
+"You remember," said he, "the night when I handed you the rough
+sketch I had made of the scarabaeus. You recollect, also, that I
+became quite vexed at you for insisting that my drawing resembled a
+death's head. When you first made this assertion I thought you
+were jesting; but afterwards I called to mind the peculiar spots on
+the back of the insect, and admitted to myself that your remark had
+some little foundation in fact. Still, the sneer at my graphic
+powers irritated me--for I am considered a good artist--and,
+therefore, when you handed me the scrap of parchment, I was about
+to crumple it up and throw it angrily into the fire."
+
+"The scrap of paper, you mean," said I.
+
+"No; it had much of the appearance of paper, and at first I
+supposed it to be such, but when I came to draw upon it, I
+discovered it at once to be a piece of very thin parchment. It was
+quite dirty, you remember. Well, as I was in the very act of
+crumpling it up, my glance fell upon the sketch at which you had
+been looking, and you may imagine my astonishment when I perceived,
+in fact, the figure of a death's head just where, it seemed to me,
+I had made the drawing of the beetle. For a moment I was too much
+amazed to think with accuracy. I knew that my design was very
+different in detail from this--although there was a certain
+similarity in general outline. Presently I took a candle, and
+seating myself at the other end of the room, proceeded to
+scrutinize the parchment more closely. Upon turning it over, I saw
+my own sketch upon the reverse, just as I had made it. My first
+idea, now, was mere surprise at the really remarkable similarity of
+outline--at the singular coincidence involved in the fact that,
+unknown to me, there should have been a skull upon the other side
+of the parchment, immediately beneath my figure of the scarabaeus,
+and that this skull, not only in outline, but in size, should so
+closely resemble my drawing. I say the singularity of this
+coincidence absolutely stupefied me for a time. This is the usual
+effect of such coincidences. The mind struggles to establish a
+connection--a sequence of cause and effect--and, being unable to do
+so, suffers a species of temporary paralysis. But, when I
+recovered from this stupor, there dawned upon me gradually a
+conviction which startled me even far more than the coincidence. I
+began distinctly, positively, to remember that there had been NO
+drawing upon the parchment, when I made my sketch of the
+scarabaeus. I became perfectly certain of this; for I recollected
+turning up first one side and then the other, in search of the
+cleanest spot. Had the skull been then there, of course I could
+not have failed to notice it. Here was indeed a mystery which I
+felt it impossible to explain; but, even at that early moment,
+there seemed to glimmer, faintly, within the most remote and secret
+chambers of my intellect, a glow-wormlike conception of that truth
+which last night's adventure brought to so magnificent a
+demonstration. I arose at once, and putting the parchment securely
+away, dismissed all further reflection until I should be alone.
+
+"When you had gone, and when Jupiter was fast asleep, I betook
+myself to a more methodical investigation of the affair. In the
+first place I considered the manner in which the parchment had come
+into my possession. The spot where we discovered the scarabaeus
+was on the coast of the mainland, about a mile eastward of the
+island, and but a short distance above high-water mark. Upon my
+taking hold of it, it gave me a sharp bite, which caused me to let
+it drop. Jupiter, with his accustomed caution, before seizing the
+insect, which had flown toward him, looked about him for a leaf, or
+something of that nature, by which to take hold of it. It was at
+this moment that his eyes, and mine also, fell upon the scrap of
+parchment, which I then supposed to be paper. It was lying half
+buried in the sand, a corner sticking up. Near the spot where we
+found it, I observed the remnants of the hull of what appeared to
+have been a ship's longboat. The wreck seemed to have been there
+for a very great while, for the resemblance to boat timbers could
+scarcely be traced.
+
+"Well, Jupiter picked up the parchment, wrapped the beetle in it,
+and gave it to me. Soon afterwards we turned to go home, and on
+the way met Lieutenant G----. I showed him the insect, and he
+begged me to let him take it to the fort. Upon my consenting, he
+thrust it forthwith into his waistcoat pocket, without the
+parchment in which it had been wrapped, and which I had continued
+to hold in my hand during his inspection. Perhaps he dreaded my
+changing my mind, and thought it best to make sure of the prize at
+once--you know how enthusiastic he is on all subjects connected
+with Natural History. At the same time, without being conscious of
+it, I must have deposited the parchment in my own pocket.
+
+"You remember that when I went to the table, for the purpose of
+making a sketch of the beetle, I found no paper where it was
+usually kept. I looked in the drawer, and found none there. I
+searched my pockets, hoping to find an old letter, when my hand
+fell upon the parchment. I thus detail the precise mode in which
+it came into my possession, for the circumstances impressed me with
+peculiar force.
+
+"No doubt you will think me fanciful--but I had already established
+a kind of CONNECTION. I had put together two links of a great
+chain. There was a boat lying upon a seacoast, and not far from
+the boat was a parchment--NOT A PAPER--with a skull depicted upon
+it. You will, of course, ask 'where is the connection?' I reply
+that the skull, or death's head, is the well-known emblem of the
+pirate. The flag of the death's head is hoisted in all
+engagements.
+
+"I have said that the scrap was parchment, and not paper.
+Parchment is durable--almost imperishable. Matters of little
+moment are rarely consigned to parchment; since, for the mere
+ordinary purposes of drawing or writing, it is not nearly so well
+adapted as paper. This reflection suggested some meaning--some
+relevancy--in the death's head. I did not fail to observe, also,
+the FORM of the parchment. Although one of its corners had been,
+by some accident, destroyed, it could be seen that the original
+form was oblong. It was just such a slip, indeed, as might have
+been chosen for a memorandum--for a record of something to be long
+remembered, and carefully preserved."
+
+"But," I interposed, "you say that the skull was NOT upon the
+parchment when you made the drawing of the beetle. How then do you
+trace any connection between the boat and the skull--since this
+latter, according to your own admission, must have been designed
+(God only knows how or by whom) at some period subsequent to your
+sketching the scarabaeus?"
+
+"Ah, hereupon turns the whole mystery; although the secret, at this
+point, I had comparatively little difficulty in solving. My steps
+were sure, and could afford but a single result. I reasoned, for
+example, thus: When I drew the scarabaeus, there was no skull
+apparent upon the parchment. When I had completed the drawing I
+gave it to you, and observed you narrowly until you returned it.
+YOU, therefore, did not design the skull, and no one else was
+present to do it. Then it was not done by human agency. And
+nevertheless it was done.
+
+"At this stage of my reflections I endeavored to remember, and DID
+remember, with entire distinctness, every incident which occurred
+about the period in question. The weather was chilly (oh, rare and
+happy accident!), and a fire was blazing upon the hearth. I was
+heated with exercise and sat near the table. You, however, had
+drawn a chair close to the chimney. Just as I placed the parchment
+in your hand, and as you were in the act of inspecting it, Wolf,
+the Newfoundland, entered, and leaped upon your shoulders. With
+your left hand you caressed him and kept him off, while your right,
+holding the parchment, was permitted to fall listlessly between
+your knees, and in close proximity to the fire. At one moment I
+thought the blaze had caught it, and was about to caution you, but,
+before I could speak, you had withdrawn it, and were engaged in its
+examination. When I considered all these particulars, I doubted
+not for a moment that HEAT had been the agent in bringing to light,
+upon the parchment, the skull which I saw designed upon it. You
+are well aware that chemical preparations exist, and have existed
+time out of mind, by means of which it is possible to write upon
+either paper or vellum, so that the characters shall become visible
+only when subjected to the action of fire. Zaffre, digested in
+aqua regia, and diluted with four times its weight of water, is
+sometimes employed; a green tint results. The regulus of cobalt,
+dissolved in spirit of niter, gives a red. These colors disappear
+at longer or shorter intervals after the material written upon
+cools, but again become apparent upon the reapplication of heat.
+
+"I now scrutinized the death's head with care. Its outer edges--
+the edges of the drawing nearest the edge of the vellum--were far
+more DISTINCT than the others. It was clear that the action of the
+caloric had been imperfect or unequal. I immediately kindled a
+fire, and subjected every portion of the parchment to a glowing
+heat. At first, the only effect was the strengthening of the faint
+lines in the skull; but, upon persevering in the experiment, there
+became visible, at the corner of the slip, diagonally opposite to
+the spot in which the death's head was delineated, the figure of
+what I at first supposed to be a goat. A closer scrutiny, however,
+satisfied me that it was intended for a kid."
+
+"Ha! ha!" said I, "to be sure I have no right to laugh at you--a
+million and a half of money is too serious a matter for mirth--but
+you are not about to establish a third link in your chain--you will
+not find any especial connection between your pirates and a goat--
+pirates, you know, have nothing to do with goats; they appertain to
+the farming interest."
+
+"But I have just said that the figure was NOT that of a goat."
+
+"Well, a kid then--pretty much the same thing."
+
+"Pretty much, but not altogether," said Legrand. "You may have
+heard of one CAPTAIN Kidd. I at once looked upon the figure of the
+animal as a kind of punning or hieroglyphical signature. I say
+signature; because its position upon the vellum suggested this
+idea. The death's head at the corner diagonally opposite, had, in
+the same manner, the air of a stamp, or seal. But I was sorely put
+out by the absence of all else--of the body to my imagined
+instrument--of the text for my context."
+
+"I presume you expected to find a letter between the stamp and the
+signature."
+
+"Something of that kind. The fact is, I felt irresistibly
+impressed with a presentiment of some vast good fortune impending.
+I can scarcely say why. Perhaps, after all, it was rather a desire
+than an actual belief;--but do you know that Jupiter's silly words,
+about the bug being of solid gold, had a remarkable effect upon my
+fancy? And then the series of accidents and coincidents--these
+were so VERY extraordinary. Do you observe how mere an accident it
+was that these events should have occurred upon the SOLE day of all
+the year in which it has been, or may be sufficiently cool for
+fire, and that without the fire, or without the intervention of the
+dog at the precise moment in which he appeared, I should never have
+become aware of the death's head, and so never the possessor of the
+treasure?"
+
+"But proceed--I am all impatience."
+
+"Well; you have heard, of course, the many stories current--the
+thousand vague rumors afloat about money buried, somewhere upon the
+Atlantic coast, by Kidd and his associates. These rumors must have
+had some foundation in fact. And that the rumors have existed so
+long and so continuous, could have resulted, it appeared to me,
+only from the circumstance of the buried treasures still REMAINING
+entombed. Had Kidd concealed his plunder for a time, and
+afterwards reclaimed it, the rumors would scarcely have reached us
+in their present unvarying form. You will observe that the stories
+told are all about money-seekers, not about money-finders. Had the
+pirate recovered his money, there the affair would have dropped.
+It seemed to me that some accident--say the loss of a memorandum
+indicating its locality--had deprived him of the means of
+recovering it, and that this accident had become known to his
+followers, who otherwise might never have heard that the treasure
+had been concealed at all, and who, busying themselves in vain,
+because unguided, attempts to regain it, had given first birth, and
+then universal currency, to the reports which are now so common.
+Have you ever heard of any important treasure being unearthed along
+the coast?"
+
+"Never."
+
+"But that Kidd's accumulations were immense, is well known. I took
+it for granted, therefore, that the earth still held them; and you
+will scarcely be surprised when I tell you that I felt a hope,
+nearly amounting to certainty, that the parchment so strangely
+found involved a lost record of the place of deposit."
+
+"But how did you proceed?"
+
+"I held the vellum again to the fire, after increasing the heat,
+but nothing appeared. I now thought it possible that the coating
+of dirt might have something to do with the failure: so I carefully
+rinsed the parchment by pouring warm water over it, and, having
+done this, I placed it in a tin pan, with the skull downward, and
+put the pan upon a furnace of lighted charcoal. In a few minutes,
+the pan having become thoroughly heated, I removed the slip, and,
+to my inexpressible joy, found it spotted, in several places, with
+what appeared to be figures arranged in lines. Again I placed it
+in the pan, and suffered it to remain another minute. Upon taking
+it off, the whole was just as you see it now."
+
+Here Legrand, having reheated the parchment, submitted it to my
+inspection. The following characters were rudely traced, in a red
+tint, between the death's head and the goat:
+
+
+"53++!305))6*;4826)4+)4+).;806*;48!8]60))85;1+8*:+(;:+*8!83(88)5*!;
+46(;88*96*?;8)*+(;485);5*!2:*+(;4956*2(5*-4)8]8*;4069285);)6!8)4++;
+1(+9;48081;8:8+1;48!85;4)485!528806*81(+9;48;(88;4(+?34;48)4+;161;:
+188;+?;"
+
+
+"But," said I, returning him the slip, "I am as much in the dark as
+ever. Were all the jewels of Golconda awaiting me upon my solution
+of this enigma, I am quite sure that I should be unable to earn
+them."
+
+"And yet," said Legrand, "the solution is by no means so difficult
+as you might be led to imagine from the first hasty inspection of
+the characters. These characters, as anyone might readily guess,
+form a cipher--that is to say, they convey a meaning; but then from
+what is known of Kidd, I could not suppose him capable of
+constructing any of the more abstruse cryptographs. I made up my
+mind, at once, that this was of a simple species--such, however, as
+would appear, to the crude intellect of the sailor, absolutely
+insoluble without the key."
+
+"And you really solved it?"
+
+"Readily; I have solved others of an abstruseness ten thousand
+times greater. Circumstances, and a certain bias of mind, have led
+me to take interest in such riddles, and it may well be doubted
+whether human ingenuity can construct an enigma of the kind which
+human ingenuity may not, by proper application, resolve. In fact,
+having once established connected and legible characters, I
+scarcely gave a thought to the mere difficulty of developing their
+import.
+
+"In the present case--indeed in all cases of secret writing--the
+first question regards the LANGUAGE of the cipher; for the
+principles of solution, so far, especially, as the more simple
+ciphers are concerned, depend upon, and are varied by, the genius
+of the particular idiom. In general, there is no alternative but
+experiment (directed by probabilities) of every tongue known to him
+who attempts the solution, until the true one be attained. But,
+with the cipher now before us, all difficulty was removed by the
+signature. The pun upon the word 'Kidd' is appreciable in no other
+language than the English. But for this consideration I should
+have begun my attempts with the Spanish and French, as the tongues
+in which a secret of this kind would most naturally have been
+written by a pirate of the Spanish main. As it was, I assumed the
+cryptograph to be English.
+
+"You observe there are no divisions between the words. Had there
+been divisions the task would have been comparatively easy. In
+such cases I should have commenced with a collation and analysis of
+the shorter words, and, had a word of a single letter occurred, as
+is most likely, (a or I, for example,) I should have considered the
+solution as assured. But, there being no division, my first step
+was to ascertain the predominant letters, as well as the least
+frequent. Counting all, I constructed a table thus:
+
+
+Of the character 8 there are 33.
+ ; " 26.
+ 4 " 19.
+ +) " 16.
+ * " 13.
+ 5 " 12.
+ 6 " 11.
+ !1 " 8.
+ 0 " 6.
+ 92 " 5.
+ :3 " 4.
+ ? " 3.
+ ] " 2.
+ -. " 1.
+
+
+"Now, in English, the letter which most frequently occurs is e.
+Afterwards, the succession runs thus: a o i d h n r s t u y c f g l
+m w b k p q x z. E predominates so remarkably, that an individual
+sentence of any length is rarely seen, in which it is not the
+prevailing character.
+
+"Here, then, we have, in the very beginning, the groundwork for
+something more than a mere guess. The general use which may be
+made of the table is obvious--but, in this particular cipher, we
+shall only very partially require its aid. As our predominant
+character is 8, we will commence by assuming it as the e of the
+natural alphabet. To verify the supposition, let us observe if the
+8 be seen often in couples--for e is doubled with great frequency
+in English--in such words, for example, as 'meet,' 'fleet,'
+'speed,' 'seen,' 'been,' 'agree,' etc. In the present instance we
+see it doubled no less than five times, although the cryptograph is
+brief.
+
+"Let us assume 8, then, as e. Now, of all WORDS in the language,
+'the' is most usual; let us see, therefore, whether there are not
+repetitions of any three characters, in the same order of
+collocation, the last of them being 8. If we discover repetitions
+of such letters, so arranged, they will most probably represent the
+word 'the.' Upon inspection, we find no less than seven such
+arrangements, the characters being ;48. We may, therefore, assume
+that ; represents t, 4 represents h, and 8 represents e--the last
+being now well confirmed. Thus a great step has been taken.
+
+"But, having established a single word, we are enabled to establish
+a vastly important point; that is to say, several commencements and
+terminations of other words. Let us refer, for example, to the
+last instance but one, in which the combination ;48 occurs--not far
+from the end of the cipher. We know that the ; immediately ensuing
+is the commencement of a word, and, of the six characters
+succeeding this 'the,' we are cognizant of no less than five. Let
+us set these characters down, thus, by the letters we know them to
+represent, leaving a space for the unknown--
+
+
+t eeth.
+
+
+"Here we are enabled, at once, to discard the 'th,' as forming no
+portion of the word commencing with the first t; since, by
+experiment of the entire alphabet for a letter adapted to the
+vacancy, we perceive that no word can be formed of which this th
+can be a part. We are thus narrowed into
+
+
+t ee,
+
+
+and, going through the alphabet, if necessary, as before, we arrive
+at the word 'tree,' as the sole possible reading. We thus gain
+another letter, r, represented by (, with the words 'the tree' in
+juxtaposition.
+
+"Looking beyond these words, for a short distance, we again see the
+combination ;48, and employ it by way of TERMINATION to what
+immediately precedes. We have thus this arrangement:
+
+
+the tree ;4(4+?34 the,
+
+
+or, substituting the natural letters, where known, it reads thus:
+
+
+the tree thr+?3h the.
+
+
+"Now, if, in place of the unknown characters, we leave blank
+spaces, or substitute dots, we read thus:
+
+
+the tree thr...h the,
+
+
+when the word 'through' makes itself evident at once. But this
+discovery gives us three new letters, o, u, and g, represented by
++, ?, and 3.
+
+"Looking now, narrowly, through the cipher for combinations of
+known characters, we find, not very far from the beginning, this
+arrangement,
+
+
+83(88, or egree,
+
+
+which plainly, is the conclusion of the word 'degree,' and gives us
+another letter, d, represented by !.
+
+"Four letters beyond the word 'degree,' we perceive the combination
+
+
+;46(;88.
+
+
+"Translating the known characters, and representing the unknown by
+dots, as before, we read thus:
+
+
+th.rtee,
+
+
+an arrangement immediately suggestive of the word thirteen,' and
+again furnishing us with two new characters, i and n, represented
+by 6 and *.
+
+"Referring, now, to the beginning of the cryptograph, we find the
+combination,
+
+
+53++!.
+
+
+"Translating as before, we obtain
+
+
+.good,
+
+
+which assures us that the first letter is A, and that the first two
+words are 'A good.'
+
+"It is now time that we arrange our key, as far as discovered, in a
+tabular form, to avoid confusion. It will stand thus:
+
+
+5 represents a
+! " d
+8 " e
+3 " g
+4 " h
+6 " i
+* " n
++ " o
+( " r
+; " t
+? " u
+
+
+"We have, therefore, no less than eleven of the most important
+letters represented, and it will be unnecessary to proceed with the
+details of the solution. I have said enough to convince you that
+ciphers of this nature are readily soluble, and to give you some
+insight into the rationale of their development. But be assured
+that the specimen before us appertains to the very simplest species
+of cryptograph. It now only remains to give you the full
+translation of the characters upon the parchment, as unriddled.
+Here it is:
+
+
+"'A good glass in the bishop's hostel in the devil's seat forty-one
+degrees and thirteen minutes northeast and by north main branch
+seventh limb east side shoot from the left eye of the death's head
+a bee-line from the tree through the shot fifty feet out.'"
+
+
+"But," said I, "the enigma seems still in as bad a condition as
+ever. How is it possible to extort a meaning from all this jargon
+about 'devil's seats,' 'death's heads,' and 'bishop's hostels'?"
+
+"I confess," replied Legrand, "that the matter still wears a
+serious aspect, when regarded with a casual glance. My first
+endeavor was to divide the sentence into the natural division
+intended by the cryptographist."
+
+"You mean, to punctuate it?"
+
+"Something of that kind."
+
+"But how was it possible to effect this?"
+
+"I reflected that it had been a POINT with the writer to run his
+words together without division, so as to increase the difficulty
+of solution. Now, a not overacute man, in pursuing such an object,
+would be nearly certain to overdo the matter. When, in the course
+of his composition, he arrived at a break in his subject which
+would naturally require a pause, or a point, he would be
+exceedingly apt to run his characters, at this place, more than
+usually close together. If you will observe the MS., in the
+present instance, you will easily detect five such cases of unusual
+crowding. Acting upon this hint I made the division thus:
+
+
+"'A good glass in the bishop's hostel in the devil's seat--forty-
+one degrees and thirteen minutes--northeast and by north--main
+branch seventh limb east side--shoot from the left eye of the
+death's head--a bee-line from the tree through the shot fifty feet
+out.'"
+
+
+"Even this division," said I, "leaves me still in the dark."
+
+"It left me also in the dark," replied Legrand, "for a few days;
+during which I made diligent inquiry in the neighborhood of
+Sullivan's Island, for any building which went by name of the
+'Bishop's Hotel'; for, of course, I dropped the obsolete word
+'hostel.' Gaining no information on the subject, I was on the
+point of extending my sphere of search, and proceeding in a more
+systematic manner, when, one morning, it entered into my head,
+quite suddenly, that this 'Bishop's Hostel' might have some
+reference to an old family, of the name of Bessop, which, time out
+of mind, had held possession of an ancient manor house, about four
+miles to the northward of the island. I accordingly went over to
+the plantation, and reinstituted my inquiries among the older
+negroes of the place. At length one of the most aged of the women
+said that she had heard of such a place as Bessop's Castle, and
+thought that she could guide me to it, but that it was not a
+castle, nor a tavern, but a high rock.
+
+"I offered to pay her well for her trouble, and, after some demur,
+she consented to accompany me to the spot. We found it without
+much difficulty, when, dismissing her, I proceeded to examine the
+place. The 'castle' consisted of an irregular assemblage of cliffs
+and rocks--one of the latter being quite remarkable for its height
+as well as for its insulated and artificial appearance. I
+clambered to its apex, and then felt much at a loss as to what
+should be next done.
+
+"While I was busied in reflection, my eyes fell upon a narrow ledge
+in the eastern face of the rock, perhaps a yard below the summit
+upon which I stood. This ledge projected about eighteen inches,
+and was not more than a foot wide, while a niche in the cliff just
+above it gave it a rude resemblance to one of the hollow-backed
+chairs used by our ancestors. I made no doubt that here was the
+'devil's seat' alluded to in the MS., and now I seemed to grasp the
+full secret of the riddle.
+
+"The 'good glass,' I knew, could have reference to nothing but a
+telescope; for the word 'glass' is rarely employed in any other
+sense by seamen. Now here, I at once saw, was a telescope to be
+used, and a definite point of view, ADMITTING NO VARIATION, from
+which to use it. Nor did I hesitate to believe that the phrases,
+'forty-one degrees and thirteen minutes,' and 'northeast and by
+north,' were intended as directions for the leveling of the glass.
+Greatly excited by these discoveries, I hurried home, procured a
+telescope, and returned to the rock.
+
+"I let myself down to the ledge, and found that it was impossible
+to retain a seat upon it except in one particular position. This
+fact confirmed my preconceived idea. I proceeded to use the glass.
+Of course, the 'forty-one degrees and thirteen minutes' could
+allude to nothing but elevation above the visible horizon, since
+the horizontal direction was clearly indicated by the words,
+'northeast and by north.' This latter direction I at once
+established by means of a pocket compass; then, pointing the glass
+as nearly at an angle of forty-one degrees of elevation as I could
+do it by guess, I moved it cautiously up or down, until my
+attention was arrested by a circular rift or opening in the foliage
+of a large tree that overtopped its fellows in the distance. In
+the center of this rift I perceived a white spot, but could not, at
+first, distinguish what it was. Adjusting the focus of the
+telescope, I again looked, and now made it out to be a human skull.
+
+"Upon this discovery I was so sanguine as to consider the enigma
+solved; for the phrase 'main branch, seventh limb, east side,'
+could refer only to the position of the skull upon the tree, while
+'shoot from the left eye of the death's head' admitted, also, of
+but one interpretation, in regard to a search for buried treasure.
+I perceived that the design was to drop a bullet from the left eye
+of the skull, and that a bee-line, or, in other words, a straight
+line, drawn from the nearest point of the trunk 'through the shot'
+(or the spot where the bullet fell), and thence extended to a
+distance of fifty feet, would indicate a definite point--and
+beneath this point I thought it at least POSSIBLE that a deposit of
+value lay concealed."
+
+"All this," I said, "is exceedingly clear, and, although ingenious,
+still simple and explicit. When you left the Bishop's Hotel, what
+then?"
+
+"Why, having carefully taken the bearings of the tree, I turned
+homeward. The instant that I left 'the devil's seat,' however, the
+circular rift vanished; nor could I get a glimpse of it afterwards,
+turn as I would. What seems to me the chief ingenuity in this
+whole business, is the fact (for repeated experiment has convinced
+me it IS a fact) that the circular opening in question is visible
+from no other attainable point of view than that afforded by the
+narrow ledge upon the face of the rock.
+
+"In this expedition to the 'Bishop's Hotel' I had been attended by
+Jupiter, who had, no doubt, observed, for some weeks past, the
+abstraction of my demeanor, and took especial care not to leave me
+alone. But, on the next day, getting up very early, I contrived to
+give him the slip, and went into the hills in search of the tree.
+After much toil I found it. When I came home at night my valet
+proposed to give me a flogging. With the rest of the adventure I
+believe you are as well acquainted as myself."
+
+"I suppose," said I, "you missed the spot, in the first attempt at
+digging, through Jupiter's stupidity in letting the bug fall
+through the right instead of through the left eye of the skull."
+
+"Precisely. This mistake made a difference of about two inches and
+a half in the 'shot'--that is to say, in the position of the peg
+nearest the tree; and had the treasure been BENEATH the 'shot,' the
+error would have been of little moment; but 'the shot,' together
+with the nearest point of the tree, were merely two points for the
+establishment of a line of direction; of course the error, however
+trivial in the beginning, increased as we proceeded with the line,
+and by the time we had gone fifty feet threw us quite off the
+scent. But for my deep-seated impressions that treasure was here
+somewhere actually buried, we might have had all our labor in
+vain."
+
+"But your grandiloquence, and your conduct in swinging the beetle--
+how excessively odd! I was sure you were mad. And why did you
+insist upon letting fall the bug, instead of a bullet, from the
+skull?"
+
+"Why, to be frank, I felt somewhat annoyed by your evident
+suspicions touching my sanity, and so resolved to punish you
+quietly, in my own way, by a little bit of sober mystification.
+For this reason I swung the beetle, and for this reason I let it
+fall from the tree. An observation of yours about its great weight
+suggested the latter idea."
+
+"Yes, I perceive; and now there is only one point which puzzles me.
+What are we to make of the skeletons found in the hole?"
+
+"That is a question I am no more able to answer than yourself.
+There seems, however, only one plausible way of accounting for
+them--and yet it is dreadful to believe in such atrocity as my
+suggestion would imply. It is clear that Kidd--if Kidd indeed
+secreted this treasure, which I doubt not--it is clear that he must
+have had assistance in the labor. But this labor concluded, he may
+have thought it expedient to remove all participants in his secret.
+Perhaps a couple of blows with a mattock were sufficient, while his
+coadjutors were busy in the pit; perhaps it required a dozen--who
+shall tell?"
+
+
+
+Washington Irving
+
+Wolfert Webber, or Golden Dreams
+
+
+In the year of grace one thousand seven hundred and--blank--for I
+do not remember the precise date; however, it was somewhere in the
+early part of the last century,--there lived in the ancient city of
+the Manhattoes a worthy burgher, Wolfert Webber by name. He was
+descended from old Cobus Webber of the Brill[1] in Holland, one of
+the original settlers, famous for introducing the cultivation of
+cabbages, and who came over to the province during the
+protectorship of Oloffe Van Kortlandt, otherwise called "the
+Dreamer."
+
+
+[1] The Brill is a fortified seaport of Holland, on the Meuse
+River, near Rotterdam.
+
+
+The field in which Cobus Webber first planted himself and his
+cabbages had remained ever since in the family, who continued in
+the same line of husbandry with that praiseworthy perseverance for
+which our Dutch burghers are noted. The whole family genius,
+during several generations, was devoted to the study and
+development of this one noble vegetable, and to this concentration
+of intellect may doubtless be ascribed the prodigious renown to
+which the Webber cabbages attained.
+
+The Webber dynasty continued in uninterrupted succession, and never
+did a line give more unquestionable proofs of legitimacy. The
+eldest son succeeded to the looks as well as the territory of his
+sire, and had the portraits of this line of tranquil potentates
+been taken, they would have presented a row of heads marvelously
+resembling, in shape and magnitude, the vegetables over which they
+reigned.
+
+The seat of government continued unchanged in the family mansion,--
+a Dutch-built house, with a front, or rather gable end, of yellow
+brick, tapering to a point, with the customary iron weathercock at
+the top. Everything about the building bore the air of long-
+settled ease and security. Flights of martins peopled the little
+coops nailed against its walls, and swallows built their nests
+under the eaves, and everyone knows that these house-loving birds
+bring good luck to the dwelling where they take up their abode. In
+a bright summer morning in early summer, it was delectable to hear
+their cheerful notes as they sported about in the pure, sweet air,
+chirping forth, as it were, the greatness and prosperity of the
+Webbers.
+
+Thus quietly and comfortably did this excellent family vegetate
+under the shade of a mighty buttonwood tree, which by little and
+little grew so great as entirely to overshadow their palace. The
+city gradually spread its suburbs round their domain. Houses
+sprang up to interrupt their prospects. The rural lanes in the
+vicinity began to grow into the bustle and populousness of streets;
+in short, with all the habits of rustic life they began to find
+themselves the inhabitants of a city. Still, however, they
+maintained their hereditary character and hereditary possessions,
+with all the tenacity of petty German princes in the midst of the
+empire. Wolfert was the last of the line, and succeeded to the
+patriarchal bench at the door, under the family tree, and swayed
+the scepter of his fathers,--a kind of rural potentate in the midst
+of the metropolis.
+
+To share the cares and sweets of sovereignty he had taken unto
+himself a helpmate, one of that excellent kind called "stirring
+women"; that is to say, she was one of those notable little
+housewives who are always busy where there is nothing to do. Her
+activity, however, took one particular direction,--her whole life
+seemed devoted to intense knitting; whether at home or abroad,
+walking or sitting, her needles were continually in motion, and it
+is even affirmed that by her unwearied industry she very nearly
+supplied her household with stockings throughout the year. This
+worthy couple were blessed with one daughter who was brought up
+with great tenderness and care; uncommon pains had been taken with
+her education, so that she could stitch in every variety of way,
+make all kinds of pickles and preserves, and mark her own name on a
+sampler. The influence of her taste was seen also in the family
+garden, where the ornamental began to mingle with the useful; whole
+rows of fiery marigolds and splendid hollyhocks bordered the
+cabbage beds, and gigantic sunflowers lolled their broad, jolly
+faces over the fences, seeming to ogle most affectionately the
+passers-by.
+
+Thus reigned and vegetated Wolfert Webber over his paternal acres,
+peacefully and contentedly. Not but that, like all other
+sovereigns, he had his occasional cares and vexations. The growth
+of his native city sometimes caused him annoyance. His little
+territory gradually became hemmed in by streets and houses, which
+intercepted air and sunshine. He was now and then subjected to the
+eruptions of the border population that infest the streets of a
+metropolis, who would make midnight forays into his dominions, and
+carry off captive whole platoons of his noblest subjects. Vagrant
+swine would make a descent, too, now and then, when the gate was
+left open, and lay all waste before them; and mischievous urchins
+would decapitate the illustrious sunflowers, the glory of the
+garden, as they lolled their heads so fondly over the walls. Still
+all these were petty grievances, which might now and then ruffle
+the surface of his mind, as a summer breeze will ruffle the surface
+of a mill pond, but they could not disturb the deep-seated quiet of
+his soul. He would but seize a trusty staff that stood behind the
+door, issue suddenly out, and anoint the back of the aggressor,
+whether pig or urchin, and then return within doors, marvelously
+refreshed and tranquilized.
+
+The chief cause of anxiety to honest Wolfert, however, was the
+growing prosperity of the city. The expenses of living doubled and
+trebled, but he could not double and treble the magnitude of his
+cabbages, and the number of competitors prevented the increase of
+price; thus, therefore, while everyone around him grew richer,
+Wolfert grew poorer, and he could not, for the life of him,
+perceive how the evil was to be remedied.
+
+This growing care, which increased from day to day, had its gradual
+effect upon our worthy burgher, insomuch that it at length
+implanted two or three wrinkles in his brow, things unknown before
+in the family of the Webbers, and it seemed to pinch up the corners
+of his cocked hat into an expression of anxiety totally opposite to
+the tranquil, broad-brimmed, low-crowned beavers of his illustrious
+progenitors.
+
+Perhaps even this would not have materially disturbed the serenity
+of his mind had he had only himself and his wife to care for; but
+there was his daughter gradually growing to maturity, and all the
+world knows that when daughters begin to ripen, no fruit nor flower
+requires so much looking after. I have no talent at describing
+female charms, else fain would I depict the progress of this little
+Dutch beauty: how her blue eyes grew deeper and deeper, and her
+cherry lips redder and redder, and how she ripened and ripened, and
+rounded and rounded, in the opening breath of sixteen summers,
+until, in her seventeenth spring, she seemed ready to burst out of
+her bodice, like a half-blown rosebud.
+
+Ah, well-a-day! Could I but show her as she was then, tricked out
+on a Sunday morning in the hereditary finery of the old Dutch
+clothespress, of which her mother had confided to her the key! The
+wedding dress of her grandmother, modernized for use, with sundry
+ornaments, handed down as heirlooms in the family. Her pale brown
+hair smoothed with buttermilk in flat, waving lines on each side of
+her fair forehead. The chain of yellow, virgin gold that encircled
+her neck; the little cross that just rested at the entrance of a
+soft valley of happiness, as if it would sanctify the place. The--
+but pooh! it is not for an old man like me to be prosing about
+female beauty; suffice it to say, Amy had attained her seventeenth
+year. Long since had her sampler exhibited hearts in couples
+desperately transfixed with arrows, and true lovers' knots worked
+in deep blue silk, and it was evident she began to languish for
+some more interesting occupation than the rearing of sunflowers or
+pickling of cucumbers.
+
+At this critical period of female existence, when the heart within
+a damsel's bosom, like its emblem, the miniature which hangs
+without, is apt to be engrossed by a single image, a new visitor
+began to make his appearance under the roof of Wolfert Webber.
+This was Dirk Waldron, the only son of a poor widow, but who could
+boast of more fathers than any lad in the province, for his mother
+had had four husbands, and this only child, so that, though born in
+her last wedlock, he might fairly claim to be the tardy fruit of a
+long course of cultivation. This son of four fathers united the
+merits and the vigor of all his sires. If he had not had a great
+family before him he seemed likely to have a great one after him,
+for you had only to look at the fresh, buxom youth to see that he
+was formed to be the founder of a mighty race.
+
+This youngster gradually became an intimate visitor of the family.
+He talked little, but he sat long. He filled the father's pipe
+when it was empty, gathered up the mother's knitting needle, or
+ball of worsted, when it fell to the ground, stroked the sleek coat
+of the tortoise-shell cat, and replenished the teapot for the
+daughter from the bright copper kettle that sang before the fire.
+All these quiet little offices may seem of trifling import, but
+when true love is translated into Low Dutch it is in this way that
+it eloquently expresses itself. They were not lost upon the Webber
+family. The winning youngster found marvelous favor in the eyes of
+the mother; the tortoise-shell cat, albeit the most staid and
+demure of her kind, gave indubitable signs of approbation of his
+visits; the teakettle seemed to sing out a cheering note of welcome
+at his approach; and if the sly glances of the daughter might be
+rightly read, as she sat bridling and dimpling, and sewing by her
+mother's side, she was not a whit behind Dame Webber, or grimalkin,
+or the teakettle, in good will.
+
+Wolfert alone saw nothing of what was going on. Profoundly wrapt
+up in meditation on the growth of the city and his cabbages, he sat
+looking in the fire, and puffing his pipe in silence. One night,
+however, as the gentle Amy, according to custom, lighted her lover
+to the outer door, and he, according to custom, took his parting
+salute, the smack resounded so vigorously through the long, silent
+entry as to startle even the dull ear of Wolfert. He was slowly
+roused to a new source of anxiety. It had never entered into his
+head that this mere child, who, as it seemed, but the other day had
+been climbing about his knees and playing with dolls and baby
+houses, could all at once be thinking of lovers and matrimony. He
+rubbed his eyes, examined into the fact, and really found that
+while he had been dreaming of other matters, she had actually grown
+to be a woman, and, what was worse, had fallen in love. Here arose
+new cares for Wolfert. He was a kind father, but he was a prudent
+man. The young man was a lively, stirring lad, but then he had
+neither money nor land. Wolfert's ideas all ran in one channel,
+and he saw no alternative in case of a marriage but to portion off
+the young couple with a corner of his cabbage garden, the whole of
+which was barely sufficient for the support of his family.
+
+Like a prudent father, therefore, he determined to nip this passion
+in the bud, and forbade the youngster the house, though sorely did
+it go against his fatherly heart, and many a silent tear did it
+cause in the bright eye of his daughter. She showed herself,
+however, a pattern of filial piety and obedience. She never pouted
+and sulked; she never flew in the face of parental authority; she
+never flew into a passion, nor fell into hysterics, as many
+romantic, novel-read young ladies would do. Not she, indeed. She
+was none such heroical, rebellious trumpery, I'll warrant ye. On
+the contrary, she acquiesced like an obedient daughter, shut the
+street door in her lover's face, and if ever she did grant him an
+interview, it was either out of the kitchen window or over the
+garden fence.
+
+Wolfert was deeply cogitating these matters in his mind, and his
+brow wrinkled with unusual care, as he wended his way one Saturday
+afternoon to a rural inn, about two miles from the city. It was a
+favorite resort of the Dutch part of the community, from being
+always held by a Dutch line of landlords, and retaining an air and
+relish of the good old times. It was a Dutch-built house, that had
+probably been a country seat of some opulent burgher in the early
+time of the settlement. It stood near a point of land called
+Corlear's Hook,[1] which stretches out into the Sound, and against
+which the tide, at its flux and reflux, sets with extraordinary
+rapidity. The venerable and somewhat crazy mansion was
+distinguished from afar by a grove of elms and sycamores that
+seemed to wave a hospitable invitation, while a few weeping
+willows, with their dank, drooping foliage, resembling falling
+waters, gave an idea of coolness that rendered it an attractive
+spot during the heats of summer.
+
+
+[1] A point of land at the bend of the East River below Grand
+Street, New York City.
+
+
+Here, therefore, as I said, resorted many of the old inhabitants of
+the Manhattoes, where, while some played at shuffleboard[1] and
+quoits,[2] and ninepins, others smoked a deliberate pipe, and
+talked over public affairs.
+
+
+[1] A game played by pushing or shaking pieces of money or metal so
+as to make them reach certain marks on a board.
+
+[2] A game played by pitching a flattened, ring-shaped piece of
+iron, called a quoit, at a fixed object.
+
+
+It was on a blustering autumnal afternoon that Wolfert made his
+visit to the inn. The grove of elms and willows was stripped of
+its leaves, which whirled in rustling eddies about the fields. The
+ninepin alley was deserted, for the premature chilliness of the day
+had driven the company within doors. As it was Saturday afternoon
+the habitual club was in session, composed principally of regular
+Dutch burghers, though mingled occasionally with persons of various
+character and country, as is natural in a place of such motley
+population.
+
+Beside the fireplace, in a huge, leather-bottomed armchair, sat the
+dictator of this little world, the venerable Rem, or, as it was
+pronounced, "Ramm" Rapelye. He was a man of Walloon[1] race, and
+illustrious for the antiquity of his line, his great-grandmother
+having been the first white child born in the province. But he was
+still more illustrious for his wealth and dignity. He had long
+filled the noble office of alderman, and was a man to whom the
+governor himself took off his hat. He had maintained possession of
+the leather-bottomed chair from time immemorial, and had gradually
+waxed in bulk as he sat in his seat of government, until in the
+course of years he filled its whole magnitude. His word was
+decisive with his subjects, for he was so rich a man that he was
+never expected to support any opinion by argument. The landlord
+waited on him with peculiar officiousness,--not that he paid better
+than his neighbors, but then the coin of a rich man seems always to
+be so much more acceptable. The landlord had ever a pleasant word
+and a joke to insinuate in the ear of the august Ramm. It is true
+Ramm never laughed, and, indeed, ever maintained a mastiff-like
+gravity and even surliness of aspect; yet he now and then rewarded
+mine host with a token of approbation, which, though nothing more
+nor less than a kind of grunt, still delighted the landlord more
+than a broad laugh from a poorer man.
+
+
+[1] A people of French origin, inhabiting the frontiers between
+France and Flanders. A colony of one hundred and ten Walloons came
+to New York in 1624.
+
+
+"This will be a rough night for the money diggers," said mine host,
+as a gust of wind bowled round the house and rattled at the
+windows.
+
+"What! are they at their works again?" said an English half-pay
+captain, with one eye, who was a very frequent attendant at the
+inn.
+
+"Aye are they," said the landlord, "and well may they be. They've
+had luck of late. They say a great pot of money has been dug up in
+the fields just behind Stuyvesant's orchard. Folks think it must
+have been buried there in old times by Peter Stuyvesant, the Dutch
+governor."
+
+"Fudge!" said the one-eyed man of war, as he added a small portion
+of water to a bottom of brandy.
+
+"Well, you may believe it or not, as you please," said mine host,
+somewhat nettled, "but everybody knows that the old governor buried
+a great deal of his money at the time of the Dutch troubles, when
+the English redcoats seized on the province. They say, too, the
+old gentleman walks, aye, and in the very same dress that he wears
+in the picture that hangs up in the family house."
+
+"Fudge!" said the half-pay officer.
+
+"Fudge, if you please! But didn't Corney Van Zandt see him at
+midnight, stalking about in the meadow with his wooden leg, and a
+drawn sword in his hand, that flashed like fire? And what can he
+be walking for but because people have been troubling the place
+where he buried his money in old times?"
+
+Here the landlord was interrupted by several guttural sounds from
+Ramm Rapelye, betokening that he was laboring with the unusual
+production of an idea. As he was too great a man to be slighted by
+a prudent publican, mine host respectfully paused until he should
+deliver himself. The corpulent frame of this mighty burgher now
+gave all the symptoms of a volcanic mountain on the point of an
+eruption. First there was a certain heaving of the abdomen, not
+unlike an earthquake; then was emitted a cloud of tobacco smoke
+from that crater, his mouth; then there was a kind of rattle in the
+throat, as if the idea were working its way up through a region of
+phlegm; then there were several disjointed members of a sentence
+thrown out, ending in a cough; at length his voice forced its way
+into a slow, but absolute tone of a man who feels the weight of his
+purse, if not of his ideas, every portion of his speech being
+marked by a testy puff of tobacco smoke.
+
+"Who talks of old Peter Stuyvesant's walking? (puff). Have people
+no respect for persons? (puff--puff). Peter Stuyvesant knew better
+what to do with his money than to bury it (puff). I know the
+Stuyvesant family (puff), every one of them (puff); not a more
+respectable family in the province (puff)--old standards (puff)--
+warm householders (puff)--none of your upstarts (puff--puff--puff).
+Don't talk to me of Peter Stuyvesant's walking (puff--puff--puff--
+puff)."
+
+Here the redoubtable Ramm contracted his brow, clasped up his mouth
+till it wrinkled at each corner, and redoubled his smoking with
+such vehemence that the cloudy volumes soon wreathed round his
+head, as the smoke envelops the awful summit of Mount Aetna.
+
+A general silence followed the sudden rebuke of this very rich man.
+The subject, however, was too interesting to be readily abandoned.
+The conversation soon broke forth again from the lips of Peechy
+Prauw Van Hook, the chronicler of the club, one of those prosing,
+narrative old men who seem to be troubled with an incontinence of
+words as they grow old.
+
+Peechy could, at any time, tell as many stories in an evening as
+his hearers could digest in a month. He now resumed the
+conversation by affirming that, to his knowledge, money had, at
+different times, been digged up in various parts of the island.
+The lucky persons who had discovered them had always dreamed of
+them three times beforehand, and, what was worthy of remark, those
+treasures had never been found but by some descendant of the good
+old Dutch families, which clearly proved that they had been buried
+by Dutchmen in the olden time.
+
+"Fiddlestick with your Dutchmen!" cried the half-pay officer. "The
+Dutch had nothing to do with them. They were all buried by Kidd
+the pirate, and his crew."
+
+Here a keynote was touched that roused the whole company. The name
+of Captain Kidd was like a talisman in those times, and was
+associated with a thousand marvelous stories.
+
+The half-pay officer took the lead, and in his narrations fathered
+upon Kidd all the plunderings and exploits of Morgan,[1]
+Blackbeard,[2] and the whole list of bloody buccaneers.
+
+
+[1] Sir Henry Morgan (1637-90), a noted Welsh buccaneer. He was
+captured and sent to England for trial, but Charles II., instead of
+punishing him, knighted him, and subsequently appointed him
+governor of Jamaica.
+
+[2] Edward Teach, one of the most cruel of the pirates, took
+command of a pirate ship in 1717, and thereafter committed all
+sorts of atrocities until he was slain by Lieutenant Maynard in
+1718. His nickname of "Blackbeard" was given him because of his
+black beard.
+
+
+The officer was a man of great weight among the peaceable members
+of the club, by reason of his warlike character and gunpowder
+tales. All his golden stories of Kidd, however, and of the booty
+he had buried, were obstinately rivaled by the tales of Peechy
+Prauw, who, rather than suffer his Dutch progenitors to be eclipsed
+by a foreign freebooter, enriched every field and shore in the
+neighborhood with the hidden wealth of Peter Stuyvesant and his
+contemporaries.
+
+Not a word of this conversation was lost upon Wolfert Webber. He
+returned pensively home, full of magnificent ideas. The soil of
+his native island seemed to be turned into gold dust, and every
+field to teem with treasure. His head almost reeled at the thought
+how often he must have heedlessly rambled over places where
+countless sums lay, scarcely covered by the turf beneath his feet.
+His mind was in an uproar with this whirl of new ideas. As he came
+in sight of the venerable mansion of his forefathers, and the
+little realm where the Webbers had so long and so contentedly
+flourished, his gorge rose at the narrowness of his destiny.
+
+"Unlucky Wolfert!" exclaimed he; "others can go to bed and dream
+themselves into whole mines of wealth; they have but to seize a
+spade in the morning, and turn up doubloons[1] like potatoes; but
+thou must dream of hardships, and rise to poverty, must dig thy
+field from year's end to year's end, and yet raise nothing but
+cabbages!"
+
+
+[1] Spanish gold coins, equivalent to $15.60.
+
+
+Wolfert Webber went to bed with a heavy heart, and it was long
+before the golden visions that disturbed his brain permitted him to
+sink into repose. The same visions, however, extended into his
+sleeping thoughts, and assumed a more definite form. He dreamed
+that he had discovered an immense treasure in the center of his
+garden. At every stroke of the spade he laid bare a golden ingot;
+diamond crosses sparkled out of the dust; bags of money turned up
+their bellies, corpulent with pieces-of-eight[1] or venerable
+doubloons; and chests wedged close with moidores,[2] ducats,[3] and
+pistareens,[4] yawned before his ravished eyes, and vomited forth
+their glittering contents.
+
+
+[1] Spanish coins, worth about $1 each.
+[2] Portuguese gold coins, valued at $6.50.
+[3] Coins of gold and silver, valued at $2 and $1 respectively.
+[4] Spanish silver coins, worth about $.20.
+
+
+Wolfert awoke a poorer man than ever. He had no heart to go about
+his daily concerns, which appeared so paltry and profitless, but
+sat all day long in the chimney corner, picturing to himself ingots
+and heaps of gold in the fire. The next night his dream was
+repeated. He was again in his garden digging, and laying open
+stores of hidden wealth. There was something very singular in this
+repetition. He passed another day of reverie, and though it was
+cleaning day, and the house, as usual in Dutch households,
+completely topsy-turvy, yet he sat unmoved amidst the general
+uproar.
+
+The third night he went to bed with a palpitating heart. He put on
+his red nightcap wrong side outward, for good luck. It was deep
+midnight before his anxious mind could settle itself into sleep.
+Again the golden dream was repeated, and again he saw his garden
+teeming with ingots and money bags.
+
+Wolfert rose the next morning in complete bewilderment. A dream,
+three times repeated, was never known to lie, and if so, his
+fortune was made.
+
+In his agitation he put on his waistcoat with the hind part before,
+and this was a corroboration of good luck.[1] He no longer doubted
+that a huge store of money lay buried somewhere in his cabbage
+field, coyly waiting to be sought for, and he repined at having so
+long been scratching about the surface of the soil instead of
+digging to the center.
+
+
+[1] It is an old superstition that to put on one's clothes wrong
+side out forebodes good luck.
+
+
+He took his seat at the breakfast table, full of these
+speculations, asked his daughter to put a lump of gold into his
+tea, and on handing his wife a plate of slapjacks, begged her to
+help herself to a doubloon.
+
+His grand care now was how to secure this immense treasure without
+its being known. Instead of his working regularly in his grounds
+in the daytime, he now stole from his bed at night, and with spade
+and pickax went to work to rip up and dig about his paternal acres,
+from one end to the other. In a little time the whole garden,
+which had presented such a goodly and regular appearance, with its
+phalanx of cabbages, like a vegetable army in battle array, was
+reduced to a scene of devastation, while the relentless Wolfert,
+with nightcap on head and lantern and spade in hand, stalked
+through the slaughtered ranks, the destroying angel of his own
+vegetable world.
+
+Every morning bore testimony to the ravages of the preceding night
+in cabbages of all ages and conditions, from the tender sprout to
+the full-grown head, piteously rooted from their quiet beds like
+worthless weeds, and left to wither in the sunshine. In vain
+Wolfert's wife remonstrated; in vain his darling daughter wept over
+the destruction of some favorite marigold. "Thou shalt have gold
+of another-guess[1] sort," he would cry, chucking her under the
+chin; "thou shalt have a string of crooked ducats for thy wedding
+necklace, my child." His family began really to fear that the poor
+man's wits were diseased. He muttered in his sleep at night about
+mines of wealth, about pearls and diamonds, and bars of gold. In
+the daytime he was moody and abstracted, and walked about as if in
+a trance. Dame Webber held frequent councils with all the old
+women of the neighborhood; scarce an hour in the day but a knot of
+them might be seen wagging their white caps together round her
+door, while the poor woman made some piteous recital. The
+daughter, too, was fain to seek for more frequent consolation from
+the stolen interviews of her favored swain, Dirk Waldron. The
+delectable little Dutch songs with which she used to dulcify the
+house grew less and less frequent, and she would forget her sewing,
+and look wistfully in her father's face as he sat pondering by the
+fireside. Wolfert caught her eye one day fixed on him thus
+anxiously, and for a moment was roused from his golden reveries.
+"Cheer up, my girl," said he exultingly; "why dost thou droop?
+Thou shalt hold up thy head one day with the Brinckerhoffs, and the
+Schermerhorns, the Van Hornes, and the Van Dams.[2] By St.
+Nicholas, but the patroon[3] himself shall be glad to get thee for
+his son!"
+
+
+[1] A corruption of the old expression "another-gates," or "of
+another gate," meaning "of another way or manner"; hence, "of
+another kind."
+
+[2] Names of rich and influential Dutch families in the old Dutch
+colony of New Amsterdam.
+
+[3] The patroons were members of the Dutch West India Company, who
+purchased land in New Netherlands of the Indians, and after
+fulfilling certain conditions imposed with a view to colonizing
+their territory, enjoyed feudal rights similar to those of the
+barons of the Middle Ages.
+
+
+Amy shook her head at his vainglorious boast, and was more than
+ever in doubt of the soundness of the good man's intellect.
+
+In the meantime Wolfert went on digging and digging; but the field
+was extensive, and as his dream had indicated no precise spot, he
+had to dig at random. The winter set in before one tenth of the
+scene of promise had been explored.
+
+The ground became frozen hard, and the nights too cold for the
+labors of the spade.
+
+No sooner, however, did the returning warmth of spring loosen the
+soil, and the small frogs begin to pipe in the meadows, but Wolfert
+resumed his labors with renovated zeal. Still, however, the hours
+of industry were reversed.
+
+Instead of working cheerily all day, planting and setting out his
+vegetables, he remained thoughtfully idle, until the shades of
+night summoned him to his secret labors. In this way he continued
+to dig from night to night, and week to week, and month to month,
+but not a stiver[1] did he find. On the contrary, the more he
+digged the poorer he grew. The rich soil of his garden was digged
+away, and the sand and gravel from beneath was thrown to the
+surface, until the whole field presented an aspect of sandy
+barrenness.
+
+
+[1] A Dutch coin, worth about two cents; hence, anything of little
+worth.
+
+
+In the meantime, the seasons gradually rolled on. The little frogs
+which had piped in the meadows in early spring croaked as bullfrogs
+during the summer heats, and then sank into silence. The peach
+tree budded, blossomed, and bore its fruit. The swallows and
+martins came, twittered about the roof, built their nests, reared
+their young, held their congress along the eaves, and then winged
+their flight in search of another spring. The caterpillar spun its
+winding sheet, dangled in it from the great buttonwood tree before
+the house, turned into a moth, fluttered with the last sunshine of
+summer, and disappeared; and finally the leaves of the buttonwood
+tree turned yellow, then brown, then rustled one by one to the
+ground, and whirling about in little eddies of wind and dust,
+whispered that winter was at hand.
+
+Wolfert gradually woke from his dream of wealth as the year
+declined. He had reared no crop for the supply of his household
+during the sterility of winter. The season was long and severe,
+and for the first time the family was really straitened in its
+comforts. By degrees a revulsion of thought took place in
+Wolfert's mind, common to those whose golden dreams have been
+disturbed by pinching realities. The idea gradually stole upon him
+that he should come to want. He already considered himself one of
+the most unfortunate men in the province, having lost such an
+incalculable amount of undiscovered treasure, and now, when
+thousands of pounds had eluded his search, to be perplexed for
+shillings and pence was cruel in the extreme.
+
+Haggard care gathered about his brow; he went about with a money-
+seeking air, his eyes bent downward into the dust, and carrying his
+hands in his pockets, as men are apt to do when they have nothing
+else to put into them. He could not even pass the city almshouse
+without giving it a rueful glance, as if destined to be his future
+abode.
+
+The strangeness of his conduct and of his looks occasioned much
+speculation and remark. For a long time he was suspected of being
+crazy, and then everybody pitied him; and at length it began to be
+suspected that he was poor, and then everybody avoided him.
+
+The rich old burghers of his acquaintance met him outside the door
+when he called, entertained him hospitably on the threshold,
+pressed him warmly by the hand at parting, shook their heads as he
+walked away, with the kindhearted expression of "poor Wolfert," and
+turned a corner nimbly if by chance they saw him approaching as
+they walked the streets. Even the barber and the cobbler of the
+neighborhood, and a tattered tailor in an alley hard by, three of
+the poorest and merriest rogues in the world, eyed him with that
+abundant sympathy which usually attends a lack of means, and there
+is not a doubt but their pockets would have been at his command,
+only that they happened to be empty.
+
+Thus everybody deserted the Webber mansion, as if poverty were
+contagious, like the plague--everybody but honest Dirk Waldron, who
+still kept up his stolen visits to the daughter, and indeed seemed
+to wax more affectionate as the fortunes of his mistress were on
+the wane.
+
+Many months had elapsed since Wolfert had frequented his old
+resort, the rural inn. He was taking a long, lonely walk one
+Saturday afternoon, musing over his wants and disappointments, when
+his feet took instinctively their wonted direction, and on awaking
+out of a reverie, he found himself before the door of the inn. For
+some moments he hesitated whether to enter, but his heart yearned
+for companionship, and where can a ruined man find better
+companionship than at a tavern, where there is neither sober
+example nor sober advice to put him out of countenance?
+
+Wolfert found several of the old frequenters of the inn at their
+usual posts and seated in their usual places; but one was missing,
+the great Ramm Rapelye, who for many years had filled the leather-
+bottomed chair of state. His place was supplied by a stranger, who
+seemed, however, completely at home in the chair and the tavern.
+He was rather under size, but deep-chested, square, and muscular.
+His broad shoulders, double joints, and bow knees gave tokens of
+prodigious strength. His face was dark and weather-beaten; a deep
+scar, as if from the slash of a cutlass, had almost divided his
+nose, and made a gash in his upper lip, through which his teeth
+shone like a bulldog's. A mop of iron-gray hair gave a grisly
+finish to this hard-favored visage. His dress was of an amphibious
+character. He wore an old hat edged with tarnished lace, and
+cocked in martial style on one side of his head; a rusty[1] blue
+military coat with brass buttons; and a wide pair of short
+petticoat trousers,--or rather breeches, for they were gathered up
+at the knees. He ordered everybody about him with an authoritative
+air, talking in a brattling[2] voice that sounded like the
+crackling of thorns under a pot, d--d the landlord and servants
+with perfect impunity, and was waited upon with greater
+obsequiousness than had ever been shown to the mighty Ramm himself.
+
+
+[1] Shabby.
+
+[2] Noisy.
+
+
+Wolfert's curiosity was awakened to know who and what was this
+stranger who had thus usurped absolute sway in this ancient domain.
+Peechy Prauw took him aside into a remote corner of the hall, and
+there, in an under voice and with great caution, imparted to him
+all that he knew on the subject. The inn had been aroused several
+months before, on a dark, stormy night, by repeated long shouts
+that seemed like the howlings of a wolf. They came from the water
+side, and at length were distinguished to be hailing the house in
+the seafaring manner, "House ahoy!" The landlord turned out with
+his head waiter, tapster, hostler, and errand boy--that is to say,
+with his old negro Cuff. On approaching the place whence the voice
+proceeded, they found this amphibious-looking personage at the
+water's edge, quite alone, and seated on a great oaken sea chest.
+How he came there,--whether he had been set on shore from some
+boat, or had floated to land on his chest,--nobody could tell, for
+he did not seem disposed to answer questions, and there was
+something in his looks and manners that put a stop to all
+questioning. Suffice it to say, he took possession of a corner
+room of the inn, to which his chest was removed with great
+difficulty. Here he had remained ever since, keeping about the inn
+and its vicinity. Sometimes, it is true, he disappeared for one,
+two, or three days at a time, going and returning without giving
+any notice or account of his movements. He always appeared to have
+plenty of money, though often of very strange, outlandish coinage,
+and he regularly paid his bill every evening before turning in.
+
+He had fitted up his room to his own fancy, having slung a hammock
+from the ceiling instead of a bed, and decorated the walls with
+rusty pistols and cutlasses of foreign workmanship. A greater part
+of his time was passed in this room, seated by the window, which
+commanded a wide view of the Sound, a short, old-fashioned pipe in
+his mouth, a glass of rum toddy[1] at his elbow, and a pocket
+telescope in his hand, with which he reconnoitered every boat that
+moved upon the water. Large square-rigged vessels seemed to excite
+but little attention; but the moment he descried anything with a
+shoulder-of-mutton[2] sail, or that a barge or yawl or jolly-boat
+hove in sight, up went the telescope, and he examined it with the
+most scrupulous attention.
+
+
+[1] A mixture of rum and hot water sweetened.
+
+[2] Triangular.
+
+
+All this might have passed without much notice, for in those times
+the province was so much the resort of adventurers of all
+characters and climes that any oddity in dress or behavior
+attracted but small attention. In a little while, however, this
+strange sea monster, thus strangely cast upon dry land, began to
+encroach upon the long established customs and customers of the
+place, and to interfere in a dictatorial manner in the affairs of
+the ninepin alley and the barroom, until in the end he usurped an
+absolute command over the whole inn. It was all in vain to attempt
+to withstand his authority. He was not exactly quarrelsome, but
+boisterous and peremptory, like one accustomed to tyrannize on a
+quarter-deck; and there was a dare-devil[1] air about everything he
+said and did that inspired wariness in all bystanders. Even the
+half-pay officer, so long the hero of the club, was soon silenced
+by him, and the quiet burghers stared with wonder at seeing their
+inflammable man of war so readily and quietly extinguished.
+
+
+[1] Reckless.
+
+
+And then the tales that he would tell were enough to make a
+peaceable man's hair stand on end. There was not a sea fight, nor
+marauding nor freebooting adventure that had happened within the
+last twenty years, but he seemed perfectly versed in it. He
+delighted to talk of the exploits of the buccaneers in the West
+Indies and on the Spanish Main.[1] How his eyes would glisten as
+he described the waylaying of treasure ships; the desperate fights,
+yardarm and yardarm,[2] broadside and broadside;[3] the boarding
+and capturing huge Spanish galleons! With what chuckling relish
+would he describe the descent upon some rich Spanish colony, the
+rifling of a church, the sacking of a convent! You would have
+thought you heard some gormandizer dilating upon the roasting of a
+savory goose at Michaelmas,[4] as he described the roasting of some
+Spanish don to make him discover his treasure,--a detail given with
+a minuteness that made every rich old burgher present turn
+uncomfortably in his chair. All this would be told with infinite
+glee, as if he considered it an excellent joke, and then he would
+give such a tyrannical leer in the face of his next neighbor that
+the poor man would be fain to laugh out of sheer faint-heartedness.
+If anyone, however, pretended to contradict him in any of his
+stories, he was on fire in an instant. His very cocked hat assumed
+a momentary fierceness, and seemed to resent the contradiction.
+"How the devil should you know as well as I? I tell you it was as
+I say;" and he would at the same time let slip a broadside of
+thundering oaths[5] and tremendous sea phrases, such as had never
+been heard before within these peaceful walls.
+
+
+[1] The coast of the northern part of South America along the
+Caribbean Sea, the route formerly traversed by the Spanish treasure
+ships between the Old and New Worlds.
+
+[2] Ships are said to be yardarm and yardarm when so near as to
+touch or interlock their yards, which are the long pieces of timber
+designed to support and extend the square sails.
+
+[3] "Broadside and broadside," i.e., with the side of one ship
+touching that of another.
+
+[4] The Feast of the Archangel Michael, a church festival
+celebrated on September 29th.
+
+[5] "Broadside of thundering oaths," i.e., a volley of abuse.
+
+
+Indeed, the worthy burghers began to surmise that he knew more of
+those stories than mere hearsay. Day after day their conjectures
+concerning him grew more and more wild and fearful. The
+strangeness of his arrival, the strangeness of his manners, the
+mystery that surrounded him,--all made him something
+incomprehensible in their eyes. He was a kind of monster of the
+deep to them; he was a merman, he was a behemoth, he was a
+leviathan,--in short, they knew not what he was.
+
+The domineering spirit of this boisterous sea urchin at length grew
+quite intolerable. He was no respecter of persons; he contradicted
+the richest burghers without hesitation; he took possession of the
+sacred elbow chair, which time out of mind had been the seat of
+sovereignty of the illustrious Ramm Rapelye. Nay, he even went so
+far, in one of his rough, jocular moods, as to slap that mighty
+burgher on the back, drink his toddy, and wink in his face,--a
+thing scarcely to be believed. From this time Ramm Rapelye
+appeared no more at the inn. His example was followed by several
+of the most eminent customers, who were too rich to tolerate being
+bullied out of their opinions or being obliged to laugh at another
+man's jokes. The landlord was almost in despair; but he knew not
+how to get rid of this sea monster and his sea chest, who seemed
+both to have grown like fixtures, or excrescences on his
+establishment.
+
+Such was the account whispered cautiously in Wolfert's ear by the
+narrator, Peechy Prauw, as he held him by the button in a corner of
+the hall, casting a wary glance now and then toward the door of the
+barroom, lest he should be overheard by the terrible hero of his
+tale.
+
+Wolfert took his seat in a remote part of the room in silence,
+impressed with profound awe of this unknown, so versed in
+freebooting history. It was to him a wonderful instance of the
+revolutions of mighty empires, to find the venerable Ramm Rapelye
+thus ousted from the throne, and a rugged tarpaulin[1] dictating
+from his elbow chair, hectoring the patriarchs, and filling this
+tranquil little realm with brawl and bravado.
+
+
+[1] A kind of canvas used about a ship; hence, a sailor.
+
+
+The stranger was, on this evening, in a more than usually
+communicative mood, and was narrating a number of astounding
+stories of plunderings and burnings on the high seas. He dwelt
+upon them with peculiar relish, heightening the frightful
+particulars in proportion to their effect on his peaceful auditors.
+He gave a swaggering detail of the capture of a Spanish
+merchantman. She was lying becalmed during a long summer's day,
+just off from the island which was one of the lurking places of the
+pirates. They had reconnoitered her with their spyglasses from the
+shore, and ascertained her character and force. At night a picked
+crew of daring fellows set off for her in a whaleboat. They
+approached with muffled oars, as she lay rocking idly with the
+undulations of the sea, and her sails flapping against the masts.
+They were close under the stern before the guard on deck was aware
+of their approach. The alarm was given; the pirates threw hand
+grenades[1] on deck, and sprang up the main chains,[2] sword in
+hand.
+
+
+[1] "Hand grenades," i.e., small shells of iron or glass filled
+with gunpowder and thrown by hand.
+
+[2] "Main chains," i.e., strong bars of iron bolted at the lower
+end to the side of a vessel, and secured at the upper end to the
+iron straps of the blocks by which the shrouds supporting the masts
+are extended.
+
+
+The crew flew to arms, but in great confusion; some were shot down,
+others took refuge in the tops, others were driven overboard and
+drowned, while others fought hand to hand from the main deck to the
+quarter-deck, disputing gallantly every inch of ground. There were
+three Spanish gentlemen on board, with their ladies, who made the
+most desperate resistance. They defended the companion way,[1] cut
+down several of their assailants, and fought like very devils, for
+they were maddened by the shrieks of the ladies from the cabin.
+One of the dons was old, and soon dispatched. The other two kept
+their ground vigorously, even though the captain of the pirates was
+among their assailants. Just then there was a shout of victory
+from the main deck. "The ship is ours!" cried the pirates.
+
+
+[1] The companion way is a staircase leading to the cabin of a
+ship.
+
+
+One of the dons immediately dropped his sword and surrendered; the
+other, who was a hot-headed youngster, and just married, gave the
+captain a slash in the face that laid all open. The captain just
+made out to articulate the words, "No quarter."
+
+"And what did they do with their prisoners?" said Peechy Prauw
+eagerly.
+
+"Threw them all overboard," was the answer. A dead pause followed
+the reply. Peechy Prauw sank quietly back, like a man who had
+unwarily stolen upon the lair of a sleeping lion. The honest
+burghers cast fearful glances at the deep scar slashed across the
+visage of the stranger, and moved their chairs a little farther
+off. The seaman, however, smoked on without moving a muscle, as
+though he either did not perceive, or did not regard, the
+unfavorable effect he had produced upon his hearers.
+
+The half-pay officer was the first to break the silence, for he was
+continually tempted to make ineffectual head against this tyrant of
+the seas, and to regain his lost consequence in the eyes of his
+ancient companions. He now tried to match the gunpowder tales of
+the stranger by others equally tremendous. Kidd, as usual, was his
+hero, concerning whom he seemed to have picked up many of the
+floating traditions of the province. The seaman had always evinced
+a settled pique against the one-eyed warrior. On this occasion he
+listened with peculiar impatience. He sat with one arm akimbo, the
+other elbow on the table, the hand holding on to the small pipe he
+was pettishly puffing, his legs crossed, drumming with one foot on
+the ground, and casting every now and then the side glance of a
+basilisk at the prosing captain. At length the latter spoke of
+Kidd's having ascended the Hudson with some of his crew, to land
+his plunder in secrecy.
+
+Kidd up the Hudson!" burst forth the seaman, with a tremendous
+oath; "Kidd never was up the Hudson!"
+
+"I tell you he was," said the other. "Aye, and they say he buried
+a quantity of treasure on the little flat that runs out into the
+river, called the Devil's Dans Kammer."[1]
+
+
+[1] A huge, flat rock, projecting into the Hudson River above the
+Highlands.
+
+
+"The Devil's Dans Kammer in your teeth!"[1] cried the seaman. "I
+tell you Kidd never was up the Hudson. What a plague do you know
+of Kidd and his haunts?"
+
+
+[1] "In your teeth," a phrase to denote direct opposition or
+defiance.
+
+
+"What do I know?" echoed the half-pay officer. "Why, I was in
+London at the time of his trial; aye, and I had the pleasure of
+seeing him hanged at Execution Dock."
+
+"Then, sir, let me tell you that you saw as pretty a fellow hanged
+as ever trod shoe leather. Aye!" putting his face nearer to that
+of the officer, "and there was many a landlubber[1] looked on that
+might much better have swung in his stead."
+
+
+[1] A term of contempt used by seamen for those who pass their
+lives on land.
+
+
+The half-pay officer was silenced; but the indignation thus pent up
+in his bosom glowed with intense vehemence in his single eye, which
+kindled like a coal.
+
+Peechy Prauw, who never could remain silent, observed that the
+gentleman certainly was in the right. Kidd never did bury money up
+the Hudson, nor indeed in any of those parts, though many affirmed
+such to be the fact. It was Bradish[1] and others of the
+buccaneers who had buried money, some said in Turtle Bay,[2] others
+on Long Island, others in the neighborhood of Hell Gate. "Indeed,"
+added he, "I recollect an adventure of Sam, the negro fisherman,
+many years ago, which some think had something to do with the
+buccaneers. As we are all friends here, and as it will go no
+further, I'll tell it to you.
+
+
+[1] Bradish was a pirate whose actions were blended in the popular
+mind with those of Kidd. He was boatswain of a ship which sailed
+from England in 1697, and which, like Kidd's, bore the name of the
+Adventure. In the absence of the captain on shore, he seized the
+ship and set out on a piratical cruise. After amassing a fortune,
+he sailed for America and deposited a large amount of his wealth
+with a confederate on Long Island. He was apprehended in Rhode
+Island, sent to England, and executed.
+
+[2] A small cove in the East River two miles north of Corlear's
+Hook.
+
+
+"Upon a dark night many years ago, as Black Sam was returning from
+fishing in Hell Gate--"
+
+Here the story was nipped in the bud by a sudden movement from the
+unknown, who, laying his iron fist on the table, knuckles downward,
+with a quiet force that indented the very boards, and looking
+grimly over his shoulder, with the grin of an angry bear,--
+"Hearkee, neighbor," said he, with significant nodding of the head,
+"you'd better let the buccaneers and their money alone; they're not
+for old men and old women to meddle with. They fought hard for
+their money--they gave body and soul for it; and wherever it lies
+buried, depend upon it he must have a tug with the devil who gets
+it!
+
+This sudden explosion was succeeded by a blank silence throughout
+the room. Peechy Prauw shrunk within himself, and even the one-
+eyed officer turned pale. Wolfert, who from a dark corner of the
+room had listened with intense eagerness to all this talk about
+buried treasure, looked with mingled awe and reverence at this bold
+buccaneer, for such he really suspected him to be. There was a
+chinking of gold and a sparkling of jewels in all his stories about
+the Spanish Main that gave a value to every period, and Wolfert
+would have given anything for the rummaging of the ponderous sea
+chest, which his imagination crammed full of golden chalices,
+crucifixes, and jolly round bags of doubloons.
+
+The dead stillness that had fallen upon the company was at length
+interrupted by the stranger, who pulled out a prodigious watch of
+curious and ancient workmanship, and which in Wolfert's eyes had a
+decidedly Spanish look. On touching a spring, it struck ten
+o'clock, upon which the sailor called for his reckoning, and having
+paid it out of a handful of outlandish coin, he drank off the
+remainder of his beverage, and without taking leave of anyone,
+rolled out of the room, muttering to himself as he stamped upstairs
+to his chamber.
+
+It was some time before the company could recover from the silence
+into which they had been thrown. The very footsteps of the
+stranger, which were heard now and then as he traversed his
+chamber, inspired awe.
+
+Still the conversation in which they had been engaged was too
+interesting not to be resumed. A heavy thunder gust had gathered
+up unnoticed while they were lost in talk, and the torrents of rain
+that fell forbade all thoughts of setting off for home until the
+storm should subside. They drew nearer together, therefore, and
+entreated the worthy Peechy Prauw to continue the tale which had
+been so discourteously interrupted. He readily complied,
+whispering, however, in a tone scarcely above his breath, and
+drowned occasionally by the rolling of the thunder; and he would
+pause every now and then and listen, with evident awe, as he heard
+the heavy footsteps of the stranger pacing overhead. The following
+is the purport of his story:
+
+
+Adventure of the Black Fisherman
+
+
+Everybody knows Black Sam, the old negro fisherman, or, as he is
+commonly called, "Mud Sam," who has fished about the Sound for the
+last half century. It is now many years since Sam, who was then as
+active a young negro as any in the province, and worked on the farm
+of Killian Suydam on Long Island, having finished his day's work at
+an early hour, was fishing, one still summer evening, just about
+the neighborhood of Hell Gate.
+
+He was in a light skiff, and being well acquainted with the
+currents and eddies, had shifted his station, according to the
+shifting of the tide, from the Hen and Chickens to the Hog's Back,
+from the Hog's Back to the Pot, and from the Pot to the Frying Pan;
+but in the eagerness of his sport he did not see that the tide was
+rapidly ebbing, until the roaring of the whirlpools and eddies
+warned him of his danger, and he had some difficulty in shooting
+his skiff from among the rocks and breakers, and getting to the
+point of Blackwell's Island.[1] Here he cast anchor for some time,
+waiting the turn of the tide to enable him to return homeward. As
+the night set in, it grew blustering and gusty. Dark clouds came
+bundling up in the west, and now and then a growl of thunder or a
+flash of lightning told that a summer storm was at hand. Sam
+pulled over, therefore, under the lee of Manhattan Island, and,
+coasting along, came to a snug nook, just under a steep, beetling
+rock, where he fastened his skiff to the root of a tree that shot
+out from a cleft, and spread its broad branches like a canopy over
+the water. The gust came scouring along, the wind threw up the
+river in white surges, the rain rattled among the leaves, the
+thunder bellowed worse than that which is now bellowing, the
+lightning seemed to lick up the surges of the stream; but Sam,
+snugly sheltered under rock and tree, lay crouching in his skiff,
+rocking upon the billows until he fell asleep.
+
+
+[1] A long, narrow island in the East River, between New York and
+Long Island City.
+
+
+When he woke all was quiet. The gust had passed away, and only now
+and then a faint gleam of lightning in the east showed which way it
+had gone. The night was dark and moonless, and from the state of
+the tide Sam concluded it was near midnight. He was on the point
+of making loose his skiff to return homeward when he saw a light
+gleaming along the water from a distance, which seemed rapidly
+approaching. As it drew near he perceived it came from a lantern
+in the bow of a boat gliding along under shadow of the land. It
+pulled up in a small cove close to where he was. A man jumped on
+shore, and searching about with the lantern, exclaimed, "This is
+the place--here's the iron ring." The boat was then made fast, and
+the man, returning on board, assisted his comrades in conveying
+something heavy on shore. As the light gleamed among them, Sam saw
+that they were five stout, desperate-looking fellows, in red woolen
+caps, with a leader in a three-cornered hat, and that some of them
+were armed with dirks, or long knives, and pistols. They talked
+low to one another, and occasionally in some outlandish tongue
+which he could not understand.
+
+On landing they made their way among the bushes, taking turns to
+relieve each other in lugging their burden up the rocky bank.
+Sam's curiosity was now fully aroused, so leaving his skiff he
+clambered silently up a ridge that overlooked their path. They had
+stopped to rest for a moment, and the leader was looking about
+among the bushes with his lantern. "Have you brought the spades?"
+said one. "They are here," replied another, who had them on his
+shoulder. "We must dig deep, where there will be no risk of
+discovery," said a third.
+
+A cold chill ran through Sam's veins. He fancied he saw before him
+a gang of murderers, about to bury their victim. His knees smote
+together. In his agitation he shook the branch of a tree with
+which he was supporting himself as he looked over the edge of the
+cliff.
+
+"What's that?" cried one of the gang. "Some one stirs among the
+bushes!"
+
+The lantern was held up in the direction of the noise. One of the
+red-caps cocked a pistol, and pointed it toward the very place
+where Sam was standing. He stood motionless, breathless, expecting
+the next moment to be his last. Fortunately his dingy complexion
+was in his favor, and made no glare among the leaves.
+
+"'Tis no one," said the man with the lantern. "What a plague! you
+would not fire off your pistol and alarm the country!"
+
+The pistol was uncocked, the burden was resumed, and the party
+slowly toiled along the bank. Sam watched them as they went, the
+light sending back fitful gleams through the dripping bushes, and
+it was not till they were fairly out of sight that he ventured to
+draw breath freely. He now thought of getting back to his boat,
+and making his escape out of the reach of such dangerous neighbors;
+but curiosity was all-powerful. He hesitated, and lingered, and
+listened. By and by he heard the strokes of spades. "They are
+digging the grave!" said he to himself, and the cold sweat started
+upon his forehead. Every stroke of a spade, as it sounded through
+the silent groves, went to his heart. It was evident there was as
+little noise made as possible; everything had an air of terrible
+mystery and secrecy. Sam had a great relish for the horrible; a
+tale of murder was a treat for him, and he was a constant attendant
+at executions. He could not resist an impulse, in spite of every
+danger, to steal nearer to the scene of mystery, and overlook the
+midnight fellows at their work. He crawled along cautiously,
+therefore, inch by inch, stepping with the utmost care among the
+dry leaves, lest their rustling should betray him. He came at
+length to where a steep rock intervened between him and the gang,
+for he saw the light of their lantern shining up against the
+branches of the trees on the other side. Sam slowly and silently
+clambered up the surface of the rock, and raising his head above
+its naked edge, beheld the villains immediately below him, and so
+near that though he dreaded discovery he dared not withdraw lest
+the least movement should be heard. In this way he remained, with
+his round black face peering above the edge of the rock, like the
+sun just emerging above the edge of the horizon, or the round-
+cheeked moon on the dial of a clock.
+
+The red-caps had nearly finished their work, the grave was filled
+up, and they were carefully replacing the turf. This done they
+scattered dry leaves over the place. "And now," said the leader,
+"I defy the devil himself to find it out."
+
+"The murderers!" exclaimed Sam involuntarily.
+
+The whole gang started, and looking up beheld the round black head
+of Sam just above them, his white eyes strained half out of their
+orbits, his white teeth chattering, and his whole visage shining
+with cold perspiration.
+
+"We're discovered!" cried one.
+
+"Down with him!" cried another.
+
+Sam heard the cocking of a pistol, but did not pause for the
+report. He scrambled over rock and stone, through brush and brier,
+rolled down banks like a hedgehog, scrambled up others like a
+catamount. In every direction he heard some one or other of the
+gang hemming him in. At length he reached the rocky ridge along
+the river; one of the red-caps was hard behind him. A steep rock
+like a wall rose directly in his way; it seemed to cut off all
+retreat, when fortunately he espied the strong, cord-like branch of
+a grapevine reaching half way down it. He sprang at it with the
+force of a desperate man, seized it with both hands, and, being
+young and agile, succeeded in swinging himself to the summit of the
+cliff. Here he stood in full relief against the sky, when the red-
+cap cocked his pistol and fired. The ball whistled by Sam's head.
+With the lucky thought of a man in an emergency, he uttered a yell,
+fell to the ground, and detached at the same time a fragment of the
+rock, which tumbled with a loud splash into the river.
+
+"I've done his business," said the red-cap to one or two of his
+comrades as they arrived panting. "He'll tell no tales, except to
+the fishes in the river."
+
+His pursuers now turned to meet their companions. Sam, sliding
+silently down the surface of the rock, let himself quietly into his
+skiff, cast loose the fastening, and abandoned himself to the rapid
+current, which in that place runs like a mill stream, and soon
+swept him off from the neighborhood. It was not, however, until he
+had drifted a great distance that he ventured to ply his oars, when
+he made his skiff dart like an arrow through the strait of Hell
+Gate, never heeding the danger of Pot, Frying Pan, nor Hog's Back
+itself, nor did he feel himself thoroughly secure until safely
+nestled in bed in the cockloft of the ancient farmhouse of the
+Suydams.
+
+
+Here the worthy Peechy Prauw paused to take breath, and to take a
+sip of the gossip tankard that stood at his elbow. His auditors
+remained with open mouths and outstretched necks, gaping like a
+nest of swallows for an additional mouthful.
+
+"And is that all?" exclaimed the half-pay officer.
+
+"That's all that belongs to the story," said Peechy Prauw.
+
+"And did Sam never find out what was buried by the red-caps?" said
+Wolfert eagerly, whose mind was haunted by nothing but ingots and
+doubloons.
+
+"Not that I know of," said Peechy; "he had no time to spare from
+his work, and, to tell the truth, he did not like to run the risk
+of another race among the rocks. Besides, how should he recollect
+the spot where the grave had been digged? everything would look so
+different by daylight. And then, where was the use of looking for
+a dead body when there was no chance of hanging the murderers?"
+
+"Aye, but are you sure it was a dead body they buried?" said
+Wolfert.
+
+"To be sure," cried Peechy Prauw exultingly. "Does it not haunt in
+the neighborhood to this very day?"
+
+"Haunts!" exclaimed several of the party, opening their eyes still
+wider, and edging their chairs still closer.
+
+"Aye, haunts," repeated Peechy; "have none of you heard of Father
+Red-cap, who haunts the old burned farmhouse in the woods, on the
+border of the Sound, near Hell Gate?"
+
+"Oh, to be sure, I've heard tell of something of the kind, but then
+I took it for some old wives' fable."
+
+"Old wives' fable or not," said Peechy Prauw, "that farmhouse
+stands hard by the very spot. It's been unoccupied time out of
+mind, and stands in a lonely part of the coast, but those who fish
+in the neighborhood have often heard strange noises there, and
+lights have been seen about the wood at night, and an old fellow in
+a red cap has been seen at the windows more than once, which people
+take to be the ghost of the body buried there. Once upon a time
+three soldiers took shelter in the building for the night, and
+rummaged it from top to bottom, when they found old Father Red-cap
+astride of a cider barrel in the cellar, with a jug in one hand and
+a goblet in the other. He offered them a drink out of his goblet,
+but just as one of the soldiers was putting it to his mouth--whew!-
+-a flash of fire blazed through the cellar, blinded every mother's
+son of them for several minutes, and when they recovered their
+eyesight, jug, goblet, and Red-cap had vanished, and nothing but
+the empty cider barrel remained."
+
+Here the half-pay officer, who was growing very muzzy and sleepy,
+and nodding over his liquor, with half-extinguished eye, suddenly
+gleamed up like an expiring rush-light.
+
+"That's all fudge!" said he, as Peechy finished his last story.
+
+"Well, I don't vouch for the truth of it myself," said Peechy
+Prauw, "though all the world knows that there's something strange
+about that house and grounds; but as to the story of Mud Sam, I
+believe it just as well as if it had happened to myself."
+
+
+The deep interest taken in this conversation by the company had
+made them unconscious of the uproar abroad among the elements, when
+suddenly they were electrified by a tremendous clap of thunder. A
+lumbering crash followed instantaneously, shaking the building to
+its very foundation. All started from their seats, imagining it
+the shock of an earthquake, or that old Father Red-cap was coming
+among them in all his terrors. They listened for a moment, but
+only heard the rain pelting against the windows and the wind
+howling among the trees. The explosion was soon explained by the
+apparition of an old negro's bald head thrust in at the door, his
+white goggle eyes contrasting with his jetty poll, which was wet
+with rain, and shone like a bottle. In a jargon but half
+intelligible he announced that the kitchen chimney had been struck
+with lightning.
+
+A sullen pause of the storm, which now rose and sank in gusts,
+produced a momentary stillness. In this interval the report of a
+musket was heard, and a long shout, almost like a yell, resounded
+from the shores. Everyone crowded to the window; another musket
+shot was heard, and another long shout, mingled wildly with a
+rising blast of wind. It seemed as if the cry came up from the
+bosom of the waters, for though incessant flashes of lightning
+spread a light about the shore, no one was to be seen.
+
+Suddenly the window of the room overhead was opened, and a loud
+halloo uttered by the mysterious stranger. Several hailings passed
+from one party to the other, but in a language which none of the
+company in the barroom could understand, and presently they heard
+the window closed, and a great noise overhead, as if all the
+furniture were pulled and hauled about the room. The negro servant
+was summoned, and shortly afterwards was seen assisting the veteran
+to lug the ponderous sea chest downstairs.
+
+The landlord was in amazement. "What, you are not going on the
+water in such a storm?"
+
+"Storm!" said the other scornfully, "do you call such a sputter of
+weather a storm?"
+
+"You'll get drenched to the skin; you'll catch your death!" said
+Peechy Prauw affectionately.
+
+"Thunder and lightning!" exclaimed the veteran; "don't preach about
+weather to a man that has cruised in whirlwinds and tornadoes."
+
+The obsequious Peechy was again struck dumb. The voice from the
+water was heard once more in a tone of impatience; the bystanders
+stared with redoubled awe at this man of storms, who seemed to have
+come up out of the deep, and to be summoned back to it again. As,
+with the assistance of the negro, he slowly bore his ponderous sea
+chest toward the shore, they eyed it with a superstitious feeling,
+half doubting whether he were not really about to embark upon it
+and launch forth upon the wild waves. They followed him at a
+distance with a lantern.
+
+"Dowse[1] the light!" roared the hoarse voice from the water. "No
+one wants light here!"
+
+
+[1] Extinguish.
+
+
+"Thunder and lightning!" exclaimed the veteran, turning short upon
+them; "back to the house with you!"
+
+Wolfert and his companions shrank back in dismay. Still their
+curiosity would not allow them entirely to withdraw. A long sheet
+of lightning now flickered across the waves, and discovered a boat,
+filled with men, just under a rocky point, rising and sinking with
+the heaving surges, and swashing the waters at every heave. It was
+with difficulty held to the rocks by a boat hook, for the current
+rushed furiously round the point. The veteran hoisted one end of
+the lumbering sea chest on the gunwale of the boat, and seized the
+handle at the other end to lift it in, when the motion propelled
+the boat from the shore, the chest slipped off from the gunwale,
+and, sinking into the waves, pulled the veteran headlong after it.
+A loud shriek was uttered by all on shore, and a volley of
+execrations by those on board, but boat and man were hurried away
+by the rushing swiftness of the tide. A pitchy darkness succeeded.
+Wolfert Webber, indeed, fancied that he distinguished a cry for
+help, and that he beheld the drowning man beckoning for assistance;
+but when the lightning again gleamed along the water all was void;
+neither man nor boat was to be seen,--nothing but the dashing and
+weltering of the waves as they hurried past.
+
+The company returned to the tavern to await the subsiding of the
+storm. They resumed their seats and gazed on each other with
+dismay. The whole transaction had not occupied five minutes, and
+not a dozen words had been spoken. When they looked at the oaken
+chair they could scarcely realize the fact that the strange being
+who had so lately tenanted it, full of life and Herculean vigor,
+should already be a corpse. There was the very glass he had just
+drunk from; there lay the ashes from the pipe which he had smoked,
+as it were, with his last breath. As the worthy burghers pondered
+on these things, they felt a terrible conviction of the uncertainty
+of existence, and each felt as if the ground on which he stood was
+rendered less stable by his awful example.
+
+As, however, the most of the company were possessed of that
+valuable philosophy which enables a man to bear up with fortitude
+against the misfortunes of his neighbors, they soon managed to
+console themselves for the tragic end of the veteran. The landlord
+was particularly happy that the poor dear man had paid his
+reckoning before he went, and made a kind of farewell speech on the
+occasion.
+
+"He came," said he, "in a storm, and he went in a storm; he came in
+the night, and he went in the night; he came nobody knows whence,
+and he has gone nobody knows where. For aught I know he has gone
+to sea once more on his chest, and may land to bother some people
+on the other side of the world; though it's a thousand pities,"
+added he, "if he has gone to Davy Jones's[1] locker, that he had
+not left his own locker[2] behind him."
+
+
+[1] Davy Jones is the spirit of the sea, or the sea devil, and Davy
+Jones's locker is the bottom of the ocean; hence, "gone to Davy
+Jones's locker" signifies "dead and buried in the sea."
+
+[2] Chest.
+
+
+"His locker! St. Nicholas preserve us!" cried Peechy Prauw. "I'd
+not have had that sea chest in the house for any money; I'll
+warrant he'd come racketing after it at nights, and making a
+haunted house of the inn. And as to his going to sea in his chest,
+I recollect what happened to Skipper Onderdonk's ship on his voyage
+from Amsterdam.
+
+"The boatswain died during a storm, so they wrapped him up in a
+sheet, and put him in his own sea chest, and threw him overboard;
+but they neglected, in their hurry-skurry, to say prayers over him,
+and the storm raged and roared louder than ever, and they saw the
+dead man seated in his chest, with his shroud for a sail, coming
+hard after the ship, and the sea breaking before him in great
+sprays like fire; and there they kept scudding day after day and
+night after night, expecting every moment to go to wreck; and every
+night they saw the dead boatswain in his sea chest trying to get up
+with them, and they heard his whistle above the blasts of wind, and
+he seemed to send great seas, mountain high, after them that would
+have swamped the ship if they had not put up the deadlights. And
+so it went on till they lost sight of him in the fogs off
+Newfoundland, and supposed he had veered ship and stood for Dead
+Man's Isle.[1] So much for burying a man at sea without saying
+prayers over him."
+
+
+[1] Probably Deadman's Point, a small island near Deadman's Bay,
+off the eastern coast of Newfoundland.
+
+
+The thunder gust which had hitherto detained the company was now at
+an end. The cuckoo clock in the hall told midnight; everyone
+pressed to depart, for seldom was such a late hour of the night
+trespassed on by these quiet burghers. As they sallied forth they
+found the heavens once more serene. The storm which had lately
+obscured them had rolled away, and lay piled up in fleecy masses on
+the horizon, lighted up by the bright crescent of the moon, which
+looked like a little silver lamp hung up in a palace of clouds.
+
+The dismal occurrence of the night, and the dismal narrations they
+had made, had left a superstitious feeling in every mind. They
+cast a fearful glance at the spot where the buccaneer had
+disappeared, almost expecting to see him sailing on his chest in
+the cool moonshine. The trembling rays glittered along the waters,
+but all was placid, and the current dimpled over the spot where he
+had gone down. The party huddled together in a little crowd as
+they repaired homeward, particularly when they passed a lonely
+field where a man had been murdered, and even the sexton, who had
+to complete his journey alone, though accustomed, one would think,
+to ghosts and goblins, went a long way round rather than pass by
+his own churchyard.
+
+Wolfert Webber had now carried home a fresh stock of stories and
+notions to ruminate upon. These accounts of pots of money and
+Spanish treasures, buried here and there and everywhere about the
+rocks and bays of these wild shores, made him almost dizzy.
+"Blessed St. Nicholas!" ejaculated he, half aloud, "is it not
+possible to come upon one of these golden hoards, and to make
+oneself rich in a twinkling? How hard that I must go on, delving
+and delving, day in and day out, merely to make a morsel of bread,
+when one lucky stroke of a spade might enable me to ride in my
+carriage for the rest of my life!"
+
+As he turned over in his thoughts all that had been told of the
+singular adventure of the negro fisherman, his imagination gave a
+totally different complexion[1] to the tale. He saw in the gang of
+red-caps nothing but a crew of pirates burying their spoils, and
+his cupidity was once more awakened by the possibility of at length
+getting on the traces of some of this lurking wealth. Indeed, his
+infected fancy tinged everything with gold. He felt like the
+greedy inhabitant of Bagdad when his eyes had been greased with the
+magic ointment of the dervish, that gave him to see all the
+treasures of the earth.[2] Caskets of buried jewels, chests of
+ingots, and barrels of outlandish coins seemed to court him from
+their concealments, and supplicate him to relieve them from their
+untimely graves.
+
+
+[1] Aspect.
+
+[2] See Story of the Blind Man, Baba Abdalla, in Arabian Nights'
+Entertainment. An inhabitant of Bagdad, Asiatic Turkey, meets with
+a dervish, or Turkish monk, who presents him with a vast treasure
+and with a box of magic ointment, which, applied to the left eye,
+enables one to see the treasures in the bosom of the earth, but on
+touching the right eye, causes blindness. Having applied it to the
+left eye with the result predicted, he uses it on his right eye, in
+the hope that still greater treasures may be revealed, and
+immediately becomes blind.
+
+
+On making private inquiries about the grounds said to be haunted by
+Feather Red-cap, he was more and more confirmed in his surmise. He
+learned that the place had several times been visited by
+experienced money diggers who had heard Black Sam's story, though
+none of them had met with success. On the contrary, they had
+always been dogged with ill luck of some kind or other, in
+consequence, as Wolfert concluded, of not going to work at the
+proper time and with the proper ceremonials. The last attempt had
+been made by Cobus Quackenbos, who dug for a whole night, and met
+with incredible difficulty, for as fast as he threw one shovelful
+of earth out of the hole, two were thrown in by invisible hands.
+He succeeded so far, however, as to uncover an iron chest, when
+there was a terrible roaring, ramping, and raging of uncouth
+figures about the hole, and at length a shower of blows, dealt by
+invisible cudgels, fairly belabored him off of the forbidden
+ground. This Cobus Quackenbos had declared on his deathbed, so
+that there could not be any doubt of it. He was a man that had
+devoted many years of his life to money digging, and it was thought
+would have ultimately succeeded had he not died recently of a brain
+fever in the almshouse.
+
+Wolfert Webber was now in a worry of trepidation and impatience,
+fearful lest some rival adventurer should get a scent of the buried
+gold. He determined privately to seek out the black fisherman, and
+get him to serve as guide to the place where he had witnessed the
+mysterious scene of interment. Sam was easily found, for he was
+one of those old habitual beings that live about a neighborhood
+until they wear themselves a place in the public mind, and become,
+in a manner, public characters. There was not an unlucky urchin
+about town that did not know Sam the fisherman, and think that he
+had a right to play his tricks upon the old negro. Sam had led an
+amphibious life for more than half a century, about the shores of
+the bay and the fishing grounds of the Sound. He passed the
+greater part of his time on and in the water, particularly about
+Hell Gate, and might have been taken, in bad weather, for one of
+the hobgoblins that used to haunt that strait. There would he be
+seen, at all times and in all weathers, sometimes in his skiff,
+anchored among the eddies, or prowling like a shark about some
+wreck, where the fish are supposed to be most abundant; sometimes
+seated on a rock from hour to hour, looking, in the mist and
+drizzle, like a solitary heron watching for its prey. He was well
+acquainted with every hole and corner of the Sound, from the
+Wallabout[1] to Hell Gate, and from Hell Gate unto the Devil's
+Stepping-Stones; and it was even affirmed that he knew all the fish
+in the river by their Christian names.
+
+
+[1] A bay of the East River, on which the Brooklyn Navy Yard is
+situated.
+
+
+Wolfert found him at his cabin, which was not much larger than a
+tolerable dog house. It was rudely constructed of fragments of
+wrecks and driftwood, and built on the rocky shore at the foot of
+the old fort, just about what at present forms the point of the
+Battery.[1] A "very ancient and fishlike smell"[2] pervaded the
+place. Oars, paddles, and fishing rods were leaning against the
+wall of the fort, a net was spread on the sand to dry, a skiff was
+drawn up on the beach, and at the door of his cabin was Mud Sam
+himself, indulging in the true negro luxury of sleeping in the
+sunshine.
+
+
+[1] The southern extremity of New York City.
+
+[2] See Shakespeare's The Tempest, act ii., sc. 2.
+
+
+Many years had passed away since the time of Sam's youthful
+adventure, and the snows of many a winter had grizzled the knotty
+wool upon his head. He perfectly recollected the circumstances,
+however, for he had often been called upon to relate them, though
+in his version of the story he differed in many points from Peechy
+Prauw, as is not infrequently the case with authentic historians.
+As to the subsequent researches of money diggers, Sam knew nothing
+about them; they were matters quite out of his line; neither did
+the cautious Wolfert care to disturb his thoughts on that point.
+His only wish was to secure the old fisherman as a pilot to the
+spot, and this was readily effected. The long time that had
+intervened since his nocturnal adventure had effaced all Sam's awe
+of the place, and the promise of a trifling reward roused him at
+once from his sleep and his sunshine.
+
+The tide was adverse to making the expedition by water, and Wolfert
+was too impatient to get to the land of promise to wait for its
+turning; they set off, therefore, by land. A walk of four or five
+miles brought them to the edge of a wood, which at that time
+covered the greater part of the eastern side of the island. It was
+just beyond the pleasant region of Bloomen-dael.[1] Here they
+struck into a long lane, straggling among trees and bushes very
+much overgrown with weeds and mullein stalks, as if but seldom
+used, and so completely overshadowed as to enjoy but a kind of
+twilight. Wild vines entangled the trees and flaunted in their
+faces; brambles and briers caught their clothes as they passed; the
+garter snake glided across their path; the spotted toad hopped and
+waddled before them; and the restless catbird mewed at them from
+every thicket. Had Wolfert Webber been deeply read in romantic
+legend he might have fancied himself entering upon forbidden,
+enchanted ground, or that these were some of the guardians set to
+keep watch upon buried treasure. As it was, the loneliness of the
+place, and the wild stories connected with it, had their effect
+upon his mind.
+
+
+[1] At the time this story was written Bloomen-dael (Flowery
+Valley) was a village four miles from New York. It is now that
+part of New York known as Bloomingdale, on the west side, between
+about Seventieth and One Hundredth Streets.
+
+
+On reaching the lower end of the lane they found themselves near
+the shore of the Sound, in a kind of amphitheater surrounded by
+forest trees. The area had once been a grass plot, but was now
+shagged with briers and rank weeds. At one end, and just on the
+river bank, was a ruined building, little better than a heap of
+rubbish, with a stack of chimneys rising like a solitary tower out
+of the center. The current of the Sound rushed along just below
+it, with wildly grown trees drooping their branches into its waves.
+
+Wolfert had not a doubt that this was the haunted house of Father
+Red-cap, and called to mind the story of Peechy Prauw. The evening
+was approaching, and the light, falling dubiously among the woody
+places, gave a melancholy tone to the scene well calculated to
+foster any lurking feeling of awe or superstition. The night hawk,
+wheeling about in the highest regions of the air, emitted his
+peevish, boding cry. The woodpecker gave a lonely tap now and then
+on some hollow tree, and the firebird[1] streamed by them with his
+deep red plumage.
+
+
+[1] Orchard oriole.
+
+
+They now came to an inclosure that had once been a garden. It
+extended along the foot of a rocky ridge, but was little better
+than a wilderness of weeds, with here and there a matted rosebush,
+or a peach or plum tree, grown wild and ragged, and covered with
+moss. At the lower end of the garden they passed a kind of vault
+in the side of a bank, facing the water. It had the look of a root
+house.[1] The door, though decayed, was still strong, and appeared
+to have been recently patched up. Wolfert pushed it open. It gave
+a harsh grating upon its hinges, and striking against something
+like a box, a rattling sound ensued, and a skull rolled on the
+floor. Wolfert drew back shuddering, but was reassured on being
+informed by the negro that this was a family vault, belonging to
+one of the old Dutch families that owned this estate, an assertion
+corroborated by the sight of coffins of various sizes piled within.
+Sam had been familiar with all these scenes when a boy, and now
+knew that he could not be far from the place of which they were in
+quest.
+
+
+[1] "Root house," i.e., a house for storing up potatoes, turnips,
+or other roots for the winter feed of cattle.
+
+
+They now made their way to the water's edge, scrambling along
+ledges of rocks that overhung the waves, and obliged often to hold
+by shrubs and grapevines to avoid slipping into the deep and
+hurried stream. At length they came to a small cove, or rather
+indent of the shore. It was protected by steep rocks, and
+overshadowed by a thick copse of oaks and chestnuts, so as to be
+sheltered and almost concealed. The beach shelved gradually within
+the cove, but, the current swept deep and black and rapid along its
+jutting points. The negro paused, raised his remnant of a hat, and
+scratched his grizzled poll for a moment, as he regarded this nook;
+then suddenly clapping his hands, he stepped exultingly forward,
+and pointed to a large iron ring, stapled firmly in the rock, just
+where a broad shelf of stone furnished a commodious landing place.
+It was the very spot where the red-caps had landed. Years had
+changed the more perishable features of the scene; but rock and
+iron yield slowly to the influence of time. On looking more
+closely Wolfert remarked three crosses cut in the rock just above
+the ring, which had no doubt some mysterious signification. Old
+Sam now readily recognized the overhanging rock under which his
+skiff had been sheltered during the thunder gust. To follow up the
+course which the midnight gang had taken, however, was a harder
+task. His mind had been so much taken up on that eventful occasion
+by the persons of the drama as to pay but little attention to the
+scenes, and these places looked so different by night and day.
+After wandering about for some time, however, they came to an
+opening among the trees which Sam thought resembled the place.
+There was a ledge of rock of moderate height, like a wall, on one
+side, which he thought might be the very ridge whence he had
+overlooked the diggers. Wolfert examined it narrowly, and at
+length discovered three crosses similar to those on the above ring,
+cut deeply into the face of the rock, but nearly obliterated by
+moss that had grown over them. His heart leaped with joy, for he
+doubted not they were the private marks of the buccaneers. All now
+that remained was to ascertain the precise spot where the treasure
+lay buried, for otherwise he might dig at random in the
+neighborhood of the crosses, without coming upon the spoils, and he
+had already had enough of such profitless labor. Here, however,
+the old negro was perfectly at a loss, and indeed perplexed him by
+a variety of opinions, for his recollections were all confused.
+Sometimes he declared it must have been at the foot of a mulberry
+tree hard by; then beside a great white stone; then under a small
+green knoll, a short distance from the ledge of rocks, until at
+length Wolfert became as bewildered as himself.
+
+The shadows of evening were now spreading themselves over the
+woods, and rock and tree began to mingle together. It was
+evidently too late to attempt anything further at present, and,
+indeed, Wolfert had come unprovided with implements to prosecute
+his researches. Satisfied, therefore, with having ascertained the
+place, he took note of all its landmarks, that he might recognize
+it again, and set out on his return homeward, resolved to prosecute
+this golden enterprise without delay.
+
+The leading anxiety which had hitherto absorbed every feeling being
+now in some measure appeased, fancy began to wander, and to conjure
+up a thousand shapes and chimeras as he returned through this
+haunted region. Pirates hanging in chains seemed to swing from
+every tree, and he almost expected to see some Spanish don, with
+his throat cut from ear to ear, rising slowly out of the ground,
+and shaking the ghost of a money bag.
+
+Their way back lay through the desolate garden, and Wolfert's
+nerves had arrived at so sensitive a state that the flitting of a
+bird, the rustling of a leaf, or the falling of a nut was enough to
+startle him. As they entered the confines of the garden, they
+caught sight of a figure at a distance advancing slowly up one of
+the walks, and bending under the weight of a burden. They paused
+and regarded him attentively. He wore what appeared to be a woolen
+cap, and, still more alarming, of a most sanguinary red.
+
+The figure moved slowly on, ascended the bank, and stopped at the
+very door of the sepulchral vault. Just before entering it he
+looked around. What was the affright of Wolfert when he recognized
+the grisly visage of the drowned buccaneer! He uttered an
+ejaculation of horror. The figure slowly raised his iron fist and
+shook it with a terrible menace. Wolfert did not pause to see any
+more, but hurried off as fast as his legs could carry him, nor was
+Sam slow in following at his heels, having all his ancient terrors
+revived. Away, then, did they scramble through bush and brake,
+horribly frightened at every bramble that tugged at their skirts,
+nor did they pause to breathe until they had blundered their way
+through this perilous wood, and fairly reached the highroad to the
+city.
+
+Several days elapsed before Wolfert could summon courage enough to
+prosecute the enterprise, so much had he been dismayed by the
+apparition, whether living or dead, of the grisly buccaneer. In
+the meantime, what a conflict of mind did he suffer! He neglected
+all his concerns, was moody and restless all day, lost his
+appetite, wandered in his thoughts and words, and committed a
+thousand blunders. His rest was broken, and when he fell asleep
+the nightmare, in shape of a huge money bag, sat squatted upon his
+breast. He babbled about incalculable sums, fancied himself
+engaged in money digging, threw the bedclothes right and left, in
+the idea that he was shoveling away the dirt, groped under the bed
+in quest of the treasure, and lugged forth, as he supposed, an
+inestimable pot of gold.
+
+Dame Webber and her daughter were in despair at what they conceived
+a returning touch of insanity. There are two family oracles, one
+or other of which Dutch housewives consult in all cases of great
+doubt and perplexity,--the dominie and the doctor. In the present
+instance they repaired to the doctor. There was at that time a
+little dark, moldy man of medicine, famous among the old wives of
+the Manhattoes for his skill, not only in the healing art, but in
+all matters of strange and mysterious nature. His name was Dr.
+Knipperhausen, but he was more commonly known by the appellation of
+the "High German Doctor."[1] To him did the poor women repair for
+counsel and assistance touching the mental vagaries of Wolfert
+Webber.
+
+
+[1] The same, no doubt, of whom mention is made in the history of
+Dolph Heyliger.
+
+
+They found the doctor seated in his little study, clad in his dark
+camlet[1] robe of knowledge, with his black velvet cap, after the
+manner of Boerhaave,[2] Van Helmont,[3] and other medical sages, a
+pair of green spectacles set in black horn upon his clubbed nose,
+and poring over a German folio that reflected back the darkness of
+his physiognomy. The doctor listened to their statement of the
+symptoms of Wolfert's malady with profound attention, but when they
+came to mention his raving about buried money the little man
+pricked up his ears. Alas, poor women! they little knew the aid
+they had called in.
+
+
+[1] A fabric made of goat's hair and silk, or wool and cotton.
+
+[2] Hermann Boerhaave (1668-1738), a celebrated Dutch physician and
+philosopher.
+
+[3] Jan Baptista Van Helmont (1577-1644), a celebrated Flemish
+physician and chemist.
+
+
+Dr. Knipperhausen had been half his life engaged in seeking the
+short cuts to fortune, in quest of which so many a long lifetime is
+wasted. He had passed some years of his youth among the Harz[1]
+mountains of Germany, and had derived much valuable instruction
+from the miners touching the mode of seeking treasure buried in the
+earth. He had prosecuted his studies, also, under a traveling sage
+who united the mysteries of medicine with magic and legerdemain.
+His mind, therefore, had become stored with all kinds of mystic
+lore; he had dabbled a little in astrology, alchemy, divination;[2]
+knew how to detect stolen money, and to tell where springs of water
+lay hidden; in a word, by the dark nature of his knowledge he had
+acquired the name of the "High German Doctor," which is pretty
+nearly equivalent to that of necromancer. The doctor had often
+heard rumors of treasure being buried in various parts of the
+island, and had long been anxious to get on the traces of it. No
+sooner were Wolfert's waking and sleeping vagaries confided to him
+than he beheld in them the confirmed symptoms of a case of money
+digging, and lost no time in probing it to the bottom. Wolfert had
+long been sorely oppressed in mind by the golden secret, and as a
+family physician is a kind of father confessor, he was glad of any
+opportunity of unburdening himself. So far from curing, the doctor
+caught the malady from his patient. The circumstances unfolded to
+him awakened all his cupidity; he had not a doubt of money being
+buried somewhere in the neighborhood of the mysterious crosses, and
+offered to join Wolfert in the search. He informed him that much
+secrecy and caution must be observed in enterprises of the kind;
+that money is only to be dug for at night, with certain forms and
+ceremonies and burning of drugs, the repeating of mystic words,
+and, above all, that the seekers must first be provided with a
+divining rod,[3] which had the wonderful property of pointing to
+the very spot on the surface of the earth under which treasure lay
+hidden. As the doctor had given much of his mind to these matters
+he charged himself with all the necessary preparations, and, as the
+quarter of the moon was propitious, he undertook to have the
+divining rod ready by a certain night.
+
+
+[1] A mountain chain in northwestern Germany, between the Elbe and
+the Weser.
+
+[2] Astrology, alchemy, and divination were three imaginary arts.
+The first pretended to judge of the influence of the stars on human
+affairs, and to foretell events by their positions and aspects; the
+second aimed to transmute the baser metals into gold, and to find a
+universal remedy for diseases; while the third dealt with the
+discovery of secret or future events by preternatural means.
+
+[3] A divining rod is a rod used by those who pretend to discover
+water or metals underground. It is commonly made of witch hazel,
+with forked branches.
+
+
+Wolfert's heart leaped with joy at having met with so learned and
+able a coadjutor. Everything went on secretly but swimmingly. The
+doctor had many consultations with his patient, and the good women
+of the household lauded the comforting effect of his visits. In
+the meantime the wonderful divining rod, that great key to nature's
+secrets, was duly prepared. The doctor had thumbed over all his
+books of knowledge for the occasion, and the black fisherman was
+engaged to take them in his skiff to the scene of enterprise, to
+work with spade and pickax in unearthing the treasure, and to
+freight his bark with the weighty spoils they were certain of
+finding.
+
+At length the appointed night arrived for this perilous
+undertaking. Before Wolfert left his home he counseled his wife
+and daughter to go to bed, and feel no alarm if he should not
+return during the night. Like reasonable women, on being told not
+to feel alarm they fell immediately into a panic. They saw at once
+by his manner that something unusual was in agitation; all their
+fears about the unsettled state of his mind were revived with
+tenfold force; they hung about him, entreating him not to expose
+himself to the night air, but all in vain. When once Wolfert was
+mounted on his hobby,[1] it was no easy manner to get him out of
+the saddle. It was a clear, starlight night when he issued out of
+the portal of the Webber palace. He wore a large flapped hat, tied
+under the chin with a handkerchief of his daughter's, to secure him
+from the night damp, while Dame Webber threw her long red cloak
+about his shoulders, and fastened it round his neck.
+
+
+[1] Hobby, or hobbyhorse, a favorite theme of thought; hence, "to
+mount a hobby" is to follow a favorite pursuit.
+
+
+The doctor had been no less carefully armed and accoutered by his
+housekeeper, the vigilant Frau Ilsy, and sallied forth in his
+camlet robe by way of surcoat,[1] his black velvet cap under his
+cocked hat, a thick clasped book under his arm, a basket of drugs
+and dried herbs in one hand, and in the other the miraculous rod of
+divination.
+
+
+[1] Overcoat.
+
+
+The great church clock struck ten as Wolfert and the doctor passed
+by the churchyard, and the watchman bawled in hoarse voice a long
+and doleful "All's well!" A deep sleep had already fallen upon
+this primitive little burgh; nothing disturbed this awful silence
+excepting now and then the bark of some profligate, night-walking
+dog, or the serenade of some romantic cat. It is true Wolfert
+fancied more than once that he heard the sound of a stealthy
+footfall at a distance behind them; but it might have been merely
+the echo of their own steps along the quiet streets. He thought
+also at one time that he saw a tall figure skulking after them,
+stopping when they stopped and moving on as they proceeded; but the
+dim and uncertain lamplight threw such vague gleams and shadows
+that this might all have been mere fancy.
+
+They found the old fisherman waiting for them, smoking his pipe in
+the stern of the skiff, which was moored just in front of his
+little cabin. A pickax and spade were lying in the bottom of the
+boat, with a dark lantern, and a stone bottle of good Dutch
+courage,[1] in which honest Sam no doubt put even more faith than
+Dr. Knipperhausen in his drugs.
+
+
+[1] Dutch courage is courage that results from indulgence in Dutch
+gin or Hollands; here applied to the gin itself.
+
+
+Thus, then, did these three worthies embark in their cockleshell of
+a skiff upon this nocturnal expedition, with a wisdom and valor
+equaled only by the three wise men of Gotham,[1] who adventured to
+sea in a bowl. The tide was rising and running rapidly up the
+Sound. The current bore them along, almost without the aid of an
+oar. The profile of the town lay all in shadow. Here and there a
+light feebly glimmered from some sick chamber, or from the cabin
+window of some vessel at anchor in the stream. Not a cloud
+obscured the deep, starry firmament, the lights of which wavered on
+the surface of the placid river, and a shooting meteor, streaking
+its pale course in the very direction they were taking, was
+interpreted by the doctor into a most propitious omen.
+
+
+ [1] "Three wise men of Gotham,
+ They went to sea in a bowl--
+ And if the bowl had been stronger,
+ My tale had been longer."
+ Mother Goose Melody.
+
+
+[1] Gotham was a village proverbial for the blundering simplicity of
+its inhabitants. At first the name referred to an English village.
+Irving applied it to New York City.
+
+
+In a little while they glided by the point of Corlear's Hook, with
+the rural inn which had been the scene of such night adventures.
+The family had retired to rest, and the house was dark and still.
+Wolfert felt a chill pass over him as they passed the point where
+the buccaneer had disappeared. He pointed it out to Dr.
+Knipperhausen. While regarding it they thought they saw a boat
+actually lurking at the very place; but the shore cast such a
+shadow over the border of the water that they could discern nothing
+distinctly. They had not proceeded far when they heard the low
+sounds of distant oars, as if cautiously pulled. Sam plied his
+oars with redoubled vigor, and knowing all the eddies and currents
+of the stream, soon left their followers, if such they were, far
+astern. In a little while they stretched across Turtle Bay and
+Kip's Bay,[1] then shrouded themselves in the deep shadows of the
+Manhattan shore, and glided swiftly along, secure from observation.
+At length the negro shot his skiff into a little cove, darkly
+embowered by trees, and made it fast to the well-known iron ring.
+They now landed, and lighting the lantern gathered their various
+implements and proceeded slowly through the bushes. Every sound
+startled them, even that of their own footsteps among the dry
+leaves, and the hooting of a screech owl, from the shattered
+chimney of the neighboring ruin, made their blood run cold.
+
+
+[1] A small bay in the East River below Corlear's Hook.
+
+
+In spite of all Wolfert's caution in taking note of the landmarks,
+it was some time before they could find the open place among the
+trees, where the treasure was supposed to be buried. At length
+they came to the ledge of rock, and on examining its surface by the
+aid of the lantern, Wolfert recognized the three mystic crosses.
+Their hearts beat quick, for the momentous trial was at hand that
+was to determine their hopes.
+
+The lantern was now held by Wolfert Webber, while the doctor
+produced the divining rod. It was a forked twig, one end of which
+was grasped firmly in each hand, while the center, forming the
+stem, pointed perpendicularly upward. The doctor moved his wand
+about, within a certain distance of the earth, from place to place,
+but for some time without any effect, while Wolfert kept the light
+of the lantern turned full upon it, and watched it with the most
+breathless interest. At length the rod began slowly to turn. The
+doctor grasped it with greater earnestness, his hands trembling
+with the agitation of his mind. The wand continued to turn
+gradually, until at length the stem had reversed its position, and
+pointed perpendicularly downward, and remained pointing to one spot
+as fixedly as the needle to the pole.
+
+"This is the spot!" said the doctor, in an almost inaudible tone.
+
+Wolfert's heart was in his throat.
+
+"Shall I dig?" said the negro, grasping the spade.
+
+"Pots tausend,[1] no!" replied the little doctor hastily. He now
+ordered his companions to keep close by him, and to maintain the
+most inflexible silence; that certain precautions must be taken and
+ceremonies used to prevent the evil spirits which kept about buried
+treasure from doing them any harm. He then drew a circle about the
+place, enough to include the whole party. He next gathered dry
+twigs and leaves and made a fire, upon which he threw certain drugs
+and dried herbs which he had brought in his basket. A thick smoke
+rose, diffusing a potent odor savoring marvelously of brimstone and
+asafetida, which, however grateful it might be to the olfactory
+nerves of spirits, nearly strangled poor Wolfert, and produced a
+fit of coughing and wheezing that made the whole grove resound.
+Dr. Knipperhausen then unclasped the volume which he had brought
+under his arm, which was printed in red and black characters in
+German text. While Wolfert held the lantern, the doctor, by the
+aid of his spectacles, read off several forms of conjuration in
+Latin and German. He then ordered Sam to seize the pickax and
+proceed to work. The close-bound soil gave obstinate signs of not
+having been disturbed for many a year. After having picked his way
+through the surface, Sam came to a bed of sand and gravel, which he
+threw briskly to right and left with the spade.
+
+
+[1] A German exclamation of anger, equivalent to the English
+"zounds!"
+
+
+"Hark!" said Wolfert, who fancied he heard a trampling among the
+dry leaves and a rustling through the bushes. Sam paused for a
+moment, and they listened. No footstep was near. The bat flitted
+by them in silence; a bird, roused from its roost by the light
+which glared up among the trees, flew circling about the flame. In
+the profound stillness of the woodland they could distinguish the
+current rippling along the rocky shore, and the distant murmuring
+and roaring of Hell Gate.
+
+The negro continued his labors, and had already digged a
+considerable hole. The doctor stood on the edge, reading formulae
+every now and then from his black-letter volume, or throwing more
+drugs and herbs upon the fire, while Wolfert bent anxiously over
+the pit, watching every stroke of the spade. Anyone witnessing the
+scene thus lighted up by fire, lantern, and the reflection of
+Wolfert's red mantle, might have mistaken the little doctor for
+some foul magician, busied in his incantations, and the grizzly-
+headed negro for some swart goblin obedient to his commands.
+
+At length the spade of the fisherman struck upon something that
+sounded hollow. The sound vibrated to Wolfert's heart. He struck
+his spade again.
+
+"'Tis a chest," said Sam.
+
+"Full of gold, I'll warrant it!" cried Wolfert, clasping his hands
+with rapture.
+
+Scarcely had he uttered the words when a sound from above caught
+his ear. He cast up his eyes, and lo! by the expiring light of the
+fire he beheld, just over the disk of the rock, what appeared to be
+the grim visage of the drowned buccaneer, grinning hideously down
+upon him.
+
+Wolfert gave a loud cry and let fall the lantern. His panic
+communicated itself to his companions. The negro leaped out of the
+hole, the doctor dropped his book and basket, and began to pray in
+German. All was horror and confusion. The fire was scattered
+about, the lantern extinguished. In their hurry-scurry[1] they ran
+against and confounded one another. They fancied a legion of
+hobgoblins let loose upon them, and that they saw, by the fitful
+gleams of the scattered embers, strange figures, in red caps,
+gibbering and ramping around them. The doctor ran one way, the
+negro another, and Wolfert made for the water side. As he plunged
+struggling onward through brush and brake, he heard the tread of
+some one in pursuit. He scrambled frantically forward. The
+footsteps gained upon him. He felt himself grasped by his cloak,
+when suddenly his pursuer was attacked in turn; a fierce fight and
+struggle ensued, a pistol was discharged that lit up rock and bush
+for a second, and showed two figures grappling together; all was
+then darker than ever. The contest continued, the combatants
+clinched each other, and panted and groaned, and rolled among the
+rocks. There was snarling and growling as of a cur, mingled with
+curses, in which Wolfert fancied he could recognize the voice of
+the buccaneer. He would fain have fled, but he was on the brink of
+a precipice, and could go no farther.
+
+
+[1] A swift, disorderly movement.
+
+
+Again the parties were on their feet, again there was a tugging and
+struggling, as if strength alone could decide the combat, until one
+was precipitated from the brow of the cliff, and sent headlong into
+the deep stream that whirled below. Wolfert heard the plunge, and
+a kind of strangling, bubbling murmur, but the darkness of the
+night hid everything from him, and the swiftness of the current
+swept everything instantly out of hearing. One of the combatants
+was disposed of, but whether friend or foe Wolfert could not tell,
+nor whether they might not both be foes. He heard the survivor
+approach, and his terror revived. He saw, where the profile of the
+rocks rose against the horizon, a human form advancing. He could
+not be mistaken; it must be the buccaneer. Whither should he fly?-
+-a precipice was on one side, a murderer on the other. The enemy
+approached--he was close at hand. Wolfert attempted to let himself
+down the face of the cliff. His cloak caught in a thorn that grew
+on the edge. He was jerked from off his feet, and held dangling in
+the air, half choked by the string with which his careful wife had
+fastened the garment around his neck. Wolfert thought his last
+moment was arrived; already had he committed his soul to St.
+Nicholas, when the string broke, and he tumbled down the bank,
+bumping from rock to rock and bush to bush, and leaving the red
+cloak fluttering like a bloody banner in the air.
+
+It was a long while before Wolfert came to himself. When he opened
+his eyes, the ruddy streaks of morning were already shooting up the
+sky. He found himself grievously battered, and lying in the bottom
+of a boat. He attempted to sit up, but was too sore and stiff to
+move. A voice requested him in a friendly accents to lie still.
+He turned his eyes toward the speaker; it was Dirk Waldron. He had
+dogged the party, at the earnest request of Dame Webber and her
+daughter, who, with the laudable curiosity of their sex, had pried
+into the secret consultations of Wolfert and the doctor. Dirk had
+been completely distanced in following the light skiff of the
+fisherman, and had just come in time to rescue the poor money
+digger from his pursuer.
+
+Thus ended this perilous enterprise. The doctor and Black Sam
+severally found their way back to the Manhattoes, each having some
+dreadful tale of peril to relate. As to poor Wolfert, instead of
+returning in triumph, laden with bags of gold, he was borne home on
+a shutter, followed by a rabble-rout[1] of curious urchins. His
+wife and daughter saw the dismal pageant from a distance, and
+alarmed the neighborhood with their cries; they thought the poor
+man had suddenly settled the great debt of nature in one of his
+wayward moods. Finding him, however, still living, they had him
+speedily to bed, and a jury of old matrons of the neighborhood
+assembled to determine how he should be doctored. The whole town
+was in a buzz with the story of the money diggers. Many repaired
+to the scene of the previous night's adventures; but though they
+found the very place of the digging, they discovered nothing that
+compensated them for their trouble. Some say they found the
+fragments of an oaken chest, and an iron pot lid, which savored
+strongly of hidden money, and that in the old family vault there
+were traces of bales and boxes; but this is all very dubious.
+
+
+[1] A noisy throng.
+
+
+In fact, the secret of all this story has never to this day been
+discovered. Whether any treasure were ever actually buried at that
+place; whether, if so, it were carried off at night by those who
+had buried it; or whether it still remains there under the
+guardianship of gnomes and spirits until it shall be properly
+sought for, is all matter of conjecture. For my part, I incline to
+the latter opinion, and make no doubt that great sums lie buried,
+both there and in other parts of this island and its neighborhood,
+ever since the times of the buccaneers and the Dutch colonists; and
+I would earnestly recommend the search after them to such of my
+fellow citizens as are not engaged in any other speculations.
+
+There were many conjectures formed, also, as to who and what was
+the strange man of the seas, who had domineered over the little
+fraternity at Corlear's Hook for a time, disappeared so strangely,
+and reappeared so fearfully. Some supposed him a smuggler
+stationed at that place to assist his comrades in landing their
+goods among the rocky coves of the island. Others, that he was one
+of the ancient comrades of Kidd or Bradish, returned to convey away
+treasures formerly hidden in the vicinity. The only circumstance
+that throws anything like a vague light on this mysterious matter
+is a report which prevailed of a strange, foreign-built shallop,
+with much the look of a picaroon,[1] having been seen hovering
+about the Sound for several days without landing or reporting
+herself, though boats were seen going to and from her at night; and
+that she was seen standing out of the mouth of the harbor, in the
+gray of the dawn, after the catastrophe of the money diggers.
+
+
+[1] A piratical vessel.
+
+
+I must not omit to mention another report, also, which I confess is
+rather apocryphal, of the buccaneer who is supposed to have been
+drowned, being seen before daybreak, with a lantern in his hand,
+seated astride of his great sea chest, and sailing through Hell
+Gate, which just then began to roar and bellow with redoubled fury.
+
+While all the gossip world was thus filled with talk and rumor,
+poor Wolfert lay sick and sorrowfully in his bed, bruised in body
+and sorely beaten down in mind. His wife and daughter did all they
+could to bind up his wounds, both corporal and spiritual. The good
+old dame never stirred from his bedside, where she sat knitting
+from morning till night, while his daughter busied herself about
+him with the fondest care. Nor did they lack assistance from
+abroad. Whatever may be said of the desertion of friends in
+distress, they had no complaint of the kind to make. Not an old
+wife of the neighborhood but abandoned her work to crowd to the
+mansion of Wolfert Webber, to inquire after his health and the
+particulars of his story. Not one came, moreover, without her
+little pipkin of pennyroyal, sage, balm, or other herb tea,
+delighted at an opportunity of signalizing her kindness and her
+doctorship. What drenchings did not the poor Wolfert undergo, and
+all in vain! It was a moving sight to behold him wasting away day
+by day, growing thinner and thinner and ghastlier and ghastlier,
+and staring with rueful visage from under an old patchwork
+counterpane, upon the jury of matrons kindly assembled to sigh and
+groan and look unhappy around him.
+
+Dirk Waldron was the only being that seemed to shed a ray of
+sunshine into this house of mourning. He came in with cheery look
+and manly spirit, and tried to reanimate the expiring heart of the
+poor money digger, but it was all in vain. Wolfert was completely
+done over.[1] If anything was wanting to complete his despair, it
+was a notice, served upon him in the midst of his distress, that
+the corporation was about to run a new street through the very
+center of his cabbage garden. He now saw nothing before him but
+poverty and ruin; his last reliance, the garden of his forefathers,
+was to be laid waste, and what then was to become of his poor wife
+and child?
+
+
+[1] Exhausted.
+
+
+His eyes filled with tears as they followed the dutiful Amy out of
+the room one morning. Dirk Waldron was seated beside him; Wolfert
+grasped his hand, pointed after his daughter, and for the first
+time since his illness broke the silence he had maintained.
+
+"I am going!" said he, shaking his head feebly, "and when I am
+gone, my poor daughter--"
+
+"Leave her to me, father!" said Dirk manfully; "I'll take care of
+her!"
+
+Wolfert looked up in the face of the cheery, strapping youngster,
+and saw there was none better able to take care of a woman.
+
+"Enough," said he, "she is yours! And now fetch me a lawyer--let
+me make my will and die."
+
+The lawyer was brought,--a dapper, bustling, round-headed little
+man, Roorback (or Rollebuck, as it was pronounced) by name. At the
+sight of him the women broke into loud lamentations, for they
+looked upon the signing of a will as the signing of a death
+warrant. Wolfert made a feeble motion for them to be silent. Poor
+Amy buried her face and her grief in the bed curtain. Dame Webber
+resumed her knitting to hide her distress, which betrayed itself,
+however, in a pellucid tear, which trickled silently down, and hung
+at the end of her peaked nose; while the cat, the only unconcerned
+member of the family, played with the good dame's ball of worsted
+as it rolled about the floor.
+
+Wolfert lay on his back, his nightcap drawn over his forehead, his
+eyes closed, his whole visage the picture of death. He begged the
+lawyer to be brief, for he felt his end approaching, and that he
+had no time to lose. The lawyer nibbed[1] his pen, spread out his
+paper, and prepared to write.
+
+
+[1] In Irving's time, quills were made into pens by pointing or
+"nibbing" their ends.
+
+
+"I give and bequeath," said Wolfert faintly, "my small farm--"
+
+"What! all?" exclaimed the lawyer.
+
+Wolfert half opened his eyes and looked upon the lawyer.
+
+"Yes, all," said he.
+
+"What! all that great patch of land with cabbages and sunflowers,
+which the corporation is just going to run a main street through?"
+
+"The same," said Wolfert, with a heavy sigh, and sinking back upon
+his pillow.
+
+"I wish him joy that inherits it!" said the little lawyer,
+chuckling and rubbing his hands involuntarily.
+
+"What do you mean?" said Wolfert, again opening his eyes.
+
+"That he'll be one of the richest men in the place," cried little
+Rollebuck.
+
+The expiring Wolfert seemed to step back from the threshold of
+existence; his eyes again lighted up; he raised himself in his bed,
+shoved back his red worsted nightcap, and stared broadly at the
+lawyer.
+
+"You don't say so!" exclaimed he.
+
+"Faith but I do!" rejoined the other. "Why, when that great field
+and that huge meadow come to be laid out in streets and cut up into
+snug building lots,--why, whoever owns it need not pull off his hat
+to the patroon!"
+
+"Say you so?" cried Wolfert, half thrusting one leg out of bed;
+"why, then, I think I'll not make my will yet."
+
+To the surprise of everybody the dying man actually recovered. The
+vital spark, which had glimmered faintly in the socket, received
+fresh fuel from the oil of gladness which the little lawyer poured
+into his soul. It once more burned up into a flame.
+
+Give physic to the heart, ye who would revive the body of a spirit-
+broken man! In a few days Wolfert left his room; in a few days
+more his table was covered with deeds, plans of streets and
+building lots. Little Rollebuck was constantly with him, his right
+hand man and adviser, and instead of making his will assisted in
+the more agreeable task of making his fortune. In fact Wolfert
+Webber was one of those worthy Dutch burghers of the Manhattoes
+whose fortunes have been made, in a manner, in spite of themselves;
+who have tenaciously held on to their hereditary acres, raising
+turnips and cabbages about the skirts of the city, hardly able to
+make both ends meet, until the corporation has cruelly driven
+streets through their abodes, and they have suddenly awakened out
+of their lethargy, and, to their astonishment, found themselves
+rich men.
+
+Before many months had elapsed a great, bustling street passed
+through the very center of the Webber garden, just where Wolfert
+had dreamed of finding a treasure. His golden dream was
+accomplished; he did, indeed, find an unlooked-for source of
+wealth, for, when his paternal lands were distributed into building
+lots and rented out to safe tenants, instead of producing a paltry
+crop of cabbages they returned him an abundant crop of rent,
+insomuch that on quarter day it was a goodly sight to see his
+tenants knocking at the door from morning till night, each with a
+little round-bellied bag of money, a golden produce of the soil.
+
+The ancient mansion of his forefathers was still kept up, but,
+instead of being a little yellow-fronted Dutch house in a garden,
+it now stood boldly in the midst of a street, the grand home of the
+neighborhood; for Wolfert enlarged it with a wing on each side, and
+a cupola or tea room on top, where he might climb up and smoke his
+pipe in hot weather, and in the course of time the whole mansion
+was overrun by the chubby-faced progeny of Amy Webber and Dirk
+Waldron.
+
+As Wolfert waxed old and rich and corpulent he also set up a great
+gingerbread-colored carriage, drawn by a pair of black Flanders
+mares with tails that swept the ground; and to commemorate the
+origin of his greatness he had for his crest a full-blown cabbage
+painted on the panels, with the pithy motto, ALLES KOPF, that is to
+say, ALL HEAD, meaning thereby that he had risen by sheer head
+work.
+
+To fill the measure of his greatness, in the fullness of time the
+renowned Ramm Rapelye slept with his fathers, and Wolfert Webber
+succeeded to the leather-bottomed armchair in the inn parlor at
+Corlear's Hook; where he long reigned, greatly honored and
+respected, insomuch that he was never known to tell a story without
+its being believed, nor to utter a joke without its being laughed
+at.
+
+
+
+Introduction to "Wieland's Madness," from "Wieland, or The
+Transformation."
+
+
+ From Virtue's blissful paths away
+ The double-tongued are sure to stray;
+ Good is a forth-right journey still.
+ And mazy paths but lead to ill.
+
+
+"WIELAND" is the first American novel. It appeared in 1798; its
+author was soon recognized as the earliest American novelist; and
+he remained the greatest, until Fenimore Cooper brought forth his
+Leather-stocking Tales, a quarter of a century later.
+
+Although modern sophistication easily points out flaws in Charles
+Brockden Brown's story-structure, and reproves him for
+improbability, morbidness, and a style often too elevated, yet his
+work lives. His downright originality is worthy of Cooper himself,
+and his weird imaginations and horribly sustained scenes of terror
+have been surpassed by few writers save Edgar Allan Poe.
+
+
+
+Charles Brockden Brown
+
+
+FIRST PART
+
+I
+
+Wieland's Madness
+
+
+[As the story opens, the narratress, Clara Wieland, is entering
+upon the happy realization of her love for Henry Pleyel, closest
+friend of her brother "Wieland."
+
+Their woodland home, Mettingen, on the banks of the then remote
+Schuylkill, is the abode of music, letters and thorough culture.
+The peace of high thinking and simple outdoor life hovers over
+all.]
+
+
+One sunny afternoon I was standing in the door of my house, when I
+marked a person passing close to the edge of the bank that was in
+front. His pace was a careless and lingering one, and had none of
+that gracefulness and ease which distinguish a person with certain
+advantages of education from a clown. His gait was rustic and
+awkward. His form was ungainly and disproportioned. Shoulders
+broad and square, breast sunken, his head drooping, his body of
+uniform breadth, supported by long and lank legs, were the
+ingredients of his frame. His garb was not ill adapted to such a
+figure. A slouched hat, tarnished by the weather, a coat of thick
+gray cloth, cut and wrought, as it seemed, by a country tailor,
+blue worsted stockings, and shoes fastened by thongs and deeply
+discolored by dust, which brush had never disturbed, constituted
+his dress.
+
+There was nothing remarkable in these appearances: they were
+frequently to be met with on the road and in the harvest-field. I
+cannot tell why I gazed upon them, on this occasion, with more than
+ordinary attention, unless it were that such figures were seldom
+seen by me except on the road or field. This lawn was only
+traversed by men whose views were directed to the pleasures of the
+walk or the grandeur of the scenery.
+
+He passed slowly along, frequently pausing, as if to examine the
+prospect more deliberately, but never turning his eye toward the
+house, so as to allow me a view of his countenance. Presently he
+entered a copse at a small distance, and disappeared. My eye
+followed him while he remained in sight. If his image remained for
+any duration in my fancy after his departure, it was because no
+other object occurred sufficient to expel it.
+
+I continued in the same spot for half an hour, vaguely, and by
+fits, contemplating the image of this wanderer, and drawing from
+outward appearances those inferences, with respect to the
+intellectual history of this person, which experience affords us.
+I reflected on the alliance which commonly subsists between
+ignorance and the practice of agriculture, and indulged myself in
+airy speculations as to the influence of progressive knowledge in
+dissolving this alliance and embodying the dreams of the poets. I
+asked why the plow and the hoe might not become the trade of every
+human being, and how this trade might be made conducive to, or at
+least consistent with, the acquisition of wisdom and eloquence.
+
+Weary with these reflections, I returned to the kitchen to perform
+some household office. I had usually but one servant, and she was
+a girl about my own age. I was busy near the chimney, and she was
+employed near the door of the apartment, when some one knocked.
+The door was opened by her, and she was immediately addressed with,
+"Prythee, good girl, canst thou supply a thirsty man with a glass
+of buttermilk?" She answered that there was none in the house.
+"Aye, but there is some in the dairy yonder. Thou knowest as well
+as I, though Hermes never taught thee, that, though every dairy be
+a house, every house is not a dairy." To this speech, though she
+understood only a part of it, she replied by repeating her
+assurances that she had none to give. "Well, then," rejoined the
+stranger, "for charity's sweet sake, hand me forth a cup of cold
+water." The girl said she would go to the spring and fetch it.
+"Nay, give me the cup, and suffer me to help myself. Neither
+manacled nor lame, I should merit burial in the maw of carrion
+crows if I laid this task upon thee." She gave him the cup, and he
+turned to go to the spring.
+
+I listened to this dialogue in silence. The words uttered by the
+person without affected me as somewhat singular; but what chiefly
+rendered them remarkable was the tone that accompanied them. It
+was wholly new. My brother's voice and Pleyel's were musical and
+energetic. I had fondly imagined that, in this respect, they were
+surpassed by none. Now my mistake was detected. I cannot pretend
+to communicate the impression that was made upon me by these
+accents, or to depict the degree in which force and sweetness were
+blended in them. They were articulated with a distinctness that
+was unexampled in my experience. But this was not all. The voice
+was not only mellifluent and clear, but the emphasis was so just,
+and the modulation so impassioned, that it seemed as if a heart of
+stone could not fail of being moved by it. It imparted to me an
+emotion altogether involuntary and uncontrollable. When he uttered
+the words, "for charity's sweet sake," I dropped the cloth that I
+held in my hand; my heart overflowed with sympathy and my eyes with
+unbidden tears.
+
+This description will appear to you trifling or incredible. The
+importance of these circumstances will be manifested in the sequel.
+The manner in which I was affected on this occasion was, to my own
+apprehension, a subject of astonishment. The tones were indeed
+such as I never heard before; but that they should in an instant,
+as it were, dissolve me in tears, will not easily be believed by
+others, and can scarcely be comprehended by myself.
+
+It will be readily supposed that I was somewhat inquisitive as to
+the person and demeanor of our visitant. After a moment's pause, I
+stepped to the door and looked after him. Judge my surprise when I
+beheld the selfsame figure that had appeared a half-hour before
+upon the bank. My fancy had conjured up a very different image. A
+form and attitude and garb were instantly created worthy to
+accompany such elocution; but this person was, in all visible
+respects, the reverse of this phantom. Strange as it may seem, I
+could not speedily reconcile myself to this disappointment.
+Instead of returning to my employment, I threw myself in a chair
+that was placed opposite the door, and sunk into a fit of musing.
+
+My attention was in a few minutes recalled by the stranger, who
+returned with the empty cup in his hand. I had not thought of the
+circumstance, or should certainly have chosen a different seat. He
+no sooner showed himself, than a confused sense of impropriety,
+added to the suddenness of the interview, for which, not having
+foreseen it, I had made no preparation, threw me into a state of
+the most painful embarrassment. He brought with him a placid brow;
+but no sooner had he cast his eyes upon me than his face was as
+glowingly suffused as my own. He placed the cup upon the bench,
+stammered out thanks, and retired.
+
+It was some time before I could recover my wonted composure. I had
+snatched a view of the stranger's countenance. The impression that
+it made was vivid and indelible. His cheeks were pallid and lank,
+his eyes sunken, his forehead overshadowed by coarse straggling
+hairs, his teeth large and irregular, though sound and brilliantly
+white, and his chin discolored by a tetter. His skin was of coarse
+grain and sallow hue. Every feature was wide of beauty, and the
+outline of his face reminded you of an inverted cone.
+
+And yet his forehead, so far as shaggy locks would allow it to be
+seen, his eyes lustrously black, and possessing, in the midst of
+haggardness, a radiance inexpressibly serene and potent, and
+something in the rest of his features which it would be in vain to
+describe, but which served to betoken a mind of the highest order,
+were essential ingredients in the portrait. This, in the effects
+which immediately flowed from it, I count among the most
+extraordinary incidents of my life. This face, seen for a moment,
+continued for hours to occupy my fancy, to the exclusion of almost
+every other image. I had proposed to spend the evening with my
+brother; but I could not resist the inclination of forming a sketch
+upon paper of this memorable visage. Whether my hand was aided by
+any peculiar inspiration, or I was deceived by my own fond
+conceptions, this portrait, though hastily executed, appeared
+unexceptionable to my own taste.
+
+I placed it at all distances and in all lights; my eyes were
+riveted upon it. Half the night passed away in wakefulness and in
+contemplation of this picture. So flexible, and yet so stubborn,
+is the human mind! So obedient to impulses the most transient and
+brief, and yet so unalterably observant of the direction which is
+given to it! How little did I then foresee the termination of that
+chain of which this may be regarded as the first link!
+
+Next day arose in darkness and storm. Torrents of rain fell during
+the whole day, attended with incessant thunder, which reverberated
+in stunning echoes from the opposite declivity. The inclemency of
+the air would not allow me to walk out. I had, indeed, no
+inclination to leave my apartment. I betook myself to the
+contemplation of this portrait, whose attractions time had rather
+enhanced than diminished. I laid aside my usual occupations, and,
+seating myself at a window, consumed the day in alternately looking
+out upon the storm and gazing at the picture which lay upon a table
+before me. You will perhaps deem this conduct somewhat singular,
+and ascribe it to certain peculiarities of temper. I am not aware
+of any such peculiarities. I can account for my devotion to this
+image no otherwise than by supposing that its properties were rare
+and prodigious. Perhaps you will suspect that such were the first
+inroads of a passion incident to every female heart, and which
+frequently gains a footing by means even more slight and more
+improbable than these. I shall not controvert the reasonableness
+of the suspicion, but leave you at liberty to draw from my
+narrative what conclusions you please.
+
+Night at length returned, and the storm ceased. The air was once
+more clear and calm, and bore an affecting contrast to that uproar
+of the elements by which it had been preceded. I spent the
+darksome hours, as I spent the day, contemplative and seated at the
+window. Why was my mind absorbed in thoughts ominous and dreary?
+Why did my bosom heave with sighs and my eyes overflow with tears?
+Was the tempest that had just passed a signal of the ruin which
+impended over me? My soul fondly dwelt upon the images of my
+brother and his children; yet they only increased the mournfulness
+of my contemplations. The smiles of the charming babes were as
+bland as formerly. The same dignity sat on the brow of their
+father, and yet I thought of them with anguish. Something
+whispered that the happiness we at present enjoyed was set on
+mutable foundations. Death must happen to all. Whether our
+felicity was to be subverted by it to-morrow, or whether it was
+ordained that we should lay down our heads full of years and of
+honor, was a question that no human being could solve. At other
+times these ideas seldom intruded. I either forbore to reflect
+upon the destiny that is reserved for all men, or the reflection
+was mixed up with images that disrobed it of terror; but now the
+uncertainty of life occurred to me without any of its usual and
+alleviating accompaniments. I said to myself, We must die. Sooner
+or later, we must disappear forever from the face of the earth.
+Whatever be the links that hold us to life, they must be broken.
+This scene of existence is, in all its parts, calamitous. The
+greater number is oppressed with immediate evils, and those the
+tide of whose fortunes is full, how small is their portion of
+enjoyment, since they know that it will terminate!
+
+For some time I indulged myself, without reluctance, in these
+gloomy thoughts; but at length the delection which they produced
+became insupportably painful. I endeavored to dissipate it with
+music. I had all my grandfather's melody as well as poetry by
+rote. I now lighted by chance on a ballad which commemorated the
+fate of a German cavalier who fell at the siege of Nice under
+Godfrey of Bouillon. My choice was unfortunate; for the scenes of
+violence and carnage which were here wildly but forcibly portrayed
+only suggested to my thoughts a new topic in the horrors of war.
+
+I sought refuge, but ineffectually, in sleep. My mind was thronged
+by vivid but confused images, and no effort that I made was
+sufficient to drive them away. In this situation I heard the
+clock, which hung in the room, give the signal for twelve. It was
+the same instrument which formerly hung in my father's chamber, and
+which, on account of its being his workmanship, was regarded by
+everyone of our family with veneration. It had fallen to me in the
+division of his property, and was placed in this asylum. The sound
+awakened a series of reflections respecting his death. I was not
+allowed to pursue them; for scarcely had the vibrations ceased,
+when my attention was attracted by a whisper, which, at first,
+appeared to proceed from lips that were laid close to my ear.
+
+No wonder that a circumstance like this startled me. In the first
+impulse of my terror, I uttered a slight scream and shrunk to the
+opposite side of the bed. In a moment, however, I recovered from
+my trepidation. I was habitually indifferent to all the causes of
+fear by which the majority are afflicted. I entertained no
+apprehension of either ghosts or robbers. Our security had never
+been molested by either, and I made use of no means to prevent or
+counterwork their machinations. My tranquillity on this occasion
+was quickly retrieved. The whisper evidently proceeded from one
+who was posted at my bedside. The first idea that suggested itself
+was that it was uttered by the girl who lived with me as a servant.
+Perhaps somewhat had alarmed her, or she was sick, and had come to
+request my assistance. By whispering in my ear she intended to
+rouse without alarming me.
+
+Full of this persuasion, I called, "Judith, is it you? What do you
+want? Is there anything the matter with you?" No answer was
+returned. I repeated my inquiry, but equally in vain. Cloudy as
+was the atmosphere, and curtained as my bed was, nothing was
+visible. I withdrew the curtain, and, leaning my head on my elbow,
+I listened with the deepest attention to catch some new sound.
+Meanwhile, I ran over in my thoughts every circumstance that could
+assist my conjectures.
+
+My habitation was a wooden edifice, consisting of two stories. In
+each story were two rooms, separated by an entry, or middle
+passage, with which they communicated by opposite doors. The
+passage on the lower story had doors at the two ends, and a
+staircase. Windows answered to the doors on the upper story.
+Annexed to this, on the eastern side, were wings, divided in like
+manner into an upper and lower room; one of them comprised a
+kitchen, and chamber above it for the servant, and communicated on
+both stories with the parlor adjoining it below and the chamber
+adjoining it above. The opposite wing is of smaller dimensions,
+the rooms not being above eight feet square. The lower of these
+was used as a depository of household implements; the upper was a
+closet in which I deposited my books and papers. They had but one
+inlet, which was from the room adjoining. There was no window in
+the lower one, and in the upper a small aperture which communicated
+light and air, but would scarcely admit the body. The door which
+led into this was close to my bed head, and was always locked but
+when I myself was within. The avenues below were accustomed to be
+closed and bolted at nights.
+
+The maid was my only companion; and she could not reach my chamber
+without previously passing through the opposite chamber and the
+middle passage, of which, however, the doors were usually
+unfastened. If she had occasioned this noise, she would have
+answered my repeated calls. No other conclusion, therefore, was
+left me, but that I had mistaken the sounds, and that my
+imagination had transformed some casual noise into the voice of a
+human creature. Satisfied with this solution, I was preparing to
+relinquish my listening attitude, when my ear was again saluted
+with a new and yet louder whispering. It appeared, as before, to
+issue from lips that touched my pillow. A second effort of
+attention, however, clearly showed me that the sounds issued from
+within the closet, the door of which was not more than eight inches
+from my pillow.
+
+This second interruption occasioned a shock less vehement than the
+former. I started, but gave no audible token of alarm. I was so
+much mistress of my feelings as to continue listening to what
+should be said. The whisper was distinct, hoarse, and uttered so
+as to show that the speaker was desirous of being heard by some one
+near, but, at the same time, studious to avoid being overheard by
+any other:--
+
+"Stop! stop, I say, madman as you are! there are better means than
+that. Curse upon your rashness! There is no need to shoot."
+
+Such were the words uttered, in a tone of eagerness and anger,
+within so small a distance of my pillow. What construction could I
+put upon them? My heart began to palpitate with dread of some
+unknown danger. Presently, another voice, but equally near me, was
+heard whispering in answer, "Why not? I will draw a trigger in
+this business; but perdition be my lot if I do more!" To this the
+first voice returned, in a tone which rage had heightened in a
+small degree above a whisper, "Coward! stand aside, and see me do
+it. I will grasp her throat; I will do her business in an instant;
+she shall not have time so much as to groan." What wonder that I
+was petrified by sounds so dreadful! Murderers lurked in my
+closet. They were planning the means of my destruction. One
+resolved to shoot, and the other menaced suffocation. Their means
+being chosen, they would forthwith break the door. Flight
+instantly suggested itself as most eligible in circumstances so
+perilous. I deliberated not a moment; but, fear adding wings to my
+speed, I leaped out of bed, and, scantily robed as I was, rushed
+out of the chamber, downstairs, and into the open air. I can
+hardly recollect the process of turning keys and withdrawing bolts.
+My terrors urged me forward with almost a mechanical impulse. I
+stopped not till I reached my brother's door. I had not gained the
+threshold, when, exhausted by the violence of my emotions and by my
+speed, I sunk down in a fit.
+
+How long I remained in this situation I know not. When I
+recovered, I found myself stretched on a bed, surrounded by my
+sister and her female servants. I was astonished at the scene
+before me, but gradually recovered the recollection of what had
+happened. I answered their importunate inquiries as well as I was
+able. My brother and Pleyel, whom the storm of the preceding day
+chanced to detain here, informing themselves of every particular,
+proceeded with lights and weapons to my deserted habitation. They
+entered my chamber and my closet, and found everything in its
+proper place and customary order. The door of the closet was
+locked, and appeared not to have been opened in my absence. They
+went to Judith's apartment. They found her asleep and in safety.
+Pleyel's caution induced him to forbear alarming the girl; and,
+finding her wholly ignorant of what had passed, they directed her
+to return to her chamber. They then fastened the doors and
+returned.
+
+My friends were disposed to regard this transaction as a dream.
+That persons should be actually immured in this closet, to which,
+in the circumstances of the time, access from without or within was
+apparently impossible, they could not seriously believe. That any
+human beings had intended murder, unless it were to cover a scheme
+of pillage, was incredible; but that no such design had been formed
+was evident from the security in which the furniture of the house
+and the closet remained.
+
+I revolved every incident and expression that had occurred. My
+senses assured me of the truth of them; and yet their abruptness
+and improbability made me, in my turn, somewhat incredulous. The
+adventure had made a deep impression on my fancy; and it was not
+till after a week's abode at my brother's that I resolved to resume
+the possession of my own dwelling.
+
+There was another circumstance that enhanced the mysteriousness of
+this event. After my recovery, it was obvious to inquire by what
+means the attention of the family had been drawn to my situation.
+I had fallen before I had reached the threshold or was able to give
+any signal. My brother related that, while this was transacting in
+my chamber, he himself was awake, in consequence of some slight
+indisposition, and lay, according to his custom, musing on some
+favorite topic. Suddenly the silence, which was remarkably
+profound, was broken by a voice of most piercing shrillness, that
+seemed to be uttered by one in the hall below his chamber. "Awake!
+arise!" it exclaimed; "hasten to succor one that is dying at your
+door!"
+
+This summons was effectual. There was no one in the house who was
+not roused by it. Pleyel was the first to obey, and my brother
+overtook him before he reached the hall. What was the general
+astonishment when your friend was discovered stretched upon the
+grass before the door, pale, ghastly, and with every mark of death!
+
+But how was I to regard this midnight conversation? Hoarse and
+manlike voices conferring on the means of death, so near my bed,
+and at such an hour! How had my ancient security vanished! That
+dwelling which had hitherto been an inviolate asylum was now beset
+with danger to my life. That solitude formerly so dear to me could
+no longer be endured. Pleyel, who had consented to reside with us
+during the months of spring, lodged in the vacant chamber, in order
+to quiet my alarms. He treated my fears with ridicule, and in a
+short time very slight traces of them remained; but, as it was
+wholly indifferent to him whether his nights were passed at my
+house or at my brother's, this arrangement gave general
+satisfaction.
+
+
+II
+
+
+I will enumerate the various inquiries and conjectures which these
+incidents occasioned. After all our efforts, we came no nearer to
+dispelling the mist in which they were involved; and time, instead
+of facilitating a solution, only accumulated our doubts.
+
+In the midst of thoughts excited by these events, I was not
+unmindful of my interview with the stranger. I related the
+particulars, and showed the portrait to my friends. Pleyel
+recollected to have met with a figure resembling my description in
+the city; but neither his face or garb made the same impression
+upon him that it made upon me. It was a hint to rally me upon my
+prepossessions, and to amuse us with a thousand ludicrous anecdotes
+which he had collected in his travels. He made no scruple to
+charge me with being in love; and threatened to inform the swain,
+when he met him, of his good fortune.
+
+Pleyel's temper made him susceptible of no durable impressions.
+His conversation was occasionally visited by gleams of his ancient
+vivacity; but, though his impetuosity was sometimes inconvenient,
+there was nothing to dread from his malice. I had no fear that my
+character or dignity would suffer in his hands, and was not
+heartily displeased when he declared his intention of profiting by
+his first meeting with the stranger to introduce him to our
+acquaintance.
+
+Some weeks after this I had spent a toilsome day, and, as the sun
+declined, found myself disposed to seek relief in a walk. The
+river bank is, at this part of it and for some considerable space
+upward, so rugged and steep as not to be easily descended. In a
+recess of this declivity, near the southern verge of my little
+demesne, was placed a slight building, with seats and lattices.
+From a crevice of the rock to which this edifice was attached there
+burst forth a stream of the purest water, which, leaping from ledge
+to ledge for the space of sixty feet, produced a freshness in the
+air, and a murmur, the most delicious and soothing imaginable.
+These, added to the odors of the cedars which embowered it, and of
+the honeysuckle which clustered among the lattices, rendered this
+my favorite retreat in summer.
+
+On this occasion I repaired hither. My spirits drooped through the
+fatigue of long attention, and I threw myself upon a bench, in a
+state, both mentally and personally, of the utmost supineness. The
+lulling sounds of the waterfall, the fragrance, and the dusk,
+combined to becalm my spirits, and, in a short time, to sink me
+into sleep. Either the uneasiness of my posture, or some slight
+indisposition, molested my repose with dreams of no cheerful hue.
+After various incoherences had taken their turn to occupy my fancy,
+I at length imagined myself walking, in the evening twilight, to my
+brother's habitation. A pit, methought, had been dug in the path I
+had taken, of which I was not aware. As I carelessly pursued my
+walk, I thought I saw my brother standing at some distance before
+me, beckoning and calling me to make haste. He stood on the
+opposite edge of the gulf. I mended my pace, and one step more
+would have plunged me into this abyss, had not some one from behind
+caught suddenly my arm, and exclaimed, in a voice of eagerness and
+terror, "Hold! hold!"
+
+The sound broke my sleep, and I found myself, at the next moment,
+standing on my feet, and surrounded by the deepest darkness.
+Images so terrific and forcible disabled me for a time from
+distinguishing between sleep and wakefulness, and withheld from me
+the knowledge of my actual condition. My first panic was succeeded
+by the perturbations of surprise to find myself alone in the open
+air and immersed in so deep a gloom. I slowly recollected the
+incidents of the afternoon, and how I came hither. I could not
+estimate the time, but saw the propriety of returning with speed to
+the house. My faculties were still too confused, and the darkness
+too intense, to allow me immediately to find my way up the steep.
+I sat down, therefore, to recover myself, and to reflect upon my
+situation.
+
+This was no sooner done, than a low voice was heard from behind the
+lattice, on the side where I sat. Between the rock and the lattice
+was a chasm not wide enough to admit a human body; yet in this
+chasm he that spoke appeared to be stationed. "Attend! attend! but
+be not terrified."
+
+I started, and exclaimed, "Good heavens! what is that? Who are
+you?"
+
+"A friend; one come not to injure but to save you: fear nothing."
+
+This voice was immediately recognized to be the same with one of
+those which I had heard in the closet; it was the voice of him who
+had proposed to shoot rather than to strangle his victim. My
+terror made me at once mute and motionless. He continued, "I
+leagued to murder you. I repent. Mark my bidding, and be safe.
+Avoid this spot. The snares of death encompass it. Elsewhere
+danger will be distant; but this spot, shun it as you value your
+life. Mark me further: profit by this warning, but divulge it not.
+If a syllable of what has passed escape you, your doom is sealed.
+Remember your father, and be faithful."
+
+Here the accents ceased, and left me overwhelmed with dismay. I
+was fraught with the persuasion that during every moment I remained
+here my life was endangered; but I could not take a step without
+hazard of falling to the bottom of the precipice. The path leading
+to the summit was short, but rugged and intricate. Even starlight
+was excluded by the umbrage, and not the faintest gleam was
+afforded to guide my steps. What should I do? To depart or remain
+was equally and eminently perilous.
+
+In this state of uncertainty, I perceived a ray flit across the
+gloom and disappear. Another succeeded, which was stronger, and
+remained for a passing moment. It glittered on the shrubs that
+were scattered at the entrance, and gleam continued to succeed
+gleam for a few seconds, till they finally gave place to
+unintermitted darkness.
+
+The first visitings of this light called up a train of horrors in
+my mind; destruction impended over this spot; the voice which I had
+lately heard had warned me to retire, and had menaced me with the
+fate of my father if I refused. I was desirous, but unable to
+obey; these gleams were such as preluded the stroke by which he
+fell; the hour, perhaps, was the same. I shuddered as if I had
+beheld suspended over me the exterminating sword.
+
+Presently a new and stronger illumination burst through the lattice
+on the right hand, and a voice from the edge of the precipice above
+called out my name. It was Pleyel. Joyfully did I recognize his
+accents; but such was the tumult of my thoughts that I had not
+power to answer him till he had frequently repeated his summons. I
+hurried at length from the fatal spot, and, directed by the lantern
+which he bore, ascended the hill.
+
+Pale and breathless, it was with difficulty I could support myself.
+He anxiously inquired into the cause of my affright and the motive
+of my unusual absence. He had returned from my brother's at a late
+hour, and was informed by Judith that I had walked out before
+sunset and had not yet returned. This intelligence was somewhat
+alarming. He waited some time; but, my absence continuing, he had
+set out in search of me. He had explored the neighborhood with the
+utmost care, but, receiving no tidings of me, he was preparing to
+acquaint my brother with this circumstance, when he recollected the
+summer-house on the bank, and conceived it possible that some
+accident had detained me there. He again inquired into the cause
+of this detention, and of that confusion and dismay which my looks
+testified.
+
+I told him that I had strolled hither in the afternoon, that sleep
+had overtaken me as I sat, and that I had awakened a few minutes
+before his arrival. I could tell him no more. In the present
+impetuosity of my thoughts, I was almost dubious whether the pit
+into which my brother had endeavored to entice me, and the voice
+that talked through the lattice, were not parts of the same dream.
+I remembered, likewise, the charge of secrecy, and the penalty
+denounced if I should rashly divulge what I had heard. For these
+reasons I was silent on that subject, and, shutting myself in my
+chamber, delivered myself up to contemplation.
+
+What I have related will, no doubt, appear to you a fable. You
+will believe that calamity has subverted my reason, and that I am
+amusing you with the chimeras of my brain instead of facts that
+have really happened. I shall not be surprised or offended if
+these be your suspicions. I know not, indeed, how you can deny
+them admission. For, if to me, the immediate witness, they were
+fertile of perplexity and doubt, how must they affect another to
+whom they are recommended only by my testimony? It was only by
+subsequent events that I was fully and incontestably assured of the
+veracity of my senses.
+
+Meanwhile, what was I to think? I had been assured that a design
+had been formed against my life. The ruffians had leagued to
+murder me. Whom had I offended? Who was there, with whom I had
+ever maintained intercourse, who was capable of harboring such
+atrocious purposes?
+
+My temper was the reverse of cruel and imperious. My heart was
+touched with sympathy for the children of misfortune. But this
+sympathy was not a barren sentiment. My purse, scanty as it was,
+was ever open, and my hands ever active, to relieve distress. Many
+were the wretches whom my personal exertions had extricated from
+want and disease, and who rewarded me with their gratitude. There
+was no face which lowered at my approach, and no lips which uttered
+imprecations in my hearing. On the contrary, there was none, over
+whose fate I had exerted any influence or to whom I was known by
+reputation, who did not greet me with smiles and dismiss me with
+proofs of veneration: yet did not my senses assure me that a plot
+was laid against my life?
+
+I am not destitute of courage. I have shown myself deliberative
+and calm in the midst of peril. I have hazarded my own life for
+the preservation of another; but now was I confused and panic-
+struck. I have not lived so as to fear death; yet to perish by an
+unseen and secret stroke, to be mangled by the knife of an
+assassin, was a thought at which I shuddered: what had I done to
+deserve to be made the victim of malignant passions?
+
+But soft! was I not assured that my life was safe in all places but
+one? And why was the treason limited to take effect in this spot?
+I was everywhere equally defenseless. My house and chamber were at
+all times accessible. Danger still impended over me; the bloody
+purpose was still entertained, but the hand that was to execute it
+was powerless in all places but one!
+
+Here I had remained for the last four or five hours, without the
+means of resistance or defense; yet I had not been attacked. A
+human being was at hand, who was conscious of my presence, and
+warned me hereafter to avoid this retreat. His voice was not
+absolutely new, but had I never heard it but once before? But why
+did he prohibit me from relating this incident to others, and what
+species of death will be awarded if I disobey?
+
+Such were the reflections that haunted me during the night, and
+which effectually deprived me of sleep. Next morning, at
+breakfast, Pleyel related an event which my disappearance had
+hindered him from mentioning the night before. Early the preceding
+morning, his occasions called him to the city: he had stepped into
+a coffee-house to while away an hour; here he had met a person
+whose appearance instantly bespoke him to be the same whose hasty
+visit I have mentioned, and whose extraordinary visage and tones
+had so powerfully affected me. On an attentive survey, however, he
+proved, likewise, to be one with whom my friend had had some
+intercourse in Europe. This authorized the liberty of accosting
+him, and after some conversation, mindful, as Pleyel said, of the
+footing which this stranger had gained in my heart, he had ventured
+to invite him to Mettingen. The invitation had been cheerfully
+accepted, and a visit promised on the afternoon of the next day.
+
+This information excited no sober emotions in my breast. I was, of
+course, eager to be informed as to the circumstances of their
+ancient intercourse. When and where had they met? What knew he of
+the life and character of this man?
+
+In answer to my inquiries, he informed me that, three years before,
+he was a traveler in Spain. He had made an excursion from Valencia
+to Murviedro, with a view to inspect the remains of Roman
+magnificence scattered in the environs of that town. While
+traversing the site of the theater of old Saguntum, he alighted
+upon this man, seated on a stone, and deeply engaged in perusing
+the work of the deacon Marti. A short conversation ensued, which
+proved the stranger to be English. They returned to Valencia
+together.
+
+His garb, aspect, and deportment were wholly Spanish. A residence
+of three years in the country, indefatigable attention to the
+language, and a studious conformity with the customs of the people,
+had made him indistinguishable from a native when he chose to
+assume that character. Pleyel found him to be connected, on the
+footing of friendship and respect, with many eminent merchants in
+that city. He had embraced the Catholic religion, and adopted a
+Spanish name instead of his own, which was CARWIN, and devoted
+himself to the literature and religion of his new country. He
+pursued no profession, but subsisted on remittances from England.
+
+While Pleyel remained in Valencia, Carwin betrayed no aversion to
+intercourse, and the former found no small attractions in the
+society of this new acquaintance, On general topics he was highly
+intelligent and communicative. He had visited every corner of
+Spain, and could furnish the most accurate details respecting its
+ancient and present state. On topics of religion and of his own
+history, previous to his TRANSFORMATION into a Spaniard, he was
+invariably silent. You could merely gather from his discourse that
+he was English, and that he was well acquainted with the
+neighboring countries.
+
+His character excited considerable curiosity in the observer. It
+was not easy to reconcile his conversion to the Romish faith with
+those proofs of knowledge and capacity that were exhibited by him
+on different occasions. A suspicion was sometimes admitted that
+his belief was counterfeited for some political purpose. The most
+careful observation, however, produced no discovery. His manners
+were at all times harmless and inartificial, and his habits those
+of a lover of contemplation and seclusion. He appeared to have
+contracted an affection for Pleyel, who was not slow to return it.
+
+My friend, after a month's residence in this city, returned into
+France, and, since that period, had heard nothing concerning Carwin
+till his appearance at Mettingen.
+
+On this occasion Carwin had received Pleyel's greeting with a
+certain distance and solemnity to which the latter had not been
+accustomed. He had waived noticing the inquiries of Pleyel
+respecting his desertion of Spain, in which he had formerly
+declared that it was his purpose to spend his life. He had
+assiduously diverted the attention of the latter to indifferent
+topics, but was still, on every theme, as eloquent and judicious as
+formerly. Why he had assumed the garb of a rustic Pleyel was
+unable to conjecture. Perhaps it might be poverty; perhaps he was
+swayed by motives which it was his interest to conceal, but which
+were connected with consequences of the utmost moment.
+
+Such was the sum of my friend's information. I was not sorry to be
+left alone during the greater part of this day. Every employment
+was irksome which did not leave me at liberty to meditate. I had
+now a new subject on which to exercise my thoughts. Before evening
+I should be ushered into his presence, and listen to those tones
+whose magical and thrilling power I had already experienced. But
+with what new images would he then be accompanied?
+
+Carwin was an adherent to the Romish faith, yet was an Englishman
+by birth, and, perhaps, a Protestant by education. He had adopted
+Spain for his country, and had intimated a design to spend his days
+there, yet now was an inhabitant of this district, and disguised by
+the habiliments of a clown! What could have obliterated the
+impressions of his youth and made him abjure his religion and his
+country? What subsequent events had introduced so total a change
+in his plans? In withdrawing from Spain, had he reverted to the
+religion of his ancestors? or was it true that his former
+conversion was deceitful, and that his conduct had been swayed by
+motives which it was prudent to conceal?
+
+Hours were consumed in revolving these ideas. My meditations were
+intense; and, when the series was broken, I began to reflect with
+astonishment on my situation. From the death of my parents till
+the commencement of this year my life had been serene and blissful
+beyond the ordinary portion of humanity; but now my bosom was
+corroded by anxiety. I was visited by dread of unknown dangers,
+and the future was a scene over which clouds rolled and thunders
+muttered. I compared the cause with the effect, and they seemed
+disproportioned to each other. All unaware, and in a manner which
+I had no power to explain, I was pushed from my immovable and lofty
+station and cast upon a sea of troubles.
+
+I determined to be my brother's visitant on this evening; yet my
+resolves were not unattended with wavering and reluctance.
+Pleyel's insinuations that I was in love affected in no degree my
+belief; yet the consciousness that this was the opinion of one who
+would probably be present at our introduction to each other would
+excite all that confusion which the passion itself is apt to
+produce. This would confirm him in his error and call forth new
+railleries. His mirth, when exerted upon this topic, was the
+source of the bitterest vexation. Had he been aware of its
+influence upon my happiness, his temper would not have allowed him
+to persist; but this influence it was my chief endeavor to conceal.
+That the belief of my having bestowed my heart upon another
+produced in my friend none but ludicrous sensations was the true
+cause of my distress; but if this had been discovered by him my
+distress would have been unspeakably aggravated.
+
+
+III
+
+
+As soon as evening arrived, I performed my visit. Carwin made one
+of the company into which I was ushered. Appearances were the same
+as when I before beheld him. His garb was equally negligent and
+rustic. I gazed upon his countenance with new curiosity. My
+situation was such as to enable me to bestow upon it a deliberate
+examination. Viewed at more leisure, it lost none of its wonderful
+properties. I could not deny my homage to the intelligence
+expressed in it, but was wholly uncertain whether he were an object
+to be dreaded or adored, and whether his powers had been exerted to
+evil or to good.
+
+He was sparing in discourse; but whatever he said was pregnant with
+meaning, and uttered with rectitude of articulation and force of
+emphasis of which I had entertained no conception previously to my
+knowledge of him. Notwithstanding the uncouthness of his garb, his
+manners were not unpolished. All topics were handled by him with
+skill, and without pedantry or affectation. He uttered no
+sentiment calculated to produce a disadvantageous impression; on
+the contrary, his observations denoted a mind alive to every
+generous and heroic feeling. They were introduced without parade,
+and accompanied with that degree of earnestness which indicates
+sincerity.
+
+He parted from us not till late, refusing an invitation to spend
+the night here, but readily consented to repeat his visit. His
+visits were frequently repeated. Each day introduced us to a more
+intimate acquaintance with his sentiments, but left us wholly in
+the dark concerning that about which we were most inquisitive. He
+studiously avoided all mention of his past or present situation.
+Even the place of his abode in the city he concealed from us.
+
+Our sphere in this respect being somewhat limited, and the
+intellectual endowments of this man being indisputably great, his
+deportment was more diligently marked and copiously commented on by
+us than you, perhaps, will think the circumstances warranted. Not
+a gesture, or glance, or accent, that was not, in our private
+assemblies, discussed, and inferences deduced from it. It may well
+be thought that he modeled his behavior by an uncommon standard,
+when, with all our opportunities and accuracy of observation, we
+were able for a long time to gather no satisfactory information.
+He afforded us no ground on which to build even a plausible
+conjecture.
+
+There is a degree of familiarity which takes place between constant
+associates, that justifies the negligence of many rules of which,
+in an earlier period of their intercourse, politeness requires the
+exact observance. Inquiries into our condition are allowable when
+they are prompted by a disinterested concern for our welfare; and
+this solicitude is not only pardonable, but may justly be demanded
+from those who choose us for their companions. This state of
+things was more slow to arrive at on this occasion than on most
+others, on account of the gravity and loftiness of this man's
+behavior.
+
+Pleyel, however, began at length to employ regular means for this
+end. He occasionally alluded to the circumstances in which they
+had formerly met, and remarked the incongruousness between the
+religion and habits of a Spaniard with those of a native of
+Britain. He expressed his astonishment at meeting our guest in
+this corner of the globe, especially as, when they parted in Spain,
+he was taught to believe that Carwin should never leave that
+country. He insinuated that a change so great must have been
+prompted by motives of a singular and momentous kind.
+
+No answer, or an answer wide of the purpose, was generally made to
+these insinuations. Britons and Spaniards, he said, are votaries
+of the same Deity, and square their faith by the same precepts;
+their ideas are drawn from the same fountains of literature, and
+they speak dialects of the same tongue; their government and laws
+have more resemblances than differences; they were formerly
+provinces of the same civil, and, till lately, of the same
+religious, empire.
+
+As to the motives which induce men to change the place of their
+abode, these must unavoidably be fleeting and mutable. If not
+bound to one spot by conjugal or parental ties, or by the nature of
+that employment to which we are indebted for subsistence, the
+inducements to change are far more numerous and powerful than
+opposite inducements.
+
+He spoke as if desirous of showing that he was not aware of the
+tendency of Pleyel's remarks; yet certain tokens were apparent that
+proved him by no means wanting in penetration. These tokens were
+to be read in his countenance, and not in his words. When anything
+was said indicating curiosity in us, the gloom of his countenance
+was deepened, his eyes sunk to the ground, and his wonted air was
+not resumed without visible struggle. Hence, it was obvious to
+infer that some incidents of his life were reflected on by him with
+regret; and that, since these incidents were carefully concealed,
+and even that regret which flowed from them laboriously stifled,
+they had not been merely disastrous. The secrecy that was observed
+appeared not designed to provoke or baffle the inquisitive, but was
+prompted by the shame or by the prudence of guilt.
+
+These ideas, which were adopted by Pleyel and my brother as well as
+myself, hindered us from employing more direct means for
+accomplishing our wishes. Questions might have been put in such
+terms that no room should be left for the pretense of misapprehension;
+and, if modesty merely had been the obstacle, such questions would
+not have been wanting; but we considered that, if the disclosure
+were productive of pain or disgrace, it was inhuman to extort it.
+
+Amidst the various topics that were discussed in his presence,
+allusions were, of course, made to the inexplicable events that had
+lately happened. At those times the words and looks of this man
+were objects of my particular attention. The subject was
+extraordinary; and anyone whose experience or reflections could
+throw any light upon it was entitled to my gratitude. As this man
+was enlightened by reading and travel, I listened with eagerness to
+the remarks which he should make.
+
+At first I entertained a kind of apprehension that the tale would
+be heard by him with incredulity and secret ridicule. I had
+formerly heard stories that resembled this in some of their
+mysterious circumstances; but they were commonly heard by me with
+contempt. I was doubtful whether the same impression would not now
+be made on the mind of our guest; but I was mistaken in my fears.
+
+He heard them with seriousness, and without any marks either of
+surprise or incredulity. He pursued with visible pleasure that
+kind of disquisition which was naturally suggested by them. His
+fancy was eminently vigorous and prolific; and, if he did not
+persuade us that human beings are sometimes admitted to a sensible
+intercourse with the Author of nature, he at least won over our
+inclination to the cause. He merely deduced, from his own
+reasonings, that such intercourse was probable, but confessed that,
+though he was acquainted with many instances somewhat similar to
+those which had been related by us, none of them were perfectly
+exempted from the suspicion of human agency.
+
+On being requested to relate these instances, he amused us with
+many curious details. His narratives were constructed with so much
+skill, and rehearsed with so much energy, that all the effects of a
+dramatic exhibition were frequently produced by them. Those that
+were most coherent and most minute, and, of consequence, least
+entitled to credit, were yet rendered probable by the exquisite art
+of this rhetorician. For every difficulty that was suggested a
+ready and plausible solution was furnished. Mysterious voices had
+always a share in producing the catastrophe; but they were always
+to be explained on some known principles, either as reflected into
+a focus or communicated through a tube. I could not but remark
+that his narratives, however complex or marvelous, contained no
+instance sufficiently parallel to those that had befallen
+ourselves, and in which the solution was applicable to our own
+case.
+
+My brother was a much more sanguine reasoner than our guest. Even
+in some of the facts which were related by Carwin, he maintained
+the probability of celestial interference, when the latter was
+disposed to deny it, and had found, as he imagined, footsteps of a
+human agent. Pleyel was by no means equally credulous. He
+scrupled not to deny faith to any testimony but that of his senses,
+and allowed the facts which had lately been supported by this
+testimony not to mold his belief, but merely to give birth to
+doubts.
+
+It was soon observed that Carwin adopted, in some degree, a similar
+distinction. A tale of this kind, related by others, he would
+believe, provided it was explicable upon known principles; but that
+such notices were actually communicated by beings of a higher order
+he would believe only when his own ears were assailed in a manner
+which could not be otherwise accounted for. Civility forbade him
+to contradict my brother or myself, but his understanding refused
+to acquiesce in our testimony. Besides, he was disposed to
+question whether the voices were not really uttered by human
+organs. On this supposition he was desired to explain how the
+effect was produced.
+
+He answered that the cry for help, heard in the hall on the night
+of my adventure, was to be ascribed to a human creature, who
+actually stood in the hall when he uttered it. It was of no
+moment, he said, that we could not explain by what motives he that
+made the signal was led hither. How imperfectly acquainted were we
+with the condition and designs of the beings that surrounded us!
+The city was near at hand, and thousands might there exist whose
+powers and purposes might easily explain whatever was mysterious in
+this transaction. As to the closet dialogue, he was obliged to
+adopt one of two suppositions, and affirm either that it was
+fashioned in my own fancy, or that it actually took place between
+two persons in the closet.
+
+Such was Carwin's mode of explaining these appearances. It is
+such, perhaps, as would commend itself as most plausible to the
+most sagacious minds; but it was insufficient to impart conviction
+to us. As to the treason that was meditated against me, it was
+doubtless just to conclude that it was either real or imaginary;
+but that it was real was attested by the mysterious warning in the
+summer-house, the secret of which I had hitherto locked up in my
+own breast.
+
+A month passed away in this kind of intercourse. As to Carwin, our
+ignorance was in no degree enlightened respecting his genuine
+character and views. Appearances were uniform. No man possessed a
+larger store of knowledge, or a greater degree of skill in the
+communication of it to others; hence he was regarded as an
+inestimable addition to our society. Considering the distance of
+my brother's house from the city, he was frequently prevailed upon
+to pass the night where he spent the evening. Two days seldom
+elapsed without a visit from him; hence he was regarded as a kind
+of inmate of the house. He entered and departed without ceremony.
+When he arrived he received an unaffected welcome, and when he
+chose to retire no importunities were used to induce him to remain.
+
+Carwin never parted with his gravity. The inscrutableness of his
+character, and the uncertainty whether his fellowship tended to
+good or to evil, were seldom absent from our minds. This
+circumstance powerfully contributed to sadden us.
+
+My heart was the seat of growing disquietudes. This change in one
+who had formerly been characterized by all the exuberances of soul
+could not fail to be remarked by my friends. My brother was always
+a pattern of solemnity. My sister was clay, molded by the
+circumstances in which she happened to be placed. There was but
+one whose deportment remains to be described as being of importance
+to our happiness. Had Pleyel likewise dismissed his vivacity?
+
+He was as whimsical and jestful as ever, but he was not happy. The
+truth in this respect was of too much importance to me not to make
+me a vigilant observer. His mirth was easily perceived to be the
+fruit of exertion. When his thoughts wandered from the company, an
+air of dissatisfaction and impatience stole across his features.
+Even the punctuality and frequency of his visits were somewhat
+lessened. It may be supposed that my own uneasiness was heightened
+by these tokens; but, strange as it may seem, I found, in the
+present state of my mind, no relief but in the persuasion that
+Pleyel was unhappy.
+
+That unhappiness, indeed, depended for its value in my eyes on the
+cause that produced it. There was but one source whence it could
+flow. A nameless ecstasy thrilled through my frame when any new
+proof occurred that the ambiguousness of my behavior was the cause.
+
+
+IV
+
+
+My brother had received a new book from Germany. It was a tragedy,
+and the first attempt of a Saxon poet of whom my brother had been
+taught to entertain the highest expectations. The exploits of
+Zisca, the Bohemian hero, were woven into a dramatic series and
+connection. According to German custom, it was minute and diffuse,
+and dictated by an adventurous and lawless fancy. It was a chain
+of audacious acts and unheard-of disasters. The moated fortress
+and the thicket, the ambush and the battle, and the conflict of
+headlong passions, were portrayed in wild numbers and with terrific
+energy. An afternoon was set apart to rehearse this performance.
+The language was familiar to all of us but Carwin, whose company,
+therefore, was tacitly dispensed with.
+
+The morning previous to this intended rehearsal I spent at home.
+My mind was occupied with reflections relative to my own situation.
+The sentiment which lived with chief energy in my heart was
+connected with the image of Pleyel. In the midst of my anguish, I
+had not been destitute of consolation. His late deportment had
+given spring to my hopes. Was not the hour at hand which should
+render me the happiest of human creatures? He suspected that I
+looked with favorable eyes upon Carwin. Hence arose disquietudes
+which he struggled in vain to conceal. He loved me, but was
+hopeless that his love would be compensated. Is it not time, said
+I, to rectify this error? But by what means is this to be
+effected? It can only be done by a change of deportment in me; but
+how must I demean myself for this purpose?
+
+I must not speak. Neither eyes nor lips must impart the
+information. He must not be assured that my heart is his, previous
+to the tender of his own; but he must be convinced that it has not
+been given to another; he must be supplied with space whereon to
+build a doubt as to the true state of my affections; he must be
+prompted to avow himself. The line of delicate propriety,--how
+hard it is not to fall short, and not to overleap it!
+
+This afternoon we shall meet. . . . We shall not separate till
+late. It will be his province to accompany me home. The airy
+expanse is without a speck. This breeze is usually steadfast, and
+its promise of a bland and cloudless evening may be trusted. The
+moon will rise at eleven, and at that hour we shall wind along this
+bank. Possibly that hour may decide my fate. If suitable
+encouragement be given, Pleyel will reveal his soul to me; and I,
+ere I reach this threshold, will be made the happiest of beings.
+
+And is this good to be mine? Add wings to thy speed, sweet
+evening; and thou, moon, I charge thee, shroud thy beams at the
+moment when my Pleyel whispers love. I would not for the world
+that the burning blushes and the mounting raptures of that moment
+should be visible.
+
+But what encouragement is wanting? I must be regardful of
+insurmountable limits. Yet, when minds are imbued with a genuine
+sympathy, are not words and looks superfluous? Are not motion and
+touch sufficient to impart feelings such as mine? Has he not eyed
+me at moments when the pressure of his hand has thrown me into
+tumults, and was it impossible that he mistook the impetuosities of
+love for the eloquence of indignation?
+
+But the hastening evening will decide. Would it were come! And
+yet I shudder at its near approach. An interview that must thus
+terminate is surely to be wished for by me; and yet it is not
+without its terrors. Would to heaven it were come and gone!
+
+I feel no reluctance, my friends, to be thus explicit. Time was,
+when these emotions would be hidden with immeasurable solicitude
+from every human eye. Alas! these airy and fleeting impulses of
+shame are gone. My scruples were preposterous and criminal. They
+are bred in all hearts by a perverse and vicious education, and
+they would still have maintained their place in my heart, had not
+my portion been set in misery. My errors have taught me thus much
+wisdom:--that those sentiments which we ought not to disclose it is
+criminal to harbor.
+
+It was proposed to begin the rehearsal at four o'clock. I counted
+the minutes as they passed; their flight was at once too rapid and
+too slow: my sensations were of an excruciating kind; I could taste
+no food, nor apply to any task, nor enjoy a moment's repose; when
+the hour arrived I hastened to my brother's.
+
+Pleyel was not there. He had not yet come. On ordinary occasions
+he was eminent for punctuality. He had testified great eagerness
+to share in the pleasures of this rehearsal. He was to divide the
+task with my brother, and in tasks like these he always engaged
+with peculiar zeal. His elocution was less sweet than sonorous,
+and, therefore, better adapted than the mellifluences of his friend
+to the outrageous vehemence of this drama.
+
+What could detain him? Perhaps he lingered through forgetfulness.
+Yet this was incredible. Never had his memory been known to fail
+upon even more trivial occasions. Not less impossible was it that
+the scheme had lost its attractions, and that he stayed because his
+coming would afford him no gratification. But why should we expect
+him to adhere to the minute?
+
+A half-hour elapsed, but Pleyel was still at a distance. Perhaps
+he had misunderstood the hour which had been proposed. Perhaps he
+had conceived that to-morrow, and not to-day, had been selected for
+this purpose; but no. A review of preceding circumstances
+demonstrated that such misapprehension was impossible; for he had
+himself proposed this day, and this hour. This day his attention
+would not otherwise be occupied; but to-morrow an indispensable
+engagement was foreseen, by which all his time would be engrossed;
+his detention, therefore, must be owing to some unforeseen and
+extraordinary event. Our conjectures were vague, tumultuous, and
+sometimes fearful. His sickness and his death might possibly have
+detained him.
+
+Tortured with suspense, we sat gazing at each other, and at the
+path which led from the road. Every horseman that passed was, for
+a moment, imagined to be him. Hour succeeded hour, and the sun,
+gradually declining, at length disappeared. Every signal of his
+coming proved fallacious, and our hopes were at length dismissed.
+His absence affected my friends in no insupportable degree. They
+should be obliged, they said, to defer this undertaking till the
+morrow; and perhaps their impatient curiosity would compel them to
+dispense entirely with his presence. No doubt some harmless
+occurrence had diverted him from his purpose; and they trusted that
+they should receive a satisfactory account of him in the morning.
+
+It may be supposed that this disappointment affected me in a very
+different manner. I turned aside my head to conceal my tears. I
+fled into solitude, to give vent to my reproaches without
+interruption or restraint. My heart was ready to burst with
+indignation and grief. Pleyel was not the only object of my keen
+but unjust upbraiding. Deeply did I execrate my own folly. Thus
+fallen into ruins was the gay fabric which I had reared! Thus had
+my golden vision melted into air!
+
+How fondly did I dream that Pleyel was a lover! If he were, would
+he have suffered any obstacle to hinder his coming? "Blind and
+infatuated man!" I exclaimed. "Thou sportest with happiness. The
+good that is offered thee thou hast the insolence and folly to
+refuse. Well, I will henceforth intrust my felicity to no one's
+keeping but my own."
+
+The first agonies of this disappointment would not allow me to be
+reasonable or just. Every ground on which I had built the
+persuasion that Pleyel was not unimpressed in my favor appeared to
+vanish. It seemed as if I had been misled into this opinion by the
+most palpable illusions.
+
+I made some trifling excuse, and returned, much earlier than I
+expected, to my own house. I retired early to my chamber, without
+designing to sleep. I placed myself at a window, and gave the
+reins to reflection.
+
+The hateful and degrading impulses which had lately controlled me
+were, in some degree, removed. New dejection succeeded, but was
+now produced by contemplating my late behavior. Surely that
+passion is worthy to be abhorred which obscures our understanding
+and urges us to the commission of injustice. What right had I to
+expect his attendance? Had I not demeaned myself like one
+indifferent to his happiness, and as having bestowed my regards
+upon another? His absence might be prompted by the love which I
+considered his absence as a proof that he wanted. He came not
+because the sight of me, the spectacle of my coldness or aversion,
+contributed to his despair. Why should I prolong, by hypocrisy or
+silence, his misery as well as my own? Why not deal with him
+explicitly, and assure him of the truth?
+
+You will hardly believe that, in obedience to this suggestion, I
+rose for the purpose of ordering a light, that I might instantly
+make this confession in a letter. A second thought showed me the
+rashness of this scheme, and I wondered by what infirmity of mind I
+could be betrayed into a momentary approbation of it. I saw with
+the utmost clearness that a confession like that would be the most
+remediless and unpardonable outrage upon the dignity of my sex, and
+utterly unworthy of that passion which controlled me.
+
+I resumed my seat and my musing. To account for the absence of
+Pleyel became once more the scope of my conjectures. How many
+incidents might occur to raise an insuperable impediment in his
+way! When I was a child, a scheme of pleasure, in which he and his
+sister were parties, had been in like manner frustrated by his
+absence; but his absence, in that instance, had been occasioned by
+his falling from a boat into the river, in consequence of which he
+had run the most imminent hazard of being drowned. Here was a
+second disappointment endured by the same persons, and produced by
+his failure. Might it not originate in the same cause? Had he not
+designed to cross the river that morning to make some necessary
+purchases in New Jersey? He had preconcerted to return to his own
+house to dinner but perhaps some disaster had befallen him.
+Experience had taught me the insecurity of a canoe, and that was
+the only kind of boat which Pleyel used; I was, likewise, actuated
+by an hereditary dread of water. These circumstances combined to
+bestow considerable plausibility on this conjecture; but the
+consternation with which I began to be seized was allayed by
+reflecting that, if this disaster had happened, my brother would
+have received the speediest information of it. The consolation
+which this idea imparted was ravished from me by a new thought.
+This disaster might have happened, and his family not be apprised
+of it. The first intelligence of his fate may be communicated by
+the livid corpse which the tide may cast, many days hence, upon the
+shore.
+
+Thus was I distressed by opposite conjectures; thus was I tormented
+by phantoms of my own creation. It was not always thus. I can
+ascertain the date when my mind became the victim of this
+imbecility; perhaps it was coeval with the inroad of a fatal
+passion,--a passion that will never rank me in the number of its
+eulogists; it was alone sufficient to the extermination of my
+peace; it was itself a plenteous source of calamity, and needed not
+the concurrence of other evils to take away the attractions of
+existence and dig for me an untimely grave.
+
+The state of my mind naturally introduced a train of reflections
+upon the dangers and cares which inevitably beset a human being.
+By no violent transition was I led to ponder on the turbulent life
+and mysterious end of my father. I cherished with the utmost
+veneration the memory of this man, and every relic connected with
+his fate was preserved with the most scrupulous care. Among these
+was to be numbered a manuscript containing memoirs of his own life.
+The narrative was by no means recommended by its eloquence; but
+neither did all its value flow from my relationship to the author.
+Its style had an unaffected and picturesque simplicity. The great
+variety and circumstantial display of the incidents, together with
+their intrinsic importance as descriptive of human manners and
+passions, made it the most useful book in my collection. It was
+late: but, being sensible of no inclination to sleep, I resolved to
+betake myself to the perusal of it.
+
+To do this, it was requisite to procure a light. The girl had long
+since retired to her chamber: it was therefore proper to wait upon
+myself. A lamp, and the means of lighting it, were only to be
+found in the kitchen. Thither I resolved forthwith to repair; but
+the light was of use merely to enable me to read the book. I knew
+the shelf and the spot where it stood. Whether I took down the
+book, or prepared the lamp in the first place, appeared to be a
+matter of no moment. The latter was preferred, and, leaving my
+seat, I approached the closet in which, as I mentioned formerly, my
+books and papers were deposited.
+
+Suddenly the remembrance of what had lately passed in this closet
+occurred. Whether midnight was approaching, or had passed, I knew
+not. I was, as then, alone and defenseless. The wind was in that
+direction in which, aided by the deathlike repose of nature, it
+brought to me the murmur of the waterfall. This was mingled with
+that solemn and enchanting sound which a breeze produces among the
+leaves of pines. The words of that mysterious dialogue, their
+fearful import, and the wild excess to which I was transported by
+my terrors, filled my imagination anew. My steps faltered, and I
+stood a moment to recover myself.
+
+I prevailed on myself at length to move toward the closet. I
+touched the lock, but my fingers were powerless; I was visited
+afresh by unconquerable apprehensions. A sort of belief darted
+into my mind that some being was concealed within whose purposes
+were evil. I began to contend with those fears, when it occurred
+to me that I might, without impropriety, go for a lamp previously
+to opening the closet. I receded a few steps; but before I reached
+the chamber door my thoughts took a new direction. Motion seemed
+to produce a mechanical influence upon me. I was ashamed of my
+weakness. Besides, what aid could be afforded me by a lamp?
+
+My fears had pictured to themselves no precise object. It would be
+difficult to depict in words the ingredients and hues of that
+phantom which haunted me. A hand invisible and of preternatural
+strength, lifted by human passions, and selecting my life for its
+aim, were parts of this terrific image. All places were alike
+accessible to this foe; or, if his empire were restricted by local
+bounds, those bounds were utterly inscrutable by me. But had I not
+been told, by some one in league with this enemy, that every place
+but the recess in the bank was exempt from danger?
+
+I returned to the closet, and once more put my hand upon the lock.
+Oh, may my ears lose their sensibility ere they be again assailed
+by a shriek so terrible! Not merely my understanding was subdued
+by the sound; it acted on my nerves like an edge of steel. It
+appeared to cut asunder the fibers of my brain and rack every joint
+with agony.
+
+The cry, loud and piercing as it was, was nevertheless human. No
+articulation was ever more distinct. The breath which accompanied
+it did not fan my hair, yet did every circumstance combine to
+persuade me that the lips which uttered it touched my very
+shoulder.
+
+"Hold! hold!" were the words of this tremendous prohibition, in
+whose tone the whole soul seemed to be wrapped up, and every energy
+converted into eagerness and terror.
+
+Shuddering, I dashed myself against the wall, and, by the same
+involuntary impulse, turned my face backward to examine the
+mysterious monitor. The moonlight streamed into each window, and
+every corner of the room was conspicuous, and yet I beheld nothing!
+
+The interval was too brief to be artificially measured, between the
+utterance of these words and my scrutiny directed to the quarter
+whence they came. Yet, if a human being had been there, could he
+fail to have been visible? Which of my senses was the prey of a
+fatal illusion? The shock which the sound produced was still felt
+in every part of my frame. The sound, therefore, could not but be
+a genuine commotion. But that I had heard it was not more true
+than that the being who uttered it was stationed at my right ear;
+yet my attendant was invisible.
+
+I cannot describe the state of my thoughts at that moment.
+Surprise had mastered my faculties. My frame shook, and the vital
+current was congealed. I was conscious only of the vehemence of my
+sensations. This condition could not be lasting. Like a tide,
+which suddenly mounts to an overwhelming height and then gradually
+subsides, my confusion slowly gave place to order, and my tumults
+to a calm. I was able to deliberate and move. I resumed my feet,
+and advanced into the midst of the room. Upward, and behind, and
+on each side, I threw penetrating glances. I was not satisfied
+with one examination. He that hitherto refused to be seen might
+change his purpose, and on the next survey be clearly
+distinguishable.
+
+Solitude imposes least restraint upon the fancy. Dark is less
+fertile of images than the feeble luster of the moon. I was alone,
+and the walls were checkered by shadowy forms. As the moon passed
+behind a cloud and emerged, these shadows seemed to be endowed with
+life, and to move. The apartment was open to the breeze, and the
+curtain was occasionally blown from its ordinary position. This
+motion was not unaccompanied with sound. I failed not to snatch a
+look and to listen when this motion and this sound occurred. My
+belief that my monitor was posted near was strong, and instantly
+converted these appearances to tokens of his presence; and yet I
+could discern nothing.
+
+When my thoughts were at length permitted to revert to the past,
+the first idea that occurred was the resemblance between the words
+of the voice which I had just heard and those which had terminated
+my dream in the summer-house. There are means by which we are able
+to distinguish a substance from a shadow, a reality from the
+phantom of a dream. The pit, my brother beckoning me forward, the
+seizure of my arm, and the voice behind, were surely imaginary.
+That these incidents were fashioned in my sleep is supported by the
+same indubitable evidence that compels me to believe myself awake
+at present; yet the words and the voice were the same. Then, by
+some inexplicable contrivance, I was aware of the danger, while my
+actions and sensations were those of one wholly unacquainted with
+it. Now, was it not equally true that my actions and persuasions
+were at war? Had not the belief that evil lurked in the closet
+gained admittance, and had not my actions betokened an
+unwarrantable security? To obviate the effects of my infatuation,
+the same means had been used.
+
+In my dream, he that tempted me to my destruction was my brother.
+Death was ambushed in my path. From what evil was I now rescued?
+What minister or implement of ill was shut up in this recess? Who
+was it whose suffocating grasp I was to feel should I dare to enter
+it? What monstrous conception is this? My brother?
+
+No; protection, and not injury, is his province. Strange and
+terrible chimera! Yet it would not be suddenly dismissed. It was
+surely no vulgar agency that gave this form to my fears. He to
+whom all parts of time are equally present, whom no contingency
+approaches, was the author of that spell which now seized upon me.
+Life was dear to me. No consideration was present that enjoined me
+to relinquish it. Sacred duty combined with every spontaneous
+sentiment to endear to me my being. Should I not shudder when my
+being was endangered? But what emotion should possess me when the
+arm lifted against me was Wieland's?
+
+Ideas exist in our minds that can be accounted for by no
+established laws. Why did I dream that my brother was my foe? Why
+but because an omen of my fate was ordained to be communicated?
+Yet what salutary end did it serve? Did it arm me with caution to
+elude or fortitude to bear the evils to which I was reserved? My
+present thoughts were, no doubt, indebted for their hue to the
+similitude existing between these incidents and those of my dream.
+Surely it was frenzy that dictated my deed. That a ruffian was
+hidden in the closet was an idea the genuine tendency of which was
+to urge me to flight. Such had been the effect formerly produced.
+Had my mind been simply occupied with this thought at present, no
+doubt the same impulse would have been experienced; but now it was
+my brother whom I was irresistibly persuaded to regard as the
+contriver of that ill of which I had been forewarned. This
+persuasion did not extenuate my fears or my danger. Why then did I
+again approach the closet and withdraw the bolt? My resolution was
+instantly conceived, and executed without faltering.
+
+The door was formed of light materials. The lock, of simple
+structure, easily forewent its hold. It opened into the room, and
+commonly moved upon its hinges, after being unfastened, without any
+effort of mine. This effort, however, was bestowed upon the
+present occasion. It was my purpose to open it with quickness; but
+the exertion which I made was ineffectual. It refused to open.
+
+At another time, this circumstance would not have looked with a
+face of mystery. I should have supposed some casual obstruction
+and repeated my efforts to surmount it. But now my mind was
+accessible to no conjecture but one. The door was hindered from
+opening by human force. Surely, here was a new cause for affright.
+This was confirmation proper to decide my conduct. Now was all
+ground of hesitation taken away. What could be supposed but that I
+deserted the chamber and the house? that I at least endeavored no
+longer to withdraw the door?
+
+Have I not said that my actions were dictated by frenzy? My reason
+had forborne, for a time, to suggest or to sway my resolves. I
+reiterated my endeavors. I exerted all my force to overcome the
+obstacle, but in vain. The strength that was exerted to keep it
+shut was superior to mine.
+
+A casual observer might, perhaps, applaud the audaciousness of this
+conduct. Whence, but from a habitual defiance of danger, could my
+perseverance arise? I have already assigned, as distinctly as I am
+able, the cause of it. The frantic conception that my brother was
+within, that the resistance made to my design was exerted by him,
+had rooted itself in my mind. You will comprehend the height of
+this infatuation, when I tell you that, finding all my exertions
+vain, I betook myself to exclamations. Surely I was utterly bereft
+of understanding.
+
+Now I had arrived at the crisis of my fate. "Oh, hinder not the
+door to open," I exclaimed, in a tone that had less of fear than of
+grief in it. "I know you well. Come forth, but harm me not. I
+beseech you, come forth."
+
+I had taken my hand from the lock and removed to a small distance
+from the door. I had scarcely uttered these words, when the door
+swung upon its hinges and displayed to my view the interior of the
+closet. Whoever was within was shrouded in darkness. A few
+seconds passed without interruption of the silence. I knew not
+what to expect or to fear. My eyes would not stray from the
+recess. Presently, a deep sigh was heard. The quarter from which
+it came heightened the eagerness of my gaze. Some one approached
+from the farther end. I quickly perceived the outlines of a human
+figure. Its steps were irresolute and slow. I recoiled as it
+advanced.
+
+By coming at length within the verge of the room, his form was
+clearly distinguishable. I had prefigured to myself a very
+different personage. The face that presented itself was the last
+that I should desire to meet at an hour and in a place like this.
+My wonder was stifled by my fears. Assassins had lurked in this
+recess. Some divine voice warned me of danger that at this moment
+awaited me. I had spurned the intimation, and challenged my
+adversary.
+
+I recalled the mysterious countenance and dubious character of
+Carwin. What motive but atrocious ones could guide his steps
+hither? I was alone. My habit suited the hour, and the place, and
+the warmth of the season. All succor was remote. He had placed
+himself between me and the door. My frame shook with the vehemence
+of my apprehensions.
+
+Yet I was not wholly lost to myself; I vigilantly marked his
+demeanor. His looks were grave, but not without perturbation.
+What species of inquietude it betrayed the light was not strong
+enough to enable me to discover. He stood still; but his eyes
+wandered from one object to another. When these powerful organs
+were fixed upon me, I shrunk into myself. At length he broke
+silence. Earnestness, and not embarrassment, was in his tone. He
+advanced close to me while he spoke:--
+
+"What voice was that which lately addressed you?"
+
+He paused for an answer; but, observing my trepidation, he resumed,
+with undiminished solemnity, "Be not terrified. Whoever he was, he
+has done you an important service. I need not ask you if it were
+the voice of a companion. That sound was beyond the compass of
+human organs. The knowledge that enabled him to tell you who was
+in the closet was obtained by incomprehensible means.
+
+"You knew that Carwin was there. Were you not apprised of his
+intents? The same power could impart the one as well as the other.
+Yet, knowing these, you persisted. Audacious girl! But perhaps
+you confided in his guardianship. Your confidence was just. With
+succor like this at hand you may safely defy me.
+
+"He is my eternal foe; the baffler of my best-concerted schemes.
+Twice have you been saved by his accursed interposition. But for
+him I should long ere now have borne away the spoils of your
+honor."
+
+He looked at me with greater steadfastness than before. I became
+every moment more anxious for my safety. It was with difficulty I
+stammered out an entreaty that he would instantly depart, or suffer
+me to do so. He paid no regard to my request, but proceeded in a
+more impassioned manner:--
+
+"What is it you fear? Have I not told you you are safe? Has not
+one in whom you more reasonably place trust assured you of it?
+Even if I execute my purpose, what injury is done? Your prejudices
+will call it by that name, but it merits it not.
+
+"I was impelled by a sentiment that does you honor; a sentiment
+that would sanctify my deed; but, whatever it be, you are safe. Be
+this chimera still worshiped; I will do nothing to pollute it."
+There he stopped.
+
+The accents and gestures of this man left me drained of all
+courage. Surely, on no other occasion should I have been thus
+pusillanimous. My state I regarded as a hopeless one. I was
+wholly at the mercy of this being. Whichever way I turned my eyes,
+I saw no avenue by which I might escape. The resources of my
+personal strength, my ingenuity, and my eloquence, I estimated at
+nothing. The dignity of virtue and the force of truth I had been
+accustomed to celebrate, and had frequently vaunted of the
+conquests which I should make with their assistance.
+
+I used to suppose that certain evils could never befall a being in
+possession of a sound mind; that true virtue supplies us with
+energy which vice can never resist; that it was always in our power
+to obstruct, by his own death, the designs of an enemy who aimed at
+less than our life. How was it that a sentiment like despair had
+now invaded me, and that I trusted to the protection of chance, or
+to the pity of my persecutor?
+
+His words imparted some notion of the injury which he had
+meditated. He talked of obstacles that had risen in his way. He
+had relinquished his design. These sources supplied me with
+slender consolation. There was no security but in his absence.
+When I looked at myself, when I reflected on the hour and the
+place, I was overpowered by horror and dejection.
+
+He was silent, museful, and inattentive to my situation, yet made
+no motion to depart. I was silent in my turn. What could I say?
+I was confident that reason in this contest would be impotent. I
+must owe my safety to his own suggestions. Whatever purpose
+brought him hither, he had changed it. Why then did he remain?
+His resolutions might fluctuate, and the pause of a few minutes
+restore to him his first resolutions.
+
+Yet was not this the man whom we had treated with unwearied
+kindness? whose society was endeared to us by his intellectual
+elevation and accomplishments? who had a thousand times expatiated
+on the usefulness and beauty of virtue? Why should such a one be
+dreaded? If I could have forgotten the circumstances in which our
+interview had taken place, I might have treated his words as jests.
+Presently, he resumed:--
+
+"Fear me not: the space that severs us is small, and all visible
+succor is distant. You believe yourself completely in my power;
+that you stand upon the brink of ruin. Such are your groundless
+fears. I cannot lift a finger to hurt you. Easier would it be to
+stop the moon in her course than to injure you. The power that
+protects you would crumble my sinews and reduce me to a heap of
+ashes in a moment, if I were to harbor a thought hostile to your
+safety.
+
+"Thus are appearances at length solved. Little did I expect that
+they originated hence. What a portion is assigned to you! Scanned
+by the eyes of this intelligence, your path will be without pits to
+swallow or snares to entangle you. Environed by the arms of this
+protection, all artifices will be frustrated and all malice
+repelled."
+
+Here succeeded a new pause. I was still observant of every gesture
+and look. The tranquil solemnity that had lately possessed his
+countenance gave way to a new expression. All now was trepidation
+and anxiety.
+
+"I must be gone," said he, in a faltering accent. "Why do I linger
+here? I will not ask your forgiveness. I see that your terrors
+are invincible. Your pardon will be extorted by fear, and not
+dictated by compassion. I must fly from you forever. He that
+could plot against your honor must expect from you and your friends
+persecution and death. I must doom myself to endless exile."
+
+Saying this, he hastily left the room. I listened while he
+descended the stairs, and, unbolting the outer door, went forth. I
+did not follow him with my eyes, as the moonlight would have
+enabled me to do. Relieved by his absence, and exhausted by the
+conflict of my fears, I threw myself on a chair, and resigned
+myself to those bewildering ideas which incidents like these could
+not fail to produce.
+
+
+V
+
+
+Order could not readily be introduced into my thoughts. The voice
+still rung in my ears. Every accent that was uttered by Carwin was
+fresh in my remembrance. His unwelcome approach, the recognition
+of his person, his hasty departure, produced a complex impression
+on my mind which no words can delineate. I strove to give a slower
+motion to my thoughts, and to regulate a confusion which became
+painful; but my efforts were nugatory. I covered my eyes with my
+hand, and sat, I know not how long, without power to arrange or
+utter my conceptions.
+
+I had remained for hours, as I believed, in absolute solitude. No
+thought of personal danger had molested my tranquillity. I had
+made no preparation for defense. What was it that suggested the
+design of perusing my father's manuscript? If, instead of this, I
+had retired to bed and to sleep, to what fate might I not have been
+reserved. The ruffian, who must almost have suppressed his
+breathings to screen himself from discovery, would have noticed
+this signal, and I should have awakened only to perish with
+affright, and to abhor myself. Could I have remained unconscious
+of my danger? Could I have tranquilly slept in the midst of so
+deadly a snare?
+
+And who was he that threatened to destroy me? By what means could
+he hide himself in this closet? Surely he is gifted with
+supernatural power. Such is the enemy of whose attempts I was
+forewarned. Daily I had seen him and conversed with him. Nothing
+could be discerned through the impenetrable veil of his duplicity.
+When busied in conjectures as to the author of the evil that was
+threatened, my mind did not light for a moment upon his image. Yet
+has he not avowed himself my enemy? Why should he be here if he
+had not meditated evil?
+
+He confesses that this has been his second attempt. What was the
+scene of his former conspiracy? Was it not he whose whispers
+betrayed him? Am I deceived? or was there not a faint resemblance
+between the voice of this man and that which talked of grasping my
+throat and extinguishing my life in a moment? Then he had a
+colleague in his crime; now he is alone. Then death was the scope
+of his thoughts; now an injury unspeakably more dreadful. How
+thankful should I be to the power that has interposed to save me!
+
+That power is invisible. It is subject to the cognizance of one of
+my senses. What are the means that will inform me of what nature
+it is? He has set himself to counter-work the machinations of this
+man, who had menaced destruction to all that is dear to me, and
+whose coming had surmounted every human impediment. There was none
+to rescue me from his grasp. My rashness even hastened the
+completion of his scheme, and precluded him from the benefits of
+deliberation. I had robbed him of the power to repent and forbear.
+Had I been apprised of the danger, I should have regarded my
+conduct as the means of rendering my escape from it impossible.
+Such, likewise, seem to have been the fears of my invisible
+protector. Else why that startling entreaty to refrain from
+opening the closet? By what inexplicable infatuation was I
+compelled to proceed?
+
+"Surely," said I, "there is omnipotence in the cause that changed
+the views of a man like Carwin. The divinity that shielded me from
+his attempts will take suitable care of my future safety. Thus to
+yield to my fears is to deserve that they should be real."
+
+Scarcely had I uttered these words, when my attention was startled
+by the sound of footsteps. They denoted some one stepping into the
+piazza in front of my house. My new-born confidence was
+extinguished in a moment. Carwin, I thought, had repented his
+departure, and was hastily returning. The possibility that his
+return was prompted by intentions consistent with my safety found
+no place in my mind. Images of violation and murder assailed me
+anew, and the terrors which succeeded almost incapacitated me from
+taking any measures for my defense. It was an impulse of which I
+was scarcely conscious that made me fasten the lock and draw the
+bolts of my chamber door. Having done this, I threw myself on a
+seat; for I trembled to a degree which disabled me from standing,
+and my soul was so perfectly absorbed in the act of listening, that
+almost the vital motions were stopped.
+
+The door below creaked on its hinges. It was not again thrust to,
+but appeared to remain open. Footsteps entered, traversed the
+entry, and began to mount the stairs. How I detested the folly of
+not pursuing the man when he withdrew, and bolting after him the
+outer door! Might he not conceive this omission to be a proof that
+my angel had deserted me, and be thereby fortified in guilt?
+
+Every step on the stairs which brought him nearer to my chamber
+added vigor to my desperation. The evil with which I was menaced
+was to be at any rate eluded. How little did I preconceive the
+conduct which, in an exigence like this, I should be prone to
+adopt! You will suppose that deliberation and despair would have
+suggested the same course of action, and that I should have
+unhesitatingly resorted to the best means of personal defense
+within my power. A penknife lay open upon my table. I remembered
+that it was there, and seized it. For what purpose you will
+scarcely inquire. It will be immediately supposed that I meant it
+for my last refuge, and that, if all other means should fail, I
+should plunge it into the heart of my ravisher.
+
+I have lost all faith in the steadfastness of human resolves. It
+was thus that in periods of calm I had determined to act. No
+cowardice had been held by me in greater abhorrence than that which
+prompted an injured female to destroy, not her injurer ere the
+injury was perpetrated, but herself when it was without remedy.
+Yet now this penknife appeared to me of no other use than to baffle
+my assailant and prevent the crime by destroying myself. To
+deliberate at such a time was impossible; but, among the tumultuous
+suggestions of the moment, I do not recollect that it once occurred
+to me to use it as an instrument of direct defense.
+
+The steps had now reached the second floor. Every footfall
+accelerated the completion without augmenting the certainty of
+evil. The consciousness that the door was fast, now that nothing
+but that was interposed between me and danger, was a source of some
+consolation. I cast my eye toward the window. This, likewise, was
+a new suggestion. If the door should give way, it was my sudden
+resolution to throw myself from the window. Its height from the
+ground, which was covered beneath by a brick pavement, would insure
+my destruction; but I thought not of that.
+
+When opposite to my door the footsteps ceased. Was he listening
+whether my fears were allayed and my caution were asleep? Did he
+hope to take me by surprise? Yet, if so, why did he allow so many
+noisy signals to betray his approach? Presently the steps were
+again heard to approach the door. A hand was laid upon the lock,
+and the latch pulled back. Did he imagine it possible that I
+should fail to secure the door? A slight effort was made to push
+it open, as if, all bolts being withdrawn, a slight effort only was
+required.
+
+I no sooner perceived this than I moved swiftly toward the window.
+Carwin's frame might be said to be all muscle. His strength and
+activity had appeared, in various instances, to be prodigious. A
+slight exertion of his force would demolish the door. Would not
+that exertion be made? Too surely it would; but, at the same
+moment that this obstacle should yield and he should enter the
+apartment, my determination was formed to leap from the window. My
+senses were still bound to this object. I gazed at the door in
+momentary expectation that the assault would be made. The pause
+continued. The person without was irresolute and motionless.
+
+Suddenly it occurred to me that Carwin might conceive me to have
+fled. That I had not betaken myself to flight was, indeed, the
+least probable of all conclusions. In this persuasion he must have
+been confirmed on finding the lower door unfastened and the chamber
+door locked. Was it not wise to foster this persuasion? Should I
+maintain deep silence, this, in addition to other circumstances,
+might encourage the belief, and he would once more depart. Every
+new reflection added plausibility to this reasoning. It was
+presently more strongly enforced when I noticed footsteps
+withdrawing from the door. The blood once more flowed back to my
+heart, and a dawn of exultation began to rise; but my joy was
+short-lived. Instead of descending the stairs, he passed to the
+door of the opposite chamber, opened it, and, having entered, shut
+it after him with a violence that shook the house.
+
+How was I to interpret this circumstance? For what end could he
+have entered this chamber? Did the violence with which he closed
+the door testify the depth of his vexation? This room was usually
+occupied by Pleyel. Was Carwin aware of his absence on this night?
+Could he be suspected of a design so sordid as pillage? If this
+were his view, there were no means in my power to frustrate it. It
+behooved me to seize the first opportunity to escape; but, if my
+escape were supposed by my enemy to have been already effected, no
+asylum was more secure than the present. How could my passage from
+the house be accomplished without noises that might incite him to
+pursue me?
+
+Utterly at a loss to account for his going into Pleyel's chamber, I
+waited in instant expectation of hearing him come forth. All,
+however, was profoundly still. I listened in vain for a
+considerable period to catch the sound of the door when it should
+again be opened. There was no other avenue by which he could
+escape, but a door which led into the girl's chamber. Would any
+evil from this quarter befall the girl?
+
+Hence arose a new train of apprehensions. They merely added to the
+turbulence and agony of my reflections. Whatever evil impended
+over her, I had no power to avert it. Seclusion and silence were
+the only means of saving myself from the perils of this fatal
+night. What solemn vows did I put up, that, if I should once more
+behold the light of day, I would never trust myself again within
+the threshold of this dwelling!
+
+Minute lingered after minute, but no token was given that Carwin
+had returned to the passage. What, I again asked, could detain him
+in this room? Was it possible that he had returned, and glided
+unperceived away? I was speedily aware of the difficulty that
+attended an enterprise like this; and yet, as if by that means I
+were capable of gaining any information on that head, I cast
+anxious looks from the window.
+
+The object that first attracted my attention was a human figure
+standing on the edge of the bank. Perhaps my penetration was
+assisted by my hopes. Be that as it will, the figure of Carwin was
+clearly distinguishable. From the obscurity of my station, it was
+impossible that I should be discerned by him; and yet he scarcely
+suffered me to catch a glimpse of him. He turned and went down the
+steep, which in this part was not difficult to be scaled.
+
+My conjecture, then, had been right. Carwin has softly opened the
+door, descended the stairs, and issued forth. That I should not
+have overheard his steps was only less incredible than that my eyes
+had deceived me. But what was now to be done? The house was at
+length delivered from this detested inmate. By one avenue might he
+again reenter. Was it not wise to bar the lower door? Perhaps he
+had gone out by the kitchen door. For this end, he must have
+passed through Judith's chamber. These entrances being closed and
+bolted, as great security was gained as was compatible with my
+lonely condition.
+
+The propriety of these measures was too manifest not to make me
+struggle successfully with my fears. Yet I opened my own door with
+the utmost caution, and descended as if I were afraid that Carwin
+had been still immured in Pleyel's chamber. The outer door was
+ajar. I shut it with trembling eagerness, and drew every bolt that
+appended to it. I then passed with light and less cautious steps
+through the parlor, but was surprised to discover that the kitchen
+door was secure. I was compelled to acquiesce in the first
+conjecture that Carwin had escaped through the entry.
+
+My heart was now somewhat eased of the load of apprehension. I
+returned once more to my chamber, the door of which I was careful
+to lock. It was no time to think of repose. The moonlight began
+already to fade before the light of the day. The approach of
+morning was betokened by the usual signals. I mused upon the
+events of this night, and determined to take up my abode henceforth
+at my brother's. Whether I should inform him of what had happened
+was a question which seemed to demand some consideration. My
+safety unquestionably required that I should abandon my present
+habitation.
+
+As my thoughts began to flow with fewer impediments, the image of
+Pleyel, and the dubiousness of his condition, again recurred to me.
+I again ran over the possible causes of his absence on the
+preceding day. My mind was attuned to melancholy. I dwelt, with
+an obstinacy for which I could not account, on the idea of his
+death. I painted to myself his struggles with the billows, and his
+last appearance. I imagined myself a midnight wanderer on the
+shore, and to have stumbled on his corpse, which the tide had cast
+up. These dreary images affected me even to tears. I endeavored
+not to restrain them. They imparted a relief which I had not
+anticipated. The more copiously they flowed, the more did my
+general sensations appear to subside into calm, and a certain
+restlessness give way to repose.
+
+Perhaps, relieved by this effusion, the slumber so much wanted
+might have stolen on my senses, had there been no new cause of
+alarm.
+
+
+VI
+
+
+I was aroused from this stupor by sounds that evidently arose in
+the next chamber. Was it possible that I had been mistaken in the
+figure which I had seen on the bank? or had Carwin, by some
+inscrutable means, penetrated once more into this chamber? The
+opposite door opened; footsteps came forth, and the person,
+advancing to mine, knocked.
+
+So unexpected an incident robbed me of all presence of mind, and,
+starting up, I involuntarily exclaimed, "Who is there?" An answer
+was immediately given. The voice, to my inexpressible
+astonishment, was Pleyel's.
+
+"It is I. Have you risen? If you have not, make haste; I want
+three minutes' conversation with you in the parlor. I will wait
+for you there." Saying this, he retired from the door.
+
+Should I confide in the testimony of my ears? If that were true,
+it was Pleyel that had been hitherto immured in the opposite
+chamber; he whom my rueful fancy had depicted in so many ruinous
+and ghastly shapes; he whose footsteps had been listened to with
+such inquietude! What is man, that knowledge is so sparingly
+conferred upon him! that his heart should be wrung with distress,
+and his frame be exanimated with fear, though his safety be
+encompassed with impregnable walls! What are the bounds of human
+imbecility! He that warned me of the presence of my foe refused
+the intimation by which so many racking fears would have been
+precluded.
+
+Yet who would have imagined the arrival of Pleyel at such an hour?
+His tone was desponding and anxious. Why this unseasonable
+summons? and why this hasty departure? Some tidings he, perhaps,
+bears of mysterious and unwelcome import.
+
+My impatience would not allow me to consume much time in
+deliberation; I hastened down. Pleyel I found standing at a
+window, with eyes cast down as in meditation, and arms folded on
+his breast. Every line in his countenance was pregnant with
+sorrow. To this was added a certain wanness and air of fatigue.
+The last time I had seen him appearances had been the reverse of
+these. I was startled at the change. The first impulse was to
+question him as to the cause. This impulse was supplanted by some
+degree of confusion, flowing from a consciousness that love had too
+large, and, as it might prove, a perceptible, share in creating
+this impulse. I was silent.
+
+Presently be raised his eyes and fixed them upon me. I read in
+them an anguish altogether ineffable. Never had I witnessed a like
+demeanor in Pleyel. Never, indeed, had I observed a human
+countenance in which grief was more legibly inscribed. He seemed
+struggling for utterance; but, his struggles being fruitless, he
+shook his head and turned away from me.
+
+My impatience would not allow me to be longer silent. "What," said
+I, "for heaven's sake, my friend,--what is the matter?"
+
+He started at the sound of my voice. His looks, for a moment,
+became convulsed with an emotion very different from grief. His
+accents were broken with rage:--
+
+"The matter! O wretch!--thus exquisitely fashioned,--on whom
+nature seemed to have exhausted all her graces; with charms so
+awful and so pure! how art thou fallen! From what height fallen!
+A ruin so complete,--so unheard of!"
+
+His words were again choked by emotion. Grief and pity were again
+mingled in his features. He resumed, in a tone half suffocated by
+sobs:--
+
+"But why should I upbraid thee? Could I restore to thee what thou
+hast lost, efface this cursed stain, snatch thee from the jaws of
+this fiend, I would do it. Yet what will avail my efforts? I have
+not arms with which to contend with so consummate, so frightful a
+depravity.
+
+"Evidence less than this would only have excited resentment and
+scorn. The wretch who should have breathed a suspicion injurious
+to thy honor would have been regarded without anger: not hatred or
+envy could have prompted him; it would merely be an argument of
+madness. That my eyes, that my ears, should bear witness to thy
+fall! By no other way could detestable conviction be imparted.
+
+"Why do I summon thee to this conference? Why expose myself to thy
+derision? Here admonition and entreaty are vain. Thou knowest him
+already for a murderer and thief. I thought to have been the first
+to disclose to thee his infamy; to have warned thee of the pit to
+which thou art hastening; but thy eyes are open in vain. Oh, foul
+and insupportable disgrace!
+
+"There is but one path. I know you will disappear together. In
+thy ruin, how will the felicity and honor of multitudes be
+involved! But it must come. This scene shall not be blotted by
+his presence. No doubt thou wilt shortly see thy detested
+paramour. This scene will be again polluted by a midnight
+assignation. Inform him of his dangers; tell him that his crimes
+are known; let him fly far and instantly from this spot, if he
+desires to avoid the fate which menaced him in Ireland.
+
+"And wilt thou not stay behind? But shame upon my weakness! I
+know not what I would say. I have done what I purposed. To stay
+longer, to expostulate, to beseech, to enumerate the consequences
+of thy act,--what end can it serve but to blazon thy infamy and
+embitter our woes? And yet, oh, think--think ere it be too late--
+on the distresses which thy flight will entail upon us; on the
+base, groveling, and atrocious character of the wretch to whom thou
+hast sold thy honor. But what is this? Is not thy effrontery
+impenetrable and thy heart thoroughly cankered? Oh, most specious
+and most profligate of women!"
+
+Saying this, he rushed out of the house. I saw him in a few
+moments hurrying along the path which led to my brother's. I had
+no power to prevent his going, or to recall or to follow him. The
+accents I had heard were calculated to confound and bewilder. I
+looked around me, to assure myself that the scene was real. I
+moved, that I might banish the doubt that I was awake. Such
+enormous imputations from the mouth of Pleyel! To be stigmatized
+with the names of wanton and profligate! To be charged with the
+sacrifice of honor! with midnight meetings with a wretch known to
+be a murderer and thief! with an intention to fly in his company!
+
+What I had heard was surely the dictate of frenzy, or it was built
+upon some fatal, some incomprehensible mistake. After the horrors
+of the night, after undergoing perils so imminent from this man, to
+be summoned to an interview like this!--to find Pleyel fraught with
+a belief that, instead of having chosen death as a refuge from the
+violence of this man, I had hugged his baseness to my heart, had
+sacrificed for him my purity, my spotless name, my friendships, and
+my fortune! That even madness could engender accusations like
+these was not to be believed.
+
+What evidence could possibly suggest conceptions so wild? After
+the unlooked-for interview with Carwin in my chamber, he retired.
+Could Pleyel have observed his exit? It was not long after that
+Pleyel himself entered. Did he build on this incident his odious
+conclusions? Could the long series of my actions and sentiments
+grant me no exemption from suspicions so foul? Was it not more
+rational to infer that Carwin's designs had been illicit? that my
+life had been endangered by the fury of one whom, by some means, he
+had discovered to be an assassin and robber? that my honor had been
+assailed, not by blandishments, but by violence?
+
+He has judged me without hearing. He has drawn from dubious
+appearances conclusions the most improbable and unjust. He has
+loaded me with all outrageous epithets. He has ranked me with
+prostitutes and thieves. I cannot pardon thee, Pleyel, for this
+injustice. Thy understanding must be hurt. If it be not,--if thy
+conduct was sober and deliberate,--I can never forgive an outrage
+so unmanly and so gross.
+
+These thoughts gradually gave place to others. Pleyel was
+possessed by some momentary frenzy; appearances had led him into
+palpable errors. Whence could his sagacity have contracted this
+blindness? Was it not love? Previously assured of my affection
+for Carwin, distracted with grief and jealousy, and impelled hither
+at that late hour by some unknown instigation, his imagination
+transformed shadows into monsters, and plunged him into these
+deplorable errors.
+
+This idea was not unattended with consolation. My soul was divided
+between indignation at his injustice and delight on account of the
+source from which I conceived it to spring. For a long time they
+would allow admission to no other thoughts. Surprise is an emotion
+that enfeebles, not invigorates. All my meditations were
+accompanied with wonder. I rambled with vagueness, or clung to one
+image with an obstinacy which sufficiently testified the maddening
+influence of late transactions.
+
+Gradually I proceeded to reflect upon the consequences of Pleyel's
+mistake, and on the measures I should take to guard myself against
+future injury from Carwin. Should I suffer this mistake to be
+detected by time? When his passion should subside, would he not
+perceive the flagrancy of his injustice and hasten to atone for it?
+Did it not become my character to testify resentment for language
+and treatment so opprobrious? Wrapped up in the consciousness of
+innocence, and confiding in the influence of time and reflection to
+confute so groundless a charge, it was my province to be passive
+and silent.
+
+As to the violences meditated by Carwin, and the means of eluding
+them, the path to be taken by me was obvious. I resolved to tell
+the tale to my brother and regulate myself by his advice. For this
+end, when the morning was somewhat advanced, I took the way to his
+house. My sister was engaged in her customary occupations. As
+soon as I appeared, she remarked a change in my looks. I was not
+willing to alarm her by the information which I had to communicate.
+Her health was in that condition which rendered a disastrous tale
+particularly unsuitable. I forbore a direct answer to her
+inquiries, and inquired, in my turn, for Wieland.
+
+"Why," said she, "I suspect something mysterious and unpleasant has
+happened this morning. Scarcely had we risen when Pleyel dropped
+among us. What could have prompted him to make us so early and so
+unseasonable a visit I cannot tell. To judge from the disorder of
+his dress, and his countenance, something of an extraordinary
+nature has occurred. He permitted me merely to know that he had
+slept none, nor even undressed, during the past night. He took
+your brother to walk with him. Some topic must have deeply engaged
+them, for Wieland did not return till the breakfast hour was
+passed, and returned alone. His disturbance was excessive; but he
+would not listen to my importunities, or tell me what had happened.
+I gathered, from hints which he let fall, that your situation was
+in some way the cause; yet he assured me that you were at your own
+house, alive, in good health, and in perfect safety. He scarcely
+ate a morsel, and immediately after breakfast went out again. He
+would not inform me whither he was going, but mentioned that he
+probably might not return before night."
+
+I was equally astonished and alarmed by this information. Pleyel
+had told his tale to my brother, and had, by a plausible and
+exaggerated picture, instilled into him unfavorable thoughts of me.
+Yet would not the more correct judgment of Wieland perceive and
+expose the fallacy of his conclusions? Perhaps his uneasiness
+might arise from some insight into the character of Carwin, and
+from apprehensions for my safety. The appearances by which Pleyel
+had been misled might induce him likewise to believe that I
+entertained an indiscreet though not dishonorable affection for
+Carwin. Such were the conjectures rapidly formed. I was
+inexpressibly anxious to change them into certainty. For this end
+an interview with my brother was desirable. He was gone no one
+knew whither, and was not expected speedily to return. I had no
+clew by which to trace his footsteps.
+
+My anxieties could not be concealed from my sister. They
+heightened her solicitude to be acquainted with the cause. There
+were many reasons persuading me to silence; at least, till I had
+seen my brother, it would be an act of inexcusable temerity to
+unfold what had lately passed. No other expedient for eluding her
+importunities occurred to me but that of returning to my own house.
+I recollected my determination to become a tenant of this roof. I
+mentioned it to her. She joyfully acceded to this proposal, and
+suffered me with less reluctance to depart when I told her that it
+was with a view to collect and send to my new dwelling what
+articles would be immediately useful to me.
+
+Once more I returned to the house which had been the scene of so
+much turbulence and danger. I was at no great distance from it
+when I observed my brother coming out. On seeing me he stopped,
+and, after ascertaining, as it seemed, which way I was going, he
+returned into the house before me. I sincerely rejoiced at this
+event, and I hastened to set things, if possible, on their right
+footing.
+
+His brow was by no means expressive of those vehement emotions with
+which Pleyel had been agitated. I drew a favorable omen from this
+circumstance. Without delay I began the conversation.
+
+"I have been to look for you," said I, "but was told by Catharine
+that Pleyel had engaged you on some important and disagreeable
+affair. Before his interview with you he spent a few minutes with
+me. These minutes he employed in upbraiding me for crimes and
+intentions with which I am by no means chargeable. I believe him
+to have taken up his opinions on very insufficient grounds. His
+behavior was in the highest degree precipitate and unjust, and,
+until I receive some atonement, I shall treat him, in my turn, with
+that contempt which he justly merits; meanwhile, I am fearful that
+he has prejudiced my brother against me. That is an evil which I
+most anxiously deprecate, and which I shall indeed exert myself to
+remove. Has he made me the subject of this morning's conversation?"
+
+My brother's countenance testified no surprise at my address. The
+benignity of his looks was nowise diminished.
+
+"It is true," said he, "your conduct was the subject of our
+discourse. I am your friend as well as your brother. There is no
+human being whom I love with more tenderness and whose welfare is
+nearer my heart. Judge, then, with what emotions I listened to
+Pleyel's story. I expect and desire you to vindicate yourself from
+aspersions so foul, if vindication be possible."
+
+The tone with which he uttered the last words affected me deeply.
+"If vindication be possible!" repeated I. "From what you know, do
+you deem a formal vindication necessary? Can you harbor for a
+moment the belief of my guilt?"
+
+He shook his head with an air of acute anguish. "I have
+struggled," said he, "to dismiss that belief. You speak before a
+judge who will profit by any pretense to acquit you who is ready to
+question his own senses when they plead against you."
+
+These words incited a new set of thoughts in my mind. I began to
+suspect that Pleyel had built his accusations on some foundation
+unknown to me. "I may be a stranger to the grounds of your belief.
+Pleyel loaded me with indecent and virulent invectives, but he
+withheld from me the facts that generated his suspicions. Events
+took place last night of which some of the circumstances were of an
+ambiguous nature. I conceived that these might possibly have
+fallen under his cognizance, and that, viewed through the mists of
+prejudice and passion, they supplied a pretense for his conduct,
+but believed that your more unbiased judgment would estimate them
+at their just value. Perhaps his tale has been different from what
+I suspect it to be. Listen, then, to my narrative. If there be
+anything in his story inconsistent with mine, his story is false."
+
+I then proceeded to a circumstantial relation of the incidents of
+the last night. Wieland listened with deep attention. Having
+finished, "This," continued I, "is the truth. You see in what
+circumstances an interview took place between Carwin and me. He
+remained for hours in my closet, and for some minutes in my
+chamber. He departed without haste or interruption. If Pleyel
+marked him as he left the house, (and it is not impossible that he
+did,) inferences injurious to my character might suggest themselves
+to him. In admitting them, he gave proofs of less discernment and
+less candor than I once ascribed to him."
+
+"His proofs," said Wieland, after a considerable pause, "are
+different. That he should be deceived is not possible. That he
+himself is not the deceiver could not be believed, if his testimony
+were not inconsistent with yours; but the doubts which I
+entertained are now removed. Your tale, some parts of it, is
+marvelous; the voice which exclaimed against your rashness in
+approaching the closet, your persisting, notwithstanding that
+prohibition, your belief that I was the ruffian, and your
+subsequent conduct, are believed by me, because I have known you
+from childhood, because a thousand instances have attested your
+veracity, and because nothing less than my own hearing and vision
+would convince me, in opposition to her own assertions, that my
+sister had fallen into wickedness like this."
+
+I threw my arms around him and bathed his cheek with my tears.
+"That," said I, "is spoken like my brother. But what are the
+proofs?"
+
+He replied, "Pleyel informed me that, in going to your house, his
+attention was attracted by two voices. The persons speaking sat
+beneath the bank, out of sight. These persons, judging by their
+voices, were Carwin and you. I will not repeat the dialogue. If
+my sister was the female, Pleyel was justified in concluding you to
+be indeed one of the most profligate of women. Hence his
+accusations of you, and his efforts to obtain my concurrence to a
+plan by which an eternal separation should be brought about between
+my sister and this man."
+
+I made Wieland repeat this recital. Here indeed was a tale to fill
+me with terrible foreboding. I had vainly thought that my safety
+could be sufficiently secured by doors and bars, but this is a foe
+from whose grasp no power of divinity can save me! His artifices
+will ever lay my fame and happiness at his mercy. How shall I
+counterwork his plots or detect his coadjutor? He has taught some
+vile and abandoned female to mimic my voice. Pleyel's ears were
+the witnesses of my dishonor. This is the midnight assignation to
+which he alluded. Thus is the silence he maintained when
+attempting to open the door of my chamber, accounted for. He
+supposed me absent, and meant, perhaps, had my apartment been
+accessible, to leave in it some accusing memorial.
+
+
+
+SECOND PART
+
+
+I
+
+
+[As this part opens, the unhappy Clara is describing her hurried
+return to the same ill-fated abode at Mettingen. Hence kind
+friends had borne her after the catastrophe of her brother
+Wieland's "transformation." This was the crowning horror of all:
+the morbid fanatic, prepared by gloomy anticipations of some
+terrible sacrifice to be demanded in the name of religion, had
+found himself goaded to blind fury, by a mysterious compelling
+voice, to yield up to God the lives of his beloved wife and family;
+and had done the awful deed!
+
+Though chained in his madhouse, he persists in his delusion;
+insists that it still remains for him to sacrifice his sister
+Clara; and twice breaks away in wild efforts to find and destroy
+her.]
+
+
+I took an irregular path which led me to my own house. All was
+vacant and forlorn. A small enclosure near which the path led was
+the burying ground belonging to the family. This I was obliged to
+pass. Once I had intended to enter it, and ponder on the emblems
+and inscriptions which my uncle had caused to be made on the tombs
+of Catharine and her children; but now my heart faltered as I
+approached, and I hastened forward that distance might conceal it
+from my view.
+
+When I approached the recess, my heart again sunk. I averted my
+eyes, and left it behind me as quickly as possible. Silence
+reigned through my habitation, and a darkness which closed doors
+and shutters produced. Every object was connected with mine or my
+brother's history. I passed the entry, mounted the stair, and
+unlocked the door of my chamber. It was with difficulty that I
+curbed my fancy and smothered my fears. Slight movements and
+casual sounds were transformed into beckoning shadows and calling
+shapes.
+
+I proceeded to the closet. I opened and looked round it with
+fearfulness. All things were in their accustomed order. I sought
+and found the manuscript where I was used to deposit it. This
+being secured, there was nothing to detain me; yet I stood and
+contemplated awhile the furniture and walls of my chamber. I
+remembered how long this apartment had been a sweet and tranquil
+asylum; I compared its former state with its present dreariness,
+and reflected that I now beheld it for the last time.
+
+Here it was that the incomprehensible behavior of Carwin was
+witnessed; this the stage on which that enemy of man showed himself
+for a moment unmasked. Here the menaces of murder were wafted to
+my ear; and here these menaces were executed.
+
+These thoughts had a tendency to take from me my self-command. My
+feeble limbs refused to support me, and I sunk upon a chair.
+Incoherent and half-articulate exclamations escaped my lips. The
+name of Carwin was uttered and eternal woes--woes like that which
+his malice had entailed upon us--were heaped upon him. I invoked
+all-seeing heaven to drag to light and punish this betrayer, and
+accused its providence for having thus long delayed the retribution
+that was due to so enormous a guilt.
+
+I have said that the window shutters were closed. A feeble light,
+however, found entrance through the crevices. A small window
+illuminated the closet, and, the door being closed, a dim ray
+streamed through the keyhole. A kind of twilight was thus created,
+sufficient for the purposes of vision, but, at the same time,
+involving all minuter objects in obscurity.
+
+This darkness suited the color of my thoughts. I sickened at the
+remembrance of the past. The prospect of the future excited my
+loathing. I muttered, in a low voice, "Why should I live longer?
+Why should I drag a miserable being? All for whom I ought to live
+have perished. Am I not myself hunted to death?"
+
+At that moment my despair suddenly became vigorous. My nerves were
+no longer unstrung. My powers, that had long been deadened, were
+revived. My bosom swelled with a sudden energy, and the conviction
+darted through my mind, that to end my torments was, at once,
+practicable and wise.
+
+I knew how to find way to the recesses of life. I could use a
+lancet with some skill, and could distinguish between vein and
+artery. By piercing deep into the latter, I should shun the evils
+which the future had in store for me, and take refuge from my woes
+in quiet death.
+
+I started on my feet, for my feebleness was gone, and hasted to the
+closet. A lancet and other small instruments were preserved in a
+case which I had deposited here. Inattentive as I was to foreign
+considerations, my ears were still open to any sound of mysterious
+import that should occur. I thought I heard a step in the entry.
+My purpose was suspended, and I cast an eager glance at my chamber
+door, which was open. No one appeared, unless the shadow which I
+discerned upon the floor was the outline of a man. If it were, I
+was authorized to suspect that some one was posted close to the
+entrance, who possibly had overheard my exclamations.
+
+My teeth chattered, and a wild confusion took the place of my
+momentary calm. Thus it was when a terrific visage had disclosed
+itself on a former night. Thus it was when the evil destiny of
+Wieland assumed the lineaments of something human. What horrid
+apparition was preparing to blast my sight?
+
+Still I listened and gazed. Not long, for the shadow moved; a
+foot, unshapely and huge, was thrust forward; a form advanced from
+its concealment, and stalked into the room. It was Carwin!
+
+While I had breath, I shrieked. While I had power over my muscles,
+I motioned with my hand that he should vanish. My exertions could
+not last long: I sunk into a fit.
+
+Oh that this grateful oblivion had lasted forever! Too quickly I
+recovered my senses. The power of distinct vision was no sooner
+restored to me, than this hateful form again presented itself, and
+I once more relapsed.
+
+A second time, untoward nature recalled me from the sleep of death.
+I found myself stretched upon the bed. When I had power to look
+up, I remembered only that I had cause to fear. My distempered
+fancy fashioned to itself no distinguishable image. I threw a
+languid glance round me: once more my eyes lighted upon Carwin.
+
+He was seated on the floor, his back rested against the wall; his
+knees were drawn up, and his face was buried in his hands. That
+his station was at some distance, that his attitude was not
+menacing, that his ominous visage was concealed, may account for my
+now escaping a shock violent as those which were past. I withdrew
+my eyes, but was not again deserted by my senses.
+
+On perceiving that I had recovered my sensibility, he lifted his
+head. This motion attracted my attention. His countenance was
+mild, but sorrow and astonishment sat upon his features. I averted
+my eyes and feebly exclaimed, "Oh, fly!--fly far and forever!--I
+cannot behold you and live!"
+
+He did not rise upon his feet, but clasped his hands, and said, in
+a tone of deprecation, "I will fly. I am become a fiend, the sight
+of whom destroys. Yet tell me my offense! You have linked curses
+with my name; you ascribe to me a malice monstrous and infernal. I
+look around: all is loneliness and desert! This house and your
+brother's are solitary and dismantled! You die away at the sight
+of me! My fear whispers that some deed of horror has been
+perpetrated; that I am the undesigning cause."
+
+What language was this? Had he not avowed himself a ravisher? Had
+not this chamber witnessed his atrocious purposes? I besought him
+with new vehemence to go.
+
+He lifted his eyes:--"Great heaven! what have I done? I think I
+know the extent of my offenses. I have acted, but my actions have
+possibly effected more than I designed. This fear has brought me
+back from my retreat. I come to repair the evil of which my
+rashness was the cause, and to prevent more evil. I come to
+confess my errors."
+
+"Wretch!" I cried, when my suffocating emotions would permit me to
+speak, "the ghosts of my sister and her children,--do they not rise
+to accuse thee? Who was it that blasted the intellect of Wieland?
+Who was it that urged him to fury and guided him to murder? Who,
+but thou and the devil, with whom thou art confederated?"
+
+At these words a new spirit pervaded his countenance. His eyes
+once more appealed to heaven. "If I have memory--if I have being--
+I am innocent. I intended no ill; but my folly, indirectly and
+remotely, may have caused it. But what words are these? Your
+brother lunatic! His children dead!"
+
+What should I infer from this deportment? Was the ignorance which
+these words implied real or pretended? Yet how could I imagine a
+mere human agency in these events? But, if the influence was
+preternatural or maniacal in my brother's case, they must be
+equally so in my own. Then I remembered that the voice exerted was
+to save me from Carwin's attempts. These ideas tended to abate my
+abhorrence of this man, and to detect the absurdity of my
+accusations.
+
+"Alas!" said I, "I have no one to accuse. Leave me to my fate.
+Fly from a scene stained with cruelty, devoted to despair."
+
+Carwin stood for a time musing and mournful. At length he said,
+"What has happened? I came to expiate my crimes: let me know them
+in their full extent. I have horrible forebodings! What has
+happened?"
+
+I was silent; but, recollecting the intimation given by this man
+when he was detected in my closet, which implied some knowledge of
+that power which interfered in my favor, I eagerly inquired, "What
+was that voice which called upon me to hold when I attempted to
+open the closet? What face was that which I saw at the bottom of
+the stairs? Answer me truly."
+
+"I came to confess the truth. Your allusions are horrible and
+strange. Perhaps I have but faint conceptions of the evils which
+my infatuation has produced; but what remains I will perform. It
+was MY VOICE that you heard! It was MY FACE that you saw!"
+
+For a moment I doubted whether my remembrance of events were not
+confused. How could he be at once stationed at my shoulder and
+shut up in my closet? How could he stand near me and yet be
+invisible? But if Carwin's were the thrilling voice and the fiery
+image which I had heard and seen, then was he the prompter of my
+brother, and the author of these dismal outrages.
+
+Once more I averted my eyes and struggled for speech:--"Begone!
+thou man of mischief! Remorseless and implacable miscreant,
+begone!"
+
+"I will obey," said he, in a disconsolate voice; "yet, wretch as I
+am, am I unworthy to repair the evils that I have committed? I
+came as a repentant criminal. It is you whom I have injured, and
+at your bar am I willing to appear and confess and expiate my
+crimes. I have deceived you; I have sported with your terrors; I
+have plotted to destroy your reputation. I come now to remove your
+terrors; to set you beyond the reach of similar fears; to rebuild
+your fame as far as I am able.
+
+"This is the amount of my guilt, and this the fruit of my remorse.
+Will you not hear me? Listen to my confession, and then denounce
+punishment. All I ask is a patient audience."
+
+"What!" I replied; "was not thine the voice that commanded my
+brother to imbrue his hands in the blood of his children?--to
+strangle that angel of sweetness, his wife? Has he not vowed my
+death, and the death of Pleyel, at thy bidding? Hast thou not made
+him the butcher of his family?--changed him who was the glory of
+his species into worse than brute?--robbed him of reason and
+consigned the rest of his days to fetters and stripes?"
+
+Carwin's eyes glared and his limbs were petrified at this
+intelligence. No words were requisite to prove him guiltless of
+these enormities: at the time, however, I was nearly insensible to
+these exculpatory tokens. He walked to the farther end of the
+room, and, having recovered some degree of composure, he spoke:--
+
+"I am not this villain. I have slain no one; I have prompted none
+to slay; I have handled a tool of wonderful efficacy without
+malignant intentions, but without caution. Ample will be the
+punishment of my temerity, if my conduct has contributed to this
+evil." He paused.
+
+I likewise was silent. I struggled to command myself so far as to
+listen to the tale which he should tell. Observing this, he
+continued:--
+
+"You are not apprised of the existence of a power which I possess.
+I know not by what name to call it.[1] It enables me to mimic
+exactly the voice of another, and to modify the sound so that it
+shall appear to come from what quarter and be uttered at what
+distance I please.
+
+"I know not that everyone possesses this power. Perhaps, though a
+casual position of my organs in my youth showed me that I possessed
+it, it is an art which may be taught to all. Would to God I had
+died unknowing of the secret! It has produced nothing but
+degradation and calamity."
+
+
+[1] Biloquium, or ventrilocution. Sound is varied according to the
+variations of direction and distance. The art of the ventriloquist
+consists in modifying his voice according to all these variations,
+without changing his place. See the work of the Abbe de la
+Chappelle, in which are accurately recorded the performances of one
+of these artists, and some ingenious though unsatisfactory
+speculations are given on the means by which the effects are
+produced. This power is, perhaps, given by nature, but is
+doubtless improvable, if not acquirable, by art. It may, possibly,
+consist in an unusual flexibility or extension of the bottom of the
+tongue and the uvula. That speech is producible by these alone
+must be granted, since anatomists mention two instances of persons
+speaking without a tongue. In one case the organ was originally
+wanting, but its place was supplied by a small tubercle, and the
+uvula was perfect. In the other the tongue was destroyed by
+disease, but probably a small part of it remained.
+
+This power is difficult to explain, but the fact is undeniable.
+Experience shows that the human voice can imitate the voice of all
+men and of all inferior animals. The sound of musical instruments,
+and even noises from the contact of inanimate substances, have been
+accurately imitated. The mimicry of animals is notorious; and Dr.
+Burney ("Musical Travels") mentions one who imitated a flute and
+violin, so as to deceive even his ears.
+
+
+
+THIRD PART
+
+
+I
+
+
+[After Carwin's confession of his powers of ventriloquism all the
+mysteries are cleared up--save one. The owner of the voice heard
+in Clara's chamber, on the first night after the wanderer appeared
+at Mettingen; the threatener on the edge of the precipice; the spy
+in Clara's closet, and would-be intruder; the manipulator of the
+vile plot that destroyed her lover's confidence--all these hidden
+identities have materialized in the person of this one unhappy man.
+But while confessing the prying disposition which led to these
+sins, in efforts to protect himself from discovery, Carwin still
+denies that Wieland's mad acts were perpetrated at his
+instigation.]
+
+
+"I have uttered the truth. This is the extent of my offenses. You
+tell me a horrid tale of Wieland being led to the destruction of
+his wife and children by some mysterious agent. You charge me with
+the guilt of this agency, but I repeat that the amount of my guilt
+has been truly stated. The perpetrator of Catharine's death was
+unknown to me till now; nay, it is still unknown to me."
+
+At that moment, the closing of a door in the kitchen was distinctly
+heard by us. Carwin started and paused. "There is some one
+coming. I must not be found here by my enemies, and need not,
+since my purpose is answered."
+
+I had drunk in, with the most vehement attention, every word that
+he had uttered. I had no breath to interrupt his tale by
+interrogations or comments. The power that he spoke of was
+hitherto unknown to me; its existence was incredible; it was
+susceptible of no direct proof.
+
+He owns that his were the voice and face which I heard and saw. He
+attempts to give a human explanation of these phantasms but it is
+enough that he owns himself to be the agent: his tale is a lie, and
+his nature devilish. As he deceived me, he likewise deceived my
+brother, and now do I behold the author of all our calamities!
+
+Such were my thoughts when his pause allowed me to think. I should
+have bade him begone if the silence had not been interrupted; but
+now I feared no more for myself; and the milkiness of my nature was
+curdled into hatred and rancor. Some one was near, and this enemy
+of God and man might possibly be brought to justice. I reflected
+not that the preternatural power which he had hitherto exerted
+would avail to rescue him from any toils in which his feet might be
+entangled. Meanwhile, looks, and not words, of menace and
+abhorrence, were all that I could bestow.
+
+He did not depart. He seemed dubious whether by passing out of the
+house, or by remaining somewhat longer where he was, he should most
+endanger his safety. His confusion increased when steps of one
+barefoot were heard upon the stairs. He threw anxious glances
+sometimes at the closet, sometimes at the window, and sometimes at
+the chamber door; yet he was detained by some inexplicable
+fascination. He stood as if rooted to the spot.
+
+As to me, my soul was bursting with detestation and revenge. I had
+no room for surmises and fears respecting him that approached. It
+was doubtless a human being, and would befriend me so far as to aid
+me in arresting this offender.
+
+The stranger quickly entered the room. My eyes and the eyes of
+Carwin were at the same moment darted upon him. A second glance
+was not needed to inform us who he was. His locks were tangled,
+and fell confusedly over his forehead and ears. His shirt was of
+coarse stuff, and open at the neck and breast. His coat was once
+of bright and fine texture, but now torn and tarnished with dust.
+His feet, his legs, and his arms, were bare. His features were the
+seat of a wild and tranquil solemnity, but his eyes bespoke
+inquietude and curiosity.
+
+He advanced with a firm step, and looking as in search of some one.
+He saw me and stopped. He bent his sight on the floor, and,
+clenching his hands, appeared suddenly absorbed in meditation.
+Such were the figure and deportment of Wieland! Such, in his
+fallen state, were the aspect and guise of my brother!
+
+Carwin did not fail to recognize the visitant. Care for his own
+safety was apparently swallowed up in the amazement which this
+spectacle produced. His station was conspicuous, and he could not
+have escaped the roving glances of Wieland; yet the latter seemed
+totally unconscious of his presence.
+
+Grief at this scene of ruin and blast was at first the only
+sentiment of which I was conscious. A fearful stillness ensued.
+At length Wieland, lifting his hands, which were locked in each
+other, to his breast, exclaimed, "Father! I thank thee. This is
+thy guidance. Hither thou hast led me, that I might perform thy
+will. Yet let me not err; let me hear again thy messenger!"
+
+He stood for a minute as if listening; but, recovering from his
+attitude, he continued, "It is not needed. Dastardly wretch! thus
+eternally questioning the behests of thy Maker! weak in resolution,
+wayward in faith!"
+
+He advanced to me, and, after another pause, resumed:--"Poor girl!
+a dismal fate has set its mark upon thee. Thy life is demanded as
+a sacrifice. Prepare thee to die. Make not my office difficult by
+fruitless opposition. Thy prayers might subdue stones; but none
+but he who enjoined my purpose can shake it."
+
+These words were a sufficient explication of the scene. The nature
+of his frenzy, as described by my uncle, was remembered. I, who
+had sought death, was now thrilled with horror because it was near.
+Death in this form, death from the hand of a brother, was thought
+upon with indescribable repugnance.
+
+In a state thus verging upon madness, my eye glanced upon Carwin.
+His astonishment appeared to have struck him motionless and dumb.
+My life was in danger, and my brother's hand was about to be
+imbrued in my blood. I firmly believed that Carwin's was the
+instigation. I could rescue myself from this abhorred fate; I
+could dissipate this tremendous illusion; I could save my brother
+from the perpetration of new horrors, by pointing out the devil who
+seduced him. To hesitate a moment was to perish. These thoughts
+gave strength to my limbs and energy to my accents; I started on my
+feet:--
+
+"Oh, brother! spare me! spare thyself! There is thy betrayer. He
+counterfeited the voice and face of an angel, for the purpose of
+destroying thee and me. He has this moment confessed it. He is
+able to speak where he is not. He is leagued with hell, but will
+not avow it; yet he confesses that the agency was his."
+
+My brother turned slowly his eyes, and fixed them upon Carwin.
+Every joint in the frame of the latter trembled. His complexion
+was paler than a ghost's. His eye dared not meet that of Wieland,
+but wandered with an air of distraction from one space to another.
+
+"Man," said my brother, in a voice totally unlike that which he had
+used to me, "what art thou? The charge has been made. Answer it.
+The visage--the voice--at the bottom of these stairs--at the hour
+of eleven--to whom did they belong? To thee?"
+
+Twice did Carwin attempt to speak, but his words died away upon his
+lips. My brother resumed, in a tone of greater vehemence:--
+
+"Thou falterest. Faltering is ominous. Say yes or no; one word
+will suffice; but beware of falsehood. Was it a stratagem of hell
+to overthrow my family? Wast thou the agent?"
+
+I now saw that the wrath which had been prepared for me was to be
+heaped upon another. The tale that I heard from him, and his
+present trepidations, were abundant testimonies of his guilt. But
+what if Wieland should be undeceived! What if he shall find his
+act to have proceeded not from a heavenly prompter, but from human
+treachery! Will not his rage mount into whirlwind? Will not he
+tear limb from limb this devoted wretch?
+
+Instinctively I recoiled from this image; but it gave place to
+another. Carwin may be innocent, but the impetuosity of his judge
+may misconstrue his answers into a confession of guilt. Wieland
+knows not that mysterious voices and appearances were likewise
+witnessed by me. Carwin may be ignorant of those which misled my
+brother. Thus may his answers unwarily betray himself to ruin.
+
+Such might be the consequences of my frantic precipitation, and
+these it was necessary, if possible, to prevent. I attempted to
+speak; but Wieland, turning suddenly upon me, commanded silence, in
+a tone furious and terrible. My lips closed, and my tongue refused
+its office.
+
+"What art thou?" he resumed, addressing himself to Carwin. "Answer
+me: whose form--whose voice,--was it thy contrivance? Answer me."
+
+The answer was now given, but confusedly and scarcely articulated.
+"I meant nothing--I intended no ill--if I understand--if I do not
+mistake you--it is too true--I did appear--in the entry--did speak.
+The contrivance was mine, but--"
+
+These words were no sooner uttered, than my brother ceased to wear
+the same aspect. His eyes were downcast; he was motionless; his
+respiration became hoarse, like that of a man in the agonies of
+death. Carwin seemed unable to say more. He might have easily
+escaped; but the thought which occupied him related to what was
+horrid and unintelligible in this scene, and not to his own danger.
+
+Presently the faculties of Wieland, which, for a time, were chained
+up, were seized with restlessness and trembling. He broke silence.
+The stoutest heart would have been appalled by the tone in which he
+spoke. He addressed himself to Carwin:--
+
+"Why art thou here? Who detains thee? Go and learn better. I
+will meet thee, but it must be at the bar of thy Maker. There
+shall I bear witness against thee."
+
+Perceiving that Carwin did not obey, he continued, "Dost thou wish
+me to complete the catalogue by thy death? Thy life is a worthless
+thing. Tempt me no more. I am but a man, and thy presence may
+awaken a fury which may spurn my control. Begone!"
+
+Carwin, irresolute, striving in vain for utterance, his complexion
+pallid as death, his knees beating one against another, slowly
+obeyed the mandate and withdrew.
+
+
+II
+
+
+A few words more and I lay aside the pen forever. Yet why should I
+not relinquish it now? All that I have said is preparatory to this
+scene, and my fingers, tremulous and cold as my heart, refuse any
+further exertion. This must not be. Let my last energies support
+me in the finishing of this task. Then will I lay down my head in
+the lap of death. Hushed will be all my murmurs in the sleep of
+the grave.
+
+Every sentiment has perished in my bosom. Even friendship is
+extinct. Your love for me has prompted me to this task; but I
+would not have complied if it had not been a luxury thus to feast
+upon my woes. I have justly calculated upon my remnant of
+strength. When I lay down the pen the taper of life will expire;
+my existence will terminate with my tale.
+
+Now that I was left alone with Wieland, the perils of my situation
+presented themselves to my mind. That this paroxysm should
+terminate in havoc and rage it was reasonable to predict. The
+first suggestion of my fears had been disproved by my experience.
+Carwin had acknowledged his offenses, and yet had escaped. The
+vengeance which I had harbored had not been admitted by Wieland;
+and yet the evils which I had endured, compared with those
+inflicted on my brother, were as nothing. I thirsted for his
+blood, and was tormented with an insatiable appetite for his
+destruction; but my brother was unmoved, and had dismissed him in
+safety. Surely thou wast more than man, while I am sunk below the
+beasts.
+
+Did I place a right construction on the conduct of Wieland? Was
+the error that misled him so easily rectified? Were views so vivid
+and faith so strenuous thus liable to fading and to change? Was
+there not reason to doubt the accuracy of my perceptions? With
+images like these was my mind thronged, till the deportment of my
+brother called away my attention.
+
+I saw his lips move and his eyes cast up to heaven. Then would he
+listen and look back, as if in expectation of some one's
+appearance. Thrice he repeated these gesticulations and this
+inaudible prayer. Each time the mist of confusion and doubt seemed
+to grow darker and to settle on his understanding. I guessed at
+the meaning of these tokens. The words of Carwin had shaken his
+belief, and he was employed in summoning the messenger who had
+formerly communed with him, to attest the value of those new
+doubts. In vain the summons was repeated, for his eye met nothing
+but vacancy, and not a sound saluted his ear.
+
+He walked to the bed, gazed with eagerness at the pillow which had
+sustained the head of the breathless Catharine, and then returned
+to the place where I sat. I had no power to lift my eyes to his
+face: I was dubious of his purpose; this purpose might aim at my
+life.
+
+Alas! nothing but subjection to danger and exposure to temptation
+can show us what we are. By this test was I now tried, and found
+to be cowardly and rash. Men can deliberately untie the thread of
+life, and of this I had deemed myself capable. It was now that I
+stood upon the brink of fate, that the knife of the sacrificer was
+aimed at my heart, I shuddered, and betook myself to any means of
+escape, however monstrous.
+
+Can I bear to think--can I endure to relate the outrage which my
+heart meditated? Where were my means of safety? Resistance was
+vain. Not even the energy of despair could set me on a level with
+that strength which his terrific prompter had bestowed upon
+Wieland. Terror enables us to perform incredible feats; but terror
+was not then the state of my mind: where then were my hopes of
+rescue?
+
+Methinks it is too much. I stand aside, as it were, from myself; I
+estimate my own deservings; a hatred, immortal and inexorable, is
+my due. I listen to my own pleas, and find them empty and false:
+yes, I acknowledge that my guilt surpasses that of mankind; I
+confess that the curses of a world and the frowns of a Deity are
+inadequate to my demerits. Is there a thing in the world worthy of
+infinite abhorrence? It is I.
+
+What shall I say? I was menaced, as I thought, with death, and, to
+elude this evil, my hand was ready to inflict death upon the
+menacer. In visiting my house, I had made provision against the
+machinations of Carwin. In a fold of my dress an open penknife was
+concealed. This I now seized and drew forth. It lurked out of
+view; but I now see that my state of mind would have rendered the
+deed inevitable if my brother had lifted his hand. This instrument
+of my preservation would have been plunged into his heart.
+
+O insupportable remembrance! hide thee from my view for a time;
+hide it from me that my heart was black enough to meditate the
+stabbing of a brother! a brother thus supreme in misery; thus
+towering in virtue!
+
+He was probably unconscious of my design, but presently drew back.
+This interval was sufficient to restore me to myself. The madness,
+the iniquity, of that act which I had purposed rushed upon my
+apprehension. For a moment I was breathless with agony. At the
+next moment I recovered my strength, and threw the knife with
+violence on the floor.
+
+The sound awoke my brother from his reverie. He gazed alternately
+at me and at the weapon. With a movement equally solemn he stooped
+and took it up. He placed the blade in different positions,
+scrutinizing it accurately, and maintaining, at the same time, a
+profound silence.
+
+Again he looked at me; but all that vehemence and loftiness of
+spirit which had so lately characterized his features were flown.
+Fallen muscles, a forehead contracted into folds, eyes dim with
+unbidden drops, and a ruefulness of aspect which no words can
+describe, were now visible.
+
+His looks touched into energy the same sympathies in me, and I
+poured forth a flood of tears. This passion was quickly checked by
+fear, which had now no longer my own but his safety for their
+object. I watched his deportment in silence. At length he spoke:--
+
+"Sister," said he, in an accent mournful and mild, "I have acted
+poorly my part in this world. What thinkest thou? Shall I not do
+better in the next?"
+
+I could make no answer. The mildness of his tone astonished and
+encouraged me. I continued to regard him with wistful and anxious
+looks.
+
+"I think," resumed he, "I will try. My wife and my babes have gone
+before. Happy wretches! I have sent you to repose, and ought not
+to linger behind."
+
+These words had a meaning sufficiently intelligible. I looked at
+the open knife in his hand and shuddered, but knew not how to
+prevent the deed which I dreaded. He quickly noticed my fears, and
+comprehended them. Stretching toward me his hand, with an air of
+increasing mildness, "Take it," said he; "fear not for thy own
+sake, nor for mine. The cup is gone by, and its transient
+inebriation is succeeded by the soberness of truth.
+
+"Thou angel whom I was wont to worship! fearest thou, my sister,
+for thy life? Once it was the scope of my labors to destroy thee,
+but I was prompted to the deed by heaven; such, at least, was my
+belief. Thinkest thou that thy death was sought to gratify
+malevolence? No. I am pure from all stain. I believed that my
+God was my mover!
+
+"Neither thee nor myself have I cause to injure. I have done my
+duty; and surely there is merit in having sacrificed to that all
+that is dear to the heart of man. If a devil has deceived me, he
+came in the habit of an angel. If I erred, it was not my judgment
+that deceived me, but my senses. In thy sight, Being of beings! I
+am still pure. Still will I look for my reward in thy justice!"
+
+Did my ears truly report these sounds? If I did not err, my
+brother was restored to just perceptions. He knew himself to have
+been betrayed to the murder of his wife and children, to have been
+the victim of infernal artifice; yet he found consolation in the
+rectitude of his motives. He was not devoid of sorrow, for this
+was written on his countenance; but his soul was tranquil and
+sublime.
+
+Perhaps this was merely a transition of his former madness into a
+new shape. Perhaps he had not yet awakened to the memory of the
+horrors which he had perpetrated. Infatuated wretch that I was!
+To set myself up as a model by which to judge of my heroic brother!
+My reason taught me that his conclusions were right; but, conscious
+of the impotence of reason over my own conduct, conscious of my
+cowardly rashness and my criminal despair, I doubted whether anyone
+could be steadfast and wise.
+
+Such was my weakness, that even in the midst of these thoughts my
+mind glided into abhorrence of Carwin, and I uttered, in a low
+voice, "O Carwin! Carwin! what hast thou to answer for?"
+
+My brother immediately noticed the involuntary exclamation.
+"Clara!" said he, "be thyself. Equity used to be a theme for thy
+eloquence. Reduce its lessons to practice, and be just to that
+unfortunate man. The instrument has done its work, and I am
+satisfied.
+
+"I thank thee, my God, for this last illumination! My enemy is
+thine also. I deemed him to be a man,--the man with whom I have
+often communed; but now thy goodness has unveiled to me his true
+nature. As the performer of thy behests, he is my friend."
+
+My heart began now to misgive me. His mournful aspect had
+gradually yielded place to a serene brow. A new soul appeared to
+actuate his frame, and his eyes to beam with preternatural luster.
+These symptoms did not abate, and he continued:--
+
+"Clara, I must not leave thee in doubt. I know not what brought
+about thy interview with the being whom thou callest Carwin. For a
+time I was guilty of thy error, and deduced from his incoherent
+confessions that I had been made the victim of human malice. He
+left us at my bidding, and I put up a prayer that my doubts should
+be removed. Thy eyes were shut and thy ears sealed to the vision
+that answered my prayer.
+
+"I was indeed deceived. The form thou hast seen was the
+incarnation of a demon. The visage and voice which urged me to the
+sacrifice of my family were his. Now he personates a human form;
+then he was environed with the luster of heaven.
+
+"Clara," he continued, advancing closer to me, "thy death must
+come. This minister is evil, but he from whom his commission was
+received is God. Submit then with all thy wonted resignation to a
+decree that cannot be reversed or resisted. Mark the clock. Three
+minutes are allowed to thee, in which to call up thy fortitude and
+prepare thee for thy doom." There he stopped.
+
+Even now, when this scene exists only in memory, when life and all
+its functions have sunk into torpor, my pulse throbs, and my hairs
+uprise; my brows are knit, as then, and I gaze around me in
+distraction. I was unconquerably averse to death; but death,
+imminent and full of agony as that which was threatened, was
+nothing. This was not the only or chief inspirer of my fears.
+
+For him, not for myself, was my soul tormented. I might die, and
+no crime, surpassing the reach of mercy, would pursue me to the
+presence of my Judge; but my assassin would survive to contemplate
+his deed, and that assassin was Wieland!
+
+Wings to bear me beyond his reach I had not. I could not vanish
+with a thought. The door was open, but my murderer was interposed
+between that and me. Of self-defense I was incapable. The frenzy
+that lately prompted me to blood was gone: my state was desperate;
+my rescue was impossible.
+
+The weight of these accumulated thoughts could not be borne. My
+sight became confused; my limbs were seized with convulsion; I
+spoke, but my words were half formed:--
+
+"Spare me, my brother! Look down, righteous Judge! snatch me from
+this fate! take away this fury from him, or turn it elsewhere! "
+
+Such was the agony of my thoughts that I noticed not steps entering
+my apartment. Supplicating eyes were cast upward; but when my
+prayer was breathed I once more wildly gazed at the door. A form
+met my sight; I shuddered as if the God whom I invoked were
+present. It was Carwin that again intruded, and who stood before
+me, erect in attitude and steadfast in look!
+
+The sight of him awakened new and rapid thoughts. His recent tale
+was remembered; his magical transitions and mysterious energy of
+voice. Whether he were infernal or miraculous or human, there was
+no power and no need to decide. Whether the contriver or not of
+this spell, he was able to unbind it, and to check the fury of my
+brother. He had ascribed to himself intentions not malignant.
+Here now was afforded a test of his truth. Let him interpose, as
+from above; revoke the savage decree which the madness of Wieland
+has assigned to heaven, and extinguish forever this passion for
+blood!
+
+My mind detected at a glance this avenue to safety. The
+recommendations it possessed thronged as it were together, and made
+but one impression on my intellect. Remoter effects and collateral
+dangers I saw not. Perhaps the pause of an instant had sufficed to
+call them up. The improbability that the influence which governed
+Wieland was external or human; the tendency of this stratagem to
+sanction so fatal an error or substitute a more destructive rage in
+place of this; the insufficiency of Carwin's mere muscular forces
+to counteract the efforts and restrain the fury of Wieland, might,
+at a second glance, have been discovered; but no second glance was
+allowed. My first thought hurried me to action, and, fixing my
+eyes upon Carwin, I exclaimed,--
+
+"O wretch! once more hast thou come? Let it be to abjure thy
+malice; to counterwork this hellish stratagem; to turn from me and
+from my brother this desolating rage!
+
+"Testify thy innocence or thy remorse; exert the powers which
+pertain to thee, whatever they be, to turn aside this ruin. Thou
+art the author of these horrors! What have I done to deserve thus
+to die? How have I merited this unrelenting persecution? I adjure
+thee, by that God whose voice thou hast dared to counterfeit, to
+save my life!
+
+"Wilt thou then go?--leave me! Succorless!"
+
+Carwin listened to my entreaties unmoved, and turned from me. He
+seemed to hesitate a moment,--then glided through the door. Rage
+and despair stifled my utterance. The interval of respite was
+past; the pangs reserved for me by Wieland were not to be endured;
+my thoughts rushed again into anarchy. Having received the knife
+from his hand, I held it loosely and without regard; but now it
+seized again my attention, and I grasped it with force.
+
+He seemed to notice not the entrance or exit of Carwin. My gesture
+and the murderous weapon appeared to have escaped his notice. His
+silence was unbroken; his eye, fixed upon the clock for a time, was
+now withdrawn; fury kindled in every feature; all that was human in
+his face gave way to an expression supernatural and tremendous. I
+felt my left arm within his grasp.
+
+Even now I hesitated to strike. I shrunk from his assault, but in
+vain.
+
+Here let me desist. Why should I rescue this event from oblivion?
+Why should I paint this detestable conflict? Why not terminate at
+once this series of horrors?--Hurry to the verge of the precipice,
+and cast myself forever beyond remembrance and beyond hope?
+
+Still I live; with this load upon my breast; with this phantom to
+pursue my steps; with adders lodged in my bosom, and stinging me to
+madness; still I consent to live!
+
+Yes! I will rise above the sphere of mortal passions; I will spurn
+at the cowardly remorse that bids me seek impunity in silence, or
+comfort in forgetfulness. My nerves shall be new-strung to the
+task. Have I not resolved? I will die. The gulf before me is
+inevitable and near. I will die, but then only when my tale is at
+an end.
+
+
+III
+
+
+My right hand, grasping the unseen knife, was still disengaged. It
+was lifted to strike. All my strength was exhausted but what was
+sufficient to the performance of this deed. Already was the energy
+awakened and the impulse given that should bear the fatal steel to
+his heart, when--Wieland shrunk back; his hand was withdrawn.
+Breathless with affright and desperation, I stood, freed from his
+grasp; unassailed; untouched.
+
+Thus long had the power which controlled the scene forborne to
+interfere: but now his might was irresistible; and Wieland in a
+moment was disarmed of all his purposes. A voice, louder than
+human organs could produce, shriller than language can depict,
+burst from the ceiling and commanded him--TO HOLD!
+
+Trouble and dismay succeeded to the steadfastness that had lately
+been displayed in the looks of Wieland. His eyes roved from one
+quarter to another, with an expression of doubt. He seemed to wait
+for a further intimation.
+
+Carwin's agency was here easily recognized. I had besought him to
+interpose in my defense. He had flown. I had imagined him deaf to
+my prayer, and resolute to see me perish; yet he disappeared merely
+to devise and execute the means of my relief.
+
+Why did he not forbear when this end was accomplished? Why did his
+misjudging zeal and accursed precipitation overpass that limit? Or
+meant he thus to crown the scene, and conduct his inscrutable plots
+to this consummation?
+
+Such ideas were the fruit of subsequent contemplation. This moment
+was pregnant with fate. I had no power to reason. In the career
+of my tempestuous thoughts, rent into pieces as my mind was by
+accumulating horrors, Carwin was unseen and unsuspected. I partook
+of Wieland's credulity, shook with his amazement, and panted with
+his awe.
+
+Silence took place for a moment: so much as allowed the attention
+to recover its post. Then new sounds were uttered from above:--
+
+"Man of errors! cease to cherish thy delusion; not heaven or hell,
+but thy senses, have misled thee to commit these acts. Shake off
+thy frenzy, and ascend into rational and human. Be lunatic no
+longer."
+
+My brother opened his lips to speak. His tone was terrific and
+faint. He muttered an appeal to heaven. It was difficult to
+comprehend the theme of his inquiries. They implied doubt as to
+the nature of the impulse that hitherto had guided him, and
+questioned whether he had acted in consequence of insane
+perceptions.
+
+To these interrogatories the voice, which now seemed to hover at
+his shoulder, loudly answered in the affirmative. Then
+uninterrupted silence ensued.
+
+Fallen from his lofty and heroic station; now finally restored to
+the perception of truth; weighed to earth by the recollection of
+his own deeds; consoled no longer by a consciousness of rectitude
+for the loss of offspring and wife,--a loss for which he was
+indebted to his own misguided hand,--Wieland was transformed at
+once into the MAN OF SORROWS!
+
+He reflected not that credit should be as reasonably denied to the
+last as to any former intimation; that one might as justly be
+ascribed to erring or diseased senses as the other. He saw not
+that this discovery in no degree affected the integrity of his
+conduct; that his motives had lost none of their claims to the
+homage of mankind; that the preference of supreme good, and the
+boundless energy of duty, were undiminished in his bosom.
+
+It is not for me to pursue him through the ghastly changes of his
+countenance. Words he had none. Now he sat upon the floor,
+motionless in all his limbs, with his eyes glazed and fixed, a
+monument of woe.
+
+Anon a spirit of tempestuous but undesigning activity seized him.
+He rose from his place and strode across the floor, tottering and
+at random. His eyes were without moisture, and gleamed with the
+fire that consumed his vitals. The muscles of his face were
+agitated by convulsions. His lips moved, but no sound escaped him.
+
+That nature should long sustain this conflict was not to be
+believed. My state was little different from that of my brother.
+I entered, as it were, into his thoughts. My heart was visited and
+rent by his pangs. "Oh that thy frenzy had never been cured! that
+thy madness, with its blissful visions, would return! or, if that
+must not be, that thy scene would hasten to a close!--that death
+would cover thee with his oblivion!
+
+"What can I wish for thee? Thou who hast vied with the great
+Preacher of thy faith in sanctity of motives, and in elevation
+above sensual and selfish! Thou whom thy fate has changed into
+parricide and savage! Can I wish for the continuance of thy being?
+No."
+
+For a time his movements seemed destitute of purpose. If he
+walked; if he turned; if his fingers were entwined with each other;
+if his hands were pressed against opposite sides of his head with a
+force sufficient to crush it into pieces; it was to tear his mind
+from self-contemplation; to waste his thoughts on external objects.
+
+Speedily this train was broken. A beam appeared to be darted into
+his mind which gave a purpose to his efforts. An avenue to escape
+presented itself; and now he eagerly gazed about him. When my
+thoughts became engaged by his demeanor, my fingers were stretched
+as by a mechanical force, and the knife, no longer heeded or of
+use, escaped from my grasp and fell unperceived on the floor. His
+eye now lighted upon it; he seized it with the quickness of
+thought.
+
+I shrieked aloud, but it was too late. He plunged it to the hilt
+in his neck; and his life instantly escaped with the stream that
+gushed from the wound. He was stretched at my feet; and my hands
+were sprinkled with his blood as he fell.
+
+Such was thy last deed, my brother! For a spectacle like this was
+it my fate to be reserved! Thy eyes were closed--thy face ghastly
+with death--thy arms, and the spot where thou lyedst, floated in
+thy life's blood! These images have not for a moment forsaken me.
+Till I am breathless and cold, they must continue to hover in my
+sight.
+
+Carwin, as I said, had left the room; but he still lingered in the
+house. My voice summoned him to my aid; but I scarcely noticed his
+reentrance, and now faintly recollect his terrified looks, his
+broken exclamations, his vehement avowals of innocence, the
+effusions of his pity for me, and his offers of assistance.
+
+I did not listen--I answered him not--I ceased to upbraid or
+accuse. His guilt was a point to which I was indifferent. Ruffian
+or devil, black as hell or bright as angels, thenceforth he was
+nothing to me. I was incapable of sparing a look or a thought from
+the ruin that was spread at my feet.
+
+When he left me, I was scarcely conscious of any variation in the
+scene. He informed the inhabitants of the hut of what had passed,
+and they flew to the spot. Careless of his own safety, he hasted
+to the city to inform my friends of my condition.
+
+My uncle speedily arrived at the house. The body of Wieland was
+removed from my presence, and they supposed that I would follow it;
+but no, my home is ascertained; here I have taken up my rest, and
+never will I go hence, till, like Wieland, I am borne to my grave.
+
+Importunity was tried in vain. They threatened to remove me by
+violence,--nay, violence was used; but my soul prizes too dearly
+this little roof to endure to be bereaved of it. Force should not
+prevail when the hoary locks and supplicating tears of my uncle
+were ineffectual. My repugnance to move gave birth to
+ferociousness and frenzy when force was employed, and they were
+obliged to consent to my return.
+
+They besought me--they remonstrated--they appealed to every duty
+that connected me with Him that made me and with my fellow-men--in
+vain. While I live I will not go hence. Have I not fulfilled my
+destiny?
+
+Why will ye torment me with your reasonings and reproofs? Can ye
+restore to me the hope of my better days? Can ye give me back
+Catharine and her babes? Can ye recall to life him who died at my
+feet?
+
+I will eat--I will drink--I will lie down and rise up--at your
+bidding; all I ask is the choice of my abode. What is there
+unreasonable in this demand? Shortly will I be at peace. This is
+the spot which I have chosen in which to breathe my last sigh.
+Deny me not, I beseech you, so slight a boon.
+
+Talk not to me, O my reverend friend! of Carwin. He has told thee
+his tale, and thou exculpatest him from all direct concern in the
+fate of Wieland. This scene of havoc was produced by an illusion
+of the senses. Be it so; I care not from what source these
+disasters have flowed; it suffices that they have swallowed up our
+hopes and our existence.
+
+What his agency began, his agency conducted to a close. He
+intended, by the final effort of his power, to rescue me and to
+banish his illusions from my brother. Such is his tale, concerning
+the truth of which I care not. Henceforth I foster but one wish: I
+ask only quick deliverance from life and all the ills that attend
+it.
+
+Go, wretch! torment me not with thy presence and thy prayers.--
+Forgive thee? Will that avail thee when thy fateful hour shall
+arrive? Be thou acquitted at thy own tribunal, and thou needest
+not fear the verdict of others. If thy guilt be capable of blacker
+hues, if hitherto thy conscience be without stain, thy crime will
+be made more flagrant by thus violating my retreat. Take thyself
+away from my sight if thou wouldst not behold my death!
+
+Thou art gone! murmuring and reluctant! And now my repose is
+coming--my work is done!
+
+
+
+Fitzjames O'Brien
+
+The Golden Ingot
+
+
+I had just retired to rest, with my eyes almost blind with the
+study of a new work on physiology by M. Brown-Sequard, when the
+night bell was pulled violently.
+
+It was winter, and I confess I grumbled as I rose and went
+downstairs to open the door. Twice that week I had been aroused
+long after midnight for the most trivial causes. Once, to attend
+upon the son and heir of a wealthy family, who had cut his thumb
+with a penknife, which, it seems, he insisted on taking to bed with
+him; and once, to restore a young gentleman to consciousness, who
+had been found by his horrified parent stretched insensible on the
+staircase. Diachylon in the one case and ammonia in the other were
+all that my patients required; and I had a faint suspicion that the
+present summons was perhaps occasioned by no case more necessitous
+than those I have quoted. I was too young in my profession,
+however, to neglect opportunities. It is only when a physician
+rises to a very large practice that he can afford to be
+inconsiderate. I was on the first step of the ladder, so I humbly
+opened my door.
+
+A woman was standing ankle deep in the snow that lay upon the
+stoop. I caught but a dim glimpse of her form, for the night was
+cloudy; but I could hear her teeth rattling like castanets, and, as
+the sharp wind blew her clothes close to her form, I could discern
+from the sharpness of the outlines that she was very scantily
+supplied with raiment.
+
+"Come in, come in, my good woman," I said hastily, for the wind
+seemed to catch eagerly at the opportunity of making itself at home
+in my hall, and was rapidly forcing an entrance through the half-
+open door. "Come in, you can tell me all you have to communicate
+inside."
+
+She slipped in like a ghost, and I closed the door. While I was
+striking a light in my office, I could hear her teeth still
+clicking out in the dark hall, till it seemed as if some skeleton
+was chattering. As soon as I obtained a light I begged her to
+enter the room, and, without occupying myself particularly about
+her appearance, asked her abruptly what her business was.
+
+"My father has met with a severe accident," she said, "and requires
+instant surgical aid. I entreat you to come to him immediately."
+
+The freshness and the melody of her voice startled me. Such voices
+rarely, if ever, issue from any but beautiful forms. I looked at
+her attentively, but, owing to a nondescript species of shawl in
+which her head was wrapped, I could discern nothing beyond what
+seemed to be a pale, thin face and large eyes. Her dress was
+lamentable. An old silk, of a color now unrecognizable, clung to
+her figure in those limp folds which are so eloquent of misery.
+The creases where it had been folded were worn nearly through, and
+the edges of the skirt had decayed into a species of irregular
+fringe, which was clotted and discolored with mud. Her shoes--
+which were but half concealed by this scanty garment--were
+shapeless and soft with moisture. Her hands were hidden under the
+ends of the shawl which covered her head and hung down over a bust,
+the outlines of which, although angular, seemed to possess grace.
+Poverty, when partially shrouded, seldom fails to interest: witness
+the statue of the Veiled Beggar, by Monti.
+
+"In what manner was your father hurt?" I asked, in a tone
+considerably softened from the one in which I put my first
+question.
+
+"He blew himself up, sir, and is terribly wounded."
+
+"Ah! He is in some factory, then?"
+
+"No, sir, he is a chemist."
+
+"A chemist? Why, he is a brother professional. Wait an instant,
+and I will slip on my coat and go with you. Do you live far from
+here?"
+
+"In the Seventh Avenue, not more than two blocks from the end of
+this street."
+
+"So much the better. We will be with him in a few minutes. Did
+you leave anyone in attendance on him?"
+
+"No, sir. He will allow no one but myself to enter his laboratory.
+And, injured as he is, I could not induce him to quit it."
+
+"Indeed! He is engaged in some great research, perhaps? I have
+known such cases."
+
+We were passing under a lamp-post, and the woman suddenly turned
+and glared at me with a look of such wild terror that for an
+instant I involuntarily glanced round me under the impression that
+some terrible peril, unseen by me, was menacing us both.
+
+"Don't--don't ask me any questions," she said breathlessly. "He
+will tell you all. But do, oh, do hasten! Good God! he may be
+dead by this time!"
+
+I made no reply, but allowed her to grasp my hand, which she did
+with a bony, nervous clutch, and endeavored with some difficulty to
+keep pace with the long strides--I might well call them bounds, for
+they seemed the springs of a wild animal rather than the paces of a
+young girl--with which she covered the ground. Not a word more was
+uttered until we stopped before a shabby, old-fashioned tenement
+house in the Seventh Avenue, not far above Twenty-third Street.
+She pushed the door open with a convulsive pressure, and, still
+retaining hold of my hand, literally dragged me upstairs to what
+seemed to be a back offshoot from the main building, as high,
+perhaps, as the fourth story. In a moment more I found myself in a
+moderate-sized chamber, lit by a single lamp. In one corner,
+stretched motionless on a wretched pallet bed, I beheld what I
+supposed to be the figure of my patient.
+
+"He is there," said the girl; "go to him. See if he is dead--I
+dare not look."
+
+I made my way as well as I could through the numberless dilapidated
+chemical instruments with which the room was littered. A French
+chafing dish supported on an iron tripod had been overturned, and
+was lying across the floor, while the charcoal, still warm, was
+scattered around in various directions. Crucibles, alembics, and
+retorts were confusedly piled in various corners, and on a small
+table I saw distributed in separate bottles a number of mineral and
+metallic substances, which I recognized as antimony, mercury,
+plumbago, arsenic, borax, etc. It was veritably the apartment of a
+poor chemist. All the apparatus had the air of being second-hand.
+There was no luster of exquisitely annealed glass and highly
+polished metals, such as dazzles one in the laboratory of the
+prosperous analyst. The makeshifts of poverty were everywhere
+visible. The crucibles were broken, or gallipots were used instead
+of crucibles. The colored tests were not in the usual transparent
+vials, but were placed in ordinary black bottles. There is nothing
+more melancholy than to behold science or art in distress. A
+threadbare scholar, a tattered book, or a battered violin is a mute
+appeal to our sympathy.
+
+I approached the wretched pallet bed on which the victim of
+chemistry was lying. He breathed heavily, and had his head turned
+toward the wall. I lifted his arm gently to arouse his attention.
+"How goes it, my poor friend?" I asked him. "Where are you hurt?"
+
+In a moment, as if startled by the sound of my voice, he sprang up
+in his bed, and cowered against the wall like a wild animal driven
+to bay. "Who are you? I don't know you. Who brought you here?
+You are a stranger. How dare you come into my private rooms to spy
+upon me?"
+
+And as he uttered this rapidly with a frightful nervous energy, I
+beheld a pale distorted face, draped with long gray hair, glaring
+at me with a mingled expression of fury and terror.
+
+"I am no spy," I answered mildly. "I heard that you had met with
+an accident, and have come to cure you. I am Dr. Luxor, and here
+is my card."
+
+The old man took the card, and scanned it eagerly. "You are a
+physician?" he inquired distrustfully.
+
+"And surgeon also."
+
+"You are bound by oath not to reveal the secrets of your patients."
+
+"Undoubtedly."
+
+"I am afraid that I am hurt," he continued faintly, half sinking
+back in the bed.
+
+I seized the opportunity to make a brief examination of his body.
+I found that the arms, a part of the chest, and a part of the face
+were terribly scorched; but it seemed to me that there was nothing
+to be apprehended but pain.
+
+"You will not reveal anything that you may learn here?" said the
+old man, feebly fixing his eyes on my face while I was applying a
+soothing ointment to the burns. "You will promise me."
+
+I nodded assent.
+
+"Then I will trust you. Cure me--I will pay you well."
+
+I could scarce help smiling. If Lorenzo de' Medici, conscious of
+millions of ducats in his coffers, had been addressing some leech
+of the period, he could not have spoken with a loftier air than
+this inhabitant of the fourth story of a tenement house in the
+Seventh Avenue.
+
+"You must keep quiet," I answered. "Let nothing irritate you. I
+will leave a composing draught with your daughter, which she will
+give you immediately. I will see you in the morning. You will be
+well in a week."
+
+"Thank God!" came in a murmur from a dusk corner near the door. I
+turned, and beheld the dim outline of the girl, standing with
+clasped hands in the gloom of the dim chamber.
+
+"My daughter!" screamed the old man, once more leaping up in the
+bed with renewed vitality. "You have seen her, then? When?
+Where? Oh, may a thousand cur--"
+
+"Father! father! Anything--anything but that. Don't, don't curse
+me!" And the poor girl, rushing in, flung herself sobbing on her
+knees beside his pallet.
+
+"Ah, brigand! You are there, are you? Sir," said he, turning to
+me, "I am the most unhappy man in the world. Talk of Sisyphus
+rolling the ever-recoiling stone--of Prometheus gnawed by the
+vulture since the birth of time. The fables yet live. There is my
+rock, forever crushing me back! there is my eternal vulture,
+feeding upon my heart! There! there! there!" And, with an awful
+gesture of malediction and hatred, he pointed with his wounded
+hand, swathed and shapeless with bandages, at the cowering,
+sobbing, wordless woman by his side.
+
+I was too much horror-stricken to attempt even to soothe him. The
+anger of blood against blood has an electric power which paralyzes
+bystanders.
+
+"Listen to me, sir," he continued, "while I skin this painted
+viper. I have your oath; you will not reveal. I am an alchemist,
+sir. Since I was twenty-two years old, I have pursued the
+wonderful and subtle secret. Yes, to unfold the mysterious Rose
+guarded with such terrible thorns; to decipher the wondrous Table
+of Emerald; to accomplish the mystic nuptials of the Red King and
+the White Queen; to marry them soul to soul and body to body,
+forever and ever, in the exact proportions of land and water--such
+has been my sublime aim, such has been the splendid feat that I
+have accomplished."
+
+I recognized at a glance, in this incomprehensible farrago, the
+argot of the true alchemist. Ripley, Flamel, and others have
+supplied the world, in their works, with the melancholy spectacle
+of a scientific bedlam.
+
+"Two years since," continued the poor man, growing more and more
+excited with every word that he uttered--"two years since, I
+succeeded in solving the great problem--in transmuting the baser
+metals into gold. None but myself, that girl, and God knows the
+privations I had suffered up to that time. Food, clothing, air,
+exercise, everything but shelter, was sacrificed toward the one
+great end. Success at last crowned my labors. That which Nicholas
+Flamel did in 1382, that which George Ripley did at Rhodes in 1460,
+that which Alexander Sethon and Michael Scudivogius did in the
+seventeenth century, I did in 1856. I made gold! I said to
+myself, 'I will astonish New York more than Flamel did Paris.' He
+was a poor copyist, and suddenly launched into magnificence. I had
+scarce a rag to my back: I would rival the Medicis. I made gold
+every day. I toiled night and morning; for I must tell you that I
+never was able to make more than a certain quantity at a time, and
+that by a process almost entirely dissimilar to those hinted at in
+those books of alchemy I had hitherto consulted. But I had no
+doubt that facility would come with experience, and that ere long I
+should be able to eclipse in wealth the richest sovereigns of the
+earth.
+
+"So I toiled on. Day after day I gave to this girl here what gold
+I succeeded in fabricating, telling her to store it away after
+supplying our necessities. I was astonished to perceive that we
+lived as poorly as ever. I reflected, however, that it was perhaps
+a commendable piece of prudence on the part of my daughter.
+Doubtless, I said, she argues that the less we spend the sooner we
+shall accumulate a capital wherewith to live at ease; so, thinking
+her course a wise one, I did not reproach her with her
+niggardliness, but toiled on, amid want, with closed lips.
+
+"The gold which I fabricated was, as I said before, of an
+invariable size, namely, a little ingot worth perhaps thirty or
+forty-five dollars. In two years I calculated that I had made five
+hundred of these ingots, which, rated at an average of thirty
+dollars apiece, would amount to the gross sum of fifteen thousand
+dollars. After deducting our slight expenses for two years, we
+ought to have had nearly fourteen thousand dollars left. It was
+time, I thought, to indemnify myself for my years of suffering, and
+surround my child and myself with such moderate comforts as our
+means allowed. I went to my daughter and explained to her that I
+desired to make an encroachment upon our little hoard. To my utter
+amazement, she burst into tears, and told me that she had not got a
+dollar--that all of our wealth had been stolen from her. Almost
+overwhelmed by this new misfortune, I in vain endeavored to
+discover from her in what manner our savings had been plundered.
+She could afford me no explanation beyond what I might gather from
+an abundance of sobs and a copious flow of tears.
+
+"It was a bitter blow, doctor, but nil desperandum was my motto, so
+I went to work at my crucible again, with redoubled energy, and
+made an ingot nearly every second day. I determined this time to
+put them in some secure place myself; but the very first day I set
+my apparatus in order for the projection, the girl Marion--that is
+my daughter's name--came weeping to me and implored me to allow her
+to take care of our treasure. I refused decisively, saying that,
+having found her already incapable of filling the trust, I could
+place no faith in her again. But she persisted, clung to my neck,
+threatened to abandon me; in short, used so many of the bad but
+irresistible arguments known to women that I had not the heart to
+refuse her. She has since that time continued to take the ingots.
+
+"Yet you behold," continued the old alchemist, casting an
+inexpressibly mournful glance around the wretched apartment, "the
+way we live. Our food is insufficient and of bad quality; we never
+buy clothes; the rent of this hole is a mere nothing. What am I to
+think of the wretched girl who plunges me into this misery? Is she
+a miser, think you?--or a female gamester?--or--or--does she
+squander it riotously in places I know not of? O Doctor, Doctor!
+do not blame me if I heap imprecations on her head, for I have
+suffered bitterly!" The poor man here closed his eyes and sank
+back groaning on his bed.
+
+This singular narrative excited in me the strangest emotions. I
+glanced at the girl Marion, who had been a patient listener to
+these horrible accusations of cupidity, and never did I behold a
+more angelic air of resignation than beamed over her countenance.
+It was impossible that anyone with those pure, limpid eyes; that
+calm, broad forehead; that childlike mouth, could be such a monster
+of avarice or deceit as the old man represented. The truth was
+plain enough: the alchemist was mad--what alchemist was there ever
+who was not?--and his insanity had taken this terrible shape. I
+felt an inexpressible pity move my heart for this poor girl, whose
+youth was burdened with such an awful sorrow.
+
+"What is your name?" I asked the old man, taking his tremulous,
+fevered hand in mine.
+
+"William Blakelock," he answered. "I come of an old Saxon stock,
+sir, that bred true men and women in former days. God! how did it
+ever come to pass that such a one as that girl ever sprung from our
+line?" The glance of loathing and contempt that he cast at her
+made me shudder.
+
+"May you not be mistaken in your daughter?" I said, very mildly.
+"Delusions with regard to alchemy are, or have been, very common--"
+
+"What, sir?" cried the old man, bounding in his bed. "What? Do
+you doubt that gold can be made? Do you know, sir, that M. C.
+Theodore Tiffereau made gold at Paris in the year 1854 in the
+presence of M. Levol, the assayer of the Imperial Mint, and the
+result of the experiments was read before the Academy of Sciences
+on the sixteenth of October of the same year? But stay; you shall
+have better proof yet. I will pay you with one of my ingots, and
+you shall attend me until I am well. Get me an ingot!"
+
+This last command was addressed to Marion, who was still kneeling
+close to her father's bedside. I observed her with some curiosity
+as this mandate was issued. She became very pale, clasped her
+hands convulsively, but neither moved nor made any reply.
+
+"Get me an ingot, I say!" reiterated the alchemist passionately.
+
+She fixed her large eyes imploringly upon him. Her lips quivered,
+and two huge tears rolled slowly down her white cheeks.
+
+"Obey me, wretched girl," cried the old man in an agitated voice,
+"or I swear, by all that I reverence in heaven and earth, that I
+will lay my curse upon you forever!"
+
+I felt for an instant that I ought perhaps to interfere, and spare
+the girl the anguish that she was so evidently suffering; but a
+powerful curiosity to see how this strange scene would terminate
+withheld me.
+
+The last threat of her father, uttered as it was with a terrible
+vehemence, seemed to appall Marion. She rose with a sudden leap,
+as if a serpent had stung her, and, rushing into an inner
+apartment, returned with a small object which she placed in my
+hand, and then flung herself in a chair in a distant corner of the
+room, weeping bitterly.
+
+"You see--you see," said the old man sarcastically, "how
+reluctantly she parts with it. Take it, sir; it is yours."
+
+It was a small bar of metal. I examined it carefully, poised it in
+my hand--the color, weight, everything, announced that it really
+was gold.
+
+"You doubt its genuineness, perhaps," continued the alchemist.
+"There are acids on yonder table--test it."
+
+I confess that I DID doubt its genuineness; but after I had acted
+upon the old man's suggestion, all further suspicion was rendered
+impossible. It was gold of the highest purity. I was astounded.
+Was then, after all, this man's tale a truth? Was his daughter,
+that fair, angelic-looking creature, a demon of avarice, or a slave
+to worse passions? I felt bewildered. I had never met with
+anything so incomprehensible. I looked from father to daughter in
+the blankest amazement. I suppose that my countenance betrayed my
+astonishment, for the old man said: "I perceive that you are
+surprised. Well, that is natural. You had a right to think me mad
+until I proved myself sane."
+
+"But, Mr. Blakelock," I said, "I really cannot take this gold. I
+have no right to it. I cannot in justice charge so large a fee."
+
+"Take it--take it," he answered impatiently; "your fee will amount
+to that before I am well. Besides," he added mysteriously, "I wish
+to secure your friendship. I wish that you should protect me from
+her," and he pointed his poor, bandaged hand at Marion.
+
+My eyes followed his gesture, and I caught the glance that replied--
+a glance of horror, distrust, despair. The beautiful face was
+distorted into positive ugliness.
+
+"It's all true," I thought; "she is the demon that her father
+represents her."
+
+I now rose to go. This domestic tragedy sickened me. This
+treachery of blood against blood was too horrible to witness. I
+wrote a prescription for the old man, left directions as to the
+renewal of the dressings upon his burns, and, bidding him good
+night, hastened toward the door.
+
+While I was fumbling on the dark, crazy landing for the staircase,
+I felt a hand laid on my arm.
+
+"Doctor," whispered a voice that I recognized as Marion
+Blakelock's, "Doctor, have you any compassion in your heart?"
+
+"I hope so," I answered shortly, shaking off her hand; her touch
+filled me with loathing.
+
+"Hush! don't talk so loud. If you have any pity in your nature,
+give me back, I entreat of you, that gold ingot which my father
+gave you this evening."
+
+"Great heaven!" said I, "can it be possible that so fair a woman
+can be such a mercenary, shameless wretch?"
+
+"Ah! you know not--I cannot tell you! Do not judge me harshly. I
+call God to witness that I am not what you deem me. Some day or
+other you will know. But," she added, interrupting herself, "the
+ingot--where is it? I must have it. My life depends on your
+giving it to me."
+
+"Take it, impostor!" I cried, placing it in her hand, that closed
+on it with a horrible eagerness. "I never intended to keep it.
+Gold made under the same roof that covers such as you must be
+accursed."
+
+So saying, heedless of the nervous effort she made to detain me, I
+stumbled down the stairs and walked hastily home.
+
+The next morning, while I was in my office, smoking my matutinal
+cigar, and speculating over the singular character of my
+acquaintances of last night, the door opened, and Marion Blakelock
+entered. She had the same look of terror that I had observed the
+evening before, and she panted as if she had been running fast.
+
+"Father has got out of bed," she gasped out, "and insists on going
+on with his alchemy. Will it kill him?"
+
+"Not exactly," I answered coldly. "It were better that he kept
+quiet, so as to avoid the chance of inflammation. However, you
+need not be alarmed; his burns are not at all dangerous, although
+painful."
+
+"Thank God! thank God!" she cried, in the most impassioned accents;
+and, before I was aware of what she was doing, she seized my hand
+and kissed it.
+
+"There, that will do," I said, withdrawing my hand; "you are under
+no obligations to me. You had better go back to your father."
+
+"I can't go," she answered. "You despise me--is it not so?"
+
+I made no reply.
+
+"You think me a monster--a criminal. When you went home last
+night, you were wonderstruck that so vile a creature as I should
+have so fair a face."
+
+"You embarrass me, madam," I said, in a most chilling tone. "Pray
+relieve me from this unpleasant position."
+
+"Wait. I cannot bear that you should think ill of me. You are
+good and kind, and I desire to possess your esteem. You little
+know how I love my father."
+
+I could not restrain a bitter smile.
+
+"You do not believe that? Well, I will convince you. I have had a
+hard struggle all last night with myself, but am now resolved.
+This life of deceit must continue no longer. Will you hear my
+vindication?"
+
+I assented. The wonderful melody of her voice and the purity of
+her features were charming me once more. I half believed in her
+innocence already.
+
+"My father has told you a portion of his history. But he did not
+tell you that his continued failures in his search after the secret
+of metallic transmutation nearly killed him. Two years ago he was
+on the verge of the grave, working every day at his mad pursuit,
+and every day growing weaker and more emaciated. I saw that if his
+mind was not relieved in some way he would die. The thought was
+madness to me, for I loved him--I love him still, as a daughter
+never loved a father before. During all these years of poverty I
+had supported the house with my needle; it was hard work, but I did
+it--I do it still!"
+
+"What?" I cried, startled, "does not--"
+
+"Patience. Hear me out. My father was dying of disappointment. I
+must save him. By incredible exertions, working night and day, I
+saved about thirty-five dollars in notes. These I exchanged for
+gold, and one day, when my father was not looking, I cast them into
+the crucible in which he was making one of his vain attempts at
+transmutation. God, I am sure, will pardon the deception. I never
+anticipated the misery it would lead to.
+
+"I never beheld anything like the joy of my poor father, when,
+after emptying his crucible, he found a deposit of pure gold at the
+bottom. He wept, and danced, and sang, and built such castles in
+the air, that my brain was dizzy to hear him. He gave me the ingot
+to keep, and went to work at his alchemy with renewed vigor. The
+same thing occurred. He always found the same quantity of gold in
+his crucible. I alone knew the secret. He was happy, poor man,
+for nearly two years, in the belief that he was amassing a fortune.
+I all the while plied my needle for our daily bread. When he asked
+me for the savings, the first stroke fell upon me. Then it was
+that I recognized the folly of my conduct. I could give him no
+money. I never had any--while he believed that I had fourteen
+thousand dollars. My heart was nearly broken when I found that he
+had conceived the most injurious suspicions against me. Yet I
+could not blame him. I could give no account of the treasure I had
+permitted him to believe was in my possession. I must suffer the
+penalty of my fault, for to undeceive him would be, I felt, to kill
+him. I remained silent then, and suffered.
+
+"You know the rest. You now know why it was that I was reluctant
+to give you that ingot--why it was that I degraded myself so far as
+to ask it back. It was the only means I had of continuing a
+deception on which I believed my father's life depended. But that
+delusion has been dispelled. I can live this life of hypocrisy no
+longer. I cannot exist and hear my father, whom I love so, wither
+me daily with his curses. I will undeceive him this very day.
+Will you come with me, for I fear the effect on his enfeebled
+frame?"
+
+"Willingly," I answered, taking her by the hand; "and I think that
+no absolute danger need be apprehended. Now, Marion," I added,
+"let me ask forgiveness for having even for a moment wounded so
+noble a heart. You are truly as great a martyr as any of those
+whose sufferings the Church perpetuates in altar-pieces."
+
+"I knew you would do me justice when you knew all," she sobbed,
+pressing my hand; "but come. I am on fire. Let us hasten to my
+father, and break this terror to him."
+
+When we reached the old alchemist's room, we found him busily
+engaged over a crucible which was placed on a small furnace, and in
+which some indescribable mixture was boiling. He looked up as we
+entered.
+
+"No fear of me, doctor," he said, with a ghastly smile, "no fear; I
+must not allow a little physical pain to interrupt my great work,
+you know. By the way, you are just in time. In a few moments the
+marriage of the Red King and White Queen will be accomplished, as
+George Ripley calls the great act, in his book entitled 'The Twelve
+Gates.' Yes, doctor, in less than ten minutes you will see me make
+pure, red, shining gold!" And the poor old man smiled
+triumphantly, and stirred his foolish mixture with a long rod,
+which he held with difficulty in his bandaged hands. It was a
+grievous sight for a man of any feeling to witness.
+
+"Father," said Marion, in a low, broken voice, advancing a little
+toward the poor old dupe, "I want your forgiveness."
+
+"Ah, hypocrite! for what? Are you going to give me back my gold?"
+
+"No, father, but for the deception that I have been practicing on
+you for two years--"
+
+"I knew it! I knew it!" shouted the old man, with a radiant
+countenance. "She has concealed my fourteen thousand dollars all
+this time, and now comes to restore them. I will forgive her.
+Where are they, Marion?"
+
+"Father--it must come out. You never made any gold. It was I who
+saved up thirty-five dollars, and I used to slip them into your
+crucible when your back was turned--and I did it only because I saw
+that you were dying of disappointment. It was wrong, I know--but,
+father, I meant well. You'll forgive me, won't you?" And the poor
+girl advanced a step toward the alchemist.
+
+He grew deathly pale, and staggered as if about to fall. The next
+instant, though, he recovered himself, and burst into a horrible
+sardonic laugh. Then he said, in tones full of the bitterest
+irony: "A conspiracy, is it? Well done, doctor! You think to
+reconcile me with this wretched girl by trumping up this story that
+I have been for two years a dupe of her filial piety. It's clumsy,
+doctor, and is a total failure. Try again."
+
+"But I assure you, Mr. Blakelock," I said as earnestly as I could,
+"I believe your daughter's statement to be perfectly true. You
+will find it to be so, as she has got the ingot in her possession
+which so often deceived you into the belief that you made gold, and
+you will certainly find that no transmutation has taken place in
+your crucible."
+
+"Doctor," said the old man, in tones of the most settled
+conviction, "you are a fool. The girl has wheedled you. In less
+than a minute I will turn you out a piece of gold purer than any
+the earth produces. Will that convince you?"
+
+"That will convince me," I answered. By a gesture I imposed
+silence on Marion, who was about to speak. I thought it better to
+allow the old man to be his own undeceiver--and we awaited the
+coming crisis.
+
+The old man, still smiling with anticipated triumph, kept bending
+eagerly over his crucible, stirring the mixture with his rod, and
+muttering to himself all the time. "Now," I heard him say, "it
+changes. There--there's the scum. And now the green and bronze
+shades flit across it. Oh, the beautiful green! the precursor of
+the golden-red hue that tells of the end attained! Ah! now the
+golden-red is coming--slowly--slowly! It deepens, it shines, it is
+dazzling! Ah, I have it!" So saying, he caught up his crucible in
+a chemist's tongs, and bore it slowly toward the table on which
+stood a brass vessel.
+
+"Now, incredulous doctor!" he cried, "come and be convinced," and
+immediately began carefully pouring the contents of the crucible
+into the brass vessel. When the crucible was quite empty he turned
+it up and called me again. "Come, doctor, come and be convinced.
+See for yourself."
+
+"See first if there is any gold in your crucible," I answered,
+without moving.
+
+He laughed, shook his head derisively, and looked into the
+crucible. In a moment he grew pale as death.
+
+"Nothing!" he cried. "Oh, a jest, a jest! There must be gold
+somewhere. Marion!"
+
+"The gold is here, father," said Marion, drawing the ingot from her
+pocket; "it is all we ever had."
+
+"Ah!" shrieked the poor old man, as he let the empty crucible fall,
+and staggered toward the ingot which Marion held out to him. He
+made three steps, and then fell on his face. Marion rushed toward
+him, and tried to lift him, but could not. I put her aside gently,
+and placed my hand on his heart.
+
+"Marion," said I, "it is perhaps better as it is. He is dead!"
+
+
+
+Fitzjames O'Brien
+
+
+My Wife's Tempter
+
+I
+
+A PREDESTINED MARRIAGE
+
+Elsie and I were to be married in less than a week. It was rather
+a strange match, and I knew that some of our neighbors shook their
+heads over it and said that no good would come. The way it came to
+pass was thus.
+
+I loved Elsie Burns for two years, during which time she refused me
+three times. I could no more help asking her to have me, when the
+chance offered, than I could help breathing or living. To love her
+seemed natural to me as existence. I felt no shame, only sorrow,
+when she rejected me; I felt no shame either when I renewed my
+suit. The neighbors called me mean-spirited to take up with any
+girl that had refused me as often as Elsie Burns had done; but what
+cared I about the neighbors? If it is black weather, and the sun
+is under a cloud every day for a month, is that any reason why the
+poor farmer should not hope for the blue sky and the plentiful
+burst of warm light when the dark month is over? I never entirely
+lost heart. Do not, however, mistake me. I did not mope, and
+moan, and grow pale, after the manner of poetical lovers. No such
+thing. I went bravely about my business, ate and drank as usual,
+laughed when the laugh went round, and slept soundly, and woke
+refreshed. Yet all this time I loved--desperately loved--Elsie
+Burns. I went wherever I hoped to meet her, but did not haunt her
+with my attentions. I behaved to her as any friendly young man
+would have behaved: I met her and parted from her cheerfully. She
+was a good girl, too, and behaved well. She had me in her power--
+how a woman in Elsie's situation could have mortified a man in
+mine!--but she never took the slightest advantage of it. She
+danced with me when I asked her, and had no foolish fears of
+allowing me to see her home of nights, after a ball was over, or of
+wandering with me through the pleasant New England fields when the
+wild flowers made the paths like roads in fairyland.
+
+On the several disastrous occasions when I presented my suit I did
+it simply and manfully, telling her that I loved her very much, and
+would do everything to make her happy if she would be my wife. I
+made no fulsome protestations, and did not once allude to suicide.
+She, on the other hand, calmly and gravely thanked me for my good
+opinion, but with the same calm gravity rejected me. I used to
+tell her that I was grieved; that I would not press her; that I
+would wait and hope for some change in her feelings. She had an
+esteem for me, she would say, but could not marry me. I never
+asked her for any reasons. I hold it to be an insult to a woman of
+sense to demand her reasons on such an occasion. Enough for me
+that she did not then wish to be my wife; so that the old
+intercourse went on--she cordial and polite as ever, I never for
+one moment doubting that the day would come when my roof tree would
+shelter her, and we should smile together over our fireside at my
+long and indefatigable wooing.
+
+I will confess that at times I felt a little jealous--jealous of a
+man named Hammond Brake, who lived in our village. He was a weird,
+saturnine fellow, who made no friends among the young men of the
+neighborhood, but who loved to go alone, with his books and his own
+thoughts for company. He was a studious and, I believe, a learned
+young man, and there was no avoiding the fact that he possessed
+considerable influence over Elsie. She liked to talk with him in
+corners, or in secluded nooks of the forest, when we all went out
+blackberry gathering or picnicking. She read books that he gave
+her, and whenever a discussion arose relative to any topic higher
+than those ordinary ones we usually canvassed, Elsie appealed to
+Brake for his opinion, as a disciple consulting a beloved master.
+I confess that for a time I feared this man as a rival. A little
+closer observation, however, convinced me that my suspicions were
+unfounded. The relations between Elsie and Hammond Brake were
+purely intellectual. She reverenced his talents and acquirements,
+but she did not love him. His influence over her, nevertheless,
+was none the less decided.
+
+In time--as I thought all along--Elsie yielded. I was what was
+considered a most eligible match, being tolerably rich, and Elsie's
+parents were most anxious to have me for a son-in-law. I was good-
+looking and well educated enough, and the old people, I believe,
+pertinaciously dinned all my advantages into my little girl's ears.
+She battled against the marriage for a long time with a strange
+persistence--all the more strange because she never alleged the
+slightest personal dislike to me; but after a vigorous cannonading
+from her own garrison (in which, I am proud to say, I did not in
+any way join), she hoisted the white flag and surrendered.
+
+I was very happy. I had no fear about being able to gain Elsie's
+heart. I think--indeed I know--that she had liked me all along,
+and that her refusals were dictated by other feelings than those of
+a personal nature. I only guessed as much then. It was some time
+before I knew all.
+
+As the day approached for our wedding Elsie did not appear at all
+stricken with woe. The village gossips had not the smallest
+opportunity for establishing a romance, with a compulsory bride for
+the heroine. Yet to me it seemed as if there was something strange
+about her. A vague terror appeared to beset her. Even in her most
+loving moments, when resting in my arms, she would shrink away from
+me, and shudder as if some cold wind had suddenly struck upon her.
+That it was caused by no aversion to me was evident, for she would
+the moment after, as if to make amends, give me one of those
+voluntary kisses that are sweeter than all others.
+
+Once only did she show any emotion. When the solemn question was
+put to her, the answer to which was to decide her destiny, I felt
+her hand--which was in mine--tremble. As she gasped out a
+convulsive "Yes," she gave one brief, imploring glance at the
+gallery on the right. I placed the ring upon her finger, and
+looked in the direction in which she gazed. Hammond Brake's dark
+countenance was visible looking over the railings, and his eyes
+were bent sternly on Elsie. I turned quickly round to my bride,
+but her brief emotion, of whatever nature, had vanished. She was
+looking at me anxiously, and smiling--somewhat sadly--through her
+maiden's tears.
+
+The months went by quickly, and we were very happy. I learned that
+Elsie really loved me, and of my love for her she had proof long
+ago. I will not say that there was no cloud upon our little
+horizon. There was one, but it was so small, and appeared so
+seldom, that I scarcely feared it. The old vague terror seemed
+still to attack my wife. If I did not know her to be pure as
+heaven's snow, I would have said it was a REMORSE. At times she
+scarcely appeared to hear what I said, so deep would be her
+reverie. Nor did those moods seem pleasant ones. When rapt in
+such, her sweet features would contract, as if in a hopeless effort
+to solve some mysterious problem. A sad pain, as it were, quivered
+in her white, drooped eyelids. One thing I particularly remarked:
+SHE SPENT HOURS AT A TIME GAZING AT THE WEST. There was a small
+room in our house whose windows, every evening, flamed with the red
+light of the setting sun. Here Elsie would sit and gaze westward,
+so motionless and entranced that it seemed as if her soul was going
+down with the day. Her conduct to me was curiously varied. She
+apparently loved me very much, yet there were times when she
+absolutely avoided me. I have seen her strolling through the
+fields, and left the house with the intention of joining her, but
+the moment she caught sight of me approaching she has fled into the
+neighboring copse, with so evident a wish to avoid me that it would
+have been absolutely cruel to follow.
+
+Once or twice the old jealousy of Hammond Brake crossed my mind,
+but I was obliged to dismiss it as a frivolous suspicion. Nothing
+in my wife's conduct justified any such theory. Brake visited us
+once or twice a week--in fact, when I returned from my business in
+the village, I used to find him seated in the parlor with Elsie,
+reading some favorite author, or conversing on some novel literary
+topic; but there was no disposition to avoid my scrutiny. Brake
+seemed to come as a matter of right; and the perfect
+unconsciousness of furnishing any grounds for suspicion with which
+he acted was a sufficient answer to my mind for any wild doubts
+that my heart may have suggested.
+
+Still I could not but remark that Brake's visits were in some
+manner connected with Elsie's melancholy. On the days when he had
+appeared and departed, the gloom seemed to hang more thickly than
+ever over her head. She sat, on such occasions, all the evening at
+the western window, silently gazing at the cleft in the hills
+through which the sun passed to his repose.
+
+At last I made up my mind to speak to her. It seemed to me to be
+my duty, if she had a sorrow, to partake of it. I approached her
+on the matter with the most perfect confidence that I had nothing
+to learn beyond the existence of some girlish grief, which a
+confession and a few loving kisses would exorcise forever.
+
+"Elsie," I said to her one night, as she sat, according to her
+custom, gazing westward, like those maidens of the old ballads of
+chivalry watching for the knights that never came--"Elsie, what is
+the matter with you, darling? I have noticed a strange melancholy
+in you for some time past. Tell me all about it."
+
+She turned quickly round and gazed at me with eyes wide open and
+face filled with a sudden fear. "Why do you ask me that, Mark?"
+she answered. "I have nothing to tell."
+
+From the strange, startled manner in which this reply was given, I
+felt convinced that she had something to tell, and instantly formed
+a determination to discover what it was. A pang shot through my
+heart as I thought that the woman whom I held dearer than anything
+on earth hesitated to trust me with a petty secret.
+
+I believed I understood. I was tolerably rich. I knew it could
+not be any secret over milliners' bills or women's usual money
+troubles. God help me! I felt sad enough at the moment, though I
+kissed her back and ceased to question her. I felt sad, because my
+instinct told me that she deceived me; and it is very hard to be
+deceived, even in trifles, by those we love. I left her sitting at
+her favorite window, and walked out into the fields. I wanted to
+think.
+
+I remained out until I saw lights in the parlor shining through the
+dusky evening; then I returned slowly. As I passed the windows--
+which were near the ground, our house being cottage-built--I looked
+in. Hammond Brake was sitting with my wife. She was sitting in a
+rocking chair opposite to him, holding a small volume open on her
+lap. Brake was talking to her very earnestly, and she was
+listening to him with an expression I had never before seen on her
+countenance. Awe, fear, and admiration were all blent together in
+those dilating eyes. She seemed absorbed, body and soul, in what
+this man said. I shuddered at the sight. A vague terror seized
+upon me; I hastened into the house. As I entered the room rather
+suddenly, my wife started and hastily concealed the little volume
+that lay on her lap in one of her wide pockets. As she did so, a
+loose leaf escaped from the volume and slowly fluttered to the
+floor unobserved by either her or her companion. But I had my eye
+upon it. I felt that it was a clew.
+
+"What new novel or philosophical wonder have you both been poring
+over?" I asked quite gayly, stealthily watching at the same time
+the telltale embarrassment under which Elsie was laboring.
+
+Brake, who was not in the least discomposed, replied. "That," said
+he, "is a secret which must be kept from you. It is an advance
+copy, and is not to be shown to anyone except your wife."
+
+"Ha!" cried I, "I know what it is. It is your volume of poems that
+Ticknor is publishing. Well, I can wait until it is regularly for
+sale."
+
+I knew that Brake had a volume in the hands of the publishing house
+I mentioned, with a vague promise of publication some time in the
+present century. Hammond smiled significantly, but did not reply.
+He evidently wished to cultivate this supposed impression of mine.
+Elsie looked relieved, and heaved a deep sigh. I felt more than
+ever convinced that a secret was beneath all this. So I drew my
+chair over the fallen leaf that lay unnoticed on the carpet, and
+talked and laughed with Hammond Brake gayly, as if nothing was on
+my mind, while all the time a great load of suspicion lay heavily
+at my heart.
+
+At length Hammond Brake rose to go. I wished him good night, but
+did not offer to accompany him to the door. My wife supplied this
+omitted courtesy, as I had expected. The moment I was alone I
+picked up the book leaf from the floor. It was NOT the leaf of a
+volume of poems. Beyond that, however, I learned nothing. It
+contained a string of paragraphs printed in the biblical fashion,
+and the language was biblical in style. It seemed to be a portion
+of some religious book. Was it possible that my wife was being
+converted to the Romish faith? Yes, that was it. Brake was a
+Jesuit in disguise--I had heard of such things--and had stolen into
+the bosom of my family to plant there his destructive errors.
+There could be no longer any doubt of it. This was some portion of
+a Romish book--some infamous Popish publication. Fool that I was
+not to see it all before! But there was yet time. I would forbid
+him the house.
+
+I had just formed this resolution when my wife entered. I put the
+strange leaf in my pocket and took my hat.
+
+"Why, you are not going out, surely?" cried Elsie, surprised.
+
+"I have a headache," I answered. "I will take a short walk."
+
+Elsie looked at me with a peculiar air of distrust. Her woman's
+instinct told her that there was something wrong. Before she could
+question me, however, I had left the room and was walking rapidly
+on Hammond Brake's track.
+
+He heard the footsteps, and I saw his figure, black against the
+sky, stop and peer back through the dusk to see who was following
+him.
+
+"It is I, Brake," I called out. "Stop; I wish to speak with you."
+
+He stopped, and in a minute or so we were walking side by side
+along the road. My fingers itched at that moment to be on his
+throat. I commenced the conversation.
+
+"Brake," I said, "I'm a very plain sort of man, and I never say
+anything without good reason. What I came after you to tell you
+is, that I don't wish you to come to my house any more, or to speak
+with Elsie any farther than the ordinary salutations go. It's no
+joke. I'm quite in earnest."
+
+Brake started, and, stopping short, faced me suddenly in the road.
+"What have I done?" he asked. "You surely are too sensible a man
+to be jealous, Dayton."
+
+"Oh," I answered scornfully, "not jealous in the ordinary sense of
+the word, a bit. But I don't think your company good company for
+my wife, Brake. If you WILL have it out of me, I suspect you of
+being a Roman Catholic, and of trying to convert my wife."
+
+A smile shot across his face, and I saw his sharp white teeth gleam
+for an instant in the dusk.
+
+"Well, what if I am a Papist?" he said, with a strange tone of
+triumph in his voice. "The faith is not criminal. Besides, what
+proof have you that I was attempting to proselyte your wife?"
+
+"This," said I, pulling the leaf from my pocket--"this leaf from
+one of those devilish Papist books you and she were reading this
+evening. I picked it up from the floor. Proof enough, I think!"
+
+In an instant Brake had snatched the leaf from my hand and torn it
+into atoms.
+
+"You shall be obeyed," he said. "I will not speak with Elsie as
+long as she is your wife. Good night. You think I'm a Papist,
+then, Dayton? You're a clever fellow!"
+
+And with rather a sneering chuckle he marched on along the road and
+vanished into the darkness.
+
+
+II
+
+THE SECRET DISCOVERED
+
+
+Brake came no more. I said nothing to Elsie about his prohibition,
+and his name was never mentioned. It seemed strange to me that she
+should not speak of his absence, and I was very much puzzled by her
+silence. Her moodiness seemed to have increased, and, what was
+most remarkable, in proportion as she grew more and more reserved,
+the intenser were the bursts of affection which she exhibited for
+me. She would strain me to her bosom and kiss me, as if she and I
+were about to be parted forever. Then for hours she would remain
+sitting at her window, silently gazing, with that terrible, wistful
+gaze of hers, at the west.
+
+I will confess to having watched my wife at this time. I could not
+help it. That some mystery hung about her I felt convinced. I
+must fathom it or die. Her honor I never for a moment doubted; yet
+there seemed to weigh continually upon me the prophecy of some
+awful domestic calamity. This time the prophecy was not in vain.
+
+About three weeks after I had forbidden Brake my house, I was
+strolling over my farm in the evening apparently inspecting my
+agriculture, but in reality speculating on that topic which
+latterly was ever present to me.
+
+There was a little knoll covered with evergreen oaks at the end of
+the lawn. It was a picturesque spot, for on one side the bank went
+off into a sheer precipice of about eighty feet in depth, at the
+bottom of which a pretty pool lay, that in the summer time was
+fringed with white water-lilies. I had thought of building a
+summer-house in this spot, and now my steps mechanically directed
+themselves toward the place. As I approached I heard voices. I
+stopped and listened eagerly. A few seconds enabled me to
+ascertain that Hammond Brake and my wife were in the copse talking
+together. She still followed him, then; and he, scoundrel that he
+was, had broken his promise. A fury seemed to fill my veins as I
+made this discovery. I felt the impulse strong upon me to rush
+into the grove, and then and there strangle the villain who was
+poisoning my peace. But with a powerful effort I restrained
+myself. It was necessary that I should overhear what was said. I
+threw myself flat on the grass, and so glided silently into the
+copse until I was completely within earshot. This was what I
+heard.
+
+My wife was sobbing. "So soon--so soon? I--Hammond, give me a
+little time!"
+
+"I cannot, Elsie. My chief orders me to join him. You must
+prepare to accompany me."
+
+"No, no!" murmured Elsie. "He loves me so! And I love him. Our
+child, too--how can I rob him of our unborn babe?"
+
+"Another sheep for our flock," answered Brake solemnly. "Elsie, do
+you forget your oath? Are you one of us, or are you a common
+hypocrite, who will be of us until the hour of self-sacrifice, and
+then fly like a coward? Elsie, you must leave to-night."
+
+"Ah! my husband, my husband!" sobbed the unhappy woman.
+
+"You have no husband, woman," cried Brake harshly. "I promised
+Dayton not to speak to you as long as you were his wife, but the
+vow was annulled before it was made. Your husband in God yet
+awaits you. You will yet be blessed with the true spouse."
+
+"I feel as if I were going to die," cried Elsie. "How can I ever
+forsake him--he who was so good to me?"
+
+"Nonsense! no weakness. He is not worthy of you. Go home and
+prepare for your journey. You know where to meet me. I will have
+everything ready, and by daybreak there shall be no trace of us
+left. Beware of permitting your husband to suspect anything. He
+is not very shrewd at such things--he thought I was a Jesuit in
+disguise--but we had better be careful. Now go. You have been too
+long here already. Bless you, sister."
+
+A few faint sobs, a rustling of leaves, and I knew that Brake was
+alone. I rose, and stepped silently into the open space in which
+he stood. His back was toward me. His arms were lifted high over
+his head with an exultant gesture, and I could see his profile, as
+it slightly turned toward me, illuminated with a smile of scornful
+triumph. I put my hand suddenly on his throat from behind, and
+flung him on the ground before he could utter a cry.
+
+"Not a word," I said, unclasping a short-bladed knife which I
+carried; "answer my questions, or, by heaven, I will cut your
+throat from ear to ear!"
+
+He looked up into my face with an unflinching eye, and set his lips
+as if resolved to suffer all.
+
+"What are you? Who are you? What object have you in the seduction
+of my wife?"
+
+He smiled, but was silent.
+
+"Ah! you won't answer. We'll see."
+
+I pressed the knife slowly against his throat. His face contracted
+spasmodically, but although a thin red thread of blood sprang out
+along the edge of the blade, Brake remained mute. An idea suddenly
+seized me. This sort of death had no terrors for him. I would try
+another. There was the precipice. I was twice as powerful as he
+was, so I seized him in my arms, and in a moment transported him to
+the margin of the steep, smooth cliff, the edge of which was
+garnished with the tough stems of the wild vine. He seemed to feel
+it was useless to struggle with me, so allowed me passively to roll
+him over the edge. When he was suspended in the air, I gave him a
+vine stem to cling to and let him go. He swung at a height of
+eighty feet, with face upturned and pale. He dared not look down.
+I seated myself on the edge of the cliff, and with my knife began
+to cut into the thick vine a foot or two above the place of his
+grasp. I was correct in my calculation. This terror was too much
+for him. As he saw the notch in the vine getting deeper and
+deeper, his determination gave way.
+
+"I'll answer you," he gasped out, gazing at me with starting
+eyeballs; "what do you ask?"
+
+"What are you?" was my question, as I ceased cutting at the stem.
+
+"A Mormon," was the answer, uttered with a groan. "Take me up. My
+hands are slipping. Quick!"
+
+"And you wanted my wife to follow you to that infernal Salt Lake,
+City, I suppose?"
+
+"For God's sake, release me! I'll quit the place, never to come
+back. Do help me up, Dayton--I'm falling!"
+
+I felt mightily inclined to let the villain drop; but it did not
+suit my purpose to be hung for murder, so I swung him back again on
+the sward, where he fell panting and exhausted.
+
+"Will you quit the place to-night?" I said. "You'd better. By
+heaven, if you don't, I'll tell all the men in the village, and
+we'll lynch you, as sure as your name is Brake."
+
+"I'll go--I'll go," he groaned. "I swear never to trouble you
+again."
+
+"You ought to be hanged, you villain. Be off!"
+
+He slunk away through the trees like a beaten dog; and I went home
+in a state bordering on despair. I found Elsie crying. She was
+sitting by the window as of old. I knew now why she gazed so
+constantly at the west. It was her Mecca. Something in my face, I
+suppose, told her that I was laboring under great excitement. She
+rose startled as soon as I entered the room.
+
+"Elsie," said I, "I am come to take you home."
+
+"Home? Why, I AM at home, am I not? What do you mean?"
+
+"No. This is no longer your home. You have deceived me. You are
+a Mormon. I know all. You have become a convert to that apostle
+of hell, Brigham Young, and you cannot live with me. I love you
+still, Elsie, dearly; but--you must go and live with your father."
+
+
+
+Nathaniel Hawthorne
+
+The Minister's Black Veil
+
+
+A PARABLE[1]
+
+
+[1] Another clergyman in New England, Mr. Joseph Moody, of York,
+Maine, made himself remarkable by the same eccentricity that is
+here related of the Reverend Mr. Hooper. In his case, however,
+the symbol had a different import. In early life he had
+accidentally killed a beloved friend, and from that day till
+the hour of his own death, he hid his face from men.
+
+
+The sexton stood in the porch of Milford meeting-house, pulling
+busily at the bell-rope. The old people of the village came
+stooping along the street. Children, with bright faces, tripped
+merrily beside their parents, or mimicked a graver gait, in the
+conscious dignity of their Sunday clothes. Spruce bachelors
+looked sidelong at the pretty maidens, and fancied that the
+Sabbath sunshine made them prettier than on week days. When the
+throng had mostly streamed into the porch, the sexton began to
+toll the bell, keeping his eye on the Reverend Mr. Hooper's door.
+The first glimpse of the clergyman's figure was the signal for
+the bell to cease its summons.
+
+"But what has good Parson Hooper got upon his face?" cried the
+sexton in astonishment.
+
+All within hearing immediately turned about, and beheld the
+semblance of Mr. Hooper, pacing slowly his meditative way towards
+the meetinghouse. With one accord they started, expressing more
+wonder than if some strange minister were coming to dust the
+cushions of Mr. Hooper's pulpit.
+
+"Are you sure it is our parson?" inquired Goodman Gray of the
+sexton.
+
+"Of a certainty it is good Mr. Hooper," replied the sexton. "He
+was to have exchanged pulpits with Parson Shute, of Westbury; but
+Parson Shute sent to excuse himself yesterday, being to preach a
+funeral sermon."
+
+The cause of so much amazement may appear sufficiently slight.
+Mr. Hooper, a gentlemanly person, of about thirty, though still a
+bachelor, was dressed with due clerical neatness, as if a careful
+wife had starched his band, and brushed the weekly dust from his
+Sunday's garb. There was but one thing remarkable in his
+appearance. Swathed about his forehead, and hanging down over his
+face, so low as to be shaken by his breath, Mr. Hooper had on a
+black veil. On a nearer view it seemed to consist of two folds of
+crape, which entirely concealed his features, except the mouth
+and chin, but probably did not intercept his sight, further than
+to give a darkened aspect to all living and inanimate things.
+With this gloomy shade before him, good Mr. Hooper walked onward,
+at a slow and quiet pace, stooping somewhat, and looking on the
+ground, as is customary with abstracted men, yet nodding kindly to
+those of his parishioners who still waited on the meeting-house
+steps. But so wonder-struck were they that his greeting hardly
+met with a return.
+
+"I can't really feel as if good Mr. Hooper's face was behind that
+piece of crape," said the sexton.
+
+"I don't like it," muttered an old woman, as she hobbled into the
+meeting-house. "He has changed himself into something awful, only
+by hiding his face."
+
+"Our parson has gone mad!" cried Goodman Gray, following him
+across the threshold.
+
+A rumor of some unaccountable phenomenon had preceded Mr. Hooper
+into the meeting-house, and set all the congregation astir. Few
+could refrain from twisting their heads towards the door; many
+stood upright, and turned directly about; while several little
+boys clambered upon the seats, and came down again with a
+terrible racket. There was a general bustle, a rustling of the
+women's gowns and shuffling of the men's feet, greatly at
+variance with that hushed repose which should attend the entrance
+of the minister. But Mr. Hooper appeared not to notice the
+perturbation of his people. He entered with an almost noiseless
+step, bent his head mildly to the pews on each side, and bowed as
+he passed his oldest parishioner, a white-haired great grandsire,
+who occupied an arm-chair in the centre of the aisle. It was
+strange to observe how slowly this venerable man became conscious
+of something singular in the appearance of his pastor. He seemed
+not fully to partake of the prevailing wonder, till Mr. Hooper
+had ascended the stairs, and showed himself in the pulpit, face
+to face with his congregation, except for the black veil. That
+mysterious emblem was never once withdrawn. It shook with his
+measured breath, as he gave out the psalm; it threw its obscurity
+between him and the holy page, as he read the Scriptures; and
+while he prayed, the veil lay heavily on his uplifted
+countenance. Did he seek to hide it from the dread Being whom he
+was addressing?
+
+Such was the effect of this simple piece of crape, that more
+than one woman of delicate nerves was forced to leave the
+meeting-house. Yet perhaps the pale-faced congregation was almost
+as fearful a sight to the minister, as his black veil to them.
+
+Mr. Hooper had the reputation of a good preacher, but not an
+energetic one: he strove to win his people heavenward by mild,
+persuasive influences, rather than to drive them thither by the
+thunders of the Word. The sermon which he now delivered was
+marked by the same characteristics of style and manner as the
+general series of his pulpit oratory. But there was something,
+either in the sentiment of the discourse itself, or in the
+imagination of the auditors, which made it greatly the most
+powerful effort that they had ever heard from their pastor's
+lips. It was tinged, rather more darkly than usual, with the
+gentle gloom of Mr. Hooper's temperament. The subject had
+reference to secret sin, and those sad mysteries which we hide
+from our nearest and dearest, and would fain conceal from our own
+consciousness, even forgetting that the Omniscient can detect
+them. A subtle power was breathed into his words. Each member of
+the congregation, the most innocent girl, and the man of hardened
+breast, felt as if the preacher had crept upon them, behind his
+awful veil, and discovered their hoarded iniquity of deed or
+thought. Many spread their clasped hands on their bosoms. There
+was nothing terrible in what Mr. Hooper said, at least, no
+violence; and yet, with every tremor of his melancholy voice, the
+hearers quaked. An unsought pathos came hand in hand with awe. So
+sensible were the audience of some unwonted attribute in their
+minister, that they longed for a breath of wind to blow aside the
+veil, almost believing that a stranger's visage would be
+discovered, though the form, gesture, and voice were those of Mr.
+Hooper.
+
+At the close of the services, the people hurried out with
+indecorous confusion, eager to communicate their pent-up
+amazement, and conscious of lighter spirits the moment they lost
+sight of the black veil. Some gathered in little circles, huddled
+closely together, with their mouths all whispering in the centre;
+some went homeward alone, wrapt in silent meditation; some talked
+loudly, and profaned the Sabbath day with ostentatious laughter.
+A few shook their sagacious heads, intimating that they could
+penetrate the mystery; while one or two affirmed that there was
+no mystery at all, but only that Mr. Hooper's eyes were so
+weakened by the midnight lamp, as to require a shade. After a
+brief interval, forth came good Mr. Hooper also, in the rear of
+his flock. Turning his veiled face from one group to another, he
+paid due reverence to the hoary heads, saluted the middle aged
+with kind dignity as their friend and spiritual guide, greeted
+the young with mingled authority and love, and laid his hands on
+the little children's heads to bless them. Such was always his
+custom on the Sabbath day. Strange and bewildered looks repaid
+him for his courtesy. None, as on former occasions, aspired to
+the honor of walking by their pastor's side. Old Squire Saunders,
+doubtless by an accidental lapse of memory, neglected to invite
+Mr. Hooper to his table, where the good clergyman had been wont
+to bless the food, almost every Sunday since his settlement. He
+returned, therefore, to the parsonage, and, at the moment of
+closing the door, was observed to look back upon the people, all
+of whom had their eyes fixed upon the minister. A sad smile
+gleamed faintly from beneath the black veil, and flickered about
+his mouth, glimmering as he disappeared.
+
+"How strange," said a lady, "that a simple black veil, such as
+any woman might wear on her bonnet, should become such a terrible
+thing on Mr. Hooper's face!"
+
+"Something must surely be amiss with Mr. Hooper's intellects,"
+observed her husband, the physician of the village. "But the
+strangest part of the affair is the effect of this vagary, even
+on a sober-minded man like myself. The black veil, though it
+covers only our pastor's face, throws its influence over his
+whole person, and makes him ghostlike from head to foot. Do you
+not feel it so?"
+
+"Truly do I," replied the lady; "and I would not be alone with
+him for the world. I wonder he is not afraid to be alone with
+himself!"
+
+"Men sometimes are so," said her husband.
+
+The afternoon service was attended with similar circumstances. At
+its conclusion, the bell tolled for the funeral of a young lady.
+The relatives and friends were assembled in the house, and the
+more distant acquaintances stood about the door, speaking of the
+good qualities of the deceased, when their talk was interrupted
+by the appearance of Mr. Hooper, still covered with his black
+veil. It was now an appropriate emblem. The clergyman stepped
+into the room where the corpse was laid, and bent over the
+coffin, to take a last farewell of his deceased parishioner. As
+he stooped, the veil hung straight down from his forehead, so
+that, if her eyelids had not been closed forever, the dead maiden
+might have seen his face. Could Mr. Hooper be fearful of her
+glance, that he so hastily caught back the black veil? A person
+who watched the interview between the dead and living, scrupled
+not to affirm, that, at the instant when the clergyman's features
+were disclosed, the corpse had slightly shuddered, rustling the
+shroud and muslin cap, though the countenance retained the
+composure of death. A superstitious old woman was the only
+witness of this prodigy. From the coffin Mr. Hooper passed into
+the chamber of the mourners, and thence to the head of the
+staircase, to make the funeral prayer. It was a tender and
+heart-dissolving prayer, full of sorrow, yet so imbued with
+celestial hopes, that the music of a heavenly harp, swept by the
+fingers of the dead, seemed faintly to be heard among the saddest
+accents of the minister. The people trembled, though they but
+darkly understood him when he prayed that they, and himself, and
+all of mortal race, might be ready, as he trusted this young
+maiden had been, for the dreadful hour that should snatch the
+veil from their faces. The bearers went heavily forth, and the
+mourners followed, saddening all the street, with the dead before
+them, and Mr. Hooper in his black veil behind.
+
+"Why do you look back?" said one in the procession to his
+partner.
+
+"I had a fancy," replied she, "that the minister and the maiden's
+spirit were walking hand in hand."
+
+"And so had I, at the same moment," said the other.
+
+That night, the handsomest couple in Milford village were to be
+joined in wedlock. Though reckoned a melancholy man, Mr. Hooper
+had a placid cheerfulness for such occasions, which often excited
+a sympathetic smile where livelier merriment would have been
+thrown away. There was no quality of his disposition which made
+him more beloved than this. The company at the wedding awaited
+his arrival with impatience, trusting that the strange awe, which
+had gathered over him throughout the day, would now be dispelled.
+But such was not the result. When Mr. Hooper came, the first
+thing that their eyes rested on was the same horrible black veil,
+which had added deeper gloom to the funeral, and could portend
+nothing but evil to the wedding. Such was its immediate effect on
+the guests that a cloud seemed to have rolled duskily from
+beneath the black crape, and dimmed the light of the candles. The
+bridal pair stood up before the minister. But the bride's cold
+fingers quivered in the tremulous hand of the bridegroom, and her
+deathlike paleness caused a whisper that the maiden who had been
+buried a few hours before was come from her grave to be married.
+If ever another wedding were so dismal, it was that famous one
+where they tolled the wedding knell. After performing the
+ceremony, Mr. Hooper raised a glass of wine to his lips, wishing
+happiness to the new-married couple in a strain of mild pleasantry
+that ought to have brightened the features of the guests, like a
+cheerful gleam from the hearth. At that instant, catching a
+glimpse of his figure in the looking-glass, the black veil
+involved his own spirit in the horror with which it overwhelmed
+all others. His frame shuddered, his lips grew white, he spilt
+the untasted wine upon the carpet, and rushed forth into the
+darkness. For the Earth, too, had on her Black Veil.
+
+The next day, the whole village of Milford talked of little else
+than Parson Hooper's black veil. That, and the mystery concealed
+behind it, supplied a topic for discussion between acquaintances
+meeting in the street, and good women gossiping at their open
+windows. It was the first item of news that the tavern-keeper
+told to his guests. The children babbled of it on their way to
+school. One imitative little imp covered his face with an old
+black handkerchief, thereby so affrighting his playmates that the
+panic seized himself, and he well-nigh lost his wits by his own
+waggery.
+
+It was remarkable that all of the busybodies and impertinent
+people in the parish, not one ventured to put the plain question
+to Mr. Hooper, wherefore he did this thing. Hitherto, whenever
+there appeared the slightest call for such interference, he had
+never lacked advisers, nor shown himself averse to be guided by
+their judgment. If he erred at all, it was by so painful a degree
+of self-distrust, that even the mildest censure would lead him to
+consider an indifferent action as a crime. Yet, though so well
+acquainted with this amiable weakness, no individual among his
+parishioners chose to make the black veil a subject of friendly
+remonstrance. There was a feeling of dread, neither plainly
+confessed nor carefully concealed, which caused each to shift the
+responsibility upon another, till at length it was found
+expedient to send a deputation of the church, in order to deal
+with Mr. Hooper about the mystery, before it should grow into a
+scandal. Never did an embassy so ill discharge its duties. The
+minister received then with friendly courtesy, but became silent,
+after they were seated, leaving to his visitors the whole burden
+of introducing their important business. The topic, it might be
+supposed, was obvious enough. There was the black veil swathed
+round Mr. Hooper's forehead, and concealing every feature above
+his placid mouth, on which, at times, they could perceive the
+glimmering of a melancholy smile. But that piece of crape, to
+their imagination, seemed to hang down before his heart, the
+symbol of a fearful secret between him and them. Were the veil
+but cast aside, they might speak freely of it, but not till then.
+Thus they sat a considerable time, speechless, confused, and
+shrinking uneasily from Mr. Hooper's eye, which they felt to be
+fixed upon them with an invisible glance. Finally, the deputies
+returned abashed to their constituents, pronouncing the matter
+too weighty to be handled, except by a council of the churches,
+if, indeed, it might not require a general synod.
+
+But there was one person in the village unappalled by the awe
+with which the black veil had impressed all beside herself. When
+the deputies returned without an explanation, or even venturing
+to demand one, she, with the calm energy of her character,
+determined to chase away the strange cloud that appeared to be
+settling round Mr. Hooper, every moment more darkly than before.
+As his plighted wife, it should be her privilege to know what the
+black veil concealed. At the minister's first visit, therefore,
+she entered upon the subject with a direct simplicity, which made
+the task easier both for him and her. After he had seated
+himself, she fixed her eyes steadfastly upon the veil, but could
+discern nothing of the dreadful gloom that had so overawed the
+multitude: it was but a double fold of crape, hanging down from
+his forehead to his mouth, and slightly stirring with his breath.
+
+"No," said she aloud, and smiling, "there is nothing terrible in
+this piece of crape, except that it hides a face which I am
+always glad to look upon. Come, good sir, let the sun shine from
+behind the cloud. First lay aside your black veil: then tell me
+why you put it on."
+
+Mr. Hooper's smile glimmered faintly.
+
+"There is an hour to come," said he, "when all of us shall cast
+aside our veils. Take it not amiss, beloved friend, if I wear
+this piece of crape till then."
+
+"Your words are a mystery, too," returned the young lady. "Take
+away the veil from them, at least."
+
+"Elizabeth, I will," said he, "so far as my vow may suffer me.
+Know, then, this veil is a type and a symbol, and I am bound to
+wear it ever, both in light and darkness, in solitude and before
+the gaze of multitudes, and as with strangers, so with my
+familiar friends. No mortal eye will see it withdrawn. This
+dismal shade must separate me from the world: even you,
+Elizabeth, can never come behind it!"
+
+"What grievous affliction hath befallen you," she earnestly
+inquired, "that you should thus darken your eyes forever?"
+
+"If it be a sign of mourning," replied Mr. Hooper, "I, perhaps,
+like most other mortals, have sorrows dark enough to be typified
+by a black veil."
+
+"But what if the world will not believe that it is the type of an
+innocent sorrow?" urged Elizabeth. "Beloved and respected as you
+are, there may be whispers that you hide your face under the
+consciousness of secret sin. For the sake of your holy office, do
+away this scandal!"
+
+The color rose into her cheeks as she intimated the nature of the
+rumors that were already abroad in the village. But Mr. Hooper's
+mildness did not forsake him. He even smiled again--that same sad
+smile, which always appeared like a faint glimmering of light,
+proceeding from the obscurity beneath the veil.
+
+"If I hide my face for sorrow, there is cause enough," he merely
+replied; "and if I cover it for secret sin, what mortal might not
+do the same?"
+
+And with this gentle, but unconquerable obstinacy did he resist
+all her entreaties. At length Elizabeth sat silent. For a few
+moments she appeared lost in thought, considering, probably, what
+new methods might be tried to withdraw her lover from so dark a
+fantasy, which, if it had no other meaning, was perhaps a symptom
+of mental disease. Though of a firmer character than his own, the
+tears rolled down her cheeks. But, in an instant, as it were, a
+new feeling took the place of sorrow: her eyes were fixed
+insensibly on the black veil, when, like a sudden twilight in the
+air, its terrors fell around her. She arose, and stood trembling
+before him.
+
+"And do you feel it then, at last?" said he mournfully.
+
+She made no reply, but covered her eyes with her hand, and turned
+to leave the room. He rushed forward and caught her arm.
+
+"Have patience with me, Elizabeth!" cried he, passionately. "Do
+not desert me, though this veil must be between us here on earth.
+Be mine, and hereafter there shall be no veil over my face, no
+darkness between our souls! It is but a mortal veil--it is not
+for eternity! O! you know not how lonely I am, and how
+frightened, to be alone behind my black veil. Do not leave me in
+this miserable obscurity forever!"
+
+"Lift the veil but once, and look me in the face," said she.
+
+"Never! It cannot be!" replied Mr. Hooper.
+
+"Then farewell!" said Elizabeth.
+
+She withdrew her arm from his grasp, and slowly departed, pausing
+at the door, to give one long shuddering gaze, that seemed almost
+to penetrate the mystery of the black veil. But, even amid his
+grief, Mr. Hooper smiled to think that only a material emblem had
+separated him from happiness, though the horrors, which it
+shadowed forth, must be drawn darkly between the fondest of
+lovers.
+
+From that time no attempts were made to remove Mr. Hooper's black
+veil, or, by a direct appeal, to discover the secret which it was
+supposed to hide. By persons who claimed a superiority to popular
+prejudice, it was reckoned merely an eccentric whim, such as
+often mingles with the sober actions of men otherwise rational,
+and tinges them all with its own semblance of insanity. But with
+the multitude, good Mr. Hooper was irreparably a bugbear. He could
+not walk the street with any peace of mind, so conscious was he
+that the gentle and timid would turn aside to avoid him, and that
+others would make it a point of hardihood to throw themselves in
+his way. The impertinence of the latter class compelled him to
+give up his customary walk at sunset to the burial ground; for
+when he leaned pensively over the gate, there would always be
+faces behind the gravestones, peeping at his black veil. A fable
+went the rounds that the stare of the dead people drove him
+thence. It grieved him, to the very depth of his kind heart, to
+observe how the children fled from his approach, breaking up
+their merriest sports, while his melancholy figure was yet afar
+off. Their instinctive dread caused him to feel more strongly
+than aught else, that a preternatural horror was interwoven with
+the threads of the black crape. In truth, his own antipathy to
+the veil was known to be so great, that he never willingly passed
+before a mirror, nor stooped to drink at a still fountain, lest,
+in its peaceful bosom, he should be affrighted by himself. This
+was what gave plausibility to the whispers, that Mr. Hooper's
+conscience tortured him for some great crime too horrible to be
+entirely concealed, or otherwise than so obscurely intimated.
+Thus, from beneath the black veil, there rolled a cloud into the
+sunshine, an ambiguity of sin or sorrow, which enveloped the poor
+minister, so that love or sympathy could never reach him. It was
+said that ghost and fiend consorted with him there. With
+self-shudderings and outward terrors, he walked continually in
+its shadow, groping darkly within his own soul, or gazing through
+a medium that saddened the whole world. Even the lawless wind, it
+was believed, respected his dreadful secret, and never blew aside
+the veil. But still good Mr. Hooper sadly smiled at the pale
+visages of the worldly throng as he passed by.
+
+Among all its bad influences, the black veil had the one
+desirable effect, of making its wearer a very efficient
+clergyman. By the aid of his mysterious emblem--for there was no
+other apparent cause--he became a man of awful power over souls
+that were in agony for sin. His converts always regarded him with
+a dread peculiar to themselves, affirming, though but
+figuratively, that, before he brought them to celestial light,
+they had been with him behind the black veil. Its gloom, indeed,
+enabled him to sympathize with all dark affections. Dying sinners
+cried aloud for Mr. Hooper, and would not yield their breath till
+he appeared; though ever, as he stooped to whisper consolation,
+they shuddered at the veiled face so near their own. Such were
+the terrors of the black veil, even when Death had bared his
+visage! Strangers came long distances to attend service at his
+church, with the mere idle purpose of gazing at his figure,
+because it was forbidden them to behold his face. But many were
+made to quake ere they departed! Once, during Governor Belcher's
+administration, Mr. Hooper was appointed to preach the election
+sermon. Covered with his black veil, he stood before the chief
+magistrate, the council, and the representatives, and wrought so
+deep an impression, that the legislative measures of that year
+were characterized by all the gloom and piety of our earliest
+ancestral sway.
+
+In this manner Mr. Hooper spent a long life, irreproachable in
+outward act, yet shrouded in dismal suspicions; kind and loving,
+though unloved, and dimly feared; a man apart from men, shunned
+in their health and joy, but ever summoned to their aid in mortal
+anguish. As years wore on, shedding their snows above his sable
+veil, he acquired a name throughout the New England churches, and
+they called him Father Hooper. Nearly all his parishioners, who
+were of mature age when he was settled, had been borne away by
+many a funeral: he had one congregation in the church, and a more
+crowded one in the churchyard; and having wrought so late into
+the evening, and done his work so well, it was now good Father
+Hooper's turn to rest.
+
+Several persons were visible by the shaded candlelight, in the
+death chamber of the old clergyman. Natural connections he had
+none. But there was the decorously grave, though unmoved
+physician, seeking only to mitigate the last pangs of the patient
+whom he could not save. There were the deacons, and other
+eminently pious members of his church. There, also, was the
+Reverend Mr. Clark, of Westbury, a young and zealous divine, who
+had ridden in haste to pray by the bedside of the expiring
+minister. There was the nurse, no hired handmaiden of death, but
+one whose calm affection had endured thus long in secrecy, in
+solitude, amid the chill of age, and would not perish, even at
+the dying hour. Who, but Elizabeth! And there lay the hoary head
+of good Father Hooper upon the death pillow, with the black veil
+still swathed about his brow, and reaching down over his face, so
+that each more difficult gasp of his faint breath caused it to
+stir. All through life that piece of crape had hung between him
+and the world: it had separated him from cheerful brotherhood and
+woman's love, and kept him in that saddest of all prisons, his
+own heart; and still it lay upon his face, as if to deepen the
+gloom of his darksome chamber, and shade him from the sunshine of
+eternity.
+
+For some time previous, his mind had been confused, wavering
+doubtfully between the past and the present, and hovering
+forward, as it were, at intervals, into the indistinctness of the
+world to come. There had been feverish turns, which tossed him
+from side to side, and wore away what little strength he had. But
+in his most convulsive struggles, and in the wildest vagaries of
+his intellect, when no other thought retained its sober
+influence, he still showed an awful solicitude lest the black
+veil should slip aside. Even if his bewildered soul could have
+forgotten, there was a faithful woman at this pillow, who, with
+averted eyes, would have covered that aged face, which she had
+last beheld in the comeliness of manhood. At length the
+death-stricken old man lay quietly in the torpor of mental and
+bodily exhaustion, with an imperceptible pulse, and breath that
+grew fainter and fainter, except when a long, deep, and irregular
+inspiration seemed to prelude the flight of his spirit.
+
+The minister of Westbury approached the bedside.
+
+"Venerable Father Hooper," said he, "the moment of your release
+is at hand. Are you ready for the lifting of the veil that shuts
+in time from eternity?"
+
+Father Hooper at first replied merely by a feeble motion of his
+head; then, apprehensive, perhaps, that his meaning might be
+doubted, he exerted himself to speak.
+
+"Yea," said he, in faint accents, "my soul hath a patient
+weariness until that veil be lifted."
+
+"And is it fitting," resumed the Reverend Mr. Clark, "that a man
+so given to prayer, of such a blameless example, holy in deed and
+thought, so far as mortal judgment may pronounce; is it fitting
+that a father in the church should leave a shadow on his memory,
+that may seem to blacken a life so pure? I pray you, my venerable
+brother, let not this thing be! Suffer us to be gladdened by your
+triumphant aspect as you go to your reward. Before the veil of
+eternity be lifted, let me cast aside this black veil from your
+face!"
+
+And thus speaking, the Reverend Mr. Clark bent forward to reveal
+the mystery of so many years. But, exerting a sudden energy, that
+made all the beholders stand aghast, Father Hooper snatched both
+his hands from beneath the bedclothes, and pressed them strongly
+on the black veil, resolute to struggle, if the minister of
+Westbury would contend with a dying man.
+
+"Never!" cried the veiled clergyman. "On earth, never!"
+
+"Dark old man!" exclaimed the affrighted minister, "with what
+horrible crime upon your soul are you now passing to the
+judgment?"
+
+Father Hooper's breath heaved; it rattled in his throat; but,
+with a mighty effort, grasping forward with his hands, he caught
+hold of life, and held it back till he should speak. He even
+raised himself in bed; and there he sat, shivering with the arms
+of death around him, while the black veil hung down, awful, at
+that last moment, in the gathered terrors of a lifetime. And yet
+the faint, sad smile, so often there, now seemed to glimmer from
+its obscurity, and linger on Father Hooper's lips.
+
+"Why do you tremble at me alone?" cried he, turning his veiled
+face round the circle of pale spectators. "Tremble also at each
+other! Have men avoided me, and women shown no pity, and children
+screamed and fled, only for my black veil? What, but the mystery
+which it obscurely typifies, has made this piece of crape so
+awful? When the friend shows his inmost heart to his friend; the
+lover to his best beloved; when man does not vainly shrink from
+the eye of his Creator, loathsomely treasuring up the secret of
+his sin; then deem me a monster, for the symbol beneath which I
+have lived, and die! I look around me, and, lo! on every visage a
+Black Veil!"
+
+While his auditors shrank from one another, in mutual affright,
+Father Hooper fell back upon his pillow, a veiled corpse, with a
+faint smile lingering on the lips. Still veiled, they laid him in
+his coffin, and a veiled corpse they bore him to the grave. The
+grass of many years has sprung up and withered on that grave, the
+burial stone is moss-grown, and good Mr. Hooper's face is dust;
+but awful is still the thought that it mouldered beneath the
+Black Veil!
+
+
+
+Anonymous
+
+Horror: A True Tale
+
+
+I was but nineteen years of age when the incident occurred which
+has thrown a shadow over my life; and, ah me! how many and many a
+weary year has dragged by since then! Young, happy, and beloved I
+was in those long-departed days. They said that I was beautiful.
+The mirror now reflects a haggard old woman, with ashen lips and
+face of deadly pallor. But do not fancy that you are listening to
+a mere puling lament. It is not the flight of years that has
+brought me to be this wreck of my former self: had it been so I
+could have borne the loss cheerfully, patiently, as the common lot
+of all; but it was no natural progress of decay which has robbed me
+of bloom, of youth, of the hopes and joys that belong to youth,
+snapped the link that bound my heart to another's, and doomed me to
+a lone old age. I try to be patient, but my cross has been heavy,
+and my heart is empty and weary, and I long for the death that
+comes so slowly to those who pray to die.
+
+I will try and relate, exactly as it happened, the event which
+blighted my life. Though it occurred many years ago, there is no
+fear that I should have forgotten any of the minutest
+circumstances: they were stamped on my brain too clearly and
+burningly, like the brand of a red-hot iron. I see them written in
+the wrinkles of my brow, in the dead whiteness of my hair, which
+was a glossy brown once, and has known no gradual change from dark
+to gray, from gray to white, as with those happy ones who were the
+companions of my girlhood, and whose honored age is soothed by the
+love of children and grandchildren. But I must not envy them. I
+only meant to say that the difficulty of my task has no connection
+with want of memory--I remember but too well. But as I take my pen
+my hand trembles, my head swims, the old rushing faintness and
+Horror comes over me again, and the well-remembered fear is upon
+me. Yet I will go on.
+
+This, briefly, is my story: I was a great heiress, I believe,
+though I cared little for the fact; but so it was. My father had
+great possessions, and no son to inherit after him. His three
+daughters, of whom I was the youngest, were to share the broad
+acres among them. I have said, and truly, that I cared little for
+the circumstance; and, indeed, I was so rich then in health and
+youth and love that I felt myself quite indifferent to all else.
+The possession of all the treasures of earth could never have made
+up for what I then had--and lost, as I am about to relate. Of
+course, we girls knew that we were heiresses, but I do not think
+Lucy and Minnie were any the prouder or the happier on that
+account. I know I was not. Reginald did not court me for my
+money. Of THAT I felt assured. He proved it, Heaven be praised!
+when he shrank from my side after the change. Yes, in all my
+lonely age, I can still be thankful that he did not keep his word,
+as some would have done--did not clasp at the altar a hand he had
+learned to loathe and shudder at, because it was full of gold--much
+gold! At least he spared me that. And I know that I was loved,
+and the knowledge has kept me from going mad through many a weary
+day and restless night, when my hot eyeballs had not a tear to
+shed, and even to weep was a luxury denied me.
+
+Our house was an old Tudor mansion. My father was very particular
+in keeping the smallest peculiarities of his home unaltered. Thus
+the many peaks and gables, the numerous turrets, and the mullioned
+windows with their quaint lozenge panes set in lead, remained very
+nearly as they had been three centuries back. Over and above the
+quaint melancholy of our dwelling, with the deep woods of its park
+and the sullen waters of the mere, our neighborhood was thinly
+peopled and primitive, and the people round us were ignorant, and
+tenacious of ancient ideas and traditions. Thus it was a
+superstitious atmosphere that we children were reared in, and we
+heard, from our infancy, countless tales of horror, some mere
+fables doubtless, others legends of dark deeds of the olden time,
+exaggerated by credulity and the love of the marvelous. Our mother
+had died when we were young, and our other parent being, though a
+kind father, much absorbed in affairs of various kinds, as an
+active magistrate and landlord, there was no one to check the
+unwholesome stream of tradition with which our plastic minds were
+inundated in the company of nurses and servants. As years went on,
+however, the old ghostly tales partially lost their effects, and
+our undisciplined minds were turned more towards balls, dress, and
+partners, and other matters airy and trivial, more welcome to our
+riper age. It was at a county assembly that Reginald and I first
+met--met and loved. Yes, I am sure that he loved me with all his
+heart. It was not as deep a heart as some, I have thought in my
+grief and anger; but I never doubted its truth and honesty.
+Reginald's father and mine approved of our growing attachment; and
+as for myself, I know I was so happy then, that I look back upon
+those fleeting moments as on some delicious dream. I now come to
+the change. I have lingered on my childish reminiscences, my
+bright and happy youth, and now I must tell the rest--the blight
+and the sorrow.
+
+It was Christmas, always a joyful and a hospitable time in the
+country, especially in such an old hall as our home, where quaint
+customs and frolics were much clung to, as part and parcel of the
+very dwelling itself. The hall was full of guests--so full,
+indeed, that there was great difficulty in providing sleeping
+accommodation for all. Several narrow and dark chambers in the
+turrets--mere pigeon-holes, as we irreverently called what had been
+thought good enough for the stately gentlemen of Elizabeth's reign--
+were now allotted to bachelor visitors, after having been empty
+for a century. All the spare rooms in the body and wings of the
+hall were occupied, of course; and the servants who had been
+brought down were lodged at the farm and at the keeper's, so great
+was the demand for space. At last the unexpected arrival of an
+elderly relative, who had been asked months before, but scarcely
+expected, caused great commotion. My aunts went about wringing
+their hands distractedly. Lady Speldhurst was a personage of some
+consequence; she was a distant cousin, and had been for years on
+cool terms with us all, on account of some fancied affront or
+slight when she had paid her LAST visit, about the time of my
+christening. She was seventy years old; she was infirm, rich, and
+testy; moreover, she was my godmother, though I had forgotten the
+fact; but it seems that though I had formed no expectations of a
+legacy in my favor, my aunts had done so for me. Aunt Margaret was
+especially eloquent on the subject. "There isn't a room left," she
+said; "was ever anything so unfortunate! We cannot put Lady
+Speldhurst into the turrets, and yet where IS she to sleep? And
+Rosa's godmother, too! Poor, dear child, how dreadful! After all
+these years of estrangement, and with a hundred thousand in the
+funds, and no comfortable, warm room at her own unlimited disposal--
+and Christmas, of all times in the year!" What WAS to be done?
+My aunts could not resign their own chambers to Lady Speldhurst,
+because they had already given them up to some of the married
+guests. My father was the most hospitable of men, but he was
+rheumatic, gouty, and methodical. His sisters-in-law dared not
+propose to shift his quarters; and, indeed, he would have far
+sooner dined on prison fare than have been translated to a strange
+bed. The matter ended in my giving up my room. I had a strange
+reluctance to making the offer, which surprised myself. Was it a
+boding of evil to come? I cannot say. We are strangely and
+wonderfully made. It MAY have been. At any rate, I do not think
+it was any selfish unwillingness to make an old and infirm lady
+comfortable by a trifling sacrifice. I was perfectly healthy and
+strong. The weather was not cold for the time of the year. It was
+a dark, moist Yule--not a snowy one, though snow brooded overhead
+in the darkling clouds. I DID make the offer, which became me, I
+said with a laugh, as the youngest. My sisters laughed too, and
+made a jest of my evident wish to propitiate my godmother. "She is
+a fairy godmother, Rosa," said Minnie; "and you know she was
+affronted at your christening, and went away muttering vengeance.
+Here she is coming back to see you; I hope she brings golden gifts
+with her."
+
+I thought little of Lady Speldhurst and her possible golden gifts.
+I cared nothing for the wonderful fortune in the funds that my
+aunts whispered and nodded about so mysteriously. But since then I
+have wondered whether, had I then showed myself peevish or
+obstinate--had I refused to give up my room for the expected
+kinswoman--it would not have altered the whole of my life? But
+then Lucy or Minnie would have offered in my stead, and been
+sacrificed--what do I say?--better that the blow should have fallen
+as it did than on those dear ones.
+
+The chamber to which I removed was a dim little triangular room in
+the western wing, and was only to be reached by traversing the
+picture-gallery, or by mounting a little flight of stone stairs
+which led directly upward from the low-browed arch of a door that
+opened into the garden. There was one more room on the same
+landing-place, and this was a mere receptacle for broken furniture,
+shattered toys, and all the lumber that WILL accumulate in a
+country-house. The room I was to inhabit for a few nights was a
+tapestry-hung apartment, with faded green curtains of some costly
+stuff, contrasting oddly with a new carpet and the bright, fresh
+hangings of the bed, which had been hurriedly erected. The
+furniture was half old, half new; and on the dressing-table stood a
+very quaint oval mirror, in a frame of black wood--unpolished
+ebony, I think. I can remember the very pattern of the carpet, the
+number of chairs, the situation of the bed, the figures on the
+tapestry. Nay, I can recollect not only the color of the dress I
+wore on that fated evening, but the arrangement of every scrap of
+lace and ribbon, of every flower, every jewel, with a memory but
+too perfect.
+
+Scarcely had my maid finished spreading out my various articles of
+attire for the evening (when there was to be a great dinner-party)
+when the rumble of a carriage announced that Lady Speldhurst had
+arrived. The short winter's day drew to a close, and a large
+number of guests were gathered together in the ample drawing-room,
+around the blaze of the wood-fire, after dinner. My father, I
+recollect, was not with us at first. There were some squires of
+the old, hard-riding, hard-drinking stamp still lingering over
+their port in the dining-room, and the host, of course, could not
+leave them. But the ladies and all the younger gentlemen--both
+those who slept under our roof, and those who would have a dozen
+miles of fog and mire to encounter on their road home--were all
+together. Need I say that Reginald was there? He sat near me--my
+accepted lover, my plighted future husband. We were to be married
+in the spring. My sisters were not far off; they, too, had found
+eyes that sparkled and softened in meeting theirs, had found hearts
+that beat responsive to their own. And, in their cases, no rude
+frost nipped the blossom ere it became the fruit; there was no
+canker in their flowerets of young hope, no cloud in their sky.
+Innocent and loving, they were beloved by men worthy of their
+esteem.
+
+The room--a large and lofty one, with an arched roof--had somewhat
+of a somber character, from being wainscoted and ceiled with
+polished black oak of a great age. There were mirrors, and there
+were pictures on the walls, and handsome furniture, and marble
+chimney-pieces, and a gay Tournay carpet; but these merely appeared
+as bright spots on the dark background of the Elizabethan woodwork.
+Many lights were burning, but the blackness of the walls and roof
+seemed absolutely to swallow up their rays, like the mouth of a
+cavern. A hundred candles could not have given that apartment the
+cheerful lightness of a modern drawing room. But the gloomy
+richness of the panels matched well with the ruddy gleam from the
+enormous wood-fire, in which, crackling and glowing, now lay the
+mighty Yule log. Quite a blood-red luster poured forth from the
+fire, and quivered on the walls and the groined roof. We had
+gathered round the vast antique hearth in a wide circle. The
+quivering light of the fire and candles fell upon us all, but not
+equally, for some were in shadow. I remember still how tall and
+manly and handsome Reginald looked that night, taller by the head
+than any there, and full of high spirits and gayety. I, too, was
+in the highest spirits; never had my bosom felt lighter, and I
+believe it was my mirth that gradually gained the rest, for I
+recollect what a blithe, joyous company we seemed. All save one.
+Lady Speldhurst, dressed in gray silk and wearing a quaint head-
+dress, sat in her armchair, facing the fire, very silent, with her
+hands and her sharp chin propped on a sort of ivory-handled crutch
+that she walked with (for she was lame), peering at me with half-
+shut eyes. She was a little, spare old woman, with very keen,
+delicate features of the French type. Her gray silk dress, her
+spotless lace, old-fashioned jewels, and prim neatness of array,
+were well suited to the intelligence of her face, with its thin
+lips, and eyes of a piercing black, undimmed by age. Those eyes
+made me uncomfortable, in spite of my gayety, as they followed my
+every movement with curious scrutiny. Still I was very merry and
+gay; my sisters even wondered at my ever-ready mirth, which was
+almost wild in its excess. I have heard since then of the Scottish
+belief that those doomed to some great calamity become fey, and are
+never so disposed for merriment and laughter as just before the
+blow falls. If ever mortal was fey, then I was so on that evening.
+Still, though I strove to shake it off, the pertinacious
+observation of old Lady Speldhurst's eyes DID make an impression on
+me of a vaguely disagreeable nature. Others, too, noticed her
+scrutiny of me, but set it down as a mere eccentricity of a person
+always reputed whimsical, to say the least of it.
+
+However, this disagreeable sensation lasted but a few moments.
+After a short pause my aunt took her part in the conversation, and
+we found ourselves listening to a weird legend, which the old lady
+told exceedingly well. One tale led to another. Everyone was
+called on in turn to contribute to the public entertainment, and
+story after story, always relating to demonology and witchcraft,
+succeeded. It was Christmas, the season for such tales; and the
+old room, with its dusky walls and pictures, and vaulted roof,
+drinking up the light so greedily, seemed just fitted to give
+effect to such legendary lore. The huge logs crackled and burned
+with glowing warmth; the blood-red glare of the Yule log flashed on
+the faces of the listeners and narrator, on the portraits, and the
+holly wreathed about their frames, and the upright old dame, in her
+antiquated dress and trinkets, like one of the originals of the
+pictures, stepped from the canvas to join our circle. It threw a
+shimmering luster of an ominously ruddy hue upon the oaken panels.
+No wonder that the ghost and goblin stories had a new zest. No
+wonder that the blood of the more timid grew chill and curdled,
+that their flesh crept, that their hearts beat irregularly, and the
+girls peeped fearfully over their shoulders, and huddled close
+together like frightened sheep, and half fancied they beheld some
+impish and malignant face gibbering at them from the darkling
+corners of the old room. By degrees my high spirits died out, and
+I felt the childish tremors, long latent, long forgotten, coming
+over me. I followed each story with painful interest; I did not
+ask myself if I believed the dismal tales. I listened, and fear
+grew upon me--the blind, irrational fear of our nursery days. I am
+sure most of the other ladies present, young or middle-aged, were
+affected by the circumstances under which these traditions were
+heard, no less than by the wild and fantastic character of them.
+But with them the impression would die out next morning, when the
+bright sun should shine on the frosted boughs, and the rime on the
+grass, and the scarlet berries and green spikelets of the holly;
+and with me--but, ah! what was to happen ere another day dawn?
+Before we had made an end of this talk my father and the other
+squires came in, and we ceased our ghost stories, ashamed to speak
+of such matters before these new-comers--hard-headed, unimaginative
+men, who had no sympathy with idle legends. There was now a stir
+and bustle.
+
+Servants were handing round tea and coffee, and other refreshments.
+Then there was a little music and singing. I sang a duet with
+Reginald, who had a fine voice and good musical skill. I remember
+that my singing was much praised, and indeed I was surprised at the
+power and pathos of my own voice, doubtless due to my excited
+nerves and mind. Then I heard someone say to another that I was by
+far the cleverest of the Squire's daughters, as well as the
+prettiest. It did not make me vain. I had no rivalry with Lucy
+and Minnie. But Reginald whispered some soft, fond words in my ear
+a little before he mounted his horse to set off homeward, which DID
+make me happy and proud. And to think that the next time we met--
+but I forgave him long ago. Poor Reginald! And now shawls and
+cloaks were in request, and carriages rolled up to the porch, and
+the guests gradually departed. At last no one was left but those
+visitors staying in the house. Then my father, who had been called
+out to speak with the bailiff of the estate, came back with a look
+of annoyance on his face.
+
+"A strange story I have just been told," said he; "here has been my
+bailiff to inform me of the loss of four of the choicest ewes out
+of that little flock of Southdowns I set such store by, and which
+arrived in the north but two months since. And the poor creatures
+have been destroyed in so strange a manner, for their carcasses are
+horribly mangled."
+
+Most of us uttered some expression of pity or surprise, and some
+suggested that a vicious dog was probably the culprit.
+
+"It would seem so," said my father; "it certainly seems the work of
+a dog; and yet all the men agree that no dog of such habits exists
+near us, where, indeed, dogs are scarce, excepting the shepherds'
+collies and the sporting dogs secured in yards. Yet the sheep are
+gnawed and bitten, for they show the marks of teeth. Something has
+done this, and has torn their bodies wolfishly; but apparently it
+has been only to suck the blood, for little or no flesh is gone."
+
+"How strange!" cried several voices. Then some of the gentlemen
+remembered to have heard of cases when dogs addicted to sheep-
+killing had destroyed whole flocks, as if in sheer wantonness,
+scarcely deigning to taste a morsel of each slain wether.
+
+My father shook his head. "I have heard of such cases, too," he
+said; "but in this instance I am tempted to think the malice of
+some unknown enemy has been at work. The teeth of a dog have been
+busy, no doubt, but the poor sheep have been mutilated in a
+fantastic manner, as strange as horrible; their hearts, in
+especial, have been torn out, and left at some paces off, half-
+gnawed. Also, the men persist that they found the print of a naked
+human foot in the soft mud of the ditch, and near it--this." And
+he held up what seemed a broken link of a rusted iron chain.
+
+Many were the ejaculations of wonder and alarm, and many and shrewd
+the conjectures, but none seemed exactly to suit the bearings of
+the case. And when my father went on to say that two lambs of the
+same valuable breed had perished in the same singular manner three
+days previously, and that they also were found mangled and gore-
+stained, the amazement reached a higher pitch. Old Lady Speldhurst
+listened with calm, intelligent attention, but joined in none of
+our exclamations. At length she said to my father, "Try and
+recollect--have you no enemy among your neighbors?" My father
+started, and knit his brows. "Not one that I know of," he replied;
+and indeed he was a popular man and a kind landlord. "The more
+lucky you," said the old dame, with one of her grim smiles. It was
+now late, and we retired to rest before long. One by one the
+guests dropped off. I was the member of the family selected to
+escort old Lady Speldhurst to her room--the room I had vacated in
+her favor. I did not much like the office. I felt a remarkable
+repugnance to my godmother, but my worthy aunts insisted so much
+that I should ingratiate myself with one who had so much to leave
+that I could not but comply. The visitor hobbled up the broad
+oaken stairs actively enough, propped on my arm and her ivory
+crutch. The room never had looked more genial and pretty, with its
+brisk fire, modern furniture, and the gay French paper on the
+walls. "A nice room, my dear, and I ought to be much obliged to
+you for it, since my maid tells me it is yours," said her ladyship;
+"but I am pretty sure you repent your generosity to me, after all
+those ghost stories, and tremble to think of a strange bed and
+chamber, eh?" I made some commonplace reply. The old lady arched
+her eyebrows. "Where have they put you, child?" she asked; "in
+some cock-loft of the turrets, eh? or in a lumber-room--a regular
+ghost-trap? I can hear your heart beating with fear this moment.
+You are not fit to be alone." I tried to call up my pride, and
+laugh off the accusation against my courage, all the more, perhaps,
+because I felt its truth. "Do you want anything more that I can
+get you, Lady Speldhurst?" I asked, trying to feign a yawn of
+sleepiness. The old dame's keen eyes were upon me. "I rather like
+you, my dear," she said, "and I liked your mamma well enough before
+she treated me so shamefully about the christening dinner. Now, I
+know you are frightened and fearful, and if an owl should but flap
+your window to-night, it might drive you into fits. There is a
+nice little sofa-bed in this dressing closet--call your maid to
+arrange it for you, and you can sleep there snugly, under the old
+witch's protection, and then no goblin dare harm you, and nobody
+will be a bit the wiser, or quiz you for being afraid." How little
+I knew what hung in the balance of my refusal or acceptance of that
+trivial proffer! Had the veil of the future been lifted for one
+instant! but that veil is impenetrable to our gaze.
+
+I left her door. As I crossed the landing a bright gleam came from
+another room, whose door was left ajar; it (the light) fell like a
+bar of golden sheen across my path. As I approached the door
+opened and my sister Lucy, who had been watching for me, came out.
+She was already in a white cashmere wrapper, over which her
+loosened hair hung darkly and heavily, like tangles of silk.
+"Rosa, love," she whispered, "Minnie and I can't bear the idea of
+your sleeping out there, all alone, in that solitary room--the very
+room too Nurse Sherrard used to talk about! So, as you know Minnie
+has given up her room, and come to sleep in mine, still we should
+so wish you to stop with us to-night at any rate, and I could make
+up a bed on the sofa for myself or you--and--" I stopped Lucy's
+mouth with a kiss. I declined her offer. I would not listen to
+it. In fact, my pride was up in arms, and I felt I would rather
+pass the night in the churchyard itself than accept a proposal
+dictated, I felt sure, by the notion that my nerves were shaken by
+the ghostly lore we had been raking up, that I was a weak,
+superstitious creature, unable to pass a night in a strange
+chamber. So I would not listen to Lucy, but kissed her, bade her
+good-night, and went on my way laughing, to show my light heart.
+Yet, as I looked back in the dark corridor, and saw the friendly
+door still ajar, the yellow bar of light still crossing from wall
+to wall, the sweet, kind face still peering after me from amidst
+its clustering curls, I felt a thrill of sympathy, a wish to
+return, a yearning after human love and companionship. False shame
+was strongest, and conquered. I waved a gay adieu. I turned the
+corner, and peeping over my shoulder, I saw the door close; the bar
+of yellow light was there no longer in the darkness of the passage.
+I thought at that instant that I heard a heavy sigh. I looked
+sharply round. No one was there. No door was open, yet I fancied,
+and fancied with a wonderful vividness, that I did hear an actual
+sigh breathed not far off, and plainly distinguishable from the
+groan of the sycamore branches as the wind tossed them to and fro
+in the outer blackness. If ever a mortal's good angel had cause to
+sigh for sorrow, not sin, mine had cause to mourn that night. But
+imagination plays us strange tricks and my nervous system was not
+over-composed or very fitted for judicial analysis. I had to go
+through the picture-gallery. I had never entered this apartment by
+candle-light before and I was struck by the gloomy array of the
+tall portraits, gazing moodily from the canvas on the lozenge-paned
+or painted windows, which rattled to the blast as it swept howling
+by. Many of the faces looked stern, and very different from their
+daylight expression. In others a furtive, flickering smile seemed
+to mock me as my candle illumined them; and in all, the eyes, as
+usual with artistic portraits, seemed to follow my motions with a
+scrutiny and an interest the more marked for the apathetic
+immovability of the other features. I felt ill at ease under this
+stony gaze, though conscious how absurd were my apprehensions; and
+I called up a smile and an air of mirth, more as if acting a part
+under the eyes of human beings than of their mere shadows on the
+wall. I even laughed as I confronted them. No echo had my short-
+lived laughter but from the hollow armor and arching roof, and I
+continued on my way in silence.
+
+By a sudden and not uncommon revulsion of feeling I shook off my
+aimless terrors, blushed at my weakness, and sought my chamber only
+too glad that I had been the only witness of my late tremors. As I
+entered my chamber I thought I heard something stir in the
+neglected lumber-room, which was the only neighboring apartment.
+But I was determined to have no more panics, and resolutely shut my
+eyes to this slight and transient noise, which had nothing
+unnatural in it; for surely, between rats and wind, an old manor-
+house on a stormy night needs no sprites to disturb it. So I
+entered my room, and rang for my maid. As I did so I looked around
+me, and a most unaccountable repugnance to my temporary abode came
+over me, in spite of my efforts. It was no more to be shaken off
+than a chill is to be shaken off when we enter some damp cave.
+And, rely upon it, the feeling of dislike and apprehension with
+which we regard, at first sight, certain places and people, was not
+implanted in us without some wholesome purpose. I grant it is
+irrational--mere animal instinct--but is not instinct God's gift,
+and is it for us to despise it? It is by instinct that children
+know their friends from their enemies--that they distinguish with
+such unerring accuracy between those who like them and those who
+only flatter and hate them. Dogs do the same; they will fawn on
+one person, they slink snarling from another. Show me a man whom
+children and dogs shrink from, and I will show you a false, bad
+man--lies on his lips, and murder at his heart. No; let none
+despise the heaven-sent gift of innate antipathy, which makes the
+horse quail when the lion crouches in the thicket--which makes the
+cattle scent the shambles from afar, and low in terror and disgust
+as their nostrils snuff the blood-polluted air. I felt this
+antipathy strongly as I looked around me in my new sleeping-room,
+and yet I could find no reasonable pretext for my dislike. A very
+good room it was, after all, now that the green damask curtains
+were drawn, the fire burning bright and clear, candles burning on
+the mantel-piece, and the various familiar articles of toilet
+arranged as usual. The bed, too, looked peaceful and inviting--a
+pretty little white bed, not at all the gaunt funereal sort of
+couch which haunted apartments generally contain.
+
+My maid entered, and assisted me to lay aside the dress and
+ornaments I had worn, and arranged my hair, as usual, prattling the
+while, in Abigail fashion. I seldom cared to converse with
+servants; but on that night a sort of dread of being left alone--a
+longing to keep some human being near me possessed me--and I
+encouraged the girl to gossip, so that her duties took her half an
+hour longer to get through than usual. At last, however, she had
+done all that could be done, and all my questions were answered,
+and my orders for the morrow reiterated and vowed obedience to, and
+the clock on the turret struck one. Then Mary, yawning a little,
+asked if I wanted anything more, and I was obliged to answer no,
+for very shame's sake; and she went. The shutting of the door,
+gently as it was closed, affected me unpleasantly. I took a
+dislike to the curtains, the tapestry, the dingy pictures--
+everything. I hated the room. I felt a temptation to put on a
+cloak, run, half-dressed, to my sisters' chamber, and say I had
+changed my mind and come for shelter. But they must be asleep, I
+thought, and I could not be so unkind as to wake them. I said my
+prayers with unusual earnestness and a heavy heart. I extinguished
+the candles, and was just about to lay my head on my pillow, when
+the idea seized me that I would fasten the door. The candles were
+extinguished, but the firelight was amply sufficient to guide me.
+I gained the door. There was a lock, but it was rusty or hampered;
+my utmost strength could not turn the key. The bolt was broken and
+worthless. Balked of my intention, I consoled myself by
+remembering that I had never had need of fastenings yet, and
+returned to my bed. I lay awake for a good while, watching the red
+glow of the burning coals in the grate. I was quiet now, and more
+composed. Even the light gossip of the maid, full of petty human
+cares and joys, had done me good--diverted my thoughts from
+brooding. I was on the point of dropping asleep, when I was twice
+disturbed. Once, by an owl, hooting in the ivy outside--no
+unaccustomed sound, but harsh and melancholy; once, by a long and
+mournful howling set up by the mastiff, chained in the yard beyond
+the wing I occupied. A long-drawn, lugubrious howling was this
+latter, and much such a note as the vulgar declare to herald a
+death in the family. This was a fancy I had never shared; but yet
+I could not help feeling that the dog's mournful moans were sad,
+and expressive of terror, not at all like his fierce, honest bark
+of anger, but rather as if something evil and unwonted were abroad.
+But soon I fell asleep.
+
+How long I slept I never knew. I awoke at once with that abrupt
+start which we all know well, and which carries us in a second from
+utter unconsciousness to the full use of our faculties. The fire
+was still burning, but was very low, and half the room or more was
+in deep shadow. I knew, I felt, that some person or thing was in
+the room, although nothing unusual was to be seen by the feeble
+light. Yet it was a sense of danger that had aroused me from
+slumber. I experienced, while yet asleep, the chill and shock of
+sudden alarm, and I knew, even in the act of throwing off sleep
+like a mantle, WHY I awoke, and that some intruder was present.
+Yet, though I listened intently, no sound was audible, except the
+faint murmur of the fire--the dropping of a cinder from the bars--
+the loud, irregular beatings of my own heart. Notwithstanding this
+silence, by some intuition I knew that I had not been deceived by a
+dream, and felt certain that I was not alone. I waited. My heart
+beat on; quicker, more sudden grew its pulsations, as a bird in a
+cage might flutter in presence of the hawk. And then I heard a
+sound, faint, but quite distinct, the clank of iron, the rattling
+of a chain! I ventured to lift my head from the pillow. Dim and
+uncertain as the light was, I saw the curtains of my bed shake, and
+caught a glimpse of something beyond, a darker spot in the
+darkness. This confirmation of my fears did not surprise me so
+much as it shocked me. I strove to cry aloud, but could not utter
+a word. The chain rattled again, and this time the noise was
+louder and clearer. But though I strained my eyes, they could not
+penetrate the obscurity that shrouded the other end of the chamber
+whence came the sullen clanking. In a moment several distinct
+trains of thought, like many-colored strands of thread twining into
+one, became palpable to my mental vision. Was it a robber? Could
+it be a supernatural visitant? Or was I the victim of a cruel
+trick, such as I had heard of, and which some thoughtless persons
+love to practice on the timid, reckless of its dangerous results?
+And then a new idea, with some ray of comfort in it, suggested
+itself. There was a fine young dog of the Newfoundland breed, a
+favorite of my father's, which was usually chained by night in an
+outhouse. Neptune might have broken loose, found his way to my
+room, and, finding the door imperfectly closed, have pushed it open
+and entered. I breathed more freely as this harmless
+interpretation of the noise forced itself upon me. It was--it must
+be--the dog, and I was distressing myself uselessly. I resolved to
+call to him; I strove to utter his name--"Neptune, Neptune," but a
+secret apprehension restrained me, and I was mute.
+
+Then the chain clanked nearer and nearer to the bed, and presently
+I saw a dusky, shapeless mass appear between the curtains on the
+opposite side to where I was lying. How I longed to hear the whine
+of the poor animal that I hoped might be the cause of my alarm.
+But no; I heard no sound save the rustle of the curtains and the
+clash of the iron chains. Just then the dying flame of the fire
+leaped up, and with one sweeping, hurried glance I saw that the
+door was shut, and, horror! it is not the dog! it is the semblance
+of a human form that now throws itself heavily on the bed, outside
+the clothes, and lies there, huge and swart, in the red gleam that
+treacherously died away after showing so much to affright, and
+sinks into dull darkness. There was now no light left, though the
+red cinders yet glowed with a ruddy gleam like the eyes of wild
+beasts. The chain rattled no more. I tried to speak, to scream
+wildly for help; my mouth was parched, my tongue refused to obey.
+I could not utter a cry, and, indeed, who could have heard me,
+alone as I was in that solitary chamber, with no living neighbor,
+and the picture-gallery between me and any aid that even the
+loudest, most piercing shriek could summon. And the storm that
+howled without would have drowned my voice, even if help had been
+at hand. To call aloud--to demand who was there--alas! how
+useless, how perilous! If the intruder were a robber, my outcries
+would but goad him to fury; but what robber would act thus? As for
+a trick, that seemed impossible. And yet, WHAT lay by my side, now
+wholly unseen? I strove to pray aloud as there rushed on my memory
+a flood of weird legends--the dreaded yet fascinating lore of my
+childhood. I had heard and read of the spirits of the wicked men
+forced to revisit the scenes of their earthly crimes--of demons
+that lurked in certain accursed spots--of the ghoul and vampire of
+the east, stealing amidst the graves they rifled for their ghostly
+banquets; and then I shuddered as I gazed on the blank darkness
+where I knew it lay. It stirred--it moaned hoarsely; and again I
+heard the chain clank close beside me--so close that it must almost
+have touched me. I drew myself from it, shrinking away in loathing
+and terror of the evil thing--what, I knew not, but felt that
+something malignant was near.
+
+And yet, in the extremity of my fear, I dared not speak; I was
+strangely cautious to be silent, even in moving farther off; for I
+had a wild hope that it--the phantom, the creature, whichever it
+was--had not discovered my presence in the room. And then I
+remembered all the events of the night--Lady Speldhurst's ill-
+omened vaticinations, her half-warnings, her singular look as we
+parted, my sister's persuasions, my terror in the gallery, the
+remark that "this was the room nurse Sherrard used to talk of."
+And then memory, stimulated by fear, recalled the long-forgotten
+past, the ill-repute of this disused chamber, the sins it had
+witnessed, the blood spilled, the poison administered by unnatural
+hate within its walls, and the tradition which called it haunted.
+The green room--I remembered now how fearfully the servants avoided
+it--how it was mentioned rarely, and in whispers, when we were
+children, and how we had regarded it as a mysterious region, unfit
+for mortal habitation. Was It--the dark form with the chain--a
+creature of this world, or a specter? And again--more dreadful
+still--could it be that the corpses of wicked men were forced to
+rise and haunt in the body the places where they had wrought their
+evil deeds? And was such as these my grisly neighbor? The chain
+faintly rattled. My hair bristled; my eyeballs seemed starting
+from their sockets; the damps of a great anguish were on my brow.
+My heart labored as if I were crushed beneath some vast weight.
+Sometimes it appeared to stop its frenzied beatings, sometimes its
+pulsations were fierce and hurried; my breath came short and with
+extreme difficulty, and I shivered as if with cold; yet I feared to
+stir. IT moved, it moaned, its fetters clanked dismally, the couch
+creaked and shook. This was no phantom, then--no air-drawn
+specter. But its very solidity, its palpable presence, were a
+thousand times more terrible. I felt that I was in the very grasp
+of what could not only affright but harm; of something whose
+contact sickened the soul with deathly fear. I made a desperate
+resolve: I glided from the bed, I seized a warm wrapper, threw it
+around me, and tried to grope, with extended hands, my way to the
+door. My heart beat high at the hope of escape. But I had
+scarcely taken one step before the moaning was renewed--it changed
+into a threatening growl that would have suited a wolf's throat,
+and a hand clutched at my sleeve. I stood motionless. The
+muttering growl sank to a moan again, the chain sounded no more,
+but still the hand held its gripe of my garment, and I feared to
+move. It knew of my presence, then. My brain reeled, the blood
+boiled in my ears, and my knees lost all strength, while my heart
+panted like that of a deer in the wolf's jaws. I sank back, and
+the benumbing influence of excessive terror reduced me to a state
+of stupor.
+
+When my full consciousness returned I was sitting on the edge of
+the bed, shivering with cold, and barefooted. All was silent, but
+I felt that my sleeve was still clutched by my unearthly visitant.
+The silence lasted a long time. Then followed a chuckling laugh
+that froze my very marrow, and the gnashing of teeth as in demoniac
+frenzy; and then a wailing moan, and this was succeeded by silence.
+Hours may have passed--nay, though the tumult of my own heart
+prevented my hearing the clock strike, must have passed--but they
+seemed ages to me. And how were they passed? Hideous visions
+passed before the aching eyes that I dared not close, but which
+gazed ever into the dumb darkness where It lay--my dread companion
+through the watches of the night. I pictured It in every abhorrent
+form which an excited fancy could summon up: now as a skeleton;
+with hollow eye-holes and grinning, fleshless jaws; now as a
+vampire, with livid face and bloated form, and dripping mouth wet
+with blood. Would it never be light! And yet, when day should
+dawn I should be forced to see It face to face. I had heard that
+specter and fiend were compelled to fade as morning brightened, but
+this creature was too real, too foul a thing of earth, to vanish at
+cock-crow. No! I should see it--the Horror--face to face! And
+then the cold prevailed, and my teeth chattered, and shiverings ran
+through me, and yet there was the damp of agony on my bursting
+brow. Some instinct made me snatch at a shawl or cloak that lay on
+a chair within reach, and wrap it round me. The moan was renewed,
+and the chain just stirred. Then I sank into apathy, like an
+Indian at the stake, in the intervals of torture. Hours fled by,
+and I remained like a statue of ice, rigid and mute. I even slept,
+for I remember that I started to find the cold gray light of an
+early winter's day was on my face, and stealing around the room
+from between the heavy curtains of the window.
+
+Shuddering, but urged by the impulse that rivets the gaze of the
+bird upon the snake, I turned to see the Horror of the night. Yes,
+it was no fevered dream, no hallucination of sickness, no airy
+phantom unable to face the dawn. In the sickly light I saw it
+lying on the bed, with its grim head on the pillow. A man? Or a
+corpse arisen from its unhallowed grave, and awaiting the demon
+that animated it? There it lay--a gaunt, gigantic form, wasted to
+a skeleton, half-clad, foul with dust and clotted gore, its huge
+limbs flung upon the couch as if at random, its shaggy hair
+streaming over the pillows like a lion's mane. His face was toward
+me. Oh, the wild hideousness of that face, even in sleep! In
+features it was human, even through its horrid mask of mud and
+half-dried bloody gouts, but the expression was brutish and
+savagely fierce; the white teeth were visible between the parted
+lips, in a malignant grin; the tangled hair and beard were mixed in
+leonine confusion, and there were scars disfiguring the brow.
+Round the creature's waist was a ring of iron, to which was
+attached a heavy but broken chain--the chain I had heard clanking.
+With a second glance I noted that part of the chain was wrapped in
+straw to prevent its galling the wearer. The creature--I cannot
+call it a man--had the marks of fetters on its wrists, the bony arm
+that protruded through one tattered sleeve was scarred and bruised;
+the feet were bare, and lacerated by pebbles and briers, and one of
+them was wounded, and wrapped in a morsel of rag. And the lean
+hands, one of which held my sleeve, were armed with talons like an
+eagle's. In an instant the horrid truth flashed upon me--I was in
+the grasp of a madman. Better the phantom that scares the sight
+than the wild beast that rends and tears the quivering flesh--the
+pitiless human brute that has no heart to be softened, no reason at
+whose bar to plead, no compassion, naught of man save the form and
+the cunning. I gasped in terror. Ah! the mystery of those
+ensanguined fingers, those gory, wolfish jaws! that face, all
+besmeared with blackening blood, is revealed!
+
+The slain sheep, so mangled and rent--the fantastic butchery--the
+print of the naked foot--all, all were explained; and the chain,
+the broken link of which was found near the slaughtered animals--it
+came from his broken chain--the chain he had snapped, doubtless, in
+his escape from the asylum where his raging frenzy had been
+fettered and bound, in vain! in vain! Ah me! how had this grisly
+Samson broken manacles and prison bars--how had he eluded guardian
+and keeper and a hostile world, and come hither on his wild way,
+hunted like a beast of prey, and snatching his hideous banquet like
+a beast of prey, too! Yes, through the tatters of his mean and
+ragged garb I could see the marks of the seventies, cruel and
+foolish, with which men in that time tried to tame the might of
+madness. The scourge--its marks were there; and the scars of the
+hard iron fetters, and many a cicatrice and welt, that told a
+dismal tale of hard usage. But now he was loose, free to play the
+brute--the baited, tortured brute that they had made him--now
+without the cage, and ready to gloat over the victims his strength
+should overpower. Horror! horror! I was the prey--the victim--
+already in the tiger's clutch; and a deadly sickness came over me,
+and the iron entered into my soul, and I longed to scream, and was
+dumb! I died a thousand deaths as that morning wore on. I DARED
+NOT faint. But words cannot paint what I suffered as I waited--
+waited till the moment when he should open his eyes and be aware of
+my presence; for I was assured he knew it not. He had entered the
+chamber as a lair, when weary and gorged with his horrid orgy; and
+he had flung himself down to sleep without a suspicion that he was
+not alone. Even his grasping my sleeve was doubtless an act done
+betwixt sleeping and waking, like his unconscious moans and
+laughter, in some frightful dream.
+
+Hours went on; then I trembled as I thought that soon the house
+would be astir, that my maid would come to call me as usual, and
+awake that ghastly sleeper. And might he not have time to tear me,
+as he tore the sheep, before any aid could arrive? At last what I
+dreaded came to pass--a light footstep on the landing--there is a
+tap at the door. A pause succeeds, and then the tapping is
+renewed, and this time more loudly. Then the madman stretched his
+limbs, and uttered his moaning cry, and his eyes slowly opened--
+very slowly opened and met mine. The girl waited a while ere she
+knocked for the third time. I trembled lest she should open the
+door unbidden--see that grim thing, and bring about the worst.
+
+I saw the wondering surprise in his haggard, bloodshot eyes; I saw
+him stare at me half vacantly, then with a crafty yet wondering
+look; and then I saw the devil of murder begin to peep forth from
+those hideous eyes, and the lips to part as in a sneer, and the
+wolfish teeth to bare themselves. But I was not what I had been.
+Fear gave me a new and a desperate composure--a courage foreign to
+my nature. I had heard of the best method of managing the insane;
+I could but try; I DID try. Calmly, wondering at my own feigned
+calm, I fronted the glare of those terrible eyes. Steady and
+undaunted was my gaze--motionless my attitude. I marveled at
+myself, but in that agony of sickening terror I was OUTWARDLY firm.
+They sink, they quail, abashed, those dreadful eyes, before the
+gaze of a helpless girl; and the shame that is never absent from
+insanity bears down the pride of strength, the bloody cravings of
+the wild beast. The lunatic moaned and drooped his shaggy head
+between his gaunt, squalid hands.
+
+I lost not an instant. I rose, and with one spring reached the
+door, tore it open, and, with a shriek, rushed through, caught the
+wondering girl by the arm, and crying to her to run for her life,
+rushed like the wind along the gallery, down the corridor, down the
+stairs. Mary's screams filled the house as she fled beside me. I
+heard a long-drawn, raging cry, the roar of a wild animal mocked of
+its prey, and I knew what was behind me. I never turned my head--I
+flew rather than ran. I was in the hall already; there was a rush
+of many feet, an outcry of many voices, a sound of scuffling feet,
+and brutal yells, and oaths, and heavy blows, and I fell to the
+ground crying, "Save me!" and lay in a swoon. I awoke from a
+delirious trance. Kind faces were around my bed, loving looks were
+bent on me by all, by my dear father and dear sisters; but I
+scarcely saw them before I swooned again.
+
+When I recovered from that long illness, through which I had been
+nursed so tenderly, the pitying looks I met made me tremble. I
+asked for a looking-glass. It was long denied me, but my
+importunity prevailed at last--a mirror was brought. My youth was
+gone at one fell swoop. The glass showed me a livid and haggard
+face, blanched and bloodless as of one who sees a specter; and in
+the ashen lips, and wrinkled brow, and dim eyes, I could trace
+nothing of my old self. The hair, too, jetty and rich before, was
+now as white as snow; and in one night the ravages of half a
+century had passed over my face. Nor have my nerves ever recovered
+their tone after that dire shock. Can you wonder that my life was
+blighted, that my lover shrank from me, so sad a wreck was I?
+
+I am old now--old and alone. My sisters would have had me to live
+with them, but I chose not to sadden their genial homes with my
+phantom face and dead eyes. Reginald married another. He has been
+dead many years. I never ceased to pray for him, though he left me
+when I was bereft of all. The sad weird is nearly over now. I am
+old, and near the end, and wishful for it. I have not been bitter
+or hard, but I cannot bear to see many people, and am best alone.
+I try to do what good I can with the worthless wealth Lady
+Speldhurst left me, for, at my wish, my portion was shared between
+my sisters. What need had I of inheritance?--I, the shattered
+wreck made by that one night of horror!
+
+
+
+
+
+End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of Stories by Modern American Authors
+